CHAPTER
1
"I
WONDER WHAT'S BOTHERING the chickens," Richard said.
Kahlan
nuzzled tighter against his shoulder. "Maybe your grandfather is pestering
them now, too." When he didn't reply, she tilted her head back to squint
up at him in the dim firelight. He was watching the door. "Or maybe
they're grouchy because we kept them awake most of the night."
Richard
grinned and kissed her forehead. The brief squawking on the other side of the
door had ceased. No doubt the village children, still reveling in the wedding
celebration, had been chasing the chickens from a favorite roost on the squat
wall outside the spirit house. She told him as much.
Faint
sounds of distant laughter, conversation, and singing drifted into their quiet
sanctuary. The scent of the balsam sticks that were always burned in the
spirit-house hearth mingled with the tang of sweat earned in passion, and the
spicy-sweet aroma of roasted peppers and onions. Kahlan watched the firelight
reflecting in his gray eyes a moment before lying back in his arms to sway
gently to the sounds of the drums and the boldas.
Paddles
scraped up and down ridges carved on the hollow, bell-shaped boldas produced an
eerie, haunting melody that seeped through the solitude of the spirit house on
its
way out
onto the grasslands, welcoming spirit ancestors to the celebration.
Richard
stretched to the side and retrieved a round, flat piece of tava bread from the
platter Zedd, his grandfather, had brought them. "It's still warm. Want
some?"
"Bored
with your new wife so soon, Lord Rahl?"
Richard's
contented laugh brought a smile to her lips. "We really are married,
aren't we? It wasn't just a dream, was it?"
Kahlan
loved his laugh. So many times she had prayed to the good spirits that he would
be able to laugh again- that they both would.
"Just
a dream come true," she murmured.
She
urged him from the tava bread for a long kiss. His breathing quickened as he
clutched her in his powerful arms. She slid her hands across the sweat-slick
muscles of his broad shoulders to run her fingers through the thick tangle of
his hair as she moaned against his mouth.
It had
been here in the Mud People's spirit house, on a night that now seemed
lifetimes ago, that she had first realized she was hopelessly in love with him,
but had to keep her forbidden feelings secret. It was during that visit, after
battle, struggle, and sacrifice, that they had been accepted into the community
of these remote people. On another visit, it was here in the spirit house,
after Richard accomplished the impossible and broke the spell of prohibition,
that he had asked her to be his wife. And now they had at last spent their
wedding night in the spirit house of the Mud People.
Though
it had been for love and love alone, their wedding was also a formal joining of
the Midlands and D'Hara. Had they been wedded in any of the great cities of the
Midlands, the event undoubtedly would have been a pageant of unparalleled
splendor. Kahlan was experienced in pageantry. These guileless people understood
their sincerity and simple reasons for wanting to be married. She preferred the
joyous wedding they had celebrated among people bonded to them in their hearts,
over one of cold pageant.
Among
the Mud People, who led hard lives on the plain of the wilds, such a
celebration was a rare opportunity to gather in merriment, to feast, to dance,
and to tell stories. Kahlan knew of no other instance of an outsider being
accepted as Mud People, so such a wedding was unprecedented. She suspected it
would become part of their lore, the story repeated in future gatherings by
dancers dressed in elaborate grass-and-hide costumes, their faces painted with
masks of black and white mud.
"I
do believe you're plying an innocent girl with your magic touch," she teased,
breathlessly. She was beginning to forget how weak and weary her legs were.
Richard
rolled onto his back to catch his breath. "Do you suppose we ought to go
out there and see what Zedd is up to?"
Kahlan
playfully smacked the back of her hand against his ribs. "Why Lord Rahl, I
think you really are bored with your new wife. First the chickens, then tava
bread, and now your grandfather."
Richard
was watching the door again. "I smell blood."
Kahlan
sat up. "Probably just some game brought back by a hunting party. If there
really was trouble, Richard, we would know about it. We have people guarding
us. In fact, we have the whole village watching over us. No one could get past
the Mud People hunters unseen. There would at least be an alarm and everyone
would know about it."
She
wasn't sure if he even heard her. He was stone still, his attention riveted on
the door. When Kahlan's fingers glided up his arm and her hand rested lightly
on his shoulder, his muscles finally slackened and he turned to her.
"You're
right." His smile was apologetic. "I guess I can't seem to let myself
relax."
Nearly
her whole life, Kahlan had trod the halls of power and authority. From a young
age she had been disciplined in responsibility and obligation, and schooled in
the threats that always shadowed her. She was well steeled to it all by the
time she had been called upon to lead the alliance of the Midlands.
Richard
had grown up very differently, and had gone onto fulfill his passion for his
forested homeland by becoming a woods guide. Turmoil, trial, and destiny had
thrust him into a new life as leader of the D'Haran Empire. Vigilance was his
valuable ally and difficult to dismiss.
She saw
his hand idly skim over his clothes. He was looking for his sword. He'd had to
travel to the Mud People's village without it.
Countless
times, she had seen him absently and without conscious thought reassure himself
that it was at hand. It had been his companion for months, through a crucible
of change-both his, and the world's. It was his protector, and he, in turn, was
the protector of that singular sword and the post it represented.
In a
way, the Sword of Truth was but a talisman. It was the hand wielding the sword
that was the power; as the Seeker of Truth, he was the true weapon. In some
ways, it was only a symbol of his post, much as the distinctive white dress was
a symbol of hers.
Kahlan
leaned forward and kissed him. His arms returned to her. She playfully pulled
him back down on top of her. "So, how does it feel being married to the
Mother Confessor herself?"
He
slipped onto an elbow beside her and gazed down into her eyes.
"Wonderful," he murmured. "Wonderful and inspiring. And
tiring." With a gentle finger he traced the line of her jaw. "And how
does it feel being married to the Lord Rahl?"
A
throaty laugh burbled up. "Sticky." Richard chuckled and stuffed a
piece of tava bread in her mouth. He sat up and set the brimming wooden platter
down between them. Tava bread, made from tava roots, was a staple of the Mud
People. Served with nearly every meal, it was eaten by itself, wrapped around
other foods, and used as a scoop for porridge and stews. Dried into biscuits,
it was carried on long hunts.
Kahlan
yawned as she -stretched, feeling relieved that he was no longer preoccupied by
what was beyond the door. She kissed his cheek at seeing him once again at
ease.
Under a
layer of warm tava bread he found roasted peppers, onions, mushroom caps as
broad as her hand, turnips, and boiled greens. There were even several rice
cakes. Richard took a bite out of a turnip before rolling some of the greens, a
mushroom, and a pepper in a piece of tava bread and handing it to her.
In a
reflective tone, he said, "I wish we could stay in here forever."
Kahlan
pulled the blanket over her lap. She knew what he meant. Outside, the world
awaited them.
"Well..."
she said, batting her eyelashes at him, "just because Zedd came and told
us the elders want their spirit house back, that doesn't mean we have to surrender
it until we're good and ready."
Richard
took in her frolicsome offer with a mannered smile. "Zedd was just using
the elders as an excuse. He wants me."
She bit
into the roll he had given her as she watched him absently break a rice cake in
half, his thoughts seeming to drift from what he was doing.
"He
hasn't seen you for months." With a finger, she wiped away juice as it
rolled down her chin. "He's eager to hear all you've been through, and
about the things you've learned." He nodded absently as she sucked the
juice from her finger. "He loves you, Richard. There are things he needs
to teach you."
"That
old man has been teaching me since I was born." He smiled distantly.
"I love him, too."
Richard
enfolded mushrooms, greens, pepper and onion in tava bread and took a big bite.
Kahlan pulled strands of limp greens from her roll and nibbled them as she
listened to the slow crackle of the fire and the distant music.
When he
finished, Richard rooted under the stack of tava bread and came up with a dried
plum. "All that time, and I never knew he was more than my beloved friend;
I never suspected he was my grandfather, and more than a simple man."
He bit
off half the plum and offered her the other half.
"He
was protecting you, Richard. Being your friend was the most important thing for
you to know." She took the proffered plum and popped it in her mouth. She
studied his handsome features as she chewed.
With
her fingertips, she turned his face to look up at her. She understood his larger
concerns. "Zedd is back with us, now, Richard. He'll help us. His counsel
will be a comfort as well as an aid."
"You're
right. Who better to counsel us than the likes of Zedd?" Richard pulled
his clothes close. "And he is no doubt impatient to hear everything."
As
Richard drew his black pants on, Kahlan put a rice cake between her teeth and
held it there as she tugged things from her pack. She halted and took the rice
cake from her mouth.
"We've
been separated from Zedd for months-you longer than I. Zedd and Ann will want
to hear it all. We'll have to tell it a dozen times before they're satisfied.
"I'd
really like to have a bath first. There are some warm springs not too far
away."
Richard
halted at buttoning his black shirt. "What was it that Zedd and Ann were
in such a fret about, last night, before the wedding?"
"Last
night?" She pulled her folded shirt from her pack and shook it out.
"Something about the chimes. I told them I spoke the three chimes. But
Zedd said they would take care of it, whatever it was."
Kahlan
didn't like to think about that. It gave her goose-flesh to remember her fear
and panic. It made her ache with a sick, weak feeling to contemplate what would
have happened had she delayed even another moment in speaking those three
words. Had she delayed, Richard would now be dead. She banished the memory.
"That's
what I thought I remembered." Richard smiled as he winked. "Looking
at you in your blue wedding dress ... well, I do remember having more important
things on my mind at the time.
"The
three chimes are supposed to be a simple matter. I guess he did say as much.
Zedd, of all people, shouldn't have any trouble with that sort of thing."
"So,
how about the bath?"
"What?"
He was staring at the door again.
"Bath.
Can we go to the springs and have a warm bath before we have to sit down with
Zedd and Ann and start telling them long stories?"
He
pulled his black tunic over his head. The broad gold band around its squared
edges caught the firelight. He gave her a sidelong glance. "Will you wash
my back?"
She
watched his smile as he buckled on his wide leather over-belt with its
gold-worked pouches to each side. Among other things, they held possessions
both extraordinary and dangerous.
"Lord
Rahl, I will wash anything you want."
He
laughed as he put on his leather-padded silver wristbands. The ancient symbols
worked onto them reflected with points of reddish firelight. "Sounds like
my new wife may turn an ordinary bath into an event."
Kahlan
tossed her cloak around her shoulders and then pulled the tangle of her long
hair out from under the collar. "After we tell Zedd, we'll be on our
way." She playfully poked his ribs with a finger. "Then you'll find
out."
Giggling,
he caught her finger to stop her from tickling him. "If you want a bath,
we'd better not tell Zedd. He'll start in on us with just one question, then
just one more, and then another." His cloak, glimmered golden in the
firelight as he fastened it at his throat. "Before you know it, the day
will be done and he'll still be asking questions. How far are these warm
springs?"
Kahlan
gestured to the south. "An hour's walk. Maybe a bit more." She
stuffed some tava bread, a brush, a cake of fragrant herb soap, and a few other
small items into a leather satchel. "But if, as you say, Zedd wants to see
us, don't you suppose he'll be nettled if we go off without telling him?"
Richard
grunted a cynical laugh. "If you want a bath, it's best to apologize later
for not telling him first. It isn't that far. We'll be back before he really
misses us, anyway."
Kahlan
caught his arm. She turned serious. "Richard, I know you're eager to see
Zedd. We can go bathe later, if you're impatient to see him. I wouldn't really
mind.... Mostly I just wanted to be alone with you a little longer." He
hugged her shoulders. "We'll see him when we get back in a few hours. He
can wait. I'd rather be alone with you, too."
As he
nudged open the door, Kahlan saw him once again absently reach to touch the
sword that wasn't there. His cloak was a golden blaze as the sunlight fell
across it. Stepping behind him into the cold morning light, Kahlan had to
squint. Savory aromas of foods being prepared on village cook fires filled her
lungs.
Richard
leaned to the side, looking behind the short wall. His raptorlike gaze briefly
swept the sky. His scrutiny of the narrow passageways among the jumble of drab,
square buildings all around was more meticulous.
The
buildings on this side of the village, such as the spirit house, were used for
various communal purposes. Some were used only by the elders as sanctuaries of
sorts. Some were used by hunters in rites before a long hunt. No man ever
crossed the threshold of the women's buildings.
Here,
too, the dead were prepared for their funeral ceremony. The Mud People buried
their dead.
Using
wood for funeral pyres was impractical; wood of any quantity was distant, and
therefore precious. Wood for cook fires was supplemented with dried dung but
more often with billets of tightly wound dried grass. Bonfires, such as the
ones the night before at their wedding ceremony, were a rare and wondrous
treat.
With no
one living in any of the surrounding buildings, this part of the village had an
empty, otherworldly feel to it. The drums and boldas added their preternatural
influence to the mood among the deep shadows. The drifting voices made the
empty streets seem haunted. Bold slashes of sunlight slanting in rendered the
deep shade beyond nearly impenetrable.
Still
studying those shadows, Richard gestured behind. Kahlan glanced over the wall.
In the
midst of scattered feathers fluttering in the cold breeze lay the bloody
carcass of a chicken.
CHAPTER
2
KAHLAN
HAD BEEN WRONG. It hadn't been children bothering the chickens.
"Hawk?"
she asked.
Richard
checked the sky again. "Possibly. Maybe a weasel or a fox. Whatever it
was, it was frightened off before it could devour its meal."
"Well,
that should put your mind at ease. It was just some animal after a
chicken."
Cara,
in her skintight, red leather outfit, had immediately spotted them and was
already striding their way. Her Agiel, appearing to be no more than a thin,
bloodred leather rod at most a foot in length, dangled from her wrist on a fine
chain. The gruesome weapon was never more than a flick of her wrist away from
Cara's grasp.
Kahlan
could read the relief in Cara's blue eyes at seeing that her wards had not been
stolen away by invisible forces beyond the spirit-house door.
Kahlan
knew Cara would rather have been closer to her charges, but she had been
considerate enough to give them the privacy of distance. The consideration
extended to keeping others away, too. Knowing how deadly serious was Cara's
commitment to their protection, Kahlan appreciated the true depth of the gift
of that distance.
Distance.
Kahlan
glanced up at Richard. That was why his suspicion had been aroused. He had
known it wasn't children bothering the chickens. Cara wouldn't have allowed
children to get that close to the spirit house, that close to a door without a
lock.
Before
Cara could speak, Richard asked her, "Did you see what killed the
chicken?"
Cara
nicked her long, single blond braid back over her shoulder. "No. When I
ran over to the wall by the door I must have frightened off the predator."
All
Mord-Siths wore a single braid; it was part of the uniform, lest anyone mistake
who they were. Few, if any, ever made such a dangerous mistake.
"Has
Zedd tried to come back to see us again?" Richard asked.
"No."
Cara brushed back a stray wisp of blond hair. "After he brought you the
food, he told me that he wishes to see you both when you are ready."
Richard
nodded, still eyeing the shadows. "We're not ready. We're going first to
some nearby warm springs for a bath."
A sly
smile stole onto Cara's face. "How delightful. I will wash your
back."
Richard
leaned down, putting his face closer to hers. "No, you will not wash my
back. You will watch it."
Cara's
sly smile widened. "Mmm. That sounds fun, too."
Richard's
face turned as red as Cara's leather.
Kahlan
looked away, suppressing her own smile. She knew how much Cara enjoyed
flustering Richard. Kahlan had never seen bodyguards as openly irreverent as
Cara and her sister Mord-Sith. Nor better.
The Mord-Sith,
an ancient sect of protectors to the Lord
10
Rahl of
D'Hara, all shared the same ruthless confidence. From adolescence, their
training was beyond savage. It was merciless. It twisted them into remorseless
killers.
Kahlan
grew up knowing little of the mysterious land of D'Hara to the east. Richard
had been born in Westland, far from D'Hara, and had known even less -than she.
When D'Hara had attacked the Midlands, Richard had been swept up into the
fight, and in the end had killed Darken Rahl, the tyrannical leader of D'Hara.
Richard
never knew Darken Rahl had raped his mother and sired him; he had grown up
thinking George Cypher, the gentle man who had raised him, was his father. Zedd
had kept the secret in order to protect his daughter and then his grandson.
Only after Richard killed Darken Rahl had he discovered the truth.
Richard
knew little of the dominion he had inherited. He had assumed the mantle of rule
only because of the imminent threat of a larger war. If not stopped, the Imperial
Order would enslave the world.
As the
new master of D'Hara, Richard had freed the Mord-Sith from the cruel discipline
of their brutal profession, only to have them exercise that freedom by choosing
to be his protectors. Richard wore two Agiel on a thong around his neck as a
sign of respect for the two women who had given their lives while protecting
him.
Richard
was an object of reverence to these women, and yet with their new Lord Rahl
they did the previously unthinkable: they joked with him. They teased him. They
rarely missed a chance to bait him.
The
former Lord Rahl, Richard's father, would have had them tortured to death for
such a breach of discipline. Kahlan speculated that their irreverence was their
way of reminding Richard that he had freed them and that they served only by
choice. Perhaps their shattered childhoods simply left them with an odd sense
of humor they were now free to express.
The
Mord-Sith were fearless in protecting Richard-and by his orders, Kahlan-to the
point of seeming to court
11
death.
They claimed to fear nothing more than dying in bed, old and toothless. Richard
had vowed more than once to visit that fate upon them.
Partly
because of his deep empathy with these women, for their torturous training at
the hands of his ancestors, Richard could rarely bring himself to reprimand
their antics, and usually remained above their jabs. His restraint only
encouraged them.
The
redness of this Lord Rahl's red face when Cara said she was going to watch him
take a bath betrayed his upbringing.
Richard
finally schooled his exasperation and rolled his eyes. "You're not
watching, either. You can just wait here."
Kahlan
knew there was no chance of that. Cara barked a dismissive laugh as she
followed them. She never gave a second thought to disregarding his direct
orders if she thought they interfered with the protection of his life. Cara and
her sister Mord-Sith only followed his orders if they judged them important and
if they didn't seem to put him at greater risk.
Before
they had gone far, they were joined by a half-dozen hunters who materialized
out of the shadows and passageways around the spirit house. Sinewy and well
proportioned, the tallest of them was not as tall as Kahlan. Richard towered
over them. Their bare chests and legs were cloaked with long streaks and
patches of mud for better concealment. Each carried a bow hooked over his
shoulder, a knife at his hip, and a handful of throwing spears.
Kahlan
knew their quivers to be filled with arrows dipped in ten-step poison. These
were Chandalen's men; among the Mud People, only they routinely carried poison
arrows. Chandalen's men were not simply hunters, but protectors of the Mud
People.
They
all grinned when Kahlan gently slapped their faces-the customary greeting of
the Mud People, a gesture of respect for their strength. She thanked them in
their language for standing watch and then translated her words to Richard and
Cara.
12
"Did
you know they were scattered about, guarding us?" Kahlan whispered to
Richard as they started out once more.
He
stole a look back over his shoulder. "I only saw four of them. I have to
admit I missed two."
There
was no way he could have seen the two he missed-they had come from the far side
of the spirit house. Kahlan hadn't seen even one. She shuddered. The hunters
seemed able to become invisible at will, though they were even better at it out
on the grasslands. She was grateful for all those who silently watched over
their safety.
Cara
told them Zedd and Ann were over on the southeast side of the village, so they
stayed to the west as they walked south. With Cara and the hunters in tow, they
skirted most of the open area where the. villagers gathered, choosing instead
the alleys between the mud-brick buildings plastered over with a tan clay.
People
smiled and waved in greeting, or patted their backs, or gave them the
traditional gentle slaps of respect.
Children
ran among the legs of the adults, chasing small leather balls, each other, or
invisible game. Occasionally, chickens were the not so invisible game. They
scattered in fright before the laughing, leaping, grasping young hunters.
Kahlan,
with her cloak wrapped tight, couldn't understand how the children, wearing so
little, could stand the cold morning air. Almost all were at least
bare-chested, the younger ones naked.
Children
were watched over, but allowed to run about at will. They were rarely called to
account for anything. Their later training would be intense, difficult, strict,
and they would be accountable for everything.
The
young children, still free to be children, were a constant, ever-present, and
eager audience for anything out of the ordinary. To the Mud People children,
like most children, a great many things seemed out of the ordinary. Even
chickens.
As the
small party cut across the southern edge of the open area in the center of the
village, they were spotted by Chandalen, the leader of the fiercest hunters. He
was dressed
13
in his
best buckskin. His hair, as was the custom among the Mud People, was
fastidiously slicked down with sticky mud. The coyote hide across his shoulders
was a new mark of authority. Recently he had been named one of the six elders
of the village. In his case, "elder" was simply a term of respect and
not reflective of age.
After
the slaps were exchanged, Chandalen finally grinned as he clapped Richard's
back. "You are a great friend "to Chandalen," he announced.
"The Mother Confessor would surely have chosen Chandalen for her husband
had you not married her. You will forever have my thanks." Before Kahlan
had gone to Westland desperately seeking' help and there met Richard, Darken
Rahl had murdered all the other Confessors, leaving Kahlan the last of her
kind. Until she and Richard had found a way, no Confessor ever married for
love, because her touch would unintentionally destroy that love.
Before
now, a Confessor chose her mate for the strength he would bring to her
daughters, and then she took him with her power. Chandalen reasoned that put
him at great risk of being chosen. No offense had been intended.
With a
laugh, Richard said he was happy to take the job of being Kahlan's husband. He
briefly looked back at Chandalen's men. His voice lowered as he turned more
serious. "Did your men see what killed the chicken by the spirit
house?"
Only
Kahlan spoke the Mud People's language, and among the Mud People, only
Chandalen spoke hers. He listened carefully as his men reported a quiet night
after they had taken up their posts. They were the third watch.
One of
their younger guards, Juni, then mimed nocking an arrow and drawing string to
cheek, quickly pointing first one direction and then another, but said that he
was unable to spot the animal that had attacked the chicken in their village.
He demonstrated how he'd cursed the attacker with vile names and spat with
contempt at its honor, to shame it into showing itself, but to no avail.
Richard nodded at Chandalen's translation.
14
Chandalen
hadn't translated all of Juni's words. He left out the man's apology. For a
hunter-one of Chandalen's men especially-to miss such a thing right in their
midst while on watch was a matter of shame. Kahlan knew Chandalen would later
have more to say to Juni.
Just
before they once again struck out, the Bird Man, over on one of the open pole
structures, glanced their way. The leader of the six elders, and thus of the
Mud People, the Bird Man had conducted the wedding ceremony.
It
would be inconsiderate not to give their greetings and thanks before they left
for the springs. Richard must have had the same thought, for he changed
direction toward the grass-roofed platform where sat the Bird Man.
Children
played nearby. Several women in red, blue, and brown dresses chatted among
themselves as they strolled past. A couple of brown goats searched the ground
for any food people might have dropped. They seemed to be having some limited
success-when they were able to pull themselves away from the children. Some
chickens pecked at the dirt, while others strutted and clucked.
Off in
the clearing, the bonfires, most little more than glowing embers, still burned.
People yet huddled about them, entranced by the glow or the warmth. Bonfires
were a rare extravagance symbolizing a joyous celebration, or a gathering to
call their spirit ancestors and make them welcome with warmth and light. Some
of the people would have stayed up the whole night just to watch the spectacle
of the fires. For the children, the bonfires were a source of wonder and
delight.
Everyone
had worn their best clothes for the celebration, and they were still dressed in
their finery because the celebration officially continued until the sun set.
Men wore fine hides and skins and proudly carried their prize weapons. Women
wore brightly colored dresses and metal bracelets and broad smiles.
Young
people were usually painfully shy, but the wedding brought their daring to the
surface. The night before, giggling young women had jabbered bold questions at
Kah-
15
lan.
Young men had followed Richard about, satisfied to grin at him and simply be
near the important goings-on.
The
Bird Man was dressed in the buckskin pants and tunic he seemed always to wear,
no matter the occasion. His long silver hair hung to his shoulders. A leather
thong around his neck held his ever-present bone whistle, used to call birds.
With his whistle he could, seemingly effortlessly, call any kind of bird
desired. Most would alight on his outstretched arm and sit contentedly. Richard
was always awed by such a display.
Kahlan
knew the Bird Man understood and relied on signs from birds. She speculated
that perhaps he called birds with his whistle to see if they would give forth
some sign only he could fathom. The Bird Man was an astute reader of signs
given off by people, as well. She sometimes thought he could read her mind.
Many
people in the great cities of the Midlands thought of people in the wilds, like
the Mud People, as savages who worshiped strange things and held ignorant
beliefs. Kahlan understood -the simple wisdom of these people and their ability
to read subtle signs in the living things they knew so well in the world around
them. Many times she had seen the Mud People foretell with a fair degree of
accuracy the weather for the next few days by .watching the way the grasses
moved in the wind.
Two of
the village elders, Hajanlet and Arbrin, sat at the back of the platform, their
eyelids drooping, as they watched their people out in the open area. Arbrin's
hand rested protectively on the shoulder of a little boy sleeping curled up
beside him. In his sleep, the child rhythmically sucked a thumb.
Platters
holding little more than scraps .of food sat scattered about, along with mugs
of various drinks shared at celebrations. While some of the drinks were
intoxicating, Kahlan knew the Mud People weren't given to drunkenness.
"Good
morning, honored elder," Kahlan said in his language.
His
leathery face turned up to them, offering a wide smile. "Welcome to the
new day, child."
His
attention returned to something out among the people of his village. Kahlan
caught sight of Chandalen eyeing the empty mugs before directing an affected
smile back at his men.
"Honored
elder," Kahlan said, "Richard and I would like to thank you for the
wonderful wedding ceremony. If you have no need of us just now, we would like
to go out to the warm springs."
He
smiled and waved his dismissal. "Do not stay too long, or the warmth you
get from the springs will be washed away by the rain. "
Kahlan
glanced at the clear sky. She looked back at Chandalen. He nodded his
agreement.
"He
says if we dally at the springs it will rain on us before we're back."
Mystified,
Richard appraised the sky. "I guess we'd best take their advice and not
dally."
"We'd
better be off, then," she told the Bird Man.
He
beckoned with a finger. Kahlan leaned closer. He was intently observing the
chickens scratching at the ground not far away. Leaning toward him, Kahlan
listened to his slow, even breathing as she waited. She thought he must have
forgotten he was going to say something.
At last
he pointed out into the open area and whispered to her.
Kahlan
straightened. She looked out at the chickens.
"Well?"
Richard asked. "What did he say?"
At
first, she wasn't sure she had heard him right, but by the frowns on the faces
of Chandalen and his hunters, she knew she had.
Kahlan
didn't know if she should translate such a thing. She didn't want to cause the
Bird Man embarrassment later on, if he had been doing too much celebrating with
ritual drink.
Richard
waited, the question still in his eyes.
17
Kahlan
looked again at the Bird Man, his brown eyes staring out at the open area
before him, his chin bobbing in time to the beat of the boldas and drums.
She finally
leaned back until her shoulder touched Richard. "He says that that one
there"-she pointed-"is not a chicken."
C HA P
T E R\xA0\xA0 3
KAHLAN
PUSHED WITH HER feet against the gravel and glided backward into Richard's
embrace. Lying back as they were in the waist-deep water, they were covered to
their necks. Kahlan was beginning to view water in a provocative new light.
They
had found the perfect spot among the web of streams flowing through the
singular area of gravel beds and rock outcroppings in the vast sea of
grassland. Runnels meandering past the hot springs a little farther to the
northwest cooled the nearly scalding water. There were not many places as deep
as the one they had chosen, and they had tested \x95 several of those at various
distances from the hot springs until they found a warm one to their liking.
Tall
tender shoots of new grasses closed off the surrounding country, leaving them
to a private pool capped with a huge dome of sunny sky, although clouds were
beginning to steal across the edges of the bright blue. Cold breezes
18
bowed
the gossamer grass in waves and twisted it around in nodding whorls.
Out on
the plains the weather could change quickly. What was warm spring the day
before had turned frigid. Kahlan knew the cold wouldn't linger; spring had set
in for good even if winter was blowing them a departing kiss. Their refuge of
warm water rippled under the harsh touch of that forget-me-not.
Overhead,
a harrier hawk wheeled on the sharp winds, searching for a meal. Kahlan felt a
twinge of sorrow, knowing that while she and Richard were relaxing and enjoying
themselves, talons would soon snatch a life. She knew something of what it was
like to be the object of carnal hunger when death was on the hunt.
Distantly
stationed, somewhere off in the expanse of grasslands, were the six hunters.
Cara would be circling the perimeter like a mother hawk, checking on the men.
Kahlan guessed that, being protectors, each would be able to understand the
other's purpose, if not language. Protectors were charged with a serious duty,
and Cara respected the hunters' sober attention to that duty.
Kahlan
scooped warm water onto Richard's upper arms. "Even though we've had only
a short time for ourselves, for our wedding, it was the best wedding I could
have imagined. And I'm so glad I could show you this place, too."
Richard
kissed the back of her head. "I'll never forget any of it-the ceremony
last night, the spirit house, or here."
She
stroked his thighs under the water. "You'd better not, Lord Rahl."
"I've
always dreamed of showing you the special, beautiful places near where I grew
up. I hope someday I can take you there."
He fell
silent again. She suspected he was considering weighty matters, and that was
why he seemed to be brooding. As much as they might sometimes like to, they
couldn't forget their responsibilities. Armies awaited orders. Officials and
diplomats back in Aydindril impatiently awaited an audience with the Mother
Confessor or the Lord Rahl.
19
Kahlan knew
that not all would be eager to join the cause of freedom. To some, tyranny had
its appeal.
Emperor
Jagang and his Imperial Order would not wait on them.
"Someday,
Richard," she murmured as her finger stroked the dark stone on the
delicate gold necklace at her throat.
Shota,
the witch woman, had appeared unexpectedly at their wedding the night before
and given Kahlan the necklace. Shota said it would prevent them from conceiving
a child. The witch women had a talent for seeing the future, although what she
saw often unfolded in unexpected ways. More than once Shota had warned them of
the cataclysmic consequences of having a child and had vowed not to allow a
male child of Kahlan and Richard's union to live.
In the
struggle to find the Temple of the Winds, Kahlan had come to understand Shota a
little better, and the two of them had reached an understanding of sorts. The
necklace was a peace offering, an alternative to Shota trying to destroy their
offspring. For now, a truce had been struck. "Do you think the Bird Man
knew what he was saying?" Kahlan squinted up at the sky. "I guess so.
It's starting to cloud up."
"I
meant about the chicken."
Kahlan
twisted around in his arms. "The chicken!" She frowned into his gray
eyes. "Richard, he said it wasn't a chicken. What I think is that he's
been celebrating a bit too much."
She
could hardly believe that with all the things they had to worry about, he was
puzzling over this.
He
seemed to weigh her words, but remained silent. Deep shadows rolled over the
waving grass as the sun fled behind the billowing edge of towering milky clouds
with hearts of greenish slate gray. The bleak breeze smelled heavy and damp.
On the
low rocks behind Richard, his golden cloak fluttered in the wind, catching her
eye. His arm tightened around her. It was not a loving gesture. Something moved
in the water.
20
A quick
twist of light.
Maybe a
reflection off the scales of a fish. It was almost there, but wasn't-like
something seen out of the corner of her eye. A direct look betrayed naught.
"What's
the matter?" she asked as Richard pulled her farther back. "It was
just a fish or something."
Richard
rose up in one swift smooth movement, lifting her clear of the water. "Or
something."
Water
sluiced from her. Naked and exposed to the icy breeze, she shivered as she
scanned the clear stream.
"Like
what? What is it? What do you see?"
His
eyes flicked back and forth, searching the water. "I don't know," He
set her on the bank. "Maybe it was just a fish."
Kahlan's
teeth chattered. "The fish in these streams aren't big enough to nibble a
toe. Unless it's a snapping turtle, let me back in? I'm freezing."
To his
chagrin, Richard admitted he didn't see anything. He put out a hand for support
as she climbed back down into the water. "Maybe it was just the shadow
moving across the water when the sun went behind the clouds."
Kahlan
sank in up to her neck, moaning with relief as the sheltering warmth sheathed
her. She peered about at the water as her tingling gooseflesh calmed. The water
was clear, with no weeds. She could see the gravel bottom. There was no place
for a snapping turtle to hide. Though he had said it was nothing, the way he
was watching, the water belied his words.
"Do
you think it was a fish? Or are you just trying to frighten me?" She
didn't know if he had actually seen something that left him worried, or if he
was simply being overly protective. "This isn't the comforting bath I
envisioned. Tell me what's wrong if you really think you saw something."
A new
thought jolted her. "It wasn't a snake, was it?"
He took
a purging breath as he wiped back his wet hair. "I don't see anything. I'm
sorry."
"You
sure? Should we go?"
He
smiled sheepishly. "I guess I just get jumpy when I'm
21
swimming
in strange places with naked women."
Kahlan
poked at his ribs. "And do you often go bathing with naked women, Lord
Rahl?"
She
didn't really like his idea of a joke, but was just about to seek the shelter
of his arms anyway when he shot to his feet.
Kahlan
stood in a rush. "What is it? Is it a snake?"
Richard
shoved her back into the pool. She coughed out water as he lunged at their
things.
"Stay
down!"
He
snatched his knife from its sheath and crouched at the ready, peeking over the
grass.
"It's
Cara." He stood straight to get a better view.
Kahlan
looked over the grass and saw a dab of red cutting a straight line across the
brown and green landscape. The Mord-Sith was coming at a dead run, charging
through the grass, splashing through shallow places in the streams.
Richard
tossed Kahlan a small blanket as he watched Cara coming. Kahlan could see the
Agiel in her fist.
The
Agiel a Mord-Sith carried was a weapon of magic, and functioned only for her;
it delivered inconceivable pain. If she wished it, its touch could even kill.
Because
Mord-Sith carried the same Agiel used to torture them in their training,
holding it caused profound pain- part of the paradox of being a giver of pain.
The pain never showed on their faces.
Cara
stumbled to a panting halt. "Did he come by here?"
Blood
matted the left side of her blond hair and ran down the side of her face. Her
knuckles were white around her Agiel.\xA0 -
"Who?"
Richard asked. "We've seen no one." Her expression twisted with
scarlet rage. "Juni!" Richard caught her arm. "What's going
on?". With the back of her other wrist, Cara swiped a bloody strand of
hair away from her eyes as she scanned the vast grassland. "I don't know."
She ground her teeth. "But I want him."
22
Cara
tore away from Richard's grasp and bolted, calling back, "Get
dressed!"
Richard
grabbed Kahlan's wrist and hauled her out of the water. She pulled on her pants
and then scooped up some of her things as she dashed after Cara. Richard, still
tugging up his trousers over his wet legs, reached out with a long arm and
snagged the waist of her pants, dragging her to a halt.
"What
do you think you're doing?" he asked, still trying to pull on his trousers
with his other hand. "Stay behind me."
Kahlan
yanked her pants from his fingers. "You don't have your sword. I'm the
Mother Confessor. You can just stay behind me, Lord Rahl."
There
was little danger to a Confessor from a single man. There was no defense
against the power of a Confessor. Without his sword, Richard was more
vulnerable than she.
Barring
a lucky arrow or spear, nothing was going to keep a committed Confessor's power
from taking someone once she was close enough. That commitment bound them in
magic that couldn't be recalled or reversed.
It was
as final as death. In a way, it was death.
A
person touched by a Confessor's power was forever lost to himself. He was hers.
Unlike
Richard, Kahlan knew how to use her magic. Having been named Mother Confessor
was testament to her mastery of it.
Richard
growled his displeasure as he snatched up his big belt with its pouches before
chasing after her. He caught up and held her shirt out as they ran so she could
stuff her arm in the sleeve. He was bare-chested. He hooked his belt. The only
other thing he had was his knife.
They
splashed through a shallow network of streams and raced through the grass,
chasing the flashes of red leather. Kahlan stumbled going through a stream, but
kept her feet. Richard's hand on her back steadied her. She knew it wasn't a
good idea to run breakneck and barefoot across unfamiliar
23
ground,
but having seen blood on Cara's face kept her from slowing.
Cara
was more than their protector. She was their friend.
They
crossed several ankle-deep rivulets, crashing through the grass between each.
Too late to change course, she came upon a pool and jumped, scarcely making the
far bank. Richard's hand once more steadied and reassured her with its touch.
As they
plunged through grass and sprinted across open streams, Kahlan saw one of the
hunters angling in from the left. It wasn't Juni.
At the
same time as she realized Richard wasn't behind her, she heard him whistle. She
slid to a stop on the slick grass, putting a hand to the ground to keep her
balance. Richard, not far back, stood in a stream.
He put
two fingers between his teeth and -whistled again, longer, louder, a piercing
sound, rising in pitch, cutting across the silence of the plains. Kahlan saw
Cara and the other hunter turn to the sound, and then hasten toward them.
Gulping
air, trying to get her breath, Kahlan trotted back to Richard. He knelt down on
one knee in the shallow water, resting a forearm over the other bent knee as he
leaned toward the water.
Juni lay
facedown in the stream. The water wasn't even deep enough to cover his head.
Kahlan
dropped to her knees beside Richard, pushing her wet hair back out of her eyes
and catching her breath as Richard dragged the wiry hunter over onto his back.
She hadn't seen him there in the water. The covering of sticky mud and grass
the hunters tied to themselves had done its intended job of hiding him. From
her, anyway.
Juni
looked small and frail as Richard lifted the man's shoulders to pull him from
the icy water. There was no urgency in Richard's movements. He gently laid Juni
on the grass beside the stream. Kahlan didn't see any cuts or blood. His limbs
seemed to be in place. Though she couldn't be sure, his neck didn't look to be
broken.
24
Even in
death, Juni had an odd, lingering look of lust in his glassy eyes.
Cara
rushed up and lunged at the man, stopping short only when she saw those eyes
staring up in death.
One of
the hunters broke through the grass, breathing as hard as Cara. His fist gripped
his bow. Fingers curled over an arrow shaft kept it in place and ready. In his
other hand his thumb held a knife to his palm while his first two fingers kept
the arrow nocked and tension on the string.
Juni
had no weapons with him.
"What
has happened to Juni?" the hunter demanded, his gaze sweeping the flat
country for threat.
Kahlan
shook her head. "He must have fallen and struck his head."
"And
her?" he asked, tipping his head toward Cara.
"We
don't know yet," Kahlan said as she watched Richard close Juni's eyes.
"We only just found him."
"Looks
like he's been here for a while," Cara said to Richard.
Kahlan
tugged on red leather, and Cara slumped willingly to the bank, sitting back on
her heels. Kahlan parted Cara's blond hair, inspecting the wound. It didn't
look grievous.
"Cara,
what happened? What's going on?"
"Are
you hurt badly?" Richard asked atop Kahlan's words.
Cara
lifted a dismissive hand toward Richard but didn't object when Kahlan scooped
cold water in her hand and tried to pour it over the cut to the side of her
temple. Richard wrapped his fingers around a fistful of grass and tore it off.
He dunked it in the water and handed it to Kahlan.
"Use
this."
Cara's
face had turned from the rage of before to a chalky gray. "I'm all
right."
Kahlan
wasn't so sure. Cara looked unsteady. Kahlan patted the wet grass to the
woman's forehead before wiping away at the blood. Cara sat passively.
"So
what happened?" Kahlan asked.
25
"I
don't know," Cara said. "I was going to check on him, and here he
comes right up a stream. Walking hunched over, like he was watching something.
I called to him. I asked him where his weapons were while I made motions, like
he had done back in the village, pretending to use a bow to show him what I
meant."
Cara
shook her head in disbelief. "He ignored me. He went back to watching the
water. I thought he had left his post to catch a stupid fish, but I didn't see
anything in the water.
"He
suddenly charged ahead, as if his fish was trying to flee." Color rushed
into Cara's face. "I was looking to the side, checking the area. He caught
me off balance, and my feet slipped out from under me. My head hit a rock. I
don't know how long it took before I regained my senses. I was wrong to trust
him."
"No
you weren't," Richard said. "We don't know what he was chasing."
By now,
the rest of the hunters had appeared. Kahlan held up a hand, halting their
tumbling questions. When they fell silent, she translated Cara's description of
what had happened. They listened dumbfounded. This was one of Chandalen's men.
Chandalen's men didn't leave their duty of protecting people to chase a fish.
"I'm
sorry, Lord Rahl," Cara whispered. "I can't believe he caught me off
guard like that. Over a stupid fish!"
Richard
put a concerned hand on her shoulder. "I'm just glad you're all right,
Cara. Maybe you'd better lie down. You don't look so good."
"My
stomach just feels upside down, that's all. I'll be fine after I've rested for
a minute. How did Juni die?"
"He
was running and must have tripped and fallen," Kahlan said. "I almost
did that myself. He must have hit his head, like you did, and blacked out.
Unfortunately, he blacked out facedown in the water, and drowned."
Kahlan
started to translate as much to the other hunters when Richard spoke. "I
don't think so."
Kahlan
paused. "It had to be."
26
"Look
at his knees. They're not skinned. Nor his elbows or the heels of his
hands." Richard turned Juni's head. "No blood, no mark. If he fell
and was knocked unconscious, then why doesn't he at least have a bump on his
head? The only place his mud paint is scraped off is on his nose and chin, from
his face resting on the gravel of the stream bottom."
"You
mean you don't think he drowned?" Kahlan asked.
"I
didn't say that. But I don't see any sign that he fell." Richard studied
the body for a moment. "It looks like he drowned. That would be my guess,
anyway. The question is, why?"
Kahlan
shifted to the side, giving the hunters room to squat beside their fallen
comrade, to touch him in compassion and sorrow.
The
open plains suddenly seemed a very lonely place.
Cara
pressed the wad of wet grass to the side of her head. "And even if he was
disregarding his guard duty to chase a fish-hard to believe-why would he leave
all his weapons? And how could he drown in inches of water, if he didn't fall
and hit his head?"
The
hunters wept silently as their hands caressed Juni's young face. Tenderly,
Richard's hand joined theirs. "What I'd like to know is what he was
chasing. What put that look in his eyes."
27
CHAPTER
4
THUNDER
RUMBLED IN FROM the grassland, echoing through the narrow passageways as
Richard, Cara, and Kahlan left the building where Juni's body had been laid out
to be prepared for burial.
The
building was no different from the other buildings in the Mud People's village:
thick walls of mud brick plastered over with clay, and a roof of grass thatch.
Only the spirit house had a tile roof. All the windows in the village were
glassless, some covered with heavy coarse cloth to keep out the weather.
With
the buildings being all the same drab color, it wasn't hard to imagine the
village as lifeless ruins. Tall herbs, raised as offerings for evil spirits,
grew in three pots on a short wall but lent little life to the passageway
frequented mostly by the amorphous wind.
As two
chickens scattered out of their way, Kahlan gathered her hair in one hand to
keep the gusts from whipping it against her face. People, some in tears, rushed
past, going to see the fallen hunter. It somehow made Kahlan feel worse to have
to leave Juni in a place smelling of sour, wet, rotting hay.
The
three of them had waited until Nissel, the old healer,
28
had
shuffled in and inspected the body. She said she didn't think the neck was
broken, nor did she see any other kind of injury from a fall. She had
pronounced that Juni had drowned.
When
Richard asked how that could have happened, she seemed surprised by the
question, apparently believing it to be obvious.
She had
declared it a death caused by evil spirits.
The Mud
People believed that in addition to the ancestors' spirits they called in a
gathering, evil spirits also came from time to time to claim a life in
recompense for a wrong. Death might be inflicted through sickness, an accident,
or in some otherworldly manner. An uninjured man drowning in six inches of
water seemed a self-evident otherworldly cause of death as far as Nissel was
concerned. Chandalen and his hunters believed Nissel.
Nissel
hadn't had the time to speculate on what transgression might have angered the
evil spirits. She had to rush off to a more gratifying job; her help was needed
in delivering a baby.
In her
official capacity as a Confessor, Kahlan had visited the Mud People a number of
times, as she had visited other peoples of the Midlands. Though some lands
closed their borders to everyone else, no land of the Midlands, regardless of
how insular, secluded, distrustful, or powerful, dared close its borders to a
Confessor. Among other things, Confessors kept justice honest-whether or not
rulers wished it so.
The
Confessors were advocates before the council for all those who had no other
voice. Some, like the Mud People, were distrustful of outsiders and sought no
voice; they simply wanted to be left alone. Kahlan saw that their wishes were
respected. The Mother Confessor's word before the council was law, and final.
Of
course, that had all changed.
As with
other peoples of the Midlands, Kahlan had studied not only the Mud People's
language, but their beliefs.
29
In the
Wizard's Keep in Aydindril, there were books on the languages, governance,
faiths, foods, arts, and habits of every people of the Midlands.
She
knew that the Mud People often left offerings of rice cakes and nosegays of
fragrant herbs before small clay figures in several of the empty buildings at
the north end of the village. The buildings were left for the exclusive use of
the evil spirits, which the clay figures represented.
The Mud
People believed that when the evil spirits occasionally became angered and took
a life, the soul of the slain went to the underworld to join the good spirits
who watched over the Mud People, and thus helped keep the malevolent spirits in
check. Balance between worlds was thus only enhanced, and so they believed that
evil was self-limiting.
Though
it was early afternoon, it felt like dusk as Kahlan, Richard, and Cara made
their way across the village. Low dark clouds seemed to boil just above the
roofs. Lightning struck closer, the flash illuminating the high walls of
buildings. A painfully sharp crack of thunder followed almost immediately,
jarring the ground.
Gusty
wind smacked fat drops of rain against the back of Kahlan's head. In a way she
was glad for the rain. It would douse the fires. It wasn't right to have
celebration fires burning when a man had died. The rain would spare someone the
disconcerting task of having to put out what was left of the joyful fires.
Out of
respect, Richard had carried Juni the entire way back. The hunters understood;
Juni had died while on guard protecting Richard and Kahlan.
Cara,
however, had quickly come to a different conclusion: Juni had turned from
protector to threat. The how or why wasn't important-just that he had. She
intended to be prepared the next time one of them suddenly transformed into a
menace.
Richard
had had a brief argument with her about it. The hunters hadn't understood their
words, but recognized the heat in them and hadn't asked for a translation.
30
In the
end, Richard let the issue drop. Cara was probably just feeling guilty about
letting Juni get past her. Kahlan took Richard's hand as they walked behind,
letting Cara have her way and walk point, checking for danger in a village of
friends, as she turned them down first one passageway and then another, leading
the way to Zedd and Ann.
Despite
her conviction that Cara was wrong, Kahlan did feel inexplicably uneasy. She
saw Richard glance over his shoulder with that searching look that told her he
was feeling anxious, too.
"What's
wrong?" she whispered.
Richard's
gaze swept the empty passageway. He shook his head in frustration. "The
hair at the back of my neck is prickling like someone is watching me, but no one
is there."
While
she did feel unsettled, she didn't know if she really felt malevolent eyes
watching, or it was just his suggestion that kept her glancing over her
shoulder. Hurrying along the gloomy alleys between hulking buildings, she
rubbed the icy gooseflesh nettling up her arms.
The
rain was just starting to come down in earnest as Cara reached the place she
was seeking. Agiel at the ready, she checked to each side of the narrow
passageway before opening the simple wooden door and slipping inside first.
Wind
whipped Kahlan's hair across her face. Lightning flashed and thunder boomed.
One of the chickens roaming the passageway, frightened by the thunder and
lightning, darted between her legs and ran in ahead of them.
A low
fire burned in the small hearth in the corner of the humble room. Several fat
tallow candles sat on a wooden shelf plastered into the wall beside the domed
hearth. Small pieces of firewood and bundled grass were stored beneath the
shelf. A buckskin hide on the dirt floor before the hearth provided the only
formal seating. A cloth hanging over a glassless window flapped open in the
stronger gusts, fluttering the candle flames.
Richard
shouldered the door shut and latched it against the weather. The room smelled
of the candles, the sweet aroma of the bundled grass burning in the hearth, and
pun-
31
gent
smoke that failed to escape through the vent in the roof above the hearth.
"They
must be in the back rooms," Cara said, indicating with her Agiel a heavy
hide hanging over a doorway.
The
chicken, its head twitching from side to side as it clucked contentedly,
strutted around the room, circling the symbol drawn with a finger or maybe
stick in the dirt floor.
From a
young age, Kahlan had seen wizards and sorceresses draw the ancient emblem
representing the Creator, life, death, the gift, and the underworld. They drew
it in idle daydreaming, and in times of anxiety. They drew it merely to comfort
themselves-to remind themselves of their connection to everyone and everything.
And
they drew it to conjure magic.
To
Kahlan, it was a comforting talisman of her childhood, of a time when the
wizards played games with her, or tickled her and chased her through the halls
of the Wizard's Keep as she squealed with laughter. Sometimes they told her
stories that made her gasp in wonder as she sat in their laps, protected and
safe.
There
was a time, before the discipline began, when she was allowed to be a child.
Those
wizards were all dead, now. All but one had given their lives to help her in
her struggle to cross the boundary and find help to stop Darken Rahl. The one
had betrayed her. But there was a time when they were her friends, her
playmates, her uncles, her teachers, the objects of her reverence and love.
"I've
seen this before," Cara said, briefly considering the drawing on the
floor. "Darken Rahl would sometimes draw it."
"It's
called a Grace," Kahlan said.
Wind
lifted the square of coarse cloth covering the window, allowing the harsh glare
of lightning to cascade across the Grace drawn on the floor.
Richard's
mouth opened, but he hesitated, his question unasked. He was eyeing the chicken
pecking at the floor near the hide curtain to the back rooms.
32
He
gestured. "Cara, open the door, please."
As she
pulled it open, Richard waved his arms to coax the chicken out. The chicken,
feathers flying as it flapped its wings in fright, darted this way and that,
trying to avoid him. It wouldn't cross the room to the open door and safety.
Richard
paused, hands on hips, puzzling down at the chicken. Black markings in the
white and brown feathers gave it a striated, dizzying effect. The chicken
squawked in complaint as Richard began moving forward, using his legs to
shepherd the confused bird across the room.
Before
it reached the drawing on the floor, it let out a squall, flapped its wings in
renewed panic, and broke to the side, sprinting around the wall of the room and
finally out the door. It was an astonishing display of an animal so terrified
it was unable to flee in a straight line to a wide-open door and safety.
Cara
shut the door behind it. "If there is an animal dumber than a
chicken," she griped, "I've yet to see it."
"What's
all the racket?" came a familiar voice.
It was
Zedd, coming through the doorway to the back rooms. He was taller than Kahlan
but not as tall as Richard:-about Cara's height, although his mass of wavy
white hair sticking out in disarray lent an illusion of more height than was
there. Heavy maroon robes with black sleeves and cowled shoulders fostered the
impression that his sticklike frame was bulkier than it really was. Three rows
of silver brocade circled the cuffs of his sleeves. Thicker gold brocade ran
around the neck and down the front. A red satin belt set with a gold buckle
gathered the outfit at his waist.
Zedd
had always worn unassuming robes. For a wizard of his rank and authority, the
fancy outfit was bizarre in the extreme. Flamboyant clothes marked one with the
gift as an initiate. For one without the gift, such clothes befit nobility in
some places, or a wealthy merchant just about anywhere, so although Zedd
disliked the flashy accoutrements, they had been a valuable disguise.
Richard
and his grandfather embraced joyously, both
33
chortling
with the pleasure of being together. It had been a long time.
"Zedd,"
Richard said, holding the other at arm's length, apparently even more
disoriented by his grandfather's outfit than was Kahlan, "where did you
ever get such clothes?"
With a
thumb, Zedd tilted the gold buckle up to his scrutiny. His hazel eyes sparkled.
"It's the gold buckle, isn't it. A bit too much?"
Ann
lifted aside the heavy hide hanging over the doorway as she ducked under it.
Short and broad, she wore an unadorned dark wool dress that marked her
authority as the leader of the Sisters of the Light-sorceresses from the Old
World, although she had created the illusion among them that she had been
killed so as to have the freedom to pursue important matters. She looked as old
as Zedd, though Kahlan knew her to be a great deal older.
"Zedd,
quit preening," Ann said. "We have business."
Zedd
shot her a scowl. Having seen such a scowl going in both directions, Kahlan
wondered how the two of them had managed to travel together without more than
verbal sparks. Kahlan had met Ann only the day before, but Richard held her in
great regard, despite the circumstances under which he had come to know her.
Zedd
took in Richard's outfit. "I must say, my boy, you're quite the sight,
yourself."
Richard
had been a woods guide, and had always worn simple clothes, so Zedd had never
seen him in his new attire. He'd found most of his distant predecessor's outfit
in the Wizard's Keep. Apparently, some wizards once wore more than simple
robes, perhaps in forewarning.
The
tops of Richard's black boots were wrapped with leather thongs pinned with
silver emblems embossed with geometric designs, and covered black wool
trousers. Over a black shirt was a black, open-sided tunic, decorated with
symbols twisting along a wide gold band running all the way around its squared
edges. His wide, multilayered leather belt cinched the magnificent tunic at his
waist. The belt bore
34
more of
the silver emblems and carried a gold-worked pouch to each side. Hooked on the
belt was a small, leather purse. At each wrist he wore a wide, leather-padded
silver band bearing linked rings encompassing more of the strange symbols. His
broad shoulders held the resplendent cape that appeared like nothing so much as
spun gold.
Even
without his sword, he looked at once noble and sinister. Regal, and deadly. He
looked like a commander of kings. And like the embodiment of what the
prophecies had named him: the bringer of death.
Under
all that, Kahlan knew him to still possess the kind and generous heart he had
as a woods guide. Rather than diminish all the rest, his simple sincerity only
reinforced the veracity of it.\xA0\xA0 -
His
sinister appearance was both warranted and in many ways an illusion. While
single-minded and fierce in opposition to their foes, Kahlan knew him to be
profoundly gentle, understanding, and kind. She had never known a man more
fair, or patient. She thought him the most rare person she had ever met.
Ann
smiled broadly at Kahlan, touching her face much as a kindly grandmother might
do with a beloved child. Kahlan felt heartwarming honesty in the gesture. Her
eyes sparkling, Ann did the same to Richard.
Fingering
gray hair into the loose bun at the back of her head, she turned to feed a small
stick of bundled grass into the fire. "I hope your first day married is
going well?"
Kahlan
briefly met Richard's gaze. "A little earlier today we went to the warm
springs for a bath." Kahlan's smile, along with Richard's, faded.
"One of the hunters guarding us died."
Her
words brought the full attention of both Zedd and Ann.
"How?"
Ann asked.
"Drowned."
Richard held out a hand in invitation for everyone to sit. "The stream was
shallow, but near as we can tell, he didn't stumble or fall." He waggled a
thumb
35
over
his shoulder as the four of them settled around the Grace drawn in the dirt in
the center of the room. "We took him to a building back there."
Zedd
glanced over Richard's shoulder, almost as if he might be able to see through
the wall and view Juni's body. "I'll have a look." He peered up at
Cara, standing guard with her back against the door. "What do you think
happened?"
Without
hesitation, Cara said, "I think Juni became a danger. While looking for
Lord Rahl in order to harm him, Juni fell and drowned."
Zedd's
eyebrows arched. He turned to Richard. "A danger! Why would the man turn
belligerent toward you?"
Richard
scowled over his shoulder at the Mord-Sith. "Cara's wrong. He wasn't
trying to harm us." Satisfied when she didn't argue, he returned his
attention to his grandfather. "When we found him-dead-he had an odd look
in his eyes. He saw something before he died that left a mask of ... I don't
know ... longing, or something, on his face.
"Nissel,
the healer, came and inspected his body. She said he had no injuries, but that
he drowned."
Richard
braced a forearm on his knee as he leaned in. "Drowned, Zedd, in six
inches of water. Nissel said evil spirits killed him."
Zedd's
eyebrows rose even higher. "Evil spirits?"
"The
Mud People believe evil spirits sometimes come and take the life of a
villager," Kahlan explained. "The villagers leave offerings before
clay figures in a couple of the buildings over there." She lifted her chin
toward the north. "Apparently, they believe that leaving rice cakes will
appease these evil spirits. As if 'evil spirits' could eat, or could be easily
bribed."
Outside,
the rain lashed at the buildings. Water ran in a dark stain below the window
and dripped here and there through the grass roof. Thunder rumbled almost
constantly, taking the place of the now silent drums.
"Ah,
I see," Ann said. She looked up with a smile Kahlan
36
found
curious. "So, you think the Mud People gave you a paltry wedding, compared
to the grand affair you would have had back in Aydindril. Hmm?"
Perplexed,
Kahlan's brow tightened. "Of course not. It was the most beautiful wedding
we could have wished for."
"Really?"
Ann swept her arm out, indicating the surrounding village. "People in
gaudy dress and animal skins? Their hair slicked down with mud? Naked children
running about, laughing, playing, during such a solemn ceremony? Men painted in
frightening mud masks dancing and telling stories of animals, hunts, and wars?
This is what makes a good wedding to your mind?"
"No
... those things aren't what I meant, or material," Kahlan stammered.
"It's what was in their hearts that made it so special. It was that they
sincerely shared our joy that made it meaningful to us. And what does that have
to do with offering rice cakes to imagined evil spirits?"
With
the side of a finger, Ann ordered one of the lines on the Grace-the line
representing the underworld. "When you say, 'Dear spirits, watch over my
departed mother's soul,' do you expect the dear spirits to rush all of a sudden
to do so because you've put words to the wish?"
Kahlan
could feel her face flush. She often asked the dear spirits to watch over her
mother's soul. She was beginning to see why Zedd found the woman so vexing.
Richard
came to Kahlan's rescue. "The prayers are not actually meant as a direct
request, since we know the spirits don't work in such simple ways, but are
meant to convey heartfelt feelings of love and hope for her mother's peace in
the next world." He stroked his finger along the opposite side of the same
line Ann had ordered. "The same as my prayers for my mother," he
added in a whisper.
Ann's
cheeks plumped as she smiled. "So they are, Richard. The Mud People must
know better than to try to bribe with rice cakes the powerful forces they
believe in and fear, don't you suppose?"
"It's
the act of making the offering that's important,"
37
Richard
said. By his unruffled attitude toward the woman it was apparent to Kahlan that
Richard had learned to pick the berries out of the nettles.
Too,
Kahlan understood what he meant. "It's the supplication to forces they
fear that is really meant to appease the unknown."
Ann's
finger rose along with her brow. "Yes. The nature of the offering is
really only symbolic, meant to show homage, and by such an obeisance to this
power they hope to placate it." Ann's finger wilted. "Sometimes, the
act of courteous yielding is enough to stay an angry foe, yes?"
Kahlan
and Richard both agreed it was.
"Better
to kill the foe and be done with it," Cara sniped from back at the door.
Ann
chuckled, leaning back to look over at Cara. "Well, sometimes, my dear,
there is merit to such an alternative."
"And
how would you 'kill' evil spirits," Zedd asked in a thin voice that cut
through the drumming of the rain.
Cara
didn't have an answer and so she glared instead.
Richard
wasn't listening to them. He seemed to be transfixed by the Grace as he spoke.
"By the same token, evil spirits ... and such could be angered by a
gesture of disrespect."
Kahlan
was just opening her mouth to ask Richard why he was suddenly taking the Mud
People's evil spirits so seriously when Zedd's fingers touched the side of her
leg. His sidelong glance told her that he wanted her to be quiet.
"Some
think it so, Richard," Zedd offered quietly.
"Why
did you draw this symbol, this Grace?" Richard asked.
"Ann
and I were using it to evaluate a few matters. At times, a Grace can be
invaluable.
"A
Grace is a simple thing, and yet it is infinitely complex. Learning about the
Grace is a lifetime's journey, but like a child learning to walk, it begins
with a first step. Since you were born with the gift, we also thought this
would be a good time to introduce you to it."
Richard's
gift was largely an enigma to him. Now that
38
they
were back with his grandfather, Richard needed to delve the mysteries of that
birthright and at last begin to chart the foreign landscape of his power.
Kahlan wished they had the time Richard needed, but they didn't.
"Zedd,
I'd really like you take a look at Juni's body."
"The
rain will let up in a while," Zedd soothed, "and then we will go have
a look."
Richard
dragged a finger down the end of a line representing the gift-representing
magic. "If it's a first step, and so important," Richard pointedly
asked Ann, "then why didn't the Sisters of the Light try to teach me about
the Grace when they took me to the Palace of the Prophets in the Old World?
When they had the chance?"
Kahlan
knew how quickly Richard become wary and distrustful when he thought he felt
the tickling of a halter being slipped over his ears, no matter how kindly
done, or how innocent its intent. Ann's Sisters had once put a collar around
his throat.
Ann
stole a glance at Zedd. "The Sisters of the Light had never before
attempted to instruct one such as yourself- one born with the gift for
Subtractive Magic in addition to the usual Additive." She chose her words
carefully. "Prudence was required."
Richard's
voice had made the subtle shift from questioned to questioner.
"Yet
now you think I should be taught this Grace business?"
"Ignorance,
too, is dangerous," Ann said in a cryptic murmur.
39
C H A P
T E R\xA0\xA0 5
ZEDD
SCOOPED UP A handful of dry dirt from the ground to the side. "Ann is
given to histrionics," he griped. "I would have taught you about the
Grace long ago, Richard, but we've been separated, that's all."
His
apprehension alleviated by his grandfather's words, if not Ann's, the sharply
defined muscles in Richard's shoulders and thick neck relaxed as Zedd went on.
"Though
a Grace appears simple, it represents the whole of everything. It is drawn
thus."
Zedd
leaned forward on his knees. With practiced precision, he let the dirt drizzle
from the side of his fist to quickly trace in demonstration the symbol already
drawn on the ground.
"This
outer circle represents the beginning of the underworld-the infinite world of
the dead. Out beyond this circle, in the underworld, there is nothing else;
there is only forever. This is why the Grace is begun here: out of nothing,
where there was nothing, Creation begins."
A
square sat inside the outer circle, its corners touching the circle. The square
contained another circle just large enough to touch the insides of the square.
The center circle held an eight-pointed star. Straight lines drawn last
radiated out from the points of the star, piercing all the way through
40
both
circles, every other line bisecting a corner of the square.
The square
represented the veil separating the outer circle of the spirit world-the
underworld, the world of the dead- from the inner circle, which depicted the
limits of the world of life. In the center of it all, the star expressed the
Light-the Creator-with the rays of His gift of magic coming from that Light
passing through all the boundaries.
"I've
seen it before." Richard turned his wrists over and rested them across his
knees.
The
silver wristbands he wore were girded with strange symbols, but on the center
of each, at the insides of his wrists, there was a small Grace on each band. As
they were on the undersides of the wrists, Kahlan had never before noticed
them.
"The
Grace is a depiction of the continuum of the gift," Richard said,
"represented by the rays: from the Creator, through life, and at death
crossing, the veil to eternity with the spirits in the Keeper's realm of the
underworld." He burnished a thumb across the designs on one wristband.
"It is also a symbol of hope to remain in the Creator's Light from birth,
through life, and beyond, in the afterlife of the underworld."
Zedd
blinked in surprise. "Very good, Richard. But how do you know this?"
"I've
learned to understand the jargon of emblems, and I've read a few things about
the Grace."
"The
jargon of emblems... ?" Kahlan could see that Zedd was making a great
effort at restraining himself. "You need to know, my boy, that a Grace can
invoke alchemy of consequence. A Grace, if drawn with dangerous substances such
as sorcerer's sand, or used in some other ways, can have profound
effects-"
"Such
as altering the way the worlds interact so as to accomplish an end,"
Richard finished. He looked up. "I've read a little about it."
Zedd
sat back on his heels. "More than a little, it would seem. I want you to
tell us everything you've been doing
41
since I
was with you last." He shook a finger. "Every bit of it."
"What's
a fatal Grace?" Richard asked, instead.
Zedd
leaned in, this time clearly astounded. "A what?"
"Fatal
Grace," Richard murmured as his gaze roamed the drawing on the floor.
Kahlan
didn't have any more idea what Richard was talking about than did Zedd, but she
was familiar with his behavior. Now and again she had seen Richard like this,
almost as if he were in another place, asking curious questions while he
considered some dim, dark dilemma. It was the way of a Seeker.
It was
also a red flag that told her he believed there was something seriously amiss.
She felt goose bumps tingling up her forearms.
Kahlan
caught the grave twitch of Ann's brow. Zedd was straining near to bursting with
a thousand questions, but Kahlan knew that he, too, was familiar with the way
Richard sometimes lost himself for inexplicable reasons and asked unexpected
questions. Zedd was doing his best to oblige them.
Zedd
rubbed his fingertips along the furrows of his forehead, taking a breath to
gather his patience. "Bags, Richard, I've never heard of such a thing as a
fatal Grace. Where did you?"
"Just
something I read somewhere," Richard murmured. "Zedd, can you put up
another boundary? Call forth a boundary like you did before I was born?"
Zedd's
face scrunched up in sputtering frustration. "Why would I-"
"To
wall off the Old World and stop the war."
Caught
off guard, Zedd paused with his mouth hanging open, but then a grin spread,
stretching his wrinkled hide tight across the bones of his face.
"Very
good, Richard. You are going to make a fine wizard, always thinking of how to
make magic work for you to prevent harm and suffering." The smile faded.
"Very good thinking, indeed, but no, I can't do it again."
42
"Why
not?"
"It
was a spell of threes. That means it was bound up in three of this and three of
that. Powerful spells are usually well protected-a prescript of threes being
only one means of keeping dangerous magic from being easily loosed. The
boundary spell was one of those. I found it in an ancient text from the great
war.
"Seems
you take after your grandfather, taking an interest in reading old books full
of odd things." His brow drew down. "The difference is, I had studied
my whole life, and I knew what I was doing. Knew the dangers and how to avoid
or minimize them. Knew my own abilities and limitations. Big difference, my
boy."
"There
were only two boundaries," Richard pressed.
"Ah
well, the Midlands were embroiled in a horrific war with D'Hara." Zedd
folded his legs under himself as he told the story.
"I
used the first of the three to learn how to work the spell, how it functioned, and
how to unleash it. The second I used to separate the Midlands and D'Hara-to
stop the war. The last of the three I used to partition off Westland, for those
who wanted a place to live free of magic, thereby preventing an uprising
against the gifted."
Kahlan
had a hard time imagining what a world without magic would be like. The whole
concept seemed grim and dark to her, but she knew there were those who wanted
nothing more than to live their lives free from magic. West-land, though not
vast, provided such a place. At least it had for a time, but no longer.
"No
more boundaries." Zedd threw his hands up. "That's that."
It had
been almost a year since the boundaries were brought down by Darken Rahl,
fading away to rejoin the three lands again. It was unfortunate that Richard's
idea wouldn't work, that they couldn't cordon off the Old World and prevent the
war from enveloping the New World. It would have saved countless lives yet to
be lost in a struggle only just beginning.
43
"Do
either of you," Ann asked into the silence, "have any idea of the
whereabouts of the prophet? Nathan?"
"I
saw him last," Kahlan said. "He helped me save Richard's life by
giving me the book stolen from the Temple of the Winds, and telling me the
words of magic I needed to use to destroy the book and keep Richard alive until
he could recover from the plague."
Ann was
looking like a wolf about to have dinner. "And where might he be?"
"It
was somewhere in the Old World. Sister Verna was there. Someone Nathan cared
deeply for had just been murdered before his eyes. He said that sometimes
prophecy overwhelms our attempts to outwit it, and that sometimes we think we
are more clever than we are, believing we can stay the hand of fate, if we wish
it hard enough."
Kahlan
dragged a finger through the dirt. "He left with two of his men, Walsh and
Bollesdun, saying he was giving Richard back his title of Lord Rahl. He told
Verna to save herself the trouble of trying to follow. He said she wouldn't
succeed."
Kahlan
looked up into Ann's suddenly sorrowful eyes. "I think Nathan was going
off to try to forget whatever it was that ended that night. To forget the
person who had helped him, and lost her life for it. I don't think you'll find
him until he wishes it."
Zedd slapped
the palms of his hands against his knees, breaking the spell of silence.
"I want to know everything that's happened since I've last seen you,
Richard. Since the beginning of last winter. The whole story. Don't leave
anything out-the details are important. You may not understand that, but
details can be critical. I must know it all."
Richard
looked up long enough to catch his grandfather's expression of intent
expectation. "I wish we had time to tell you about it, Zedd, but we don't.
Kahlan, Cara, and I need to get back to Aydindril."
Ann's
fingers fussed with a button on her collar; Kahlan thought the garden facade of
her forbearance looked to be
44
growing
weeds. "We can begin now, and talk more on the journey."
"You
can't imagine how much I wish we could stay with you, but there's no time for
such a journey," Richard said. "We must hurry back. We'll have to go
in the sliph. I'm sorry, I really am, but you can't come with us through the
sliph; you'll have to travel to Aydindril on your own. When you get there, we
can talk."
"Sliph?"
Zedd's nose wrinkled with the word. "What are you talking about?"
Richard
didn't answer, or even seem to hear. He was watching the cloth-covered window.
Kahlan answered for him.
"The
sliph is a..." She paused. How did one explain such a thing? "Well,
she's sort of like living quicksilver. She can communicate with us. Talk, I
mean."
"Talk,"
Zedd repeated in a flat voice. "What does she talk about?"
"It's
not the talking that's important." With a thumbnail, Kahlan picked at the
seam in her pant leg as she stared into Zedd's hazel eyes. "The sliph was
created by those wizards, in the great war. They created weapons out of people;
they created the sliph in much the same way. She was once a woman. They used
her life to create the sliph, a being that can use magic to do what is called
traveling. She was used to quickly travel great distances. Really great
distances. Like from here all the way to Aydindril in less than a day, or many
other places."
Zedd
considered her words, as startling as she knew they must be to him. It had been
so for her at first. Such a journey would ordinarily take many days, even on
horseback. It could take weeks.
Kahlan
put a hand on his arm. "I'm sorry, Zedd, but you and Ann can't go. The
sliph's magic, as you were explaining, has dictates protecting it. That's why
Richard had to leave his sword behind; its magic is incompatible with the magic
of the sliph.
45
"To
travel in the sliph, you must have at least some small amount of Subtractive
Magic as well as the Additive. You don't have any Subtractive Magic. You and
Ann would die in the sliph. I have an element of it bound into my Confessor's
power, and Cara used her ability as a Mord-Sith to capture the gift of an Andolian,
who has an element of it, so she can travel, too, and of course, Richard has
the gift for Subtractive Magic."
"You've
been using Subtractive Magic! But, but, how ... what do ... where ..."
Zedd sputtered, losing track of which question he wanted to ask first.
"The
sliph exists in these stone wells. Richard called the sliph, and now we can
travel in her. But we have to be careful, or Jagang can send his minions
through." Kahlan tapped the insides of her wrists together. "When
we're not traveling, Richard sends her into her sleep by touching his
wristbands together-on the Graces they have-and she rejoins her soul in the
underworld."
Ann's
face had gone ashen. "Zedd, I've warned you about this. We can't let him
run around by himself. He's too important. He's going to get himself
killed."
Zedd
looked ready to explode. "You used the Graces on the wristbands? Bags,
Richard, you have no idea what you're doing! You are messing about with the
veil when you do such a thing!"
Richard,
his attention elsewhere, snapped his fingers and gestured toward the fat sticks
under the bench. He waggled his fingers urgently. Frowning, Zedd passed him one
of the stout branches. Richard broke it in two over his knee while he watched
the window.
With
the next flash of lightning, Kahlan saw the silhouette of a chicken perched on
the sill of the window, on the other side of the cloth. As the lightning
flashed and thunder boomed, the chicken's shadow sidled to the other corner of
the window.
Richard
hurled the stick.
It
caught the bird square on the breast. With a flapping
46
of
wings and a startled squawk, it tumbled backward out the window.
"Richard!"
Kahlan snatched his sleeve. "Why would you do such a thing? The chicken
wasn't bothering anyone. The poor thing was just trying to stay out of the
rain."
This,
too, he seemed not to hear. He turned toward Ann. "You lived in the Old
World with him. How much do you know about the dream walker?"
"Well,
I, I, guess I know a bit," she stammered in surprise.
"You
know about how Jagang can invade a person's mind, slip in between their
thoughts, and entrench himself there, even without their knowledge?"
"Of
course." She almost looked indignant at such a basic question about the
enemy they were fighting. "But you and those bonded to you are protected.
The dream walker can't invade the mind of one devoted to the Lord Rahl. We
don't know the reason, only that it works."
Richard
nodded. "Alric. He's the reason."
Zedd
blinked in confusion. "Who?"
"Alric
Rahl. An ancestor of mine. I read that the dream walkers were a weapon devised
three thousand years ago in the great war. Alric Rahl created a spell-the
bond-to protect his people, or anyone sworn to him, from the dream walkers. The
bond's power to protect passes down to every gifted Rahl."
Zedd
opened his mouth to ask a question, but Richard turned instead to Ann.
"Jagang entered the mind of a wizard and sent him to kill Kahlan and
me-tried to use him as an assassin."
"Wizard?"
Ann frowned. "Who? Which wizard?"
"Marlin
Pickard," Kahlan said.
"Marlin!"
Ann sighed with a shake of her head. "The poor boy. What happened to
him?"
"The
Mother Confessor killed him," Cara said without hesitation. "She is a
true sister of the Agiel."
Ann
folded her hands in her lap and leaned toward Kahlan. "But how did you
ever find out-"
47
"We
would expect him to try such a thing again," Richard interrupted, drawing
Ann's attention back. "But can a dream walker invade the mind of... of
something other than a person?"
Ann
considered the question with more patience than Kahlan thought it merited.
"No. I don't believe so."
"You
'don't believe so.' " Richard cocked his head. "Are you guessing, or
are you certain? It's important. Please don't guess."
She
shared a long look with Richard before finally shaking her head. "No. He
can't do such a thing."
"She's
right," Zedd insisted. "I know enough about what he can do to know
what he can't do. A soul is needed. A soul like his own. Otherwise, it just won't
work. Same as he couldn't project his mind into a rock to see what it was
thinking."
With
his first finger, Richard stroked his lower lip. "Then it's not
Jagang," he muttered to himself.
Zedd
rolled his eyes in exasperation. "What's not Jagang?"
Kahlan
sighed. Sometimes attempting to follow Richard's reasoning was like trying to
spoon ants.
48
CHAPTER
6
RATHER
THAN ANSWER ZEDD'S. question, Richard seemed to once again already be half a
mile down a different road.
"The
chimes. Did you take care of them? It's supposed to be a simple matter. Did you
take care of it?"
"A
simple matter?" Zedd's face stood out red against his shock of unruly
white hair. "Who told you that!"
Richard
looked surprised at the question. "I read it. So, did you take care of
it?"
"We
determined there was nothing to 'take care of,' " Ann said, her voice
taking on an undertone of annoyance.
"That's
right," Zedd grumbled. "What do you mean it's a simple matter?"
"Kolo
said they were quite alarmed at first, but after investigating they discovered
the chimes were a simple weapon and easily overcome." Richard threw up his
hands. "How do you know it's not a problem? Are you certain?"
"Kolo?
Bags, Richard, what are you talking about! Who's Kolo?"
Richard
waggled a hand as if begging forbearance before he rose up and strode to the
window. He lifted the curtain. The chicken wasn't there. While he stretched up
on his toes to peer out into the driving rain, Kahlan answered for him.
"Richard
found a journal in the Keep. It's written in High
49
D'Haran.
He and one of the Mord-Sith, Berdine, who knows a little of the dead language
of High D'Haran, have worked very hard to translate some of it.
"The
man who wrote the journal was a wizard at the Keep during the great war, but
they don't know his name, so they call him Kolo, from a High D'Haran word
meaning 'strong advisor.' The journal has proved invaluable."
Zedd
turned to peer suspiciously at Richard. His gaze returned to Kahlan. The
suspicion moved to his voice. "And just where did he find this
journal?"
Richard
began pacing, his fingertips to his forehead in -deep concentration. Zedd's
hazel eyes waited for her answer.
"It
was in the sliph's room. Down in the big tower." "The big
tower." The way Zedd repeated her words sounded like an accusation. He
again glanced briefly at Richard. "Don't tell me you mean the room that's
sealed." "That's the one. When Richard destroyed the towers between
the New and Old Worlds so he could get back here, the seal was blasted off that
room, too. That's where he found the journal, Kolo's bones, and the
sliph."
Richard
halted over his grandfather. "Zedd, we'll tell you about all this later.
Right now, I'd like to know why you don't think the chimes are here."
Kahlan
frowned up at Richard. "Here? What does that mean, here?"
"Here
in this world. Zedd, how do you know?" Zedd straightened a finger toward
the empty spot in their circle on the floor around the Grace. "Sit down,
Richard. You're making me jumpy, pacing back and forth like a hound wanting to
be let out."
As
Richard checked the window one last time before returning to sit, Kahlan asked
Zedd, "What are the chimes?" "Oh," Zedd said with a shrug,
"they're just some vexatious creatures. But-"
"Vexatious!"
Ann slapped her forehead. "Try catastrophic!"
"And
I called them forth?" Kahlan asked, anxiety rising
50
in her
voice. She had spoken the names of the three chimes to complete magic that
saved Richard's life. She hadn't known what the words meant, but she had known
that without them Richard would have died within a breath or two at most.
Zedd
waggled a hand to allay her fears. "No, no. As Ann says, they have the
potential to be troublesome, but-"
Richard
hiked up his trousers at the knees as he folded his legs. "Zedd, please
answer the question. How do you know they aren't here?"
"Because,
the chimes are a work of threes. That's partly why there are three: Reechani,
Sentrosi, Vasi."
Kahlan
nearly leaped to her feet. "I thought you weren't supposed to say them
aloud!"
"You
are not. An ordinary person could say them with no ill effect. I can speak them
aloud without calling them. Ann can, and Richard, too. But not those
exceedingly rare people such as yourself."
"Why
me?"
"Because
you have magic powerful enough to summon their aid on behalf of another. But
without the gift, which protects the veil, the chimes could also ride your
magic across into this world. The names of the three chimes are supposed to be
a secret."
"Then
I might have called them into this world."
"Dear
spirits," Richard whispered. His face had gone bloodless. "They could
be here."
"No,
no. There are countless safeguards, and numerous requirements that are exacting
and extraordinary." Zedd held up a finger to silence Richard's question
before it could come out his open mouth. "Among many other things; Kahlan,
for example, would have to be your third wife."
Zedd
flashed Richard a patronizing smirk! "Satisfied, Mister
Read-it-in-a-book?"
Richard
let out a breath. "Good." He sighed aloud again as the color returned
to his face. "Good. She's only my second wife."
"What!"
Zedd threw up his arms, nearly toppling back-
51
ward.
He huffed and hauled his sleeves back down. "What do you mean, she is your
second wife? I've known you your whole life, Richard, and I know you've never
loved anyone but Kahlan. Why in Creation would you marry someone else!"\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0 \x95
Richard
cleared his throat as he shared a pained expression with Kahlan. "Look,
it's a long story, but the end of it is that in order to get into the Temple of
the Winds to stop the plague, I had to marry Nadine. That would make Kahlan my
second wife."
"Nadine."
Zedd let his jaw hang as he scratched the hollow of his cheek. "Nadine
Brighton? That Nadine?"
"Yes."
Richard poked at the dirt. "Nadine ... died shortly after the
ceremony."
Zedd
let out a low whistle. "Nadine was a nice girl- going to be a healer. The
poor thing. Her parents will b devastated."
"Yes,
the poor thing," Kahlan muttered under her breath. Nadine's dogged
ambition had been to have Richard, and there had been few bounds to that
ambition. Any number of times, Richard had told Nadine in explicit terms there
was nothing between the two of them, never would be, and he wanted her gone as
soon as possible. To Kahlan's exasperation, Nadine would simply smile and say,
"Whatever you wish, Richard," as she continued to scheme.
Though
she would never have wished Nadine any real harm, especially the horrible death
she suffered, Kahlan could not pretend pity for the conniving strumpet, as Cara
called her.
"Why
is your face all red?" Zedd asked. Kahlan looked up. Zedd and Ann were
watching her. "Um, well..." Kahlan changed the subject. "Wait a
minute. When I spoke the three chimes I wasn't married to Richard. We weren't
married until we came here, to the Mud People. So, .you see, I wasn't even his
wife at the time."
"That's
even better," Ann said. "Removes another stepping-stone from the
chimes' path."
52
Richard's
hand found Kahlan's. "Well, that may not be exactly true. When we had to
say the words to fulfill the requirements for me to get into the temple, in our
hearts we said the words to each other, so it could be said that we were
married because of that vow of commitment.
"Sometimes
magic, the spirit world's magic, anyway, works by such ambiguous rules."
Ann
shifted her weight uncomfortably. "True enough."
"But
no matter how you reason it out, that would still only make her your second
wife." Zedd eyed them both suspiciously. "This story gets more
complicated every time one of you opens your mouth. I need to hear the whole
thing."
"Before
we leave, we can tell you a bit of it. When you get to Aydindril, then we'll
have the time to tell it all to you. But we need to return through the sliph
right away."
"What's
the hurry, my boy?"
"Jagang
would like nothing better than to get his hands on the dangerous magic stored
in the Wizard's Keep. If he did, it would be disastrous. Zedd, you would be the
best one to protect the Keep, but in the meantime don't you think Kahlan and I
would be better than nothing?
"At
least we were there when Jagang sent Marlin and Sister Amelia to
Aydindril."
"Amelia!"
Ann closed her eyes as she squeezed her temples. "She's a Sister of the
Dark. Do you know where she is, now?"
"The
Mother Confessor killed her, too," Cara said from back at the door.
Kahlan
scowled at the Mord-Sith. Cara grinned back like a proud sister.
Ann
opened one eye to peer at Kahlan. "No small task. A wizard being directed
by the dream walker, and now a woman wielding the Keeper's own dark
talent."
"An
act of desperation," Kahlan said. "Nothing more."
Zedd
grunted a brief agreeable chuckle. "There can be powerful magic in acts of
desperation."
"Much
like the business of speaking the three chimes,"
53
she
said. "An act of desperation to save Richard's life. What are the chimes?
Why were you so concerned?"
Zedd
squirmed to get more comfortable on his bony bottom.
"The
wrong person speaking their names to summon their assistance in keeping a
person from crossing the line"-he tapped the line of the Grace
representing the world of the dead-"can by misfortune of design call them
into the world of life, where they can accomplish the purpose for which they
were created: to end magic."
"They
soak it up," Ann said, "like the parched ground soaks up a summer
shower. They are beings of sorts, but not alive. They have no soul."
The
lines in Zedd's face took a grim set as he nodded his agreement. "The
chimes are creatures conjured of the other side, of the underworld. They would
annul the magic in this world."
"You
mean they hunt down and kill those with magic?" Kahlan asked. "Like
the shadow people used to? Their touch is deadly?"
"No,"
Ann said. "They can and do kill, but just their being in this world, in
time, is all it would take to extinguish magic. Eventually, any who derived
their survival from magic would die. The weakest first. Eventually, even the
strongest."
"Understand,"
Zedd cautioned, "that we don't know much about them. They were weapons of
the great war, created by wizards with more power than I can fathom. The gift
is no longer as it was."
"If
the chimes were to somehow get to this world, and they ended magic,"
Richard asked, "would all those with the gift just not have it anymore?
Would the Mud People, for instance, simply not be able to contact their spirit
ancestors anymore? Would creatures of magic die out and that would be that?
Just regular people and animals and trees and such left? Like where I grew up
in Westland, where there was no magic?"
Kahlan
could feel the faint rumble of thunder in the
54
ground
under her. The rain drummed on. The fire in the hearth hissed its ill will for
its liquid antagonist.
"We
can't answer that, my boy. It's not like there is precedent to which we can
point. The world is complex beyond our comprehension. Only the Creator
understands how it all works together."
The
firelight cast Zedd's face in harsh angular shadows as he spoke with grim
conviction. "But I fear it would be much worse than you paint it."
"Worse?
Worse how?"
Fastidiously
smoothing his robes along his thighs, Zedd took his time in responding.
"West
of here, in the highlands above the Nareef Valley, the headwaters of the Dammar
River gather, eventually to flow into the Drun River. These headwaters leach
poisons from the ground of the highlands.
"The
highlands are a bleak wasteland, with the occasional bleached bones of an
animal that stayed too long and drank too much from the poison waters. It's a
windy, desolate, deadly place."
Zedd
opened his arms to gesture, suggesting the grand scale. "The thousand tiny
runnels and runoff brooks from all the surrounding mountain slopes collect into
a broad, shallow, swampy lake before continuing on to the valley below. The
paka plant grows there in great abundance, especially at the broad south end,
from where the waters descend. The paka is able to not only tolerate the
poison, but thrive on it. Only the caterpillar of a moth eats some of the
leaves of the paka and spins its cocoon among the fleshy stems.
"Warfer
birds nest at the head of the Nareef Valley, on the cliffs just below this
poison highland lake. One of their favorite foods is the berries of the paka
plant that grows not far above, and so they are one of the few animals to
frequent the highlands. They don't drink the water.',,'
"The
berries aren't poison, then?" Richard asked.
"No.
In a wonder of Creation, the paka grows strong on the contaminates from the
water, but the berries it produces
55
don't
contain the poison, and the water that flows on down the mountain, filtered by
all the paka, is pure and healthy. "Also living in the highlands is the
gambit moth. The way it flits about makes it irresistible to warfer birds,
which otherwise eat mostly seeds and berries. Living where it does, it is
preyed on by few animals other than warfer birds.
"Now,
the paka plant, you see, can't reproduce by itself. Perhaps because of the
poisons in the water, its outer seed casing is hard as steel and will not open,
so the plant inside can't sprout.
"Only
magic can accomplish the task." Zedd's eyes narrowed, his arms spread
wide, and his ringers splayed with the spinning of the tale. Kahlan recalled
her wide-eyed child wonder at hearing the story of the gambit moth for the
first time while sitting on the knee of a wizard up in the Keep.
"The
gambit moth has such magic, in the dust on its wings. When the warfer birds eat
the moth, along with the berries of the paka, the magic dust from the moth
works inside the birds to breach the husk of the tiny seeds. In their
droppings, the warfer birds thus sow the paka seeds, and because of the
singular magic of the gambit moth, the paka's seeds can sprout.
"It
is upon the paka, thus brought to leaf, that the gambit moth lays it eggs and
where the new-hatched caterpillars eat and grow strong before they spin their
cocoon to become gambit moths."
"So,"
Richard said, "if magic is ended, then ... what are you saying? That even
creatures such as a moth with magic would no longer have it, and so the paka
plant would die out, and then the warfer bird would starve, and the gambit moth
would in turn have no paka plant for its caterpillars to eat, so it would
perish?"
"Think,"
the old wizard whispered, "what else would happen."
"Well,
for one thing, as the old paka plants died and no new ones grew, it would only
seem logical that the water going into the Nareef Valley would become
poisonous."
56
"That's
right, my boy. The water would poison the animals below. The deer would die.
The raccoons, the porcupines, the voles, the owls, the songbirds. And any
animal that ate their carcasses: wolves, coyotes, vultures. All would
die." Zedd leaned forward, raising a finger. "Even the worms."
Richard
nodded. "Much of the livestock raised in the valley could eventually be
poisoned. Much of the cropland could become tainted by the waters of the
Dammar. It would be a disaster for the people and animals living in the Nareef
Valley."
"Think
of what would happen when the meat from that livestock was sold," Ann
coached, "before anyone knew it was poison."
"Or
the crops," Kahlan added.
Zedd
leaned in. "And think of what more it would mean."
Richard
looked from Ann to Kahlan to Zedd. "The Dammar River flows into the Drun.
If the Dammar was poison, then too would be the Drun. Everything downstream
would be tainted as well."
Zedd
nodded. "And downstream is the land of Toscla. The Nareef is to Toscla as
a flea is to a dog. Toscla grows great quantities of grain and other crops that
feed many people of the Midlands. They send long trains of cargo wagons north
to trade."
It had
been a long time since Zedd had lived in the Midlands. Toscla was an old name.
It lay far to the southwest; the wilds, like a vast sea, isolated it from the
rest of the Midlands. The dominant people there, now calling themselves Anders,
repeatedly changed their name, and so the name of their land. What Zedd knew as
Toscla was changed to Vengren, then Vendice, then Turslan, and was presently
Anderith.
"Either
poison grain would be sold before it was known to be such, thus poisoning
countless unknowing souls," Zedd was saying, "or the people of Toscla
would find out in time, and then couldn't sell their crops. Their livestock
might soon die. The fish they harvest from the coastal waters
57
could
likely be poisoned by the waters of the Drun flowing into it. The taint could
find its way to the fields, killing new crops and hope for the future.
"With
their livestock and fishing industries poisoned, and without crops to trade for
other food, the people of Toscla could starve. People in other lands who relied
on purchasing those crops in trade would fall on hard times, too, because they,
in turn, then couldn't sell their goods. With trade disrupted, and with
shortages driving prices up, people everywhere in the Midlands would begin to
have trouble feeding their families.
"Civil
unrest would swell on the shortages. Hunger would spread. Panic could set in.
Unrest could turn to fighting as people flee to untainted land, which others
already occupy. Desperation could fan the flames. All order could break
down."
"You're
just speculating," Richard said. "You aren't predicting such a
widespread calamity, are you? If magic were to fail, might it not be that
bad?"
Zedd
shrugged. "Such a thing has never happened, so it's hard to predict. It
could be that the poison would be diluted by the water of the Dammar and the
Drun, and it would cause no harm, or at most only a few localized problems.
When the Drun flows into the sea, that much water might render the poison
harmless, so fishing might not be affected. It could end up being nothing more
than a minor inconvenience."
In the
dim light, Zedd's hair reminded Kahlan of white flames. He peered with one eye
at his grandson. "But," he whispered, "were the magic of the
gambit moth to fail, for all we know it could very well begin a cascade of
events that would result in the end of life as we know it."
Richard
wiped a hand over his face as he contemplated how such a disaster might ripple
through the Midlands.
Zedd
lifted an eyebrow. "Do you begin to get the idea?" He let the
uncomfortable silence drag before he added, "And that is but one small
thing of magic. I could give you countless others."
58
"The
chimes are from the world of the dead. That would certainly fit their
purpose," Richard muttered as he raked his fingers back through his hair.
"Would that mean that if magic were to fail, with the weakest dying out
first, the magic of the gambit moth would be among the first to fail?"
"And
how strong is the gambit moth's magic?" Zedd spread his hands. "There
is no telling. Could be among the first, or the last."
"What
about Kahlan? Would she lose her power? It's her protection. She needs
it."
Richard
was the first person to accept her as she was, to love her as she was, power
and all. That, in fact, had been the undiscovered secret to her magic and the
reason he had been rendered safe from its deadly nature. It was the reason they
were able to share the physical essence of their love without her magic
destroying him.
Zedd's
brow bunched up. "Bags, Richard, aren't you listening? Of course she would
lose her power. It's magic. All magic would end. Hers, mine, yours. But while
you and Kahlan would simply lose your magic, the world might die around
you."
Richard
dragged a finger through the dirt. "I don't know how to use my gift, so it
wouldn't mean so much to me. But it' matters a great deal for others. We can't
let it happen."
"Fortunately,
it can't happen." Zedd tugged his sleeves straight in an emphatic gesture.
"This is just a rainy-day game of 'what if.' "
Richard
drew up his knees and clasped his arms around them as he seemed to sink back
into his distant silent world.
"Zedd
is right," Ann said. "This is all just speculation. The chimes are
not loose. What is important, now, is Jagang."
"If
magic ended," Kahlan asked, "wouldn't Jagang lose his ability as a
dream walker?"
"Of
course," Ann said. "But there is no reason to believe--"
"If
the chimes were loosed on this world," Richard inter-
59
rupted,
"how would you stop them? It's supposed to be simple. How would you do
it?"
Ann and
Zedd shared a look.
Before
either could answer, Richard's head turned toward the window. He rose up and in
three strides had crossed the room. He pulled aside the curtain to peer out.
Gusts blew the pelting rain in against his face as he leaned out to look both
ways. Lightning crackled through the murky afternoon air, and thunder stuttered
after it.
Zedd
leaned close to Kahlan. "Do you have any idea what's going on in that
boy's head?"
Kahlan
wet her lips. "I think I have an inkling, but you wouldn't believe me if I
told you."
Richard
cocked his head, listening. Kahlan, in the silence, strained to hear anything
out of the ordinary.
In the
distance, she heard the terrified wail of a child.
Richard
bolted for the door. "Everyone wait here."
As one,
they all rushed after him.
CHAPTER
7
SPLASHING
THROUGH THE MUD, Zedd, Ann, Cara, and Kahlan chased after Richard as he raced
out into the passageways between the stuccoed walls of buildings. Kahlan had to
squint to see through the downpour. The deluge was so cold it made her gasp.
60
Hunters,
their ever-present protectors, appeared from the sweeping sheets of rain to run
along beside them. The buildings flashing by were mostly single-room homes
sharing at least one common wall, but sometimes as many as three. Together,
they clustered into a complex maze seemingly without design.
Following
right, behind Richard, Ann surprised Kahlan with her swift gait. Ann didn't
look a woman designed to run, but she kept up with ease. Zedd's bony arms
pumped a swift and steady cadence. Cara, with her long legs, loped along beside
Kahlan. The sprinting hunters ran with effortless grace. At the lead, Richard,
his golden cape billowing out behind, was an intimidating sight; compared with
the wiry hunters, he was a mountain of a man avalanching through the narrow
streets.
Richard
followed the meandering passageway a short distance before darting to the right
at the first corner. A black and two brown goats thought the rushing procession
a curiosity, as did several children in tiny courtyards planted with rapeseed
for the chickens. Women gaped from doorways flanked by pots of herbs.
Richard
rounded the next corner to the left. At the sight of the charging troop of
people, a young woman beneath a small roof swept a crying child into her arms.
Holding the little boy's head to her shoulder, she pressed her back against the
door, to be out of the way of the trouble racing her way. The boy wailed as she
tried to hush him.
Richard
slid to a fluid but abrupt stop, with everyone behind doing their best not to
crash into him. The woman's frightened, wide-eyed gaze flitted among the people
suddenly surrounding her as she stood in her doorway.
"What
is it?" she asked. "Why do you want us?"
Richard
wanted to know what she was saying before she had finished saying it. Kahlan
squeezed her way through to the fore of the group. Blood beaded along scratches
and ran from cuts on the boy the woman clutched in her arms.
"We
heard your son cry out." With tender fingers, Kahlan stroked the bawling
child's hair. "We thought there was
61
trouble.\xA0 We were concerned for your boy.\xA0 We came to help."
Relieved,
the woman let the weight of the boy slip from her hip to the ground. She
squatted and pressed a bloodstained wad of cloth to, his cuts as she briefly
cooed comfort to calm his panic.
She
looked up at the crowd around her. "Ungi is fine. Thank you for your
concern, but he was just being a boy. Boys get themselves in trouble."
Kahlan
told the others what the woman had said.
"How
did he get all clawed up?" Richard wanted to know.
"Ka
chenota," the woman answered when Kahlan asked Richard's question.
"A
chicken," Richard said before Kahlan could tell him. Apparently, he had
learned that chenota meant chicken in the Mud People's language. "A
chicken attacked your boy? Ka chenota?"
She
blinked when Kahlan translated Richard's question. The woman's cynical laughter
rang out through the drumbeat of the rain. "Attacked by a chicken?"
Flipping her hand, she scoffed, as if she had thought for a moment they were
serious. "Ungi thinks he is a great hunter. He chases chickens. This time
he cornered one, frightening it, and it scratched him trying to get away."
Richard
squatted down before Ungi, giving the boy's dark fall of wet hair a friendly
tousle. "You've been chasing chickens? Ka chenota? Teasing them? That
isn't what really happened, is it?"
Instead
of interpreting Richard's questions, Kahlan crouched down on the balls of her
feet. "Richard, what's this about?"
Richard
put a comforting hand on the child's back as his mother wiped at blood running
down his chest. "Look at the claw marks," Richard whispered.
"Most are around his neck."
Kahlan
heaved a chafed sigh. "He no doubt tried to pick it up and hold it to
himself. The panicked chicken was simply trying to get away."
62
Reluctantly,
Richard admitted that it could be so.
"This
is no great misadventure," Zedd announced from above. "Let me do a
little healing on the boy and then we can get in out of this confounded rain
and have something to eat. And I have a lot of questions yet to ask."
Richard,
still squatted down before the boy, held up a finger, stalling Zedd. He looked
into Kahlan's eyes. "Ask him. Please?"
"Tell
me why," Kahlan insisted. "Is this about what the Bird Man said? Is
that really what this is about? Richard, the man had been drinking."
"Look
over my shoulder."
Kahlan
peered through the writhing ribbons of rain. Across the narrow passageway,
under the dripping grass eaves at the corner of a building, a chicken ruffled
its feathers. It was another of the striated Barred Rock breed, as were most of
the Mud People's chickens.
Kahlan
was cold and miserable and soaking wet. She was beginning to lose her patience
as she once again met Richard's waiting gaze.
"A
chicken trying to stay out of the rain? Is that what you want me to see?"
"I
know you think-"
"Richard!"
she growled under her breath. "Listen to me."
She
paused, not wanting to be cross with Richard, of all people. She told herself
he was simply concerned for their safety. But it was misbegotten concern.
Kahlan made herself take a breath. She clasped his shoulder, rubbing with her
thumb.
"Richard,
you're just feeling bad because Juni died today. I feel bad, too. But that
doesn't make it sinister. Maybe he just died from the exertion of running; I've
heard of it happening to young people. You have to recognize that sometimes
people die, and we never know the reason."
Richard
glanced up at the others. Zedd and Ann were busying themselves with admiring
Ungi's young muscles in order to avoid what was beginning to sound suspiciously
like a lover's spat at their feet. Cara stood near by, scruti-
63
nizing
the passageways. One of the hunters offered to let Ungi finger his spear shaft
to distract the boy from his mother as she ministered to his wounds.
Looking
reluctant to quarrel, Richard wiped back his wet hair. "I think it's the
same chicken I chased out," he whispered at last. "The one in the
window I hit with the stick." Kahlan sighed aloud in exasperation.
"Richard, most of the Mud People's chickens look like that one." She
again peered across to the underside of the roof. "Besides, it's
gone."
Richard
looked over his shoulder to see for himself. His gaze swept the empty
passageway. " "Ask the boy if he was teasing the chicken, chasing
it?" Under the small roof over the door, as Ungi's mother soothed his
wounds, she had also been warily watching the conversation she didn't understand
going on at her feet. Kahlan licked the rain from her lips. If it meant this
much to Richard, Kahlan decided, she could do no less than ask for him. She
touched the boy's arm.
"Ungi,
is it true that you chased the chicken? Did you try to grab it?"
The
boy, still sniffling back tears, shook his head. He pointed up at the roof.
"It came down on me." He clawed the air. "It attacked me."
The
mother leaned down and swatted his bottom. "Tell these people the truth.
You and your friends chase the chickens all the time."
His big
black eyes blinked at Richard and Kahlan, both down at his level, down in his
world. "I am going to be a great hunter, just like my father. He is a
brave hunter, with scars from the beasts he hunts."
Richard
smiled at the translation. He gently touched one of the claw cuts. "Here
you will have the scar of a hunter, like your brave father. So, you were
hunting the chicken, as your mother says? Is that really the truth?"
"I
was hungry. I was coming home. The chicken was hunting me," he insisted.
His mother spoke his name in admonition. "Well... they perch on the roof
there." He
64
again
pointed up at the roof over the door. "Maybe I scared it when I came
running home, and it slipped on the wet roof and fell on me."
The
mother opened the door and shoved the boy inside. "Forgive my son. He is
young and makes up stories all the time. He chases chickens all the time. This
is not the first time he has been scratched by one. Once, a cock's spur gashed
his shoulder. He imagines they are eagles.
"Ungi
is a good boy, but he is a boy, and full of stories. When he finds a salamander
under a rock, he runs home to show me, to tell me that he found a nest of
dragons. He wants his father to come slay them before they can eat us."
Everyone
but Richard chuckled. As she bowed her head and turned to go into her home,
Richard gently took ahold of her elbow to halt her while he spoke to Kahlan.
"Tell
her I'm sorry her boy was hurt. It wasn't Ungi's fault. Tell her that. Tell her
I'm sorry."
Kahlan
frowned at Richard's words. She changed them a little when she translated, lest
they be misconstrued.
"We
are sorry Ungi was hurt. We hope he is soon well. If not, or if any of the cuts
are deep, come tell us and Zedd will use magic to heal your boy."
The
mother nodded and smiled her gratitude before bidding them a good day and
ducking through her doorway. Kahlan didn't think she looked very eager to have
magic plied on her son.
After
watching the door close, Kahlan gave Richard's hand a squeeze. "All right?
Are you satisfied it wasn't what you thought? That it was nothing?
He
stared off down the empty passageway a moment. "I just thought..." He
finally conceded with contrite smile. "I just worry about your safety,
that's all."
"As
long as we're all wet," Zedd grumbled, "we might as well go over and
see Juni's body. I'm certainly not going to stand here in the rain if you two
are going to start kissing."
Zedd
motioned Richard to lead the way and let him know he meant him to be quick
about it. As Richard started out,
65
Zedd
hooked Kahlan's arm and let everyone else pass. He held her back as they
slogged on through the mud, allowing the others to gain a little distance on
them.
Zedd
put an arm around her shoulders and leaned close, even though Kahlan was sure
his words wouldn't be heard over the roar of the rain. "Now, dear one, I
want to know what it is you think I wouldn't believe."
From
the corner of her eye, Kahlan marked his intent expression. He was serious
about this. She decided it would be better to put his concern to rest.
"It's
nothing. He had a passing wild idea, but I got him to see reason. He's over
it."
Zedd
narrowed his eyes at her, a disconcerting sight, coming from a wizard. "I
know you're not stupid enough to believe that, so why should you think I am?
Hmm? He's not buried this bone. He's still got it between his teeth."
Kahlan
checked the others. They were still several strides ahead. Even though Richard
was supposed to be leading, Cara, ever protective, had put herself ahead of
him.
Although
she couldn't understand the words, Kahlan could tell that Ann was making cheery
small talk with Richard. As much as they seemed to nettle each other, when it
suited them Zedd and Ann worked together as effortlessly as teeth and tongue.
Zedd's
sticklike fingers tightened on her arm. Richard wasn't the only one with a bone
between his teeth.
Kahlan
heaved a sigh and told him. "I suspect that Richard believes there is a
chicken monster on the loose."
Kahlan
had covered her nose and mouth against the stench, but dropped her hands to her
sides when the two women looked up from their work. Both smiled to the small
troop shuffling in the door, shaking off water, looking like they'd fallen in a
river.
66
The two
women were working on Juni's body, decorating it with black-and-white mud
designs. They had already woven decorative grass bands around his wrists and
ankles and had fixed a leather fillet around his head with grass positioned
under it in the manner of hunters going out on a hunt.
Juni
was laid out on a mud-brick platform, one of four such raised work areas. Dark
stains drooled down the sides of each. A layer of fetid straw covered the
floor. When a body was brought in, the straw was kicked up against the base of
the platform to absorb draining fluids.
The
straw was alive with vermin. When there were no bodies, the door was left open
so the chickens could feast on the bugs and keep them down.
Off to
the right of the door was the only window. When no one was attending a body,
supple deerskin shut out light so the deceased might have peace. The women had
pulled the deerskin to the side and hooked it behind a peg in the wall to let
the gloomy light seep into the cramped room.
Bodies
were not prepared at night, so as not to strain the peace of the soul going
over to the other side. Reverence for the departing soul was fundamental to the
Mud People; these new spirits might someday be called upon to help their people
still living.
Both
women were older and smiling as if their sunny nature could not be masked with
a somber facade even for such grim work. Kahlan assumed them to be specialists
in the task of insuring that the dead were properly adorned before they were
laid in the ground.
Kahlan
could see the fragrant oils that were rubbed over the body still glistening
where the mud was yet to be applied. The oils failed to shroud the gagging
stink of the tainted straw and platforms. She didn't understand why the straw
wasn't changed more often. But then, for all she knew, perhaps it was; there
was no escaping the consequence of the process of death and decay.
Probably
for that reason the dead were buried quickly- either the day they died or at
the latest the next. Juni would
67
not be
made to wait long before he was put in the ground. Then his spirit, seeing that
all was as it should be, could turn to those of his kind in the spirit world.
Kahlan
bent close to the two women. Out of reverence for the dead, she whispered.
"Zedd and Ann, here"-she lifted a hand, indicating the
two-"would like to look at Juni."
The
women bowed from the waist and stepped back, with a finger hooking their pots
of black and white mud off the platform and out of the way. Richard watched as
his grandfather and Ann put their hands lightly to Juni, inspecting him, no
doubt with magic. While Zedd and Ann conferred in hushed tones as they
conducted their examination, Kahlan turned to the-two women and told them what
a fine job they were doing, and how sorry she was about the young hunter's
death.
Having
had enough of looking at his dead guardian, Richard joined her. He slipped an
arm around her waist and asked her to relate his sentiments. Kahlan added his
words to hers.
It
wasn't long before Zedd and Ann nudged Richard and Kahlan to the side. Smiling,
they gestured the women back to their chore.
"As
you suspected," Zedd whispered, "his neck is not broken. I could find
no injury to his head. I'd say he drowned."
"And
how do you suppose that could have happened?" A scintilla of sarcasm laced
Richard's voice.
Zedd
squeezed Richard's shoulder. "You were sick once, and you passed out.
Remember? There was nothing sinister to it. Did you crack your skull? No. You
slumped to the floor, where I found you. Remember? It could be something as
simple as that."
"But
Juni showed no signs-"
Everyone
turned as the old healer, Nissel, shambled in the door cradling a small bundle
in her arms. She paused for an instant at seeing everyone in the small room,
before she turned to another of the platforms for the dead. She laid
68
the
bundle tenderly on the cold brick. Kahlan put a hand over her heart as she saw
Nissel unwrap a newborn baby.
"What
happened?" Kahlan asked,
"Not
the joyous event I expected it would be." Nissel's sorrowful eyes met
Kahlan's gaze. "The child was born dead."
"Dear
spirits," Kahlan whispered, "I'm so sorry."
Richard
brushed a shiny green bug off Kahlan's shoulder. "What happened to the
baby?"
Nissel
shrugged when Kahlan spoke his question. "I have watched the mother for
months. Everything had seemed to point to a joyous event. I foresaw no problem,
but the child was stillborn." -
"How
is the mother?"
Nissel's
gaze sank to the floor. "For now she weeps her heart out, but the mother
will soon be well." She forced a smile. "It happens. Not all children
are strong enough to live. The woman will have others."
Richard
leaned close after the exchange appeared to be finished. "What did she
say?"
Kahlan
stamped twice to dislodge a centipede wriggling up her leg. "The baby just
wasn't strong enough, and was stillborn."
Frowning,
he looked over at the heartbreaking death. "Wasn't strong enough ..."
Kahlan
watched him stare at the small form, still, bloodless, unreal-looking. A new
child was a uniquely beautiful entity, but this, lacking the soul its mother
had given it so that it might stay in this world, was naked ugliness.
Kahlan
asked when Juni would be buried. One of the two women glanced at the small
death. "We will need to prepare another. Tomorrow, they will both be put
to their eternal rest."
As they
went out the door, Richard turned and looked up into the waterfall of rain. A
chicken perched in the low eaves overhead fluffed its feathers. Richard's gaze
lingered a moment.
69
The
reasoning that had been so clearly evident on his face turned to resolution.
Richard
peered up the passageway. He whistled as he beckoned with an arm. Their
guardian hunters started toward them.
As the
hunters were jogging to a halt, Richard grasped Kahlan's upper arm in his big
hand. "Tell them I want them to go get more men. I want them to gather up
all the chickens-"
"What!"
Kahlan wrenched her arm from his grip. "Richard, I'm not going to ask them
that. They'll think you've gone crazy!"
Zedd
stuck his head between them. "What's going on?"
"He
wants the men to gather up all the chickens just because one of them is perched
above the door."
"It
wasn't there when we arrived. I looked."
Zedd turned
and squinted up in the rain. "What chicken?"
Kahlan
and Richard both looked for themselves. The chicken was gone.
"It
probably went searching for a drier roost," Kahlan growled. "Or one
more peaceful."
Zedd
wiped rain from his eyes. "Richard, I want to know what this is
about."
"A
chicken was killed outside the spirit house. Juni spat at the honor of whatever
killed that chicken. Not long after, Juni died. I threw a stick at the chicken
in the window, and not long after, it attacked that little boy. It was my fault
Ungi got clawed. I don't want to make the same mistake again."
Zedd,
to Kahlan's surprise, spoke calmly. "Richard, you're bridging some yawning
chasms with gossamer reasoning."
"The
Bird Man said one of the chickens wasn't a chicken."
Zedd
frowned. "Really?"
"He'd
been drinking," Kahlan pointed out.
"Zedd,
you named me the Seeker. If you wish to recon-
70
sider
your choice, then do it now. If not, then let me do my job. If I'm wrong you
can all lecture me later."
Richard
took Zedd's silence for acquiescence and again grasped Kahlan's arm, if a
little more gently than the first time. Conviction ignited his gray eyes.
"Please,
Kahlan, do as I ask. If I'm wrong, I'll look a fool, but I'd rather look a fool
than be right and fail to act."
Whatever
had killed the chicken had done it right outside the spirit house, where she
had been. That was the skein from which Richard had woven this tapestry of
threat. Kahlan believed in Richard, but suspected he was merely getting carried
away with concern over protecting her.
"What
is it you would have me say to the men?"
"I
want the men to gather up the Chickens. Take them to the buildings they keep
empty for the evil spirits. I want every last chicken herded in there. Then, we
can have the Bird Man look at them and tell us which one is not a chicken.
"I
want the men to be gentle and courteous as they gather the chickens. Under no
circumstances do I want anyone to show disrespect to any of the chickens."
"Disrespect,"
Kahlan repeated. 'To a chicken."
"That's
right." Richard checked the waiting hunters before locking his gaze on
her. "Tell the men I fear one of the chickens is possessed by the evil
spirit that killed Juni."
Kahlan
didn't, know if that was What Richard believed, but she knew without doubt that
the Mud People would believe it.
She
looked to Zedd's eyes for counsel, but found none. Ann's visage had no more to
offer. Cara was sworn to Richard; although she routinely disregarded orders she
thought trifling, were Richard to insist, she would walk off a cliff for him.
Richard
would not give up. If Kahlan didn't translate for him, he would go find
Chandalen to do it. Failing that, he would gather up the chickens by himself,
if necessary.
The
only thing to be accomplished by not doing as he
71
asked
would be to display a lack of faith in him. That alone persuaded her.
Shivering
in the icy rain, Kahlan took in Richard's resolute gray eyes one last time
before she turned to the waiting hunters.
CHAPTER
8
"HAVE
YOU FOUND THE evil spirit, yet?"
Kahlan
looked back over her shoulder to see that it was Chandalen, carefully shuffling
his way through the squawking throng of chickens. The muted light helped calm
the flock in their confinement, if they did still raise quite the clamor. There
were a few Reds and a sprinkling of other types, but most of the Mud People's
chickens were the striated Barred Rocks, a breed more docile than most. It was
a good thing, too, or the simple pandemonium would be feathered chaos.
Kahlan
nearly rolled her eyes to hear Chandalen muttering ludicrous apologies to the
birds he urged out of his way with a foot. She might have quipped about his
risible behavior were it not for the disquieting way he was dressed, with a
long knife at his left hip, a short knife at the right, a full quiver over one
shoulder, and a strung bow over the other.
More
troubling, a coiled troga hung from a hook at his
72
belt. A
troga was a simple wire long enough to loop and drop over a man's head. It was
applied from behind, and then the wooden handles yanked apart. A man of
Chandalen's skill could easily and accurately place his troga at the joints in
a man's neck and silence him before he could make a sound.
When
they had fought together against the Imperial Order army that had attacked the
city of Ebinissia and butchered the innocent women and children there, Kahlan
had more than once seen Chandalen decapitate enemy sentries and soldiers with
his troga. He wouldn't be carrying his troga to battle
evil-spirit-chicken-monsters.
His
fist held five spears. She guessed the razor-sharp spear points, with then-
gummy, dark varnished look, were freshly coated with poison. Once so charged,
they had to be handled with care.
In the
buckskin pouch at his waist, he carried a carved bone box filled with dark
paste made by chewing and then cooking bandu leaves to render it into ten-step
poison. He also carried a few leaves of quassin doe, the antidote for ten-step
poison, but as the poison's name implied, haste with the quassin doe was
essential.
"No,"
Kahlan said, "the Bird Man has not yet found the chicken that is not a
chicken. Why are you painted with mud, and so heavily armed? What's going
on?"
Chandalen
lifted a foot over a chicken that didn't seem to want to move. "My men,
the ones on far patrol, have some trouble. I must go see to it."
"Trouble?"
Kahlan's arms unfolded. "What sort of trouble?"
Chandalen
shrugged. "I am not sure. The man who came for me said there are men with
swords-"
"The
Order? From the battle fought to the north? It could be some stragglers who got
away, or combat scouts. Maybe we can get word to General Reibisch. His army
might still be within striking distance, if we can get them to turn back in
time."
Chandalen
lifted a hand to allay the alarm in her voice.
73
"No.
You and I together fought the men of the Imperial Order. These are not Order
troops, or scouts.
"My
man does not think they are hostile, but they are reported to be heavily armed
and they had a calm about them when approached, which says much. Since I can
speak your language, as they do, my men would like my direction with such
dangerous-looking people."
Kahlan
began to lift her arm to get Richard's attention. "Richard and I had
better go with you."
"No.
Many people wish to travel our land. We often meet strangers out on the plains.
This is my duty. I will take care of it and keep them away from the village.
Besides, you two should stay and enjoy your first day as a newly wedded
couple."
Without
comment, Kahlan glowered at Richard, who was still sorting through the
chickens.
Chandalen
leaned past her and spoke to the Bird Man, standing a few steps away.
"Honored elder, I must go see to my men. Outsiders approach."
The
Bird Man looked over at the man who was, in effect, his general charged with
the defense of the Mud People. "Be careful. There are wicked spirits
about."
Chandalen
nodded. Before he turned away, Kahlan caught his arm. "I don't know about
evil spirits, but there are other dangers about. Be careful? Richard is
concerned about trouble. If I don't understand his reasons, I trust his
instincts."
"You
and I have fought together, Mother Confessor." Chandalen winked. "You
know I am too strong and too smart for trouble to catch me."
As she
watched Chandalen work his way through the milling mass of the chickens, Kahlan
asked the Bird Man, "Have you seen anything ... suspicious?"
"I
do not yet see the chicken that is not a chicken," the Bird Man said,
"but I will keep looking until I find it."
Kahlan
tried to think of a polite way to ask if he was sober. She decided to ask
another question, instead. "How can you tell the chicken is not a
chicken?"
74
His
sun-browned face creased with thought. "It is something I can sense."
She
decided there was no avoiding it. "Perhaps, since you were celebrating
with drink, you only thought you sensed something?"
The
creases in his face bent with a smile. "Perhaps the drink relaxed me so
that I could see more clearly."
"And
are you still... relaxed?"
He
folded his arms as he watched the teeming flock.
"I
know what I saw."
"How
could you tell it was not a chicken?"
He
stroked a finger down his nose as he considered her question. Kahlan waited,
watching Richard urgently searching through the chickens as if looking for a
lost pet.
"At
celebrations, such as your wedding," the Bird Man said after a time,
"our men act out stories of our people. Women do not dance the stories,
only men. But many stories have women in them. You have seen these
stories?"
"Yes.
I watched yesterday as the dancers told the story of the first Mud People: our
ancestor mother and father."
He
smiled, as if the mention of that particular story touched his heart. It was a
smile of private pride in his people.
"If
you had arrived during that dance, and did not know anything of our people,
would you have known the dancer dressed as the mother of our people was not a
woman?"
Kahlan
thought it over. The Mud People made elaborate costumes expressly for the
dances; they were brought out for no other reason. For Mud People, seeing
dancers in the special costumes was awe-inspiring. The men who dressed as women
in the stories went to great lengths to make themselves look the part.
"I
am not certain, but I think I would recognize they were not women."
"How?
What would give them away to you? Are you sure?"
"I
don't think I can explain it. Just something not quite
75
right.
I think, looking at them, I would know it was not a woman."
His
intent brown-eyed gaze turned to her for the first time. "And I know it is
not a chicken."
Kahlan
entwined her fingers. "Maybe in the morning, after you have had a good
sleep, you will see only a chicken when you look at a chicken?"
He
merely smiled at her suspicion of his unpaired judgment. "You should go
eat. Take your new husband. I will send someone for you when I find the chicken
that is not a chicken."
It did
sound like a good idea, and she saw Richard heading in their direction. Kahlan
clasped the Bird Man's arm in mute appreciation.
It had
taken the whole afternoon to gather the chickens. Both structures reserved for
evil spirits and a third empty building were needed to house all the birds.
Nearly the entire village had joined in the grave cause. It had been a lot of
work.
The
children had proven invaluable. Fired by responsibility in such an important
village-wide effort, they had revealed all the places the chickens hid and
roosted. The hunters gently gathered all the chickens, even though it was a
Barred Rock the Bird Man had at first pointed out, the .same striated breed
Richard chased out when they went to see Zedd, the same breed Richard said had
waited above the door while they'd been in to see Juni.
An
extensive search had been conducted. They were confident every chicken was
housed in one of the three buildings.
As he
cut a straight line through the chickens, Richard smiled briefly in greeting to
the Bird Man, but his eyes never joined in. As Richard's gaze met hers, Kahlan
slipped her fingers up his arm to snug around the bulge of muscle, glad to
touch him, despite her exasperation.
"The
Bird Man says he hasn't yet found the chicken you want, but he will keep
searching. And there are still the two other buildings full of them. He
suggested we go get some-
76
thing
to eat, and he will send someone when he sees your chicken."
Richard
started for the door. "He won't find it here."
"What
do you mean? How do you know?"
"I
have to go check the other two places."
If she
was only annoyed, Richard looked frantic at not finding what he wanted. Kahlan
imagined that he must feel his word was at stake. Back near the door, Ann and
Zedd waited, silently observing the search, letting Richard have the leeway to
look all he wanted, to do as he thought necessary.
Richard
paused, combing his fingers back through his thick hair. "Do either of you
know of a book called Mountain's Twin?"
Zedd
held his chin as he peered up at the underside of the grass roof in earnest
recollection. "Can't say as I do, my boy."
Ann,
too, seemed to consider her mental inventory for a time. "No. I've not
heard of it."
Richard
took a last look at the dusty room packed with chickens and muttered a curse
under his breath.
Zedd
scratched his ear, "What's in this book, my boy?"
If
Richard heard the question over the background of bird babel, he didn't let on,
and he didn't answer. "I have to go look at the rest of the
chickens."
"I
could ask Verna and Warren for you, if it's important." Ann drew a small
black book from a pocket, drawing, too, Richard's gaze. "Warren might know
of it."
Richard
had told Kahlan that the book Ann carried and was now flashing at him, called a
journey book, retained ancient magic. Journey books were paired; any message
written in it appeared simultaneously in its twin. The Sisters of the Light
used the little books to communicate when they went on long journeys, such as
when they had come to the New World to take Richard back to the Palace of the
Prophets.
Richard
brightened at her suggestion. "Please, yes. It's important." He
started for the door again. "I've got to go."
77
"I'm
going to check on the woman who lost the baby," Zedd told Ann. "Help
her get some rest."
"Richard,"
Kahlan called, "don't you want to eat?"
As she
was speaking, Richard gestured for her to come along, but was through, the door
and gone before she finished the question. Zedd followed his grandson out,
shrugging his perplexity back at the two women. Kahlan growled and started
after Richard.
"It
must be like a fanciful children's story come to life for you, for a Confessor,
to marry for love," Ann commented while remaining rooted to the spot where
she had been for the last hour.
Kahlan
turned back to the woman. "Well, yes, it is."
Ann
smiled up with sincere warmth. "I'm so happy for you, child, being able to
have such a wonderful thing as a husband you dearly love come into your
life."
Kahlan's
fingers lingered on the lever of the closed door.
"It
still leaves me utterly astonished, at times."
"It
must be disappointing when your new husband seems to have more important things
to attend to than his new wife, when he seems to be ignoring you." Ann
pursed her lips. "Especially on your very first day being his wife."
"Ah."
Kahlan released the lever and clasped both hands loosely behind her back.
"So that's why Zedd left. We are to have a woman-to-woman talk, are
we?"
Ann
chuckled. "Oh, but how I do love it when men I respect marry smart women.
Nothing marks a man's character better than his attraction to
intelligence."
Kahlan
sighed as she leaned a shoulder against the wall. "I know Richard, and I
know he's not trying my patience deliberately ... but, this is our first day
married. I somehow thought it would be different than this .. ..this chasing
imaginary chicken monsters. I think he's so worried about protecting me he's
inventing trouble."
Ann's
tone turned sympathetic. "Richard loves you dearly. I know he is worried,
though I don't understand his reasoning. Richard bears great
responsibility."
78
The
sympathy evaporated from her voice. "We all are called upon to make
sacrifices where Richard is concerned."
The
woman pretended to watch the chickens.
"In
this very village, before the snow came," Kahlan said in a careful, level
tone, "I gave Richard over to your Sisters of the Light in the hope you
could save his life, even though I knew doing so could very well end my future
with him. I had to make him think I had betrayed him in order to get him to go
with the Sisters. Do you even have any idea ..."
Kahlan
made herself stop, lest she needlessly dredge up painful memories. Everything
had turned out well. She and Richard were together at last. That was what
mattered.
"I
know," Ann whispered. "You do not have to prove yourself to me, but
since it was I who' ordered him brought to us, perhaps I must prove myself to
you."
The
woman had surely picked the peg Kahlan wanted pounded, but she kept her response
civil, anyway. "What do you mean?"
"Those
wizards of so very long ago created the Palace of the Prophets. I lived at the
palace, under its unique spell, for over nine hundred years. There, five
hundred years before it was to happen, Nathan the prophet foretold the birth of
a war wizard.
"There,
together, we worked on the books of prophecy down in the palace vaults, trying
to understand this pebble yet to be dropped into the pond, trying to foresee
the ripples this event might cause."
Kahlan
folded her arms. "From my experience, I would say prophecy may be far more
occluding than revealing."
Ann
chortled. "I am acquainted with Sisters hundreds of years your senior who
have yet to understand that much about prophecy."
Her
voice turned wistful as she went on. "I traveled to see Richard when he
was newborn life, newborn soul, glimmering into the world. His mother was so
astonished, so grateful, for the balance of such a magnificent gift come of
such brutality as had been inflicted upon her by Darken
79
Rahl.
She was a remarkable woman, not to pass bitterness and resentment on to her
child. She was so proud of Richard, so filled with dreams and hope for him.
"When
Richard was that newborn life, suckling at his mother's breast, Nathan and I
took Richard's stepfather to recover the Book of Counted Shadows so when
Richard was grown he might have the knowledge to save himself from the beast
who had raped his mother and given him life."
Ann
glanced up with a wry smile. "Prophecy, you see."
"Richard
told me." Kahlan looked back at the Bird Man concentrating on the chickens
pecking at the ground.
"Richard
is the one come at last: a war wizard. The prophecies do not say if he will
succeed, but he is the one born to the battle-the battle to keep the Grace
intact, as it were. Such faith, though, sometimes requires great spiritual
effort."
"Why?
If he is the one for whom you waited-the one you wanted?"
Ann
cleared her throat and seemed to gather her thoughts. Kahlan thought she saw
tears in the woman's eyes.
"He
destroyed the Palace of the Prophets. Because of Richard, Nathan escaped.
Nathan is dangerous. He is the one, after all, who told you the names of the
chimes. That perilously rash act could have brought us all to ruin."
"It
saved Richard's life," Kahlan pointed out. "If Nathan hadn't told me
the names of the chimes, Richard would be dead. Then your pebble would be at
the bottom of the pond-out of your reach and no help to anyone."
"True
enough," Ann admitted-reluctantly, thought Kahlan.
Kahlan
fussed with a button as she began to imagine Ann's side of it. "It must
have been hard to bear, seeing Richard destroying the palace. Destroying your
home."
"Along
with the palace, he also destroyed its spell; the Sisters of the Light will now
age as does everyone else. At the palace I would have lived perhaps another
hundred years. The Sisters there would have lived many hundreds of years more.
Now, I am but an old woman near the end of
80
my
time. Richard took those hundreds of years from me. From all the Sisters."
Kahlan
remained silent, not knowing what to say.
"The
future of everyone may one day depend on him," Ann finally said. "We
must put that ahead of ourselves. That is why I helped him destroy the palace.
That is why I follow the man who has seemingly destroyed my life's work:
because my life's true work is that man's fight, not my own narrow
interests."
Kahlan
hooked a strand of damp hair behind her ear. "You talk about Richard as if
he's a tool newly forged for your use. He is a man who wants to do what's
right, but he has his own wants and needs, too. His life is his to live, not
yours or anyone else's to plan for him according to what you found in dusty old
books."
"You
misunderstand. That is precisely his value: his instincts, his curiosity, his
heart." Ann tapped her temple. "His mind. Our aim is not to direct,
but to follow, even if it is painful to tread the path down which he takes
us."
Kahlan
knew the truth of that. Richard had destroyed the alliance that had joined the
lands of the Midlands for thousands of years. As Mother Confessor, Kahlan
presided over the council, and thus the Midlands. Under her watch as Mother
Confessor, the Midlands had fallen to Richard, as Lord Rahl of D'Hara. At least
the lands which had so far surrendered to him. She knew the benevolence of his
actions, and the need for them, but it certainly had been a painful path to
follow.
Richard's
bold action, though, was the only way of truly uniting all the lands into one
force that had any hope of standing against the tyranny of the Imperial Order.
Now, they trod that new path together, hand in hand, united in purpose and
resolve.
Kahlan
folded her arms again and leaned back against the wall, watching the stupid chickens.
"If it is your intent, then, to make me feel guilty for my selfish wishes
about my first day with my new husband, you have succeeded. But I can't help
it."
81
Ann
gently gripped Kahlan's arm. "No, child, that is not my intent. I
understand how Richard's actions can sometimes be exasperating. I ask only that
you be patient and allow him to do as he thinks he must. He is not ignoring you
to be contrary, but doing as his nature demands.
"However,
his love for you has the power to distract him from what he must do. You must
not interfere by asking that he abandon his task when he otherwise would
not." "I know," Kahlan sighed. "But chickens-"
"There is something wrong with the magic." Kahlan frowned down at the
old sorceress. "What do you mean?"
Ann
shrugged. "I am not sure. Zedd and I believe we have detected a change in
our magic. It is a subtle thing to endeavor to discern. Have you noticed any
change in your ability?"
In a
cold flash of panic, Kahlan wheeled her thoughts inward. It was hard to imagine
a subtle difference in her Confessor's magic-it simply was. The core of the
power within, and her restraint on it, seemed comfortingly familiar.
Although...
Kahlan
recoiled from that dark curtain of conjecture.
Magic
was ethereal enough as it was. Through artifice, a wizard had once gulled her
into thinking her power gone, when in fact it had never left her. Believing him
had nearly cost Kahlan her life. She survived only because she realized in time
that she still had her power and could use it to save herself.
"No.
It's the same," Kahlan said. "I've learned it's easy to mislead
yourself into believing your magic is waning. It's probably nothing-you're just
worried, that's all."
"True
enough, but Zedd thinks it would be wise to let Richard do as Richard does.
That Richard believes, on his own, without our knowledge of magic, that there
is grave trouble of some sort, lends credence to our suspicions. If true, then
he is already farther in this than are we. We can but follow."
Ann
returned the gnarled hand to Kahlan's arm. "I would
82
ask you
not to badger him with your understandable desire to have him pay court to you.
I ask that you allow him to do what he must do."
Pay
court indeed. Kahlan simply wanted to hold his hand, to hug him, to kiss him,
to smile at him and have him smile back.
The
next day they needed to return to Aydindril. Soon the thorn of mystery over
Juni's death would be shed for more important concerns. They had Emperor Jagang
and the war to worry about. She simply wished she and Richard could have one
day to themselves.
"I
understand." Kahlan stared out at the clucking, churning, throng of stupid
chickens. "I'll try not to meddle."
Ann
nodded without joy at having gotten what she wanted.
Outside,
in the gloom of nightfall, Cara paced. By her chafed expression, Kahlan guessed
Richard had ordered the Mord-Sith to remain behind and guard his new wife. That
was the one order inviolate for Cara, the one order even Kahlan could not
invalidate for the woman.
"Come
on," Kahlan said as she tramped past Cara. "Let's go see how Richard
is doing in his search."
Kahlan
was discontent to find the miserable rain still coming down. If it wasn't
falling as hard as before, it was just as cold, and it wouldn't be long before
she was just as wet.
"He
didn't go that way," Cara called out.
Kahlan
turned along with Ann to see Cara still standing where she had been pacing.
Kahlan
lifted a thumb over her shoulder in the direction of the other house for evil
spirits. "I thought he wanted to go see the rest of the chickens."
"He
started toward the other two buildings, but changed his mind." Cara
pointed. "He went off in that direction."
"Why?"
83
"He
didn't say. He told me to remain here and wait for you." Cara started out
through the rain. "Come. I will take you to him."
"You
know where to find him?" Kahlan realized it was a foolish question before
she had finished it.
"Of
course. I am bonded to Lord Rahl. I always know where he is."
Kahlan
found it disquieting the way the Mord-Sith could sense Richard's proximity,
like mother hens with a chick. Kahlan was envious, too. She pressed a hand to
Ann's back, urging her along, lest they be left behind in the dark.
"How
long have you and Zedd had this suspicion about something being wrong,"
Kahlan whispered to the squat sorceress, only implying that she meant what Ann
had told her about there being something wrong with the magic.
Ann
kept her head bowed, watching where she was walking in the near darkness.
"We noticed it first last night. Though it is a difficult thing to
quantify, or confirm, we did a few simple tests. They did not conclusively
verify our impression. It's a bit like trying to say if you can see as far as
you could yesterday."
"You
telling her about our speculation that our magic might be weakening?"
Kahlan
started at the familiar voice suddenly coming from behind.
"Yes,"
Ann said over her shoulder as they followed Cara around a corner, sounding as
if she wasn't at all surprised that Zedd had come up behind them. "How was
the woman?"
Zedd
sighed. "Despondent. I tried to calm and comfort her, but I didn't seem to
have as much luck as I thought I might."
"Zedd,"
Kahlan interrupted, "are you saying you're sure there is trouble? That's a
serious assertion."
"Well,
no, I'm not asserting anything-"
The
three of them bumped into Cara when she halted unexpectedly in the dark. Cara
stood stock-still, staring off into rainy nothingness. At last, she growled
under her breath
84
and
pushed at their shoulders, turning them around.
"Wrong
way," she grumbled. "Back this way."
Cara
pushed and prodded them back to the corner and then led them the other way. It
was nearly impossible to see where they were going. Kahlan wiped wet hair from
her face. She didn't see anyone else out in the foul weather. In the whispering
rain, with Cara out in front and Zedd and Ann carrying on a hushed conversation
several paces behind, Kahlan felt alone and forlorn.
The
rain and darkness must have confused Cara perceiving Richard's location by her
bond to him; she had to backtrack several times.
"How
much farther?" Kahlan asked.
"Not
far" was all Cara had to offer.
As she
slogged through the passageways-turned-quagmire, mud had found its way into
Kahlan's boots. She grimaced at the feel of the cold slime squeezing between
her toes with each step. She dearly wished she could wash out her boots. She
was cold, wet, tired, and muddy-all because Richard feared there was some stupid
evil-spirit-chicken-monster on the loose.
She
recalled with longing the warm bath of that morning, and wished she were there
again.
Remembering
Juni's death, she reconsidered. There were worse problems than her selfish wish
for warmth. If Zedd and Ann were right about the magic ...
They
reached the open area in the center of the village. The living shadow that was
Cara halted. Rain drummed on roofs to run in rills from eaves, spattered mud,
and splashed in puddles made of every footstep.
The
Mord-Sith lifted an arm and pointed. "There."
Kahlan
squinted, trying to see through the drizzle of rain. She felt Zedd press close
at her right and Ann at her left. Cara, off to the side just a bit, with the
manifest vision of her bond, watched Richard, while the rest of them scanned
the darkness trying to spot what she saw.
It was
the diminutive fire that suddenly caught Kahlan's attention. Petite languid
flames licked up into the wet air.
85
That it
burned at all was astonishing. It appeared to be a remnant of their wedding
bonfire. Impossibly, in the daylong downpour, this tiny refuge of their sacred
ceremony survived.
Richard
stood before the fire, watching it. Kahlan could just make out his towering
contour. The knife edge of his golden cloak lifted in the wind, reflecting
sparkles of the miraculous firelight.
She
could see raindrops splattering on the toe of his boot as he used it to nudge
the fire. The flames grew as high as his knee as he stirred whatever was still
burning in all the rain. The wind whipped the flames around in a fiery gambol,
red and yellow arms swaying and waving, prancing and fluttering, undulating in
a spellbinding dance of hot light amid the cold dark rain.
Richard
snuffed the fire.
Kahlan
almost cursed him.
"Sentrosi,"
he murmured, grinding his boot to smother the embers.
The
chill wind lifted a glowing spark upward. Richard tried to snatch it in his
fist, but the kernel of radiance, on the wings of a gust, evaded him to
disappear into the murky night.
"Bags,"
Zedd muttered in a surly voice, "that boy finds a pocket of rock pitch
still burning in an old log, and he's ready to believe the impossible."
Civility
fled Ann's voice. "We have more important things to do than to entertain
the cockamamy conjecture of the uneducated."
Aggravated
and in agreement, Zedd wiped a hand across his face. "It could be a
thousand and one things, and he's settled on the one, because he's never heard
of the other thousand."
Ann
shook a finger up at Zedd. "That boy's ignorance is-"
"That's
one of the three chimes," Kahlan said, cutting Ann off. "What does it
mean?"
86
Both
Zedd and Ann turned and stared at her, as if they had forgotten she was still
there with them.
"It's
not important," Ann insisted. "The point is we have consequential
matters which require attention, and the boy is wasting time worrying about the
chimes."
"What
is the meaning of the word-"
Zedd
cleared his throat, warning Kahlan not to speak aloud the name of the second
chime.
Kahlan's
brow drew down as she leaned toward the old wizard.
"What
does it mean?"
"Fire,"
he said at last.
CHAPTER
9
KAHLAN
SAT UP AND rubbed her eyes as thunder boomed outside. The storm sounded
rekindled. She squinted, trying to see in the dim light. Richard wasn't beside
her. She didn't know what time of night it was, but they'd gotten to bed late.
She sensed it was the middle of darkness, nowhere near morning. She decided
Richard must have gone outside to relieve himself.
Heavy
rain against the roof made it sound as if she were under a waterfall. On their
first visit, Richard had used the spirit house to teach the Mud People how to
make tile roofs
87
that
wouldn't leak in the rain as did their grass roofs, so this was probably the
driest structure in the entire village.
People
had been enthralled by the idea of roofs that didn't leak. She imagined it
wouldn't be too many years before the entire village was converted from grass
roofs to tile. She, for one, was grateful for the dry sanctuary.
Kahlan
hoped Richard was starting to simmer down now that they knew there was nothing
sinister in Juni's death. He'd had his look at every chicken in the village, as
had the Bird Man, and neither man had found a chicken that wasn't a chicken. Or
a feathered monster of any sort, for that matter. The issue was settled. In the
morning, the men would turn the flocks loose.
Zedd
and Ann were not at all happy with Richard. If Richard really believed the
burning pitch pocket was a chime-a thing from the underworld-then just what in
Creation did he suppose he was going to do with it if he caught it in his fist?
Richard hadn't thought of that, or else kept silent for fear of giving Zedd
more reason to think him lacking in good sense.
At
least Zedd was not cruel in his lengthy lecturing on some of the innumerable
possible causes for recent events. It leaned more toward educating than
castigating, though there was a bit of the latter.
Richard
Rahl, the Master of the D'Haran empire, the man to whom kings and queens bowed,
the man to whom nations had surrendered, stood mute as his grandfather paced
back and forth admonishing, preaching, and teaching, at times speaking as First
Wizard, at times as Richard's grandfather, and at times as his friend.
Kahlan
knew Richard respected Zedd too much to say anything; if Zedd was disappointed,
then so be it.
Before
they'd retired for the night, Ann told them she'd received a reply in her
journey book. Verna and Warren knew the book Richard had asked about,
Mountain's Twin. Verna wrote that it was a book of prophecy, mostly, but had
been in Jagang's possession. At Nathan's instructions, she and Warren had
destroyed it along with all the other books
88
Nathan
named, except The Book of Inversion and Duplex, which Jagang didn't have.
When
they had finally gotten to bed, Richard seemed sullen, or at least distracted
with inner thoughts. He was in no mood to make love to her. The truth be known,
after the day they'd had, she wasn't unhappy about it.
Kahlan
sighed. Their second night together, and they were in no mood to be intimate.
How many times had she ached for the chance to be with him?
Kahlan
flopped back down, pressing a hand over her weary eyes. She wished Richard
would hurry and come back to bed before she fell asleep. She wanted to kiss
him, at least, and tell him she knew he was only doing as he thought best,
doing what he thought right, and to tell him she didn't think him foolish for
it. She hadn't been angry, really- she'd simply wanted to be with him, not out
in the rain all day collecting chickens.
She
wanted to tell him she loved him.
She
turned on her side, toward his missing form, to wait. Her eyelids drooped, and
she had to force them open. When she went to put a hand over the blanket where
he belonged, she realized he'd put his half of the blanket over her. Why would
he do that, if he would be right back?
Kahlan
sat up. She rubbed her eyes again. In the dim light from the small fire she saw
that his clothes were gone.
It had
been a long day. They hadn't gotten much sleep the night before. Why would he
be out in the rain in the middle of the night? They needed sleep. In the
morning they had to leave. They had to get back to Aydindril.
Morning.
They were leaving in the morning. He had until then.
Kahlan
growled as she scurried across the floor to their things. He was out looking
for proof of some sort. She knew he was. Something to show them he wasn't being
foolish.
She
groped through her pack until her fingers found her little candle holder. It
had a conical roof so it would stay dry and burn in the rain. She retrieved a
long splinter from beside the hearth, lit it in the fire, and then lit the
candle.
89
She
closed the little glass door to keep the wind from blowing out the flame. The
holder and candle were diminutive and didn't provide much light, but it was the
best she had and better than nothing on a pitch black night in the rain.
Kahlan
yanked her damp shirt from the pole Richard had set up beside the fire. The
touch of cold wet cloth against her flesh as she poked her arms through the
sleeves sent a shuddering ache through her shoulders. She was going to give her
new husband a lecture of her own. She would insist he come back to bed and put
his arms dutifully around her until she was once again warm. It was his fault
she was already shivering. Grimacing, she drew her frigid soggy pants up her
bare legs.
What
proof could he be going to look for? The chicken?
Drying
her hair by the fire, before bed, Kahlan had asked him why he believed he had
seen the very same chicken several times. Richard said the dead chicken outside
the spirit house that morning had a dark mark on the right side of its upper
beak, just below its comb. He said the chicken the Bird Man had pointed out had
the same mark.
Richard
hadn't made the connection until later. He said the chicken waiting above the
door to where Juni's body lay had the same mark on the side of its beak. He
said none of the chickens in the three buildings had such a mark.
Kahlan
pointed out that chickens pecked at the ground all the time and it was raining
and muddy, so it was probably dirt. Moreover, dirt and such was probably on the
beaks of more than one bird. It simply washed off as they were being carried
through the rain to the buildings.
The Mud
People were positive they had collected every chicken in the village, so the
chicken for which he was searching had to be one of the chickens in the three
buildings. Richard had no answer for that.
She
asked why this one chicken-risen from the dead-would have been following them
around all day. To what purpose? Richard had no answer for that, either.
90
Kahlan
realized she hadn't been very supportive. She knew Richard was not given to
flights of fancy. His persistence wasn't really bullheaded, nor was it meant to
rile her.
She
should have listened more receptively, more tenderly. She was his wife. If he
couldn't count on her, then who? No wonder he hadn't been in the mood to make
love to her. But a chicken...
Kahlan
pushed open the door to be greeted by a sodden gust. Cara had gone to bed. The
hunters protecting the spirit house spotted her and rushed over to gather
around. All their eyes stared up at her candlelit face floating in the rainy
darkness. Their glistening bodies materialized like apparitions whenever
lightning crackled.
"Which
way did Richard go?" she asked.
The men
blinked dumbly.
"Richard,"
she repeated. "He is not inside. He left a while ago. Which way did he
go?"
One of
the men looked at all his fellows, checking, before he spoke. All had given him
a shake of their heads.
"We
saw no one. It is dark, but still, we would see him if he came out." \x95
Kahlan
sighed. "Maybe not. Richard was a woods guide. The night is his element.
He can make himself disappear in the dark the same way you can disappear in the
grass."
The men
nodded with this news, not the least bit dubious. "Then he is out here,
somewhere, but we do not know where. Sometimes, Richard with the Temper can be
like a spirit. He is like no man we have ever seen before."
Kahlan
smiled to herself. Richard was a rare person-the mark of a wizard.
The
hunters one time had taken him to shoot arrows, and he had astonished them by
ruining all the arrows he shot. He put them in the center of the target, one on
top of the other, each splitting apart the one before.
Richard's
gift guided his arrows, though he didn't believe it; he thought it simply a
matter of practice and concentration. "Calling the target" was how he
termed it. He said he
91
called
the target to him, letting everything else vanish, and when he felt the arrow
find that singular spot in the air, he loosed it. He could do it in a blink.
Kahlan
had to admit that when he taught her to shoot, she could sometimes feel what he
meant. What he had taught her had even once saved her life. Even so, she knew
magic was involved.
The
hunters had great respect for Richard. Shooting arrows was only part of it. It
was hard not to have respect for Richard. If she said he could be invisible,
they had no reason to doubt it.
It had
almost started out very badly. At the first meeting out on the plains, when
Kahlan had brought him to the Mud People, Richard had misunderstood the
greeting of a slap, and had clouted Savidlin, one of their leaders. By doing so
he had inadvertently honored their strength and made a valuable friend, but had
also earned him the name "Richard with the Temper."
Kahlan
wiped rain water from her- face. "All right. I want to find him." She
signaled off into the darkness. "Each of you, go a different way. If you
find him, tell him I want him. If you don't see him, meet back here after you
have looked in your direction, and we will go off in new places, until we find
him."
They
started to object, but she told them she was tired and wanted to get back to
bed, and she wanted her new husband with her. She pleaded with them to just
please help her, or she would search alone.
It
occurred to her that Richard was doing that very thing: searching alone,
because no one believed him.
Reluctantly,
the men agreed and scattered in different directions, vanishing into the
darkness. Without cumbersome boots, they didn't have the time she did
navigating the mud.
Kahlan
pulled off her boots and tossed them back by the door to the spirit house. She
smiled to herself at having outwitted that much of the mud.
There
were any number of women back in Aydindril, from nobility, to officials, to
wives of officials, who, if they
92
could
have seen the Mother Confessor at that moment, barefoot, ankle-deep in mud, and
soaked to the skin, would have fainted.
Kahlan
slopped out into the mud, trying to imagine if Richard would have any method to
his search. Richard rarely did anything without reason. How would he go about
searching the entire village by himself in the dark?
Kahlan
reconsidered her first thought, that he was searching for the chicken. Maybe he
realized that the things she, Zedd, and Ann said made sense. Maybe he wasn't looking
for a chicken. But then what was he doing out in the middle of the night?
Rain
pelted her scalp, running down her neck and back, making her shiver. Her long
hair, which she had so laboriously dried and brushed, was now again loaded with
water. Her shirt clung to her like a second skin. A miserably cold one.
Where
would Richard have gone?
Kahlan
paused and held up the candle.
Juni.
Maybe
he went to see Juni. She felt a stab of heartache; maybe he had gone to look at
the dead baby. He might have wanted to go grieve for both.
That
would be something Richard would do. He might have wanted to pray to the good
spirits on behalf of the two souls new to the spirit world. Richard would do
that.
Kahlan
walked under an unseen streamlet of icy cold runoff from a roof, gasping as' it
caught her in her face, dousing the front of her. She pulled back wet strands
of hair and spat some out of her mouth as she moved on. Having to hold up the
candle in the frigid rain was numbing her fingers.
She searched
carefully in the dark, trying to tell exactly where she was, to confirm she was
going the right way. She found a familiar low wall with three herb pots. No one
lived anywhere near; they were the herbs grown for the evil spirits housed not
far away. She knew the way from there.
A
little farther and then around a corner she found the
93
door to
the house for the dead. Fumbling with unfeeling fingers, she located the latch.
The door, swollen in the rain, stuck enough to squeak. She stepped through the
doorway and eased closed the door behind her.
"Richard?
Richard, are you in here?"
No
answer. She held up the candle. With her other hand she covered her nose
against the smell. She could taste the stink on her tongue.
Light
from her candle's little window fell across the platform with the tiny body.
She stepped closer, wincing when she felt a hard bug pop under her bare foot,
but the tragedy lying there on the platform before her immediately deadened her
care.
The
sight held her immobilized. Little arms were frozen in space. Legs were stiff,
with just an inch of air under the heels. Tiny hands cupped open. Such wee
little fingers seemed impossible.
Kahlan
felt a lump swell in her throat. She covered her mouth to stifle the unexpected
cry for the might-have-been. The poor thing. The poor mother.
Behind,
she heard an odd repetitious sound. As she stared at the little lifeless form,
she idly tried to make sense of the soft staccato smacking. It paused. It
started. It paused again. She absently dismissed it as the drip of water.
Unable
to resist, Kahlan reached out. She tenderly settled her finger into the cup of
the tiny hand. Her single finger was all the palm would hold. She almost
expected the fingers to close around hers. But they didn't.
She
stifled another sob, feeling a tear roll down her cheek. She felt so sorry for
the mother. Kahlan had seen so much death, so many bodies, she didn't know why
this one should affect her so, but it did.
She
broke down and wept over the unnamed child. In the lonely house for the dead,
her heart poured out for this life unlived, this vessel delivered into the
world without a soul.
The
sound behind at last intruded sufficiently that she
94
turned
to see what disturbed her prayer to the good spirits. Kahlan gasped in her sob
with a backward cry. There, standing on Juni's chest, was a chicken. It was
pecking out Juni's eyes.
CHAPTER\xA0 10
KAHLAN
WANTED TO CHASE the chicken away from the body, but she couldn't seem to make
herself do so. The chicken's eye rolled to watch her as it pecked.
Thwack
thwack thwack. Thwack. Thwack. That was the sound she had heard.
"Shoo!"
She flicked a hand out toward the bird. "Shoo!"
It must
have come for the bugs. That was why it was-in there. For the bugs.
Somehow,
she couldn't make herself believe it.
"Shoo!
Leave him alone!"
Hissing,
hackles lifting, the chicken's head rose.
Kahlan
pulled back.
Its
claws digging into stiff dead flesh, the chicken slowly turned to face her. It cocked
its head, making its comb flop, its wattles sway.
"Shoo,"
Kahlan heard herself whisper.
There
wasn't enough light, and besides, the side of its
95
beak
was covered with gore, so she couldn't tell if it had the dark spot. But she
didn't need to see it.
"Dear
spirits, help me," she prayed under her breath.
The
bird let out a slow chicken cackle. It sounded like a chicken, but in her heart
she knew it wasn't.
In that
instant, she completely understood the concept of a chicken that was not a
chicken. This looked like a chicken, like most of the Mud People's chickens.
But this was no chicken.
This
was evil manifest.
She
could feel it with visceral certitude. This was something as obscene as death's
own grin.
With
one hand, Kahlan wrung her shirt closed at her throat. She was jammed so hard
back against the platform with the baby's body she wondered if she might topple
the solid mortared mass.
Her
instinct was to lash out and touch the vile thing with her Confessor's power. Her
magic destroyed forever the essence of a person, creating in the void a total
and unqualified devotion to the Confessor. In that way, those condemned to
death truthfully confessed their heinous crimes-or their innocence. It was an
ultimate means of witnessing the veracity of justice.
There
was no immunity to the touch of a Confessor. It was as absolute as it was
final. Even the most, maniacal murderer had a soul and so was vulnerable.
Her
power, her magic, was also a weapon of defense. But it would only work on
people. It would not work on a chicken. And it would not work on wickedness
incarnate.
Her
gaze flicked toward the door, checking the distance. The chicken took a single
hop toward her. Claws gripping Juni's upper arm, it leaned her way. Her leg
muscles tightened till they trembled.
The
chicken backed a step, tensed, and spurted feces onto Juni's face.
It let
out the cackle that sounded like a laugh.
She
dearly wished she could tell herself she was being silly. Imagining things.
96
But she
knew better.
Much as
her power would not work to destroy this thing, she sensed, too, that her
ostensible size and strength were meaningless against it. Far better, she
thought, just to get out.
More
than anything, that was what she wanted: out.
A fat
brown bug scurried up her arm. She let out a clipped cry as she smacked it off.
She shuffled a step toward the door.
The
chicken leaped off Juni, landing before the door.
Kahlan
frantically tried to think as the chicken bawk-bawk-bawked. It pecked up the
bug she had flicked off her arm. After downing the bug, it turned to look up at
her, its head cocking this way, then that, its wattles swinging.
Kahlan
eyed the door. She tried to reason how best to get out. Kick the chicken out of
the way? Try to frighten it away from the door? Ignore it and try to walk past
it?
She
remembered what Richard said. "Juni spat at the honor of whatever killed
that chicken. Not long after, Juni died. I threw a stick at the chicken in the
window, and not long after, it attacked that little boy. It was my fault Ungi
got clawed. I don't want to make the same mistake again."
She
didn't want to make that mistake. This thing could fly at her face. Scratch her
eyes out. Use its spur to tear open the carotid artery at the side of her neck.
Bleed her to death. Who knew how strong it really was, what it .might be able
to do.
Richard
had been adamant about everyone being courteous to the chickens. Suddenly
Kahlan's life or death hung on Richard's words. Only a short time before she
had thought them foolish. Now, she was weighing her chances, marking her
choices, by what Richard had said.
"Oh,
Richard," she implored in a whisper, "forgive me."
She
felt something on her toes. A quick glance was not enough in the dim light to
see for sure, but she thought she saw bugs crawling over her feet. She felt one
scurry up her ankle, up under her pant leg. She stamped her foot. The bug clung
tight.
97
She
bent to swat at the thing under her pant leg. She wanted it off. She smacked
too hard, squashing it against her shin.
She
straightened in a rush to swipe at things crawling in her hair. She yelped
-when a centipede bit the back of her hand. She shook it off. As it hit the
floor, the chicken plucked it up and ate it.
With a
flap of wings, the chicken suddenly sprang back up on top of Juni. Claws
working with luxuriant excess, it turned slowly atop the body to peer at her.
One black eye watched with icy interest. Kahlan slipped one foot toward the
door.
"Mother,"
the chicken croaked.
Kahlan
flinched with a cry.
She
tried to slow her breathing. Her heart hammered so hard it felt like her neck
must be bulging. Flesh scraped from her fingers as they gripped at the rough
platform behind.
It must
have made a sound that sounded like the word "Mother." She was the
Mother Confessor, and was used to hearing the word "Mother." She was
simply frightened and had imagined it.
She
yelped again when something bit her ankle. Flailing at a bug running under her
shirtsleeve, she accidentally swatted the candle off the platform behind her.
It hit the dirt floor with a clink.
In an
instant, the room fell pitch black.
She
spun around, scraping madly at something wriggling up between her shoulder
blades, under her hair. By the weight, and the squeak, it had to be a mouse.
Mercifully, as she twisted and whirled about, it was flung off.
Kahlan
froze. She tried to hear if the chicken had moved, if it had jumped to the
floor. The room was dead silent except for the rapid whooshing of her heart in
her ears.
She
began shuffling toward the door. As she scuffed through the fetid straw, she
dearly wished she had worn her boots. The stench was gagging. She didn't think
she would
98
ever
feel clean again. She didn't care, though, if she could just get out alive.
In the
dark, the chicken thing let out a low chicken cackle laugh.
It
hadn't come from where she expected the chicken to be. It was behind her.
"Please,
I mean no harm," she called into the darkness. "I mean no disrespect.
I will leave you to your business now, if that's all right with you."
She
took another shuffling step toward the door. She moved carefully, slowly, in
case the chicken thing was in the way. She didn't want to bump into it and make
it angry. She mustn't underestimate it.
Kahlan
had on any number of occasions thrown herself with ferocity against seemingly
invincible foes. She knew well the value of a resolute violent attack. But she
also somehow knew beyond doubt that this adversary could, if it wanted, kill
her as easily as she could wring a real chicken's neck. If she forced a fight,
this was one she would lose.
Her
shoulder touched the wall. She slid a hand along the plastered mud brick,
groping blindly for the door. It wasn't there. She felt along the wall in each
direction. There was no door.
That
was crazy. She had come in through the door. There had to be a door. The
chicken thing let out a whispering cackle.
Sniffling
back tears of fright, Kahlan turned and pressed her back to the wall. She 'must
have gotten confused when she turned around, getting the mouse off her back.
She was turned around, that was all. The door hadn't moved. She was just turned
around.
Then,
in which direction was the door?
Her eyes
were open as wide as they would go, trying to see in the inky darkness. A new
terror stabbed into her thoughts: What if the chicken-thing pecked her eyes
out? What if that was what it liked to do? Peck out eyes.
99
She
heard herself sobbing in panic. Rain leaked through the grass roof. When it
dripped on her head she flinched. Lightning struck again. Kahlan saw the light
come through the wall to the left. No, it was the door. Light was coming in
around the edge of. the door. Thunder boomed.
Frantic,
she raced for the door. In the dark, she caught the edge of a platform with a
hip. Her toes slammed into the brick corner. Reflexively, she grabbed at the
stunning pain. Hopping on her other foot to keep her balance, she came down on
something hard. Burning pain seared her foot. She grasped for a handhold,
recoiling when she felt the hard little body under her hand. She went down with
a crash.
Cursing
under her breath, she realized she had stepped on the hot candle holder. She
comforted her foot. It hadn't really burned her; her frantic fear only made her
envision the hot metal burning her. Her other foot, though, bled from smacking
the brick.
Kahlan
took a deep breath. She must not panic, she admonished herself, or she would
not be able to help herself. No one else was going to get her out of here. She
had to gather her senses and stay calm enough to escape the house of the dead.
She
took another breath. All she had to do was reach the door, and then she would
be able to leave. She would be safe.
She
felt the floor ahead as she inched forward on her belly. The straw was damp,
whether from the rain or from the foul things draining from the platforms, she
didn't know. She told herself the Mud People respected the dead. They would not
leave filthy straw in there. It must be clean. Then why did it stink so?
With
great effort, Kahlan ignored the bugs skittering over her. When her
concentration on remaining silent wandered, she could hear little pules escape
her throat. With her face right at the floor, she saw the next lightning flash
under the door. It wasn't far.
100
She
didn't know where the chicken had gone." She prayed it would go back to
pecking at Juni's eyes.
With
the next flash of lightning, she saw chicken feet standing between her and the
crack under the door. The thing wasn't more than a foot from her face.
Kahlan
slowly moved a trembling hand to her brow to cup it over her eyes. She knew
that any instant, the chicken-monster-thing was going to peck her eyes, just
like it pecked Juni's eyes. She panted in terror at the mental image of having
her eyes pecked out. Of blood running from ragged, hollow sockets.
She
would be blind. She would be helpless. She would never again see Richard's gray
eyes smiling at her.
A bug
wriggled in her hair, trying to free itself from a tangle. Kahlan brushed at
it, failing to get it off.
Suddenly,
something hit her head. She cried out. The bug was gone. The chicken had pecked
it off her head. Her scalp stung from the sharp hit.
"Thank
you," she forced herself to say to the chicken. "Thank you very much.
I appreciate it."
She
shrieked when the beak struck out, hitting her arm. It was a bug. The chicken
hadn't pecked at her arm, but had gobbled up a bug.
"Sorry
I screamed," she said. Her voice shook. "You startled me, that's all.
Thank you again."
The
beak struck hard on the top of her head. This time, there was no bug. Kahlan
didn't know if the chicken-thing thought there was, or if it meant to peck her
head. It stung fiercely.
She
moved her hand back to her eyes. "Please, don't do that. It hurts. Please
don't peck me."
The
beak pinched the vein on the back of her hand over her eyes. The chicken
tugged, as if trying to pull a worm from the ground.
It was
a command. It wanted her hand away from her eyes.
The
beak gave a sharp tug on her skin. There was no
101
mistaking
the meaning in that insistent yank. Move the hand, now, it was saying, or
you'll be sorry.
If she
made it angry, there was no telling what it was capable of doing to her. Juni
lay dead above her as a reminder of the possibilities.
She
told herself that if it pecked at her eyes, she would have to grab it and try
to wring its neck. If she was quick, it could only get in one peck. She would
have one eye left. She would have to fight it then. But only if it went for her
eyes.
Her
instincts screamed that such action would be the most foolish, dangerous thing
she could do. Both the Bird Man and Richard said this was not a chicken. She no
longer doubted them. But she might have no choice.
If she
started, it would be a fight to the death. She held no illusion as to her
chances. Nonetheless, she might be forced to fight it. With her last breath, if
need be, as her father had taught her.
The
chicken snatched a bigger beakful of her skin along with the vein and twisted.
Last warning.
Kahlan
carefully moved her trembling hand away. The chicken-thing cackled softly with
satisfaction.
Lightning
flashed again. She didn't need the light, though. It was only inches away.
Close enough to feel its breath.
"Please,
don't hurt me?"
Thunder
crashed so loud it hurt. The chicken squawked and spun around.
She
realized it wasn't thunder, but the door bursting open.
"Kahlan!"
It was Richard. "Where are you!"
She
sprang to her feet. "Richard! Look out! It's the chicken! It's the
chicken!"
Richard
grabbed for it. The chicken shot between his legs and out the door.
Kahlan
went to throw her arms around him, but he blocked her way as he snatched the
bow off the shoulder of one of the hunters standing outside. Before the hunter
could shy from the sudden lunge, Richard had plucked an arrow from the quiver
over the man's shoulder. In the next instant
102
the
arrow was nocked and the string drawn to cheek.
The
chicken dashed madly across the mud, down the passageway. The halting flickers
of lightning seemed to freeze the chicken in midstride, each flash revealing it
with arresting light, and" each flash showing it yet farther away.
With a
twang of the bowstring, the arrow zipped away into the night.
Kahlan
heard the steel tipped arrow hit with a solid thunk.
In the
lightning, she saw the chicken turn to look back at them. The arrow had caught
it square in the back of the head. The front half of the arrow protruded from
between its parted beak. Blood ran down the shaft, dripping off the arrow's
point. It dripped in puddles and matted the bird's hackles.
The
hunter let out a low whistle of admiration for the shot.
The
night went dark as thunder rolled and boomed. The next flash of lightning
showed the chicken sprinting around a corner.
Kahlan
followed Richard as he bolted after the fleeing bird. The hunter handed Richard
another arrow as they ran. Richard nocked it and put tension on the string,
holding it at the ready as they charged around the corner.
All
three slowed to a halt. There, in the mud, in the middle of the passageway, lay
the bloody arrow. The chicken was nowhere to be seen.
"Richard,"
Kahlan panted, "I believe you now."
"I
figured as much," he said.
From
behind, they heard a great "whoosh."
Poking
their heads back around the corner, they saw the roof of the place where the
dead were prepared for burial go up in flames. Through the open door, she saw the
floor of straw afire.
"I
had a candle. It fell into the straw. But the flame went out," Kahlan
said. "I'm sure it was out."
"Maybe
it was lightning," Richard said as he watched the flames claw at the sky.
The harsh light made the buildings all around seem to
103
waver
and dance in synchrony with the flames. Despite the. distance, Kahlan could
feel the angry heat against her face. Burning grass and sparks swirled up into
the night.
Their
hunter guardians appeared out of the rain to gather around. The arrow's owner
passed it to his fellows, whispering to them that Richard with the Temper had
shot the evil spirit, chasing it away.
Two
more people emerged from the shadow around the corner of a building, taking in
the leaping flames before joining them. Zedd, his unruly white hair dyed a
reddish orange by the wash of firelight, held out his hand. A hunter laid the
bloody arrow across his palm. Zedd inspected the arrow briefly before passing
it to Ann. She rolled it in her fingers, sighing as if it confessed its story
and confirmed her fears.
"It's
the chimes," Richard said. "They're here. Now do you believe
me?"
"Zedd,
I saw it," Kahlan said. "Richard's right. It was no chicken. It was
in there pecking out Juni's eyes. It spoke. It addressed me-by title-'Mother
Confessor.' "
Reflections
of the flames danced in his solemn eyes. He finally nodded.
"You
are in a way right, my boy. It is indeed trouble of the gravest sort, but it is
not the chimes."
"Zedd,"
Kahlan insisted, pointing back toward the burning building, "I'm telling
you, it was-"
She
fell silent as Zedd reached out and plucked a striated-feather from her hair.
He held up the feather, spinning it slowly between a finger and thumb. Before
their eyes it turned to smoke, evaporating into the night air.
"It
was a Lurk," the wizard murmured.
"A
Lurk?" Richard frowned. "What's a Lurk? And how do you know?"
"Ann
and I have been casting verification spells," the old wizard said.
"You've given us the piece of evidence we needed to be sure. The trace of
magic on this arrow confirms our suspicion. We have grave trouble."
104
"It
was conjured by those committed to the Keeper," Ann said. "Those who
can use Subtractive Magic: Sisters of the Dark."
"Jagang,"
Richard whispered. "He has Sisters of the Dark."
Ann
nodded. "The last time Jagang sent an assassin wizard, but you survived
it. He now sends something more deadly."
Zedd
put a hand on Richard's shoulder. "You were right in your persistence, but
wrong in your conclusion. Ann and I are confident we can disassemble the spell
that brought it here. Try not to worry; we'll work on it, and come up with a
solution."
"You
still haven't said what this Lurk thing is. What's its purpose? What is it sent
to do?"
Ann glanced
at Zedd before she spoke. "It's conjured from the underworld," she
said. "With Subtractive Magic. It is meant to disrupt magic in this
world."
"Just
like the chimes," Kahlan breathed with alarm.
"It
is serious," Zedd confirmed, "but nothing like the chimes. Ann and I
are hardly novices and not without resources of our own.
"The
Lurk is gone for now, thanks to Richard. Unmasked for what it is, it will not
soon return. Go get some sleep. Fortunately, Jagang was clumsy, and his Lurk
betrayed itself before it could cause any more harm."
Richard
looked back over his shoulder at the crackling fire, as if reasoning through
something. "But how would Jagang-"
"Ann
and I need to get some rest so we can work out precisely what Jagang has done
and know how to counter it. It's complex. Let us do what we know we must."
At
last, Richard slipped a comforting arm around Kahlan's waist and drew her close
as he nodded to his grandfather. Richard clasped Zedd's shoulder in an affable
gesture on the way by as he walked Kahlan toward the spirit house.
105
C H A P
T E R\xA0\xA0 11
WHEN
RICHARD STARTED, IT woke her. Kahlan, her back pressed up against him, wiped
her hair from her eyes, hastily trying to gather her senses. Richard sat up,
leaving a cold breach where he had been a warm presence. Someone knocked
insistently.
"Lord
Rahl," came a muffled voice. "Lord Rahl." It hadn't been a
dream; Cara was banging on the door. Richard danced into his pants as he rushed
to answer her knock.
Daylight
barged in. "What is it, Cara?' "The healer woman sent me to get you.
Zedd and Ann are sick. I couldn't understand her words, but I knew she wanted
me to go for you."
Richard
snatched up his boots. "How sick?" "By the healer woman's
behavior, I don't think it's serious, but I don't know about such things. I
thought you would want to see for yourself."
"Of
course. Yes. We'll be right out." Kahlan was already pulling on her
clothes. They were still damp, but at least they weren't dripping wet.
"What do you think it could be?" Richard drew down his black
sleeveless undershirt. "I've no idea."
106
Disregarding
the rest of his outfit, he buckled on his broad belt with the gold-worked
pouches and started for the door. He never left the things inside it unguarded.
They were too dangerous. He glanced back to see if she was with him. Hopping to
keep her balance, Kahlan tugged on her stiff boots.
"I
meant, do you think it could be the magic? Something wrong with it? Because of
the Lurk business?"
"Let's
not give our fears a head start. We'll know soon enough."
As they
charged through the door, Cara took up and matched their stride. The morning
was blustery and wet, with a thick drizzle. Leaden clouds promised a miserable
day. At least it wasn't pouring rain.
Cara's
long blond braid looked as if she'd left it done up wet all night. It hung
heavy and limp, but Kahlan knew it looked better than her own matted locks.
In
contrast, Cara's "red leather outfit looked to have been freshly cleaned.
Their red leather was a point of pride for Mord-Sith. Like a red flag, it
announced to all the presence of a Mord-Sith; few words could convey the menace
as effectively.
The
supple leather must have been treated with oils or wool fat, by the way water
beaded and ran from it. Kahlan always imagined that, as tight as it was,
Mord-Sith didn't undress so much as they shed their skin of leather.
As they
hurried down a passageway, Cara gave them an accusing glare. "You two had
an adventure last night."
By the
way her jaw muscles flexed, it was easy enough to tell that Cara wasn't pleased
to have been left to sleep while they struck out alone like helpless fawns to
see if they could put themselves in grave danger of some sort for no good
reason whatsoever.
"I
found the chicken that wasn't a chicken," Kahlan said.
She and
Richard had been exhausted as they had trudged back to the spirit house through
the dark, the mud, and the rain, and had spoken only briefly about it. When she
asked, he told her he was looking for the chicken thing when he
107
heard
her voice coming from the place where Juni's body lay. She expected him to say
something about her lack of faith in him, but he didn't.
She
told him she was sorry for giving him a rough day, inasmuch as she hadn't
believed him. He said only that he thanked the good spirits for watching over
her. He hugged her and kissed the top of her head. Somehow, she thought she
would have felt better had he instead reproved her.
Dead
tired, they crawled beneath their blankets. Weary as she was, Kahlan was sure
she would be awake the remainder of the night with the frightful memories of
the incarnate evil she felt from the" chicken-thing, but with Richard's
warm and reassuring hand on her shoulder, she had fallen asleep in mere
moments.
"No
one has yet explained to me how you can tell this chicken is not a
chicken," Cara complained as they rounded a corner.
"I
can't explain it," Richard said. "There was just something about it
that wasn't right. A feeling. It made the hairs at the back of my neck stand on
end when it was near."
"If
you'd been there," Kahlan said, "you'd understand. When it looked at
me, I could see the evil hi its eyes."
Cara
grunted her skepticism. "Maybe it needed to lay an egg."
"It
addressed me by my title."
"Ah.
Now that would tip me off, too." Cara's voice turned more serious, if not
troubled. "It really called you 'Mother Confessor'?"
Kahlan
nodded to the genuine anxiety creeping onto Cara's face. "Well, actually,
it started to, but only spoke the Mother part. I didn't wait politely to hear
it finish the rest."
As the
three of them filed in the door, Nissel rose from the buckskin hide on the
floor before the small hearth. She was heating a pot of aromatic herbs above
the small fire. A stack of tava bread sat close beside the hearth on the shelf,
where it would stay warm. She smiled that odd little something-only-she-knew
smile of hers.
108
"Mother
Confessor. Good morning. Have you slept well?"
"Yes,
thank you. Nissel, what's wrong with Zedd and Ann?"
Nissel's
smile vanished as she glanced at the heavy hide hanging over the doorway to the
room in the rear. "I am not sure."
"Well
then what's ailing them?" Richard demanded when Kahlan translated.
"How are they sick? Fever? Stomach? Head? What?" He threw up his
arms. "Have their heads come off their shoulders?"
Nissel
held Richard's gaze as Kahlan asked his questions. Her odd little smile
returned. "He is impatient, your new husband."
"He
is worried for his grandfather. He has great love for his elder. So, do you
know what could be wrong with them?"
Nissel
turned briefly to give the pot a stir. The old healer had curious, even
puzzling ways about her, like the way she mumbled to herself while she worked,
or had a person balance stones on their stomach to distract them while she
stitched a wound, but Kahlan also knew she possessed a sharp mind and was
nearly peerless at what she did. There was a long lifetime of experience and
vast knowledge in the hunched old woman.
With
one hand, Nissel drew closed her simple shawl and at last squatted down before
the Grace still drawn in the dirt in the center of the floor. She reached out
and slowly traced a crooked finger along one of the straight lines radiating
out from the center-the line representing magic.
"This,
I think."
Kahlan
and Richard shared a troubled look.
"You
could probably find out a lot quicker," Cara said, "if you would just
go in there and have a look for yourself."
Richard
shot Cara a glower. "We wanted to know what to expect, if that's all right
with you."
Kahlan
relaxed a bit. Cara would never be irreverent
109
about
something this important to them if she really believed it might be life or
death battling beyond the hide curtain. Still, Cara knew little about magic,
except that she didn't like it.
Cara,
like the fierce D'Haran soldiers, feared magic. They were forever repeating the
invocation that they were the steel against steel, while Lord Rahl was meant to
be the magic against magic. It was part of the D'Haran people's bond to their
Lord Rahl: they protected him, he protected them. It was almost as if they
believed their duty was to protect his body so that in return he could protect
their souls.
The
paradox was that the unique bond between Mord-Sith and their Lord Rahl was a
symbiotic relationship giving power to the Agiel-the staggering instrument of
torture a Mord-Sith wore at her wrist-and, more important, that because of the
ancient link to their Lord Rahl, Mord-Sith were able to usurp the magic of one
gifted. Until Richard freed them, the purpose of Mord-Sith was not just to
protect their Lord Rahl, but to torture to death his enemies who possessed
magic, and in the process extract any information they had.
Other
than the magic of a Confessor, there was no magic able to withstand the ability
of a Mord-Sith to appropriate it. As much as Mord-Sith feared magic, those with
magic had more to fear from Mord-Sith. But then, people always told Kahlan that
snakes were more afraid of her than she was of them.
Clasping
her hands behind her back and planting her feet, Cara took up her station.
Kahlan ducked through the doorway as Richard held the hide curtain aside for
her.
Candles
lit the windowless room beyond. Magical designs dappled the dirt floor. Kahlan
knew they were not practice symbols, as the Grace in the outer room had been.
These were drawn in blood.
Kahlan
caught the crook of Richard's arm. "Careful. Don't step on any of
these." She held out her other hand to the symbols on the floor.
"They're meant to lure and snare the unwary."
110
Richard
nodded as he moved deeper into the room, weaving his way through the maze of
ethereal devices. Zedd and Ann lay head to head on narrow grass-stuffed pallets
against the far wall. Both were covered up to their chins with coarse woolen
blankets.
"Zedd,"
Richard whispered as he sank to a knee, "are you awake?"
Kahlan
knelt beside Richard, taking his hand as they sat back on their heels. As Ann's
eyes blinked open and she looked up, Kahlan took her hand, too. Zedd frowned,
as if exposing his eyes to even the mellow candlelight hurt. "There you
are, Richard. Good. We need to have a talk." "What's the matter? Are
you sick? What can we do to help?"
Zedd's
wavy white hair looked more disheveled than usual. In the dim light his
wrinkles weren't so distinct, but he somehow still looked a very old man at
that moment.
"Ann
and I... are just feeling a little tired out, that's all. We've been ..."
He
brought a hand out from under the blanket and gestured at the garden of designs
sown across the floor. Cara's leather was tighter than the skin stretched over
his bones. "Tell him," Ann said into the dragging silence, "or I
will." "Tell me what? What's going on?" Zedd rested his bony
hand on Richard's muscular thigh and took a few labored breaths.
"You
know that talk we had? Our 'what if talk ... about magic going away?"
"Of course." "It's begun."
Richard's
eyes widened. "It is the chimes, then." "No," Ann said.
'The Sisters of the Dark." She wiped sweat from her eyes. "In
conjuring a spell to bring the... the chicken-thing ..."
"The
Lurk," Zedd said, helping her. "In conjuring the Lurk, they have
either intentionally or accidentally begun a runaway degeneration of magic."
111
"It
wouldn't be accidental," Richard said. "They would intend this. At
least Jagang would, and the Sisters of the Dark do his bidding."
Zedd
nodded, letting his eyes close. "I'm sure you're right, my boy."
"You
weren't able to stop it, then?" Kahlan asked. "You made it sound as
if you would be able to counter it."
"The
verification webs we cast have cost us dearly." Ann sounded as bitter as
Kahlan would have been hi her place. "Used up our strength."
Zedd
lifted his arm, and then let it flop back down to rest again on Richard's
thigh. "Because of who we are, because we have more power and ability than
others, the taint of this atrophy is affecting us first."
Kahlan
frowned. "You said it would start with the weakest."
Ann simply
rolled her head from side to side.
"Why
isn't it affecting us?" Richard asked. "Kahlan has a lot of
magic-with her Confessor power." And I have the gift."
Zedd
lifted his hand to give a sickly wave. "No, no. Not the way it works. It
starts with us. With me, more than Ann."
"Don't
mislead them," Ann said. "This is too important." Her voice
gathered a little strength as she went on. "Richard, Kahlan's power will
soon fail. So will yours, though you don't depend on it as do we, or she, so it
won't matter so much to you."
"Kahlan
will lose her Confessor's power," Zedd confirmed, "as will everyone
of magic. Every thing of magic. She will be defenseless and must be
protected."
"I'm
hardly defenseless," Kahlan objected.
"But
there has to be a way for you to counter it. You said last night that you were
not without resources of your own." Richard's fists tightened. "You
said you could counter it. You must be able to do something!"
Ann
lifted an arm to weakly whack at the top of Zedd's head. "Would you please
tell him, old man? Before you give
112
the boy
apoplexy and he is of no help to us?"
Richard
leaned forward. "I can help? What can I do? Tell me and I'll do it."
Zedd
managed a feeble smile. "I always could count on you, Richard. Always
could."
"What
can we do?" Kahlan asked. "You can count on us both."
"You
see, we know what to do, but we can't manage it alone."
"Then
we'll help you," Richard insisted. "What do you need?"
Zedd
struggled to take a breath. "In the Keep."
Kahlan
felt a surge of hope. The sliph would spare them weeks of travel over land. In
the sliph she and Richard could get to the Keep in less than a day.
Seeming
nearly insensate, Zedd's breath wheezed out. In frustration, Richard pressed
his own temples between thumb and second finger of one hand. He took a deep
breath. He dropped the hand to Zedd's shoulder and jostled gently.
"Zedd?
What is it we can do to help? What about the Wizard's Keep? What's in the
Keep?"
The old
wizard swallowed lethargically. "In the Keep. Yes."
Richard
took another shaky breath, trying to preserve calm and reassurance in his own
voice. "All right. In the Keep. I understand that much. What is it you
need to tell me about the Keep, Zedd?"
Zedd's
tongue worked at wetting the roof of his mouth.
"Water."
Kahlan
put a hand on Richard's shoulder, almost as if to keep him from springing up
and bouncing off the ceiling. "I'll get it."
Nissel
met her at the doorway but instead of the water Kahlan requested, handed her a
warm cup. "Give him this. I have just finished making it. It is better
than water. It will give him strength."
"Thank
you, Nissel."
Kahlan
hurried the cup to Zedd's lips. He gulped a few
113
swallows.
Kahlan offered the cup to Ann, and she finished it. Nissel leaned over Kahlan's
shoulder to hand her a piece of tava bread spread with something that looked
like honey and carried a faint smell; of mint, as if laced with a curative.
Nissel whispered to Kahlan to get them to eat some.
"Here,
Zedd," Kahlan said, "have a bite of tava with honey."
Holding
up his hand, Zedd blocked' the proffered food from his mouth. "Maybe
later."
Kahlan
and Richard glanced at each other out of the corner of their eyes. It was
nearly unheard of for Zedd to refuse food. Cara must have taken her belief that
it wasn't serious from the calm Nissel. While the old healer seemed unruffled
by the condition of the two on the floor, Richard and Kahlan's concern was
mounting by the moment.
"Zedd,"
Richard prompted, now that his grandfather had had a drink, "what about
the Keep?"
Zedd
opened his eyes. Kahlan thought them a bit brighter, the hazel color more
limpid, less cloudy. He sluggishly grasped Richard's wrist.
"I
think the tea is helping. More."
Kahlan
twisted to the old woman. "He says the tea is helping. He would like
more."
Pulling
her head back, Nissel made a face. "Of course it helps. Why does he think
I make it?"
She
shook her head at such foolishness and shuffled off to the outer room to
retrieve more tea. Kahlan was sure it wasn't her imagination that Zedd seemed
just the tiniest bit more alert.
"Listen
closely, my boy." He lifted a finger for emphasis. "In the Keep,
there is a spell of great power. A sort of bottled antidote to the taint
wafting through the world of life."
"And
you need it?" Richard guessed.
Ann,
too, looked to have been helped by the tea. "We tried to cast the
counterspells, but our power has already deteriorated too much. We did not
discover what was happening soon enough."
114
"But
the vaporous spell in that bottle will do to the taint as the taint does to
us," Zedd drawled.
"And
thereby equalize the power so you can cast the counterspell and eliminate
it," Richard impatiently finished in a rush.
"Yes,"
Zedd and Ann said as one.
Kahlan
smiled eagerly. "It's not a problem, then. We can get the bottle for
you."
Richard
grinned his zeal. "We can get to the Keep through the sliph. We can
retrieve this bottled spell of yours and be back with it in no time,
almost."
Ann
covered her eyes with a hand as she muttered a curse. "Zedd, did you never
teach this boy anything?"
Richard's
grin gave out. "Why? What's wrong with that?"
Nissel
shuffled in carrying two clay cups of tea. She handed one to Kahlan and one to
Richard. "Make them drink it all."
"Nissel
says you must drink this down," Kahlan told them.
Ann
sipped when Kahlan held the cup to her lips. Zedd wrinkled his nose, but then
had to start swallowing as Richard poured the tea down his grandfather's
gullet. Balking and coughing, he was forced to gulp it all or drown.
"Now,
what's the problem with us getting this spell thing from the Keep?"
Richard asked as his grandfather caught his breath.
"First
of all," Zedd managed between gasps, "you don't need to bring it
here. You must only break the bottle. The spell will be released. It doesn't
need direction-it's already created."
Richard
was nodding. "I can break a bottle. I'll break it."
"Listen.
It's in a bottle designed to protect the magic. It will only be released if
it's broken properly-with an object possessing the correct magic. Otherwise, it
will simply evaporate without helping."
"What
object? How do I break the bottle correctly?"
"The
Sword of Truth," Zedd said. "It has the proper magic to release the
spell intact as it breaches the container."
115
"That's
not a problem. I left the sword in your private enclave in the Keep. But won't
the sword's magic fail, too?"
"No.
The Sword of Truth was created by wizards with the knowledge to ward its power
from assaults against its magic."
"So
you think the Sword of Truth will stop a Lurk?" Zedd nodded. "Much of
this matter is unknown to me, but I strongly believe this: The Sword of Truth
may be the only thing with the power to protect you." Zedd's fingers
gripped Richard's undershirt, pulling him close. "You must retrieve the
sword."
His
eyes brightened when Richard nodded earnestly. Zedd tried to push himself up on
an elbow, but Richard pressed a big hand to the old man's chest, forcing him to
lie down.
"Rest.
You can get up after you rest. Now, where is this bottle with the spell."
Zedd
frowned at something and pointed behind Richard and Kahlan. They both turned to
look. When they didn't see anything but Cara watching from the doorway, they
turned back to see Zedd up on the elbow. He smiled at his little triumph.
Richard scowled.
"Now,
listen carefully, my boy. You said you got into the First Wizard's private
enclave?" Richard's head bobbed as Zedd talked. "And you remember the
place?" Richard was still nodding. "Good. There is an entrance. A
long walk between things."
"Yes,
I remember. The long entryway has a red carpet down the middle. To each side
are white marble columns about as tall as me. There are different things atop
each.' At the end-"
"Yes,"
Zedd held up a hand, as if to stop him. "The white marble columns. You
remember them? The things atop them?"
"Some.
Not every one. There were gems in brooches, gold chains, a silver chalice, finely
wrought knives, bowls, boxes." Richard paused with a frown of effort at
recollection. He snapped his fingers. "Fifth column on the left has a
bottle atop it. I remember because I thought it was pretty.
116
An inky
black bottle with a gold filigree stopper."
A sly
smile stole onto the Zedd's face. "Quite right, my boy. That's the
bottle."
"What
do I do? Just break it with the Sword of Truth?"
"Just
break it."
"Nothing
fancy? No incantations? No placing it some certain place some certain way? No
waiting for the right moon? No special time of day or night? No turning round
first? Nothing fancy?"
"Nothing
fancy. Just break it with the sword. If it were me, I'd carefully set it on the
floor, just in case my aim was bad and I knocked it off without breaking the
glass and it fell to the marble to break there. But that's me."
"The
floor it is, then. I'll set it on the floor and smash it with the sword."
Richard started to rise. "It will be done before dawn breaks
tomorrow."
Zedd
caught Richard's hand and urged him back down. "No, Richard, you
can't." He flopped back, sighing unhappily.
"Can't
what?" Richard asked as he leaned close once more.
Zedd
took a few breaths. "Can't go in that sliph thing of yours."
"But
we have to," Richard insisted. "It will get us there in less than a
day. Over land would take ... I don't know. Weeks."
The old
wizard lifted a grim finger toward Richard's face. "The sliph uses magic.
If you go in the sliph, you will die before you reach Aydindril. You will be in
the dark recesses of that quicksilver creature, breathing her magic, when that
magic fails. You will drown. No one will ever find your body."
Richard
licked his lips. He raked his fingers back through his hair. "Are you
sure? Might I be able to make it before the magic fails? Zedd, this is
important. If there is some risk, then we must take it. I'll go alone. I'll
leave Kahlan and Cara."
Alarm
swelled in Kahlan's chest at the idea of Richard
117
being
in the sliph, and having its magic fail. Of him drowning in the dark forever of
the sliph. She clutched at his arm to protest, but Zedd spoke first.
"Richard,
listen to me. I am First Wizard. I am telling you: Magic is failing. If you go
in the sliph, you will die. Not maybe. Will. All magic is failing. You must go
without magic."
Richard
pressed his lips tight and nodded. "All right, then. If we must, then we
must. It will take longer, though. How long can you and Ann ... ?"
Zedd
smiled. "Richard, we are too weak to travel or we would go with you now,
but we will be fine. We would only slow you for no good reason. You can
accomplish what must be done. As soon as you break the bottle and release the
spell, then these things here"-he gestured to the spells drawn all over the
floor-"will let us know. Once they do, I can cast the counterspells.
"Until
then, the Wizard's Keep will be vulnerable. Extraordinarily powerful and
dangerous things could be stolen when the Keep's shields of magic fail. After I
restore magic's power, anything stolen could then be used against us."
"Do
you know how much of the Keep's magic will fail?"
Zedd
shook his head in frustration. "This is without precedent. I can't predict
the exact sequences, but I'm sure all will fail. We need you to stay at the
Keep and protect it as you planned. Ann and I will follow after this business
is finished. We're counting on you. Can you do that for me, my boy?"
Richard,
his eyes glistening, nodded. He took up his grandfather's hand. "Of
course. You can count on me."
"Promise
me, Richard. Promise me you will go to the Keep."
"I
promise."
"If
you don't," Ann warned in a low voice, "Zedd's optimism about his
being fine may prove ... flawed."
Zedd's
brow tightened. "Ann, you are making it sound-"
118
"If
I am not telling the truth, then call me a liar."
Zedd
rested the back of his wrist over his eyes and remained silent. Ann tilted her
head back enough to meet Richard's gaze.
"Am
I making myself clear?"
He
swallowed. "Yes, ma'am."
Zedd
reached out for the comfort of Richard's hand. "This is important,
Richard, but don't break your neck getting there?"
Richard
smiled. "I understand. A swift journey, not impetuous reckless haste, is
more likely to get you to your destination."
Zedd
managed a low chuckle. "So you did listen when you were younger."
"Always."
"Then
listen now." The sticklike finger once more lifted from his slack fist.
"You must not use fire, if you can avoid it at all. The Lurk could find
you by fire."
"How?"
"We
believe the spell can seek by fire's light. It was sent for you, so it can
search for you with fire. Keep away from fire.
"Water,
too. If you must ford a river, use a bridge if at all possible, even if you
must go days out of your way. Cross streams on a log, or swing over on a rope,
or jump, if you can."
"You
mean to say we risk ending up like Juni, if we go near water?"
Zedd
nodded. "I'm sorry to make it more difficult for you, but this is perilous
business. The Lurk is trying to get you. You will only be safe-all of us will
only be safe-if you can get to the Keep and break that bottle before the Lurk
finds you."
Undaunted,
Richard smiled. We'll save time-not having to gather firewood or bathe."
Zedd
again let out the breathy little chuckle. "Safe journey, Richard. And you,
too, Cara. Watch over Richard." His sticklike fingers gripped Kahlan's
hand. "And you too, my
119
new
granddaughter. I love you dearly. Keep each other safe and well. I will see you
when we reach Aydindril, and we will have the joy of each other's company
again. Wait at the Keep for us."
Kahlan
gathered up his bony hand in both of hers as she sniffled back the tears.
"We will. We'll be there waiting for you. We'll be a family together,
again, when you get there."
"Safe
journey, all," Ann said. "May the good spirits be with you always.
Our faith and prayers will be with you, too."
Richard
nodded his thanks and started to rise, but then paused. He seemed to consider
something for a moment. He spoke at last in a soft voice.
"Zedd,
all the time I was growing up, I never knew you were my grandfather. I know you
did that to protect me, but ... I never knew." He fidgeted with a piece of
grass sticking out of the pallet. "I never got a chance to hear about my
mother's mother. She almost never spoke of her mother- just a word here and
there. I never learned about my grandmother. Your wife."
Zedd
turned his face away as a tear rolled down his cheek. He cleared his throat.
"Erilyn was ... a wonderful woman. Like you have a wonderful wife now, so
I once did, too.
"Erilyn
was captured by the enemy, by a quad sent by your other grandfather, Panis
Rahl, when your mother was very young. Your mother saw it all-what they did to
her mother.... Erilyn only lived long enough for me to find her. She was
already at the brink of death, but I tried to heal her. My magic activated a
sinister spell the enemy had hidden in her. My healing touch was what killed
her. Because of what she saw, your mother found it painful to speak of
Erilyn."
After
an uncomfortable moment, Zedd toned back to them and smiled with a memory of
genuine joy. "She was beautiful, with gray eyes, like your mother. Like
you. She was as smart as you, and she liked to laugh. You should know that. She
liked to laugh."
Richard
smiled. He cleared his throat to find his voice.
120
"Then
she surely married the right person."
Zedd
nodded. "She did. Now, gather your things and be on your way to Aydindril
so we can get our magic back to right.
"When
we finally join you in Aydindril, I will tell you all the things about
Erilyn-your grandmother-that I never could before." He smiled a
grandfather's smile. "We will talk of family."
CHAPTER\xA0 12
"FETCH!
HERE, BOY! FETCH!"
The men
laughed. The women giggled. Fitch wished his face wouldn't always go as red as
his hair when Master Drummond mocked him with that epithet. He left the scrub
brush in the crusty cauldron and scurried to see what the kitchen master
wanted.
Dashing
around one of the long tables, his elbow whacked a flagon someone had set near
the edge. He caught the heavy, cobalt blue glass vessel just before it toppled
to the floor. Exhaling in relief, he pushed it back near the stack of braided
bread. He heard his name yelled again.
Fitch jigged
to a halt before Master Drummond, keeping his eyes to the floor-he didn't want
a lump on his head for appearing to protest being the butt of jokes.
"Yes,
Master Drummond?"
121
The
portly kitchen master wiped his hands on a white towel he always kept tucked
behind his belt. "Fitch, you have to be the clumsiest scullion I've ever
seen."
"Yes,
sir."
Master
Drummond stretched up on his toes, peering out the back window. "Someone
in the distance behind Fitch cursed as they burned themselves on a hot pan and
in recoiling knocked metalware clattering across the brick floor near the
baking hearth. There was no angry shouting, so Fitch knew it wasn't one of the
other Haken scullions.
Master
Drummond gestured toward the service door of the sprawling kitchen. "Fetch
in some wood. We need the oak, and also a bit of apple to flavor the
ribs."
"Oak
and apple. Yes, sir."
"And
get a four-hand cauldron up on a racking crook first. Hurry up with the
oak."
Fitch
sagged with a "Yes, sir." The big split slabs of oak for the roasting
hearth were heavy and always gave him splinters. Oak splinters were the worst
kind, and would plague him for days after. The apple wasn't so bad, at least.
It was going to be a big affair; he knew to bring enough of it.
"And
keep your eye out for the butcher's cart. It's due here any minute. I'll wring
Inger's neck if he sends it late."
Fitch
perked up. "Butcher's cart?" He dared not ask what he wanted to ask.
"Would you like me to unload it, then, sir?"
Master
Drummond planted his fists on his wide hips. "Don't tell me, Fitch, that
you're starting to think ahead?" Nearby, several women working at sauces
snorted a laugh. "Of course I want you to unload it! And if you drop any,
like the last time, I'll roast your scrawny rump instead."
Fitch
bowed twice. "Yes, Master Drummond."
As he
withdrew, he moved aside to make way for the dairymaid bringing a sample of
cheese for Master Drummond's approval. One of the women saucers snagged Fitch's
sleeve before he could be off.
122
"Where
are those skimmers I asked for?"
"Coming,
Gillie, as soon as I see to-"
She
snatched him by an ear. "Don't patronize me," Gillie growled. She
twisted the ear. "Your kind always fall to that, in the end, don't
they?"
"No,
Gillie-I wasn't-I swear. I have nothing but respect for the Ander people. I
daily school my vile nature so there may be no room in my heart or mind for
hate or spite, and I pray the Creator gives me strength to transform my flawed
soul, and that he burns me for eternity should I fail," he prated by rote.
"I'll get the skimmers for you, Gillie. Please, let me get them?"
She
shoved his head. "Go on then, and be quick."
Comforting
his throbbing ear, Fitch raced to the rack where he'd left the skimmers to dry.
He snatched a handful and bore them to Gillie with as much respect as he could
muster, considering that Master Drummond was watching out of the corner of his
eye, no doubt thinking about beating him for not having the skimmers to Gillie
sooner so he could be doing as ordered and have the cauldron hung and the
firewood on its way in.
He
bowed as he held out the skimmers.
"I
hope you see fit to take yourself to an extra penance assembly this week."
Gillie snatched up the skimmers. 'The humiliations from your kind we Anders
must endure," she muttered with a rueful shake of her head.
"Yes,
Gillie, I need the reassurance of an extra penance. Thank you for reminding
me."
When
she snorted her contempt and turned to her work, Fitch, feeling the shame of
having thoughtlessly let his wicked nature demean an Ander, hurried off to get
one of the other scullions to help him lift the heavy cauldron onto the racking
crook. He found Morley up to his elbows in scalding water and only too happy
for any excuse to pull them free, even for heavy lifting.
Morley
checked over his shoulder as -he helped lift the iron cauldron. It wasn't as
hard for him as it was for Fitch.
123
Fitch
was gangly; Morley had a muscular build.
Morley
smiled conspiratorially. "Big affair tonight. You know what that
means."
Fitch
smiled that he did. With all the guests, there would be the noise of laughter,
shouting, singing, eating, and drinking. With all that, and people running
hither and yon, wine and ale would be in endless supply, and whether in
half-full glasses or half-full bottles, it would be little missed.
"It
means one of the only advantages of working for the Minister of Culture,"
Fitch said.
Morley,
the cords in his muscular neck straining from the weight, leaned closer over
the cauldron as they lugged it across the floor. "Then you'd better be
more respectful of the Ander people or you'll not have that advantage. Nor the
one of a roof over your head and meals to fill your belly."
Fitch
nodded. He hadn't meant to be disrespectful-that was the last thing he would
want to do; he owed everything to the Anders. But every now and then, he felt
the Anders took offense too easily, though he knew it was his insensitivity and
ignorance that lead to such misunderstandings, so he guessed he had no one to
blame but himself.
As soon
as the cauldron was hung, Fitch rolled his eyes and hung his tongue out the
side of his mouth, intimating to Morley that they would drink themselves sick
that night. Morley swiped his red Haken hair back from his face and simulated a
drunken, if silent, hiccup before plunging his arms back into the soapy water.
Smiling,
Fitch trotted out the postern to retrieve the firewood. The recent drenching
rains had moved east, leaving behind the sweet aroma of fresh, damp earth. The
new spring day promised to be warm. In the distance, the lush fields of verdant
new wheat shimmered in the sun. On some days, when the wind was from the south,
the smell of the .sea drifted in to wash over the fields, but not today, though
a few gulls wheeled in the sky.
Fitch
checked the avenue each time he trotted back out for another armload, but
didn't see the butcher's cart. His tunic was damp with sweat by the time he'd
finished with
124
the
oak. He'd managed to hustle it in with only one splinter, a long one, in the
web of his thumb.
As he
plucked billets from the mound of apple wood, he caught the rhythmic creaking
of an approaching cart. Sucking at the painful oak splinter, trying
unsuccessfully to catch hold of the buried end with his teeth, he
surreptitiously glanced to the shade of the great oaks lining the long avenue
into the estate and saw the plodding gait of Brownie, the butcher's swayback
horse. Whoever was bringing the load was on the other side of the cart. With
that, and the distance, he couldn't tell who it was.
Besides
the butcher's cart, a number of other people were also arriving at the
sprawling estate; everyone from scholars visiting the Anderith Library, to
servants bringing messages and reports, to workers bringing wagons with
deliveries. There were also a number of well-dressed people coming with some
other purpose.
When
first Fitch had come to work in the kitchen, he had found it, and the whole
estate, a huge and baffling place. He had been intimidated by everyone and
everything, knowing it would be his new home and he had to learn to fit into
the work if he was to have a sleeping pallet and food.
His
mother had told him to work hard and with luck he would always have both. She
had warned him to mind his betters, do as he was told, and even if he thought
the rules harsh, follow them. She said that if the behests were onerous, he
should still do them without comment, and especially without complaint.
Fitch
didn't have a father, one he knew anyway, though at times there had been men
he'd thought might marry his mother. She had a room provided by her employer, a
merchant named Ibson. It was in the city, beside Mr. Ibson's home, in a
building that housed other of his workers. His mother worked in the kitchen,
cooking meals. She could cook anything.
She was
always hard-pressed to feed Fitch, though, and wasn't able to watch over him
much of the time. When he wasn't at penance assembly, she often took him to
work
125
with
her, where she could keep an eye on him. There, he turned spits, "carried
this and that, washed smaller items, swept the courtyard, and. often had to
clean out the stables where some of Mr. Ibson's wagon horses were kept.
His
mother had been good to him, whenever she saw him, anyway. He knew she cared
about him and about what would become of him. Not like some of the men she
occasionally saw. They viewed Fitch as little more than an annoyance. Some,
wanting to be alone with his mother, opened the door to his mother's single
room and heaved him out for the night.
Fitch's
mother would wring her hands, but she was too timid to stop the men from
putting him out.
When
the men put him out, he'd have to sleep on the doorstep to the street, under a
stairway, or at a neighbor's, if they were of a mind to let him in. Sometimes,
if it was raining, the night stablehands at Mr. Ibson's place next door would
let him sleep in the stables. He liked being with the horses, but he didn't
like having to endure the flies.
But
enduring the flies was better than being caught alone at night by Ander boys.
Early
the next day his mother would go off to work, usually with her man friend who
worked in the household, too, and Fitch would get to go back inside. When she'd
come home on the days after he'd been shoved out for the night, she'd usually
bring him some treat she'd filched from the kitchen where she worked.
His
mother had wanted him to learn a trade, but she didn't know anyone who would
take him on as a helper, much less as an apprentice, so, about four years
before, when he was old enough to earn his own meals, Mr. Ibson helped her
place him for work in the kitchen at the Minister of Culture's estate, not far
outside the capital city of Fairfield.
Upon his
arrival, one of the household clerks had sat Fitch down along with a few other
new people and explained the rules of the house, where he would sleep with the
other scullions and such, and what his duties were to be. The clerk explained
in grave tones the importance of the place where
126
they
labored; from the estate, the Minister of Culture directed the affairs of his
high office, overseeing nearly every aspect of life in Anderith. The estate was
also his home. The post of Minister of Culture was second only to that of the
Sovereign himself.
Fitch
had simply thought he'd been sent to some merchant's kitchen to work; he'd had
no idea his mother had managed to get him placed in such a high household. He'd
been immensely proud. Later, he found that it was hard work, like any other
work, in any other place. There was nothing glamorous about it. But still, he
was proud that he, a Haken, worked in the Minister's estate.
Other
than what Fitch had been taught about the Minister making laws and such to insure
that Anderith culture remained exemplary and the rights of all were protected,
Fitch didn't really understand what the Minister of Culture did that required
so many people coming and going all the time. He didn't even understand why
there needed to be new laws all the time. After all, right was right, and wrong
was wrong. He'd asked an Ander once, and had been told that new wrongs were
continually being uncovered, and needed to be addressed. Fitch didn't
understand that, either, but hadn't said so. Just asking the first question had
brought a scowl to the Ander's face.
Unable
to pull out the oak splinter, he bent to pick up a stick of apple wood while
keeping an eye to the avenue and the butcher's cart. One of the approaching
strangers, a brawny man in unfamiliar military attire, wore an odd cloak that
almost looked to Fitch like it was covered in patches of hair.
Each of
the man's fingers was ringed, with a leather strap from each of those rings
going over a knuckle to a studded black leather bracer around his wrists and
forearms. Silver studs girded his boots, too. Fitch was stunned to see the
glint of metal studs in the man's ear and nose.
The
man's leather belts held weapons the likes of which Fitch had never even
conjured in his nightmares. Riding in a hanger at his right hip was an axe with
the great horns of
127
its
blade curling back around until they almost touched. A wooden handle, dark with
age and use, had a spiked ball attached to its top via a chain. A long spike,
like a single talon, capped the bottom of the handle.
The
man's thatch of thick dark hair made him look as if he were possibly an Ander,
but his thick brow spoke that he wasn't. The tangle of dark hair fell around a
bull neck that must have been nearly as big around as Fitch's waist. Even at a
distance, the sight of the man made Fitch's stomach go queasy.
As the
stranger passed the slow butcher's cart, the man drank in a long look at the
person on the other side of Brownie. He finally moved on, turning his attention
back to the windows of the estate, searching them, too, with dark intent.
CHAPTER
13
KNOWING
BETTER THAN TO stand and wait for the cart to make it the rest of the way up
the avenue to the lane to the kitchen yard, Fitch hurriedly gathered up an armload
of apple wood and lugged it inside. In his haste to be back outside, he heaved
it all into the bin without thinking, but over the people talking and calling
out, the sounds of myriad foods sizzling in pans, the crackle of the fires, the
rapping of spoons in bowls, the grinding of pestles in mortars, the
128
rasp of
brushes, and the general clatter of everyone working, no one heard his wood
carelessly thunking home. Some spilled out, and he was going to leave it, but
when he spied Master Drummond not far off, he dropped to his knees and quickly
stacked the wood in the bin.
When he
rushed back out, his heart hammering, his breath caught up short when he saw
who'd brought the butcher's cart.
It was
her.
Fitch
wrung his hands as he watched her leading Brownie into the turn round. His
hand-wringing twisted the splinter lying under his flesh, making him grimace.
He cursed under his breath, then snapped his mouth shut, hoping she hadn't
heard. He trotted over to the cart, shaking the stinging hand to dispel the
pain.
"Good
day, Beata."
She
only glanced up. "Fitch."
He
groped for something to say, but couldn't think of anything meaningful. He
stood mute as she clucked her tongue, urging Brownie to back up. One hand held
the trace chain as her other hand stroked the horse's chest, guiding,
reassuring, as he clopped backward. What Fitch wouldn't give to have that hand
touch him in such a gentle manner.
Her
short red hair, so soft, so lustrous, so fetching the way its fullness tapered
to turn in and caress the nape of her neck, ruffled in the warm spring breeze.
Fitch
waited beside the cart, fearing to say something stupid and have Beata think
him a fool. Even though he thought about her often, he figured thoughts about
him probably never passed through her mind. That was one thing, but to have her
think him a fool would be unbearable. He wished he knew some interesting bit of
news, or something to make her have pleasant thoughts about him.
Expressionless,
Beata gestured as she walked back to the cart where he stood. "What's
wrong with your hand?"
The
shape of her, so close, paralyzed him. The dusky blue dress swept up from the
top of the flare of the long skirt, hugging her ribs, swelling over her bosom
in a way that
129
made
him have to swallow to get his breath. Worn wooden buttons marched up the
front. A pin with a simple spiral head held the collar closed at her throat.
It was
an old dress; she was, after all, a Haken, like him, and not deserving of
better. Edges of the blue fabric were frayed here and there, and it faded a
little at the shoulders, but Beata made it look somehow majestic.
With an
impatient sigh, she snatched up his hand to look for herself.
"It's
nothing ... it's a splinter," he stammered.
She turned
his hand over, laying it palm up in her other as she pinched up the skin to
inspect the splinter's depth. He was stunned by the unexpected warm touch of
her hand holding his. He was horrified to see that his hands, from being in the
hot soapy water cleaning pots and cauldrons, were cleaner than her hands. He
feared she would think he did no work.
"I
was washing pots," he explained. "Then I had to bring in oak. Lots of
heavy oak. That's why I'm sweating."
Without
a word, Beata pulled the pin from the top of her dress. The neckline fell open
a few inches, revealing the hollow at the base of her neck. His jaw went slack
at seeing so much of her, so much she ordinarily kept hidden. He wasn't worthy
of her help, much less to look upon the flesh at her throat she meant to be
kept hidden. He made himself look away.
Fitch
yelped when he felt the sharp pin probe. Frowning in concentration, she-
absently muttered an apology as she dug at the splinter. Trying not to contort
his face with pain, he instead curled his toes against the dirt as he waited.
He felt
a deep, sharp, painful tug. She briefly inspected the long, needle-like oak
splinter she'd pulled out, and then tossed it aside. She closed her collar and
secured it once again with the pin.
"There
you go," she said, turning to the cart. "Thank you, Beata." She
nodded. "That was very kind." He followed in her steps. "Uh, I'm
to help you take in the load."
130
He
dragged a huge hind section of beef to the end of the cart and ducked under to hoist
it onto his shoulder. The weight nearly buckled his knees. When he managed to
get it wheeled around, he saw Beata already going up the path with a fat net
full of pullets in one hand, and a section of mutton ribs balanced on the other
shoulder, so she didn't see his mighty effort.
Inside,
Judith, the pantler, told him to get a list of everything the butcher had sent.
He bowed and promised he would, but inwardly, he cringed.
When
they returned to the cart, Beata ticked off the cargo for him, slapping a hand
to each item as she called it out. She knew he couldn't read and so had to
commit the list to memory. She took care to make each item clear. There was
pork, mutton, ox, beaver, and beef, three crocks of marrow, eight fat skins of
fresh blood, a half-barrel of pig stomachs for stuffing, two dozen geese, a
basket of doves, and three nets of pullets, counting the one she had already
taken in.
"I
know I put..." Beata pulled over a net of the pullets, looking for
something. "Here it is," she said. "I feared for a moment I
didn't have them." She dragged it free. "And a sack of sparrows. The
Minister of Culture always wants sparrows for his feasts."
Fitch
could feel the heat of his face going red. Everyone knew sparrows, and sparrow
eggs, were consumed to stimulate lust-although he couldn't fathom why; lust
hardly seemed to him in need of any more stirring. When Beata looked up into
his eyes to see if he'd added it to his mental list, he felt the overwhelming
need to say something- anything-to change the subject.
"Beata,
do you think we'll ever be absolved of our ancestral crimes, and be as pure of
heart as the Ander people?"
Her
smooth brow twitched. "We are Haken. We can never be as good as the Ander;
our souls are corrupt and unable to be pure; their souls are pure, and unable
to be corrupt. We cannot ever be completely cleansed; we can only hope to
control our vile nature."
Fitch
knew the answer as well as she. Asking probably
131
made
her think him hopelessly ignorant. He was never any good at explaining his
thoughts in a way that spoke what he really meant.
He
wanted to pay his debt-gain absolution-and earn a sir name. Not many Hakens
ever achieved that privilege. He could never do as he wished until he could do
that much. He hung his head as he sought to amend his question.
"But,
I mean ... after all this time, haven't we learned the errors of our ancestors'
ways? Don't you want to have more of a say in your own life?"
"I
am Haken. I am not worthy of deciding my destiny. You should know that down
that path lies wickedness."
He
picked at the torn flesh where she'd taken out the splinter. "But some
Hakens serve in ways that go toward absolution. You said once that you might
join the army. I'd like to join, too."
"You
are male Haken. You are not allowed to touch weapons. You should know that,
too, Fitch."
"I
didn't mean to say ... I know I can't. I just meant-I don't know." He
shoved his hands in his back pockets. "I just meant that I wish I could,
that's all, so that I could do good-prove myself. Help those who we've made to
suffer."
"I
understand." She gestured to the windows on the upper floors. "It is
the Minister of Culture himself who passed the law allowing Haken women to
serve in the army, along with the Ander women. That law also says all must show
respect to those Haken women. The Minister is compassionate to all people. The
Haken women owe him a great debt."
Fitch
knew he wasn't getting across what he really meant. "But don't you want to
marry and-"
"He
also passed the law that Haken women must be given work so that we might feed
ourselves without having to marry and be slaves to the Haken men, for it is
their nature to enslave, and given the chance through marriage, they will even
do it with their own kind. Minister Chanboor is a hero to all Haken women.
"He
should be a hero to Haken men, too, because he
132
brings
culture to you, so that you may give over your warlike ways and come into the
community of peaceful people. I may decide to join because serving in the army
is a means by which Haken women may earn respect. It is the law. Minister
Chanboor's law."
Fitch
felt as if he were at penance. "I respect you, Beata, even though you
aren't in the army. I know you will do good for people whether or not you join
the army. You are a good person."
Beata's
heat faltered. She lifted one shoulder in a little shrug. The edge in her voice
softened. "The main reason I might one day join the army is like you
say-to help people and do good. I, too, want to do good."
Fitch
envied her. In the army she would be able to help communities facing
difficulties with everything from floods to famine. The army helped needy
people. People in the army were respected.
And, it
wasn't like the past, when being in the army could be dangerous. Not with the
Dominie Dirtch. If the Dominie Dirtch were ever unleashed, it could school any
opponent into submission without those in the army having to do battle.
Thankfully, the Anders were in charge of the Dominie Dirtch, now, and they
would only use such a weapon to keep peace-never to intentionally bring harm.
The
Dominie Dirtch was the one thing Haken that the Anders used. The Ander people
could never have conceived such a thing themselves-they were not capable of even
thinking the vile thoughts that must have been required to conceive such a
weapon. Only Hakens could have created a weapon of such outright evil.
"Or
I might hope to be sent here to work, like you were," Beata added.
Fitch
looked up. She was staring at the windows on the third floor. He almost said
something, but instead closed his mouth. She stared up at the windows as she
went on.
"He
walked into Inger's place once, and I actually saw him. Bertrand-I mean
Minister Chanboor-is much more attractive to look upon than Inger the
butcher."
133
Fitch
didn't know how to judge such things in a man, not with the way women fussed
over men Fitch thought unattractive. Minister Chanboor was tall and perhaps had
once been good-looking, but he was starting to get wisps of gray in his dark
Ander hair. Women in the kitchen all giggled to each other over the man. When
he came into the room, some reddened and had to fan then: faces as they sighed.
He seemed repulsively old to Fitch.
"Everyone
says the Minister is a very charming man. Do you ever see him? Or talk with
him? I heard that he even speaks with Hakens, just like regular folks. Everyone
speaks so highly of him.
"I've
heard Ander people say that one day he will likely be the Sovereign."
Fitch sank
back against the cart. "I've seen him a couple of times." He didn't
bother to tell her that Minister Chanboor had once cuffed him when he'd dropped
a dull butter knife right near the Minister's foot. He'd deserved the smack.
He
glanced back at her. She was still looking up at the windows. Fitch gazed down
at the ruts in the damp dirt. "Everyone likes and respects the Minister of
Culture. I am joyous to be able to work for such a fine man, even though I am
unworthy. It is a mark of his noble heart that he would give Hakens work so
that we won't starve."
Beata
suddenly glanced around self-consciously as she brushed her hands clean on her
skirts. He sought once more to try to make her see his worthwhile intentions.
"I
hope someday to do good. To contribute to the community. To help people."
Beata
nodded approvingly. He felt emboldened by that approval. Fitch lifted his chin.
"I
hope one day to have my debt paid and earn my sir name, and then to travel to
Aydindril, to the Wizard's Keep, to ask the wizards to name me the Seeker of
Truth, and present me with the Sword of Truth so that I might return to protect
the Ander people and do good."
134
Beata
blinked at him. And then she laughed.
"You
don't even know where Aydindril is, or how far it is." She shook her head
between her fits of laughter.
He did
too know where Aydindril was. "North and east," he mumbled.
"The
Sword of Truth is said to be a thing of magic. Magic is vile and dirty and
evil. What do you know about magic?"
"Well...
nothing, I guess-"
"You
don't know the first thing about magic. Or swords. You'd probably cut off your
foot." She bent to the cart, hoisted the basket of doves and another net
of pullets as she chuckled, and then headed for the kitchens.
Fitch wanted
to die. He'd told her his secret dream, and she'd laughed. His chin sunk to his
chest. She was right. He was Haken. He could never hope to prove his worth.
He kept
his eyes down and didn't say anything else as they unloaded the cart. He felt a
fool. With every step, he silently rebuked himself. He wished he'd kept his
dreams to himself. He wished he could take back the words.
Before
they pulled the last of it from the cart, Beata caught his arm and cleared her
throat, as if she intended to say more. Fitch again cast his gaze down,
resigned to hear what else she would have to say about his foolishness.
"I'm
sorry, Fitch. My corrupt Haken nature caused me to slip and be cruel. It was
wrong of me to say such cruel things."
He
shook his head. "You were right to laugh."
"Look,
Fitch ... we all have impossible dreams. That too is just part of our corrupt
nature. We must learn to be better than our base dreams."
He
wiped hair off his forehead as he peered up at her gray-green eyes. "You
have dreams, too, Beata? Real dreams? Something you wish?"
"You
mean like your foolish dream to be the Seeker of Truth?" He nodded. She at
last looked away from his eyes. "I suppose it's only fair, so that you can
laugh at me in turn."
135
"I
wouldn't laugh," he whispered, but she was staring off at small puffs of
white clouds drifting across the bright blue sky and didn't seem to hear him.
"I
wish I could learn to read."
She
stole a look to see if he was going to laugh. He didn't.
"I've
dreamed that, too." He checked to see if anyone was watching. No one was
about. He hunched over the back of the cart and with a finger made marks in the
dirt there.
Her
curiosity overcame her disapproval. "Is that writing?"
"It's
a word. I learned it. It's the only one I know, but it's a word and I can read
it. I heard a man at a feast say it's on the hilt of the Sword of Truth."
Fitch drew a line under the word in the dirt. "The man cut it into the top
of the butter, to show a woman there at the feast. It's the word 'Truth.'
"He
told her it used to be that the one named Seeker was a person of great repute,
meant to do good, but now Seekers were no more than common criminals at best
and cutthroats at worst. Like our ancestors."
"Like
all Hakens," she corrected. "Like us."
He
didn't argue, because he knew she was right. "That's another reason I'd
like to be Seeker: I would restore the good name to the post of Seeker, the way
it used to be, so people could trust in truth again. I'd like to show people
that a Haken could serve honorably. That would be doing good, wouldn't it?
Wouldn't that help balance our crimes?"
She
rubbed her upper arms briskly as she glanced about, checking. "Dreaming of
being the Seeker is childish and silly." Her voice lowered with import.
"Learning to read would be a crime. You had better not try to learn any
more."
He
sighed. "I know, but don't you ever-"
"And
magic is vile. To touch a thing of magic would be as bad as a crime."
She
stole a glance at the brick facade over her shoulder. With a quick swipe, Beata
wiped the word from the floor of the cart. He opened his mouth to protest, but
she spoke first, cutting him off.
"We'd
better get finished."
136
With a
flick of her eyes, she indicated the upper windows. Fitch looked up and felt
icy tingling terror skitter up his spine. The Minister of Culture himself was
at a window watching them.
Fitch
hefted a rack of mutton and made for the kitchen larder. Beata followed with a
noose of geese in one hand and the sack of sparrows in the other. Both finished
lugging in the load in silence. Fitch wished he hadn't said so much, and that
she had said more.
When
they'd finished, he intended to walk with her back out to the cart, to pretend
to check to see if they'd gotten everything, but Master Drummond asked and
Beata told him they had it all in. With a stiff finger, he jabbed Fitch's
chest, ordering him back to his scrubbing. Fitch rubbed at the stinging poke as
he scuffed his feet along the smooth, unfinished wooden floor on his way to the
tubs of soapy water. He glanced back over his shoulder to watch Beata leave,
hoping she would look back at him so he could give her a departing smile, at
least.
Minister
Chanboor's aide, Dalton Campbell, was in the kitchen. Fitch had never, met
Dalton Campbell-he would have no occasion to-but he thought favorably about the
man because he never seemed to cause anyone any trouble, as far as Fitch had
heard, anyway.
New to
the post of aide to the Minister, Dalton Campbell was an
agreeable-enough-looking Ander, with the typical Ander straight nose, dark eyes
and hair, and strong chin. Women, especially Haken women, seemed to find that
sort of thing appealing. Dalton Campbell did look noble in his dark blue
quilted jerkin over a like-colored doublet, both offset with pewter buttons.
A
silver-wrought scabbard hung from a finely detailed double-wrapped belt. Dark
reddish brown leather covered the hilt of the handsome weapon. Fitch dearly
wished he could carry such a fine sword. He was sure girls were drawn to men
carrying swords.
Before
Beata had a chance to look over at Fitch, or to leave, Dalton Campbell quickly
closed the distance to her
137
and
grabbed her under an arm. Her face paled. Fitch, too, felt sudden terror grip
his gut. He knew instinctively that this was potentially big trouble. He feared
he knew" the cause. If the Minister, when he'd been looking down, saw
Fitch writing the word in the dirt...
Dalton
Campbell smiled, speaking soft assurance. As her shoulders slowly relaxed, so
did the knot in Fitch's belly. Fitch couldn't hear most of the words, but he
heard Dalton Campbell say something about Minister Chanboor as he tilted his
head toward the stairway on the far side of the. kitchen. Her eyes widened. Rosy
color bloomed on her cheeks.
Beata
beamed incandescently.
Dalton
Campbell in turn smiled his invitation at her all the way to the stairwell,
pulling her along by the arm, although she looked not to need the
encouragement-she looked as if she was nearly floating through the air. She
never looked back as she disappeared through the doorway and up the stairs.
Master
Drummond suddenly swatted the back of Fitch's head.
"Why
are you standing there like a stump? Get to those fry pans."
138
CHAPTER\xA0 14
ZEDD
WOKE AT THE sound of the door in the other room closing. He opened one eye just
enough to peer toward the doorway as the hide was lifted to the side.
He
relaxed a bit at seeing it was Nissel. The stooped healer took her time
shuffling across the room.
"They
are gone," she said.
"What
did she say?" Ann whispered, she, too, slitting one eye enough to peek
through.
"Are
you sure?" Zedd whispered to Nissel.
"They
packed everything they brought. They gathered food for the journey. Some of the
women helped by putting together supplies they might take to sustain them. I
gave them herbs that may be of use for little ills. Our hunters gave them
waterskins and weapons. They said quick farewells to their friends, to those
they have come to love. They made me promise to do my best to keep you
well."
Nissel
scratched her chin. "Not much of a promise, the way I see it."
"And
you saw them leave?" Zedd pressed. "You are sure they are gone?"
Nissel
turned a little, skimming a hand through the air out toward the northeast.
"They started out. All three. I watched them go, just as you asked of me.
I had walked
139
with
everyone else to the edge of the village, but most of our people wanted to walk
a ways out into the grassland to be that much longer with them, and to watch
our new Mud People go.' These people urged me to come with them, so I, too,
went out onto the grassland, even though my legs are not as swift as they used
to be, but I decided they would be swift enough for a short walk.
"When
we had all gone a goodly distance, Richard urged us to return, rather than be
out in the rain to no good end. He was concerned, especially, that I go back to
care for you two. I believe they were impatient to make good time on their
journey, and we all slowed them with our pace, but they were too considerate to
speak those thoughts to us.
"Richard
and Kahlan hugged me and wished me well. The woman in red leather did not hug
me, but she did give me a bow of her head to- show her respect and Kahlan told
me the woman's words. She wished me to know she would protect Richard and
Kahlan. She is a good woman, that strange one in red, even if she is not Mud
People. I wished them well.
"All
of us who had walked out into the grassland stood in the drizzle and waved as
the three of them journeyed to the northeast, until they became spots too small
to see anymore. The Bird Man then asked us all to bow our heads. Together, with
his words leading us, we beseeched our ancestors' spirits to watch over our new
people and keep them safe on their journey. He then called a hawk and sent it
to travel with them for a ways, as a sign that our hearts were with them. We
waited until we could no longer see even the hawk circling in the sky over the
three of them.
"Then
we returned straight away."
Tilting
her head toward him, Nissel lifted an eyebrow. "Does that satisfy you
better than my simple word that they are gone?"
Zedd
cleared his throat, thinking the woman must practice sarcasm when there was no
healing to be done.
"What
did she say?" Ann asked again.
"She
says they're gone."
140
"Is
she sure?" Ann asked.
Zedd
threw off his blanket. "How should I know? The woman gabs a lot. But I
believe they're gone on their way."
Ann,
too, threw aside her woolen blanket. "Thought I'd sweat to death under
this scratchy thing."
They
had remained under the blankets the whole time, silent and patient, fearing
Richard might pop back in with some forgotten question or new idea. The boy
frequently did such unexpected things. Zedd dared not precipitately betray
himself, dared not let incautious action spoil their plans.
While
they had waited, Ann had fretted and sweated. Zedd had taken a nap.
Pleased
that Zedd had asked for her help, Nissel had promised to watch and let them
know when the three were gone. She said those with age must stick together and
that the only defense against youth was cunning. Zedd couldn't agree more. She
had that twinkle in her eye that made Ann scowl in confused annoyance.
Zedd
brushed his hands clean of the straw and straightened his robes. His back
ached. At last he embraced the healer. "Thank you, Nissel, for all your
help. It is deeply appreciated."
She
giggled softly- against his shoulder. "For you, anything. " Upon
parting, she pinched his bottom.
Zedd
gave her a wink. "How about some of that tava with honey, honey?"
Nissel
blushed. Ann's gaze shifted from one to the other. "What are you telling
her?"
"Oh,
just told her I appreciated her help and asked if we might have something to
eat."
"Those
are the itchiest blankets I've ever seen," Ann grumbled as she scratched
furiously at her arms. "Tell Nissel she has my appreciation, too, but if
you don't mind, I'll skip having my bottom pinched for it."
"Ann
adds her sincere appreciation to mine. And she is much older than I."
Among the Mud People, age lent weight to words.
141
Nissel's
face wrinkled with a grin as she reached up and gave his cheek a doting pinch.
"I will get you both some tea and tava."
"She
seems to have grown quite fond of you." Ann smoothed back her hair as she
watched the healer duck under the hide covering the door.
"And
why not?"
Ann
rolled her eyes and then brushed straw from her dark dress. "When did you
learn the Mud People's language? You never mentioned to Richard or Kahlan that
you knew their language."
"Oh,
I learned it- a very long time ago. I know a lot of things; I don't mention
them all. Besides, I always think it best to leave yourself a little wiggle
room, should it come in useful, such as now. I never really lied."
She
conceded the point with a sound deep in her throat. "While it might not be
a lie, it is still a deception."
Zedd
smiled at her. "By the way, speaking of deceptions, I thought your performance
was brilliant. Very convincing."
Ann was
taken aback. "Well, I... well, thank you, Zedd. I guess I was pretty
convincing."
He
patted her shoulder. "That you were."
Her
smile turned to a suspicious scowl. "Don't you try to sweet-talk me, old man.
I'm a lot older than you and I've seen it all." She shook her finger up at
him. "You know good and well I'm cross with you!"
Zedd
put his fingertips to his chest. "Cross? With me? What have I done?"
"What
have you done? Need I remind you of the word Lurk? She stalked around in a
little circle, arms raised, wrists bent over, fingers clawed, mimicking a
fiend. "Oh, how frightening. Here comes .a Lurk. Oh, how terrifying. Oh,
how very scary."
She
stamped to a halt before him. "What was going through your witless head!
What possessed you to spout such a nonsensical word as Lurk! Are you
crazy?"
Zedd
pouted indignantly. "What's wrong with the name Lurk?"
142
Ann
planted her fists on her wide hips. "What's wrong with it? What kind of a
word is Lurk for an imaginary monster!"
"Well,
quite a good one, actually."
"A
good one! I nearly had heart failure when you first said it. I thought for sure
Richard was going to realize we were making up a story and suddenly burst out
laughing. It was all I could do to keep from laughing myself!"
"Laugh?
Why would he laugh at the word Lurk? It's a perfectly good word. Has all the
elements of a frightening creature."
"Have
you-gone loony? I've had ten-year-old boys I've caught at mischief come up with
stories of pretend monsters plaguing them. They could, on the spot, when I
snatched them by the ear, think up better names for those monsters than a
'Lurk.'
"Do
you know the time I had keeping a straight face? Had it not been for the
seriousness of our problem, I'd not have been able to do so. When you then
again today insisted on repeating it I feared our ruse would be unmasked for
sure."\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0 ,
Zedd
folded his arms.' "I didn't see them laughing. The three of them thought
it was frightening. I think it had Richard's knees knocking there for a moment
when I first revealed the name."
Muttering,
Ann slapped her forehead. "Only luck preserved our artifice. You could
have ruined it with such foolishness." She shook her head. "A Lurk. A
Lurk!"
Zedd
surmised it was probably her frustration and genuine fear bubbling to the
surface, so he let her rant as she paced. Finally, she came to a halt, peering
up with sputtering ire.
"Just
where in Creation did you ever get such an asinine name for a monster? Lurk
indeed," she added in a mutter.
Zedd
scratched his neck as he cleared his throat. "Well, actually, in my youth
when I was first married, I brought home a kitten for my new bride. She loved
the little thing, and laughed endlessly at its antics. It pleased me to my toes
143
to see
the tears of joy in Erilyn's eyes as she laughed at that little ball of fur.
"I
asked her what she wished to name the kitten, and she said that she enjoyed so
much watching the way it incessantly lurked about, pouncing on things, that she
would call it Lurk. That was where I got the name. I always like it, because of
that."
Ann
rolled her eyes. She sighed as she considered his words. She opened her mouth
to say something, but closed it again and, with another sigh, instead gave his
arm a consoling pat.
"Well,
no harm done," she conceded. "No harm done." She bent and with a
finger hooked the blanket. As she stood folding it, she asked, "What about
the bottle? The one you told Richard was in the First Wizard's enclave at the
Keep? What trouble is it likely to cause when he breaks it?"
"Oh,
it was just a bottle I picked up in a market when I was traveling one time.
When I saw it, I was immediately taken with the mastery it must have taken to
make such a beautiful, graceful piece. After a long negotiation with the
peddler, I finally wore him down and purchased it for a exceptionally good
price.
"I
liked the bottle so well that when I returned, I set it up on that pedestal. It
was also a reminder of how, because of my skill at bargaining, I had obtained
it at a remarkably good price. I thought it looked nice, there, and it made me
proud of myself."
"Well,
aren't you the clever one," Ann sniped.
"Yes,
very. Not long after, I found a bottle exactly like it for half the price, and
that was without haggling. I kept the bottle there on that pedestal to remind
myself not to get cocky, just because I was First Wizard. It's just an old
bottle kept as a lesson; no harm will come when Richard breaks it."
Ann
chuckled as she shook her head. "If not for the gift, I fear to think what
would have become of you."
"What
I fear is that we are about to find out."
Already,
as his magic was failing, he felt aches in his
144
bones,
and lassitude in his muscles. It would get worse.
Ann's
smile faded at the grim reality of his words.
"I
don't understand it. What you told Richard was true: Kahlan would have to be
his third wife to have called the chimes into this world. We know the chimes
are here, yet it's impossible.
"Even
given the convoluted ways magic can interpret incidents to constitute the
fulfillment of requirements and conditions to trigger an event, she can be
counted as no more than his second wife. There was that other one, that Nadine
girl, and Kahlan. One and one equals two; Kahlan can be no more than number
two."
Zedd
shrugged. "We know the chimes have been unleashed. That is the problem we
must address, not the how of it."
Ann
grudgingly nodded her assent. "Do you think that grandson of yours will do
as he says and go straight to the Keep?"
"He
promised he would."
Ann's
eyes turned up to him. "We are talking about Richard, here."
Zedd
opened his hands in a helpless gesture. "I don't know what else we could
have done to insure he goes to the Keep. We gave him every motivation, from
noble to selfish, to rush there. He has no wiggle room. We made the
consequences, should he fail to do as we told him he must, frighteningly clear
to him."
"Yes,"
Ann said, smoothing the blanket folded over her arm, "we did everything
except tell him the truth."
"We
mostly told him the truth of what would happen if he doesn't go to the Keep.
That was no lie, except that the truth is even more grim than we painted it for
him.
"I
know Richard. Kahlan loosed the chimes to save his life; he would be bound and
determined to set it right, to help. He could only make what is bleak worse. We
can't allow him to play with this fire. We gave him what he needs most: a way
to help.
"His
only safety is the Keep. The chimes can't get him
145
where
they were called forth, and the Sword of Truth is the only magic likely to
still work. We will see to this. Who knows, without him in then" grasp,
the threat could even die out on its own."
"Slim
thread to hang the world on. However, I suppose you're right," Ann said.
"He is one resolute man-like his grandfather."
She
tossed the blanket on the pallet. "But at all costs, he must be protected.
He leads D'Hara and is pulling the lands together under that banner to resist
the scourge of the Imperial Order. In Aydindril, besides being safe, he can
continue the task of forging unity. He has already proven his leadership
ability. The prophecies warn that only he has a chance to successfully lead us
in this struggle. Without him, we are lost for sure."
Nissel
shuffled in carrying a tray of tava bread spread with honey and mint. She
smiled at Zedd as she let Ann unload the three steaming cups of tea she was
also holding. Nissel set the tray of tava on the floor before the pallets and
sat down where Zedd had been lying. Ann handed her one of the cups and sat on
the folded blanket at the head of the other pallet.
Nissel
patted the bedding beside her. "Come, sit, and have tava and tea before
you must leave on your journey."
Zedd,
considering weighty matters, offered her a weak smile as he sat beside her. She
sensed his somber mood and silently lifted the platter to offer him tava. Zedd,
seeing she understood his worry if not its cause, slipped a thankful arm around
her shoulders. With his other hand, he took a piece of sticky tava.
Zedd
licked honey from the crusty edge. "I wish we knew something about that
book Richard mentioned, Mountain's Twin. I wish I knew if he knew anything
about it."
"He
didn't seem to. All Verna told me at the time was that Mountain's Twin was
destroyed."
Ann had
already known that much when Richard asked. She had offered to inquire through
her journey book, even
146
though
its magic had already, faded, so they might conceal from Richard the spreading
extent of the trouble.
"I
wish I'd had a look at it before it was destroyed."
Ann ate
a few bites of her tava bread before she asked, "Zedd, what if we can't
stop them? Our magic is already beginning to dwindle. It won't be long until it
fails completely. How are we going to stop the chimes without magic?"
Zedd
licked honey from his lips. "I'm still hoping answers can be found at the
place they were entombed, somewhere in the land of Toscla. Or whatever they
call it now. Perhaps I can find books there, books of the history or culture of
the land. They might give me the clue I need."
Zedd
was growing weaker by the day. His departing power sapped vitality as it bled
away. His journey would be slow and difficult. Ann had the same trouble.
Nissel
cuddled close to him, happy to simply be with someone who liked her as a woman,
and didn't want healing from her. Her healing would not help him. He genuinely
did like her. He felt sympathy for her, too, for a woman most people didn't
understand. It was hard to be unlike those around you.
"Do
you have any theories at all of how to banish the chimes from this world?"
Ann asked between bites.
Zedd
tore his tava bread in half. "Only what we discussed; if Richard stays at
the Keep, then without him the chimes very well may be pulled back to the
underworld even without our help. I know it's a slim hope, but I will just have
to find a way to fight them back into the underworld if need be. How about you?
Any ideas?"
"None."
"And
do you still have your mind set on trying to rescue your Sisters of the Light
from Jagang?"
She
swished away a gnat. "Jagang's magic will fail just the same as all other
magic. The dream walker will lose his grip on my Sisters. In danger there is
opportunity. I must use the opportunity while it is available."
147
"Jagang
still has a huge army. For one who often criticizes my plans, you prove no more
ingenious at the task of scheming."
"The
reward is well worth the risk." Ann lowered the hand with her tava. I
shouldn't admit it... but, since we are to part ways, I will say it. You are a
clever man, Zeddicus Zu'l Zorander. I will miss your vexing company. Your
trickster ways have saved our hides more than once. I admire your
perseverance-and see where Richard gets his."
"Really?
Well, I still don't like your plan. Flattery will not change that."
Ann
simply smiled to herself.
Her
plan was too artless, but he understood her commitment. Rescuing the Sisters of
the Light was essential, and not simply because they were captives being
brutalized. If the chimes could be banished, Jagang would again control those
sorceresses, and so their power.
"Ann,
fear can be a powerful master. If some of the Sisters don't believe you that
they can escape, you can't allow them to remain a menace, albeit an unwilling
one, to our cause."
Ann
looked over out of the corner of her eye. "I understand."
He was
asking her to either rescue them or assassinate them.
"Zedd,"
she said in soft compassion, "I don't like mentioning it, but if what
Kahlan has done ..."
"I
know."
In
calling forth the chimes, Kahlan had invoked their aid to save Richard's life.
There was a price.
In
return for keeping Richard in the world of life until he recovered, she had unwittingly
pledged the chimes the one thing they needed in order to also remain in the
world of life.
A soul.
Richard's soul.
But he
would be safe at the Keep; the place where they had been called was a safe
haven for the one pledged.
Zedd
put half his tava bread to Nissel's lips. She smiled
148
and
chomped a big bite. She fed him a bite of her tava bread, after touching it to
the end of his nose first. The foolishness of this old healer putting a dot of
honey on his nose, like some mischievous little girl, made him chuckle.
Finally,
Ann asked, "What ever happened to your cat, Lurk?"
Zedd
frowned as he puzzled, trying to recollect. "To tell you the truth, I
don't recall. So much was happening back then. The war with D'Hara-led by
Richard's other grandfather, Panis Rahl-was just igniting. The lives of
thousands hung under threat. I was yet to be named First Wizard. Erilyn was
pregnant with our daughter.
"I
guess with all that was going on, we just lost track of the cat. There are
countless places in the Keep with mice; it probably found lurking about more
appealing than two busy people."
Zedd
swallowed at the painful memories. "After I moved to Westland, and Richard
was born, I always kept a cat as a reminder of Erilyn and home."
Ann
smiled in kind, sincere sympathy.
"I
hope you never named one 'Lurk,' so that Richard would have cause to suddenly
recall the name."
"No,"
Zedd whispered. "I never did."
149
CHAPTER\xA0 15
"FETCH!"
MASTER DRUMMOND CALLED out.
Fitch
pressed his lips tight trying unsuccessfully, he knew, to keep his face from
going red. His smiled politely as he trotted past the snickering women.
"Yes,
sir?"
Master
Drummond wagged a hand toward the rear of the kitchen. "Fetch in some more
of the apple wood."
Fitch
bowed with a "Yes, sir," and headed toward the door out to the wood.
Even though the kitchen was a fog of marvelous aromas, from sizzling butter and
onions and spices to the mouthwatering savor of roasting meats, he was glad for
the chance to get away from the crusty cauldrons. His fingers ached from
scraping and scrubbing. He was glad, too, that Master Drummond didn't ask for
any oak. Fitch was relieved to have done one thing right by having brought in
enough of the oak.
Trotting
through the patches of warm sunlight on his way down to the heap of apple wood,
he wondered again why Minister Chanboor had wanted to see Beata. She had
certainly looked happy enough about it. Women seemed to go all giddy whenever
they got a chance to meet the Minister.
Fitch
didn't see what was so special about the man. After all, he was starting to get
gray in his hair; he was old. Fitch
150
couldn't
imagine himself ever getting old enough to have gray hairs. Just thinking about
it made his nose wrinkle with disgust.
When he
reached the woodpile, something caught his eye. He put a hand to his brow,
shielding his eyes from the sunlight as he peered over to the shade of the turn
round. He'd assumed it was just another delivery, but it was Brownie, still
standing there with the butcher's cart.
He'd
been busy in the kitchen and had thought Beata would have left long ago. There
were any number of doors out, and he would have no way of knowing when she'd
left. He'd just assumed she had.
It must
have been an hour since she'd gone upstairs. Minister Chanboor probably wanted
to give her a message for the butcher-some special request for his guests.
Surely, he would have finished with her long ago.
So why
was the cart still there?
Fitch
bent and plucked a stick of apple wood. He shook his head in frustration;
Minister Chanboor was probably telling her stories. Fitch hefted another billet
from the woodpile. For some reason, women liked listening to the Minister's
stories, and he liked telling them. He was always talking to women, telling
them stories. Sometimes, at dinners and feasts, they gathered around him in
giggling groups. Maybe they were just being polite-he was an important man,
after all.
No
girls worried about being polite to him, and they never much liked listening to
his stories, either. Fitch gathered up the armload of apple wood and headed for
the kitchen. He thought his stories about getting drunk were pretty funny, but
girls weren't much interested in listening to them.
Morley
liked his stories, at least. Morley, and the others who had pallets in the room
where Fitch slept. They all liked telling each other stories, and they all
liked to get drunk. There was nothing else to do on their rare time off from
work and penance assembly.
At
least at penance assembly they could sometimes talk to girls afterward, if
their work was done and they didn't
151
have to
get back to it. But Fitch, like the others, found assembly a depressing
experience, hearing all those terrible things. Sometimes, when they got back,
if they could filch some wine or ale, they would get drunk.
After
Fitch had brought in a dozen armloads, Master Drummond snagged his sleeve and
shoved a piece of paper into his hand.
'Take
this down to the brewer."
Fitch bowed
and said his "Yes, sir" before starting out. He couldn't read the
paper, but since there was going to be a feast and he'd carried such papers in
the past, he guessed the columns of writing were probably orders for what the
kitchen wanted brought up. He was glad for the errand because it didn't involve
any real work, and it gave him a chance to get away from the heat and noise of
the kitchen for a time, even if he did enjoy the aromas and could occasionally
snatch a delicious scrap-all that tempting food was for guests, not the help.
Sometimes, though, he just wanted away from the noise and confusion.
The old
brewer, his dark Ander hair mostly gone and what was left mostly turned white,
grunted as he read the paper Fitch handed him. Rather than sending Fitch on his
way, the brewer wanted him to lug in some heavy sacks of trial hops. It was a
common behest; Fitch was just a scullion, and so everyone had the right to
order him to do work for them. He sighed, figuring it was the price for the
slow walk he'd had, and the one he'd have on the way back.
When he
went out to the service doors where much of the estate goods were delivered, he
noticed that across the way Brownie was still standing there with the butcher's
cart. He was relieved to see, stacked to the side of the loading dock, that
there were only ten sacks to be lugged down to the brewery. When he'd finished
with the sacks he was sent on his way.
Still
catching his breath, he sauntered back through the service halls toward the
kitchen, seeing few people, and all but one of them Haken servants so he had
only to pause to bow that once. Echoing footsteps swished back to him as
152
he
climbed the flight of stairs up to the main floor and the kitchen. Just before
going through the door, he paused.
He
looked up at the stairwell's square ascent all the way to the third floor. No
one was on the stairs. No one was in the halls. Master Drummond would believe
him when he explained that the brewer wanted sacks brought in. Master Drummond
was busy with preparations for that night's feast; he wouldn't bother asking
how many sacks, and even if he did, he wasn't going to take the time to
double-check.
Fitch
was taking the steps two at a time almost before he'd realized that he'd
decided to go have himself a quick look. At what, or for what, he wasn't sure.
He'd
been on the second floor only a few times, and the third floor only once, just
the week before to take the Minister's new aide, Dalton Campbell, an evening
meal he'd ordered down to the kitchen. Fitch had been told by an Ander
underling to leave the tray of sliced meats on the table in the empty outer
office. The upper floors, in the west wing with the kitchen where Fitch worked,
was where a number of officials' offices were located.
The
Minister's offices were supposed to be on the third floor. From the stories
Fitch had heard, the Minister had a number of offices. Why he would need more
than one, Fitch couldn't guess. No one had ever explained it.
The
first and second floors of the west wing, Fitch had heard it said, were where
the vast Anderith Library was located. The library was a store of the land's
rich and exemplary culture, drawing scholars and other important people to the
estate. Anderith culture was a source of pride and the envy of all, Fitch had
been taught.
The
third floor of the east wing was the Minister's family quarters. His daughter,
younger than Fitch by a maybe two or three years and dirt plain as Fitch heard
it told, had gone off to an academy of some sort. He had only seen her from a
distance, but he'd judged the description fair. Older servants sometimes
whispered about an Ander guard who was put in chains because the Minister's
daughter, Marcy or Marcia, depending on who was telling the story, accused
153
him of
something. Fitch had heard versions running from he was doing nothing but
standing quietly guarding in a hall, to eavesdropping on her, to rape.
Voices
echoed up the stairwell. Fitch paused with a foot on the next step, listening,
every muscle stiff and still. As he remained motionless, it turned out to be
someone passing along the first-floor hall, below. They weren't coming
upstairs.
Thankfully,
the Minister's wife, Lady Hildemara Chan-boor, rarely came into the west wing
where Fitch worked. Lady Chanboor was one Ander who made even other Anders
tremble. She had a foul temper and was never pleased with anyone or anything.
She had dismissed staff just because they'd glanced up at her as they passed
her in a hall.
People
who knew had told Fitch that Lady Chanboor had a face to match her temper:
ugly. The unfortunate staff who had looked up at Lady Chanboor as they passed
her in the hall were put out on the spot. Fitch learned they'd become beggars.
Fitch
had heard the women in the kitchen say that Lady Chanboor would go unseen for
weeks because the Minister would have enough of one thing or another from his
wife and give her a black eye. Others said that she was just on a drunken
binge. One old maid whispered that she went off with a lover from time to tune.
Fitch
reached the top step. There was no one in the halls of the third floor.
Sunlight streamed in windows trimmed with gauzy lace to fall across bare wooden
floors. Fitch paused on the landing at the top of the stairs. It had doors on
three sides and the stairs on the other to his back. He looked down empty halls
running left and right, not knowing if he dared walk down them.
He
could be stopped by any number of people, from messengers to guards, and asked
to explain what he was doing there. What could he say? Fitch didn't think he
wanted to be a beggar.
As much
as he didn't like to work, he did like to eat. He
154
seemed
to always be hungry. The food wasn't as good as what was served to the
important people of the household or to the guests, but it was decent, and he
got enough. And when no one was watching, he and his friends did get to drink
wine and ale. No, he didn't want to be put out to be a beggar.
He took
a careful step into the center of the landing. His knee almost buckled and he
nearly cried out as he felt something sharp stick him. There, under his bare
foot, was a pin with a spiral end. The pin Beata used to close the collar of
her dress.
Fitch
picked it up, not knowing what it could mean. He could take it and give it to
her later, possibly to her joy to have it returned. But maybe not. Maybe he
should leave it where he'd found it, rather than have to explain to anyone,
Beata especially, how he'd come to have it. Maybe she'd want to know what he
was doing going up there; she'd been invited, he hadn't. Maybe she'd think he'd
been spying on her.
He was
bending to put the pin back when he saw movement-shadows-in the light coming
from under one of the tall doors ahead. He cocked his head. He thought he heard
Beata's voice, but he wasn't sure. He did hear muffled laughter.
Fitch
checked right and left again. He saw no one. It wouldn't be like he was going
down a hall. He would just be stepping across the landing at the top of the
stairs. If anyone asked, he could say he was only intending to step into a hall
to get a look at the view of the beautiful grounds from the third floor-to look
out over the wheat fields that surrounded the capital city of Fairfield, the
pride of Anderith.
That
seemed plausible to him. They might yell but, surely, they wouldn't put him
out. Not for looking out a window. Surely.
His
heart pounded. His knees trembled. Before he could consider if it was a foolish
risk, he tiptoed across to the
155
heavy,
four-panel door. He heard what sounded like a woman's whimpers. But he also
heard chuckling, and a man panting.
Hundreds
of little bubbles were preserved forever in the glass doorknob. There, was no
lock and so no keyhole beneath the ornate brass collar around the base of the
glass knob. Putting his weight on his fingers, Fitch silently lowered himself
to the floor until he was on his belly.
The
closer he got to the floor, and the gap under the door, the better he could
hear. It sounded like a man exerting himself somehow. The occasional chuckle
was from a second man. Fitch heard a woman's choppy plaintive sob, like she
couldn't get a breath before it was gone. Beata, he thought.
Fitch
put his right cheek to the cold, varnished oak floor. He moved his face closer
to the inch-tall opening under the door, seeing, as he did so, off a little to
the left, chair legs, and before them, resting on the floor, one black boot
ringed with silver studs. It moved just a little. Since there was only one, the
man must have had his other foot crossed over the leg.
Fitch's
hair felt as if it stood on end. He clearly recalled seeing the owner of that
boot. It was the man with the strange cape, with the rings, with all the
weapons. The man who'd taken a long look at Beata as he'd passed her cart.
Fitch
couldn't see the source of the sounds. He silently snaked his body around and
turned his face over to use his left eye to look under the door off to the
right. He slid closer until his nose touched the door.
He
blinked in disbelief and then again in horror.
Beata
was on her back on the floor. Her blue dress was bunched up around her waist.
There was a man, his backside naked, between her bare, open legs, going at her
fast and furious.
Fitch
sprang to his feet, jolted by what he'd seen. He retreated several steps. He
panted, his eyes wide, his gut twisting with the shock of it. With the shock of
having seen
156
Beata's
bare, open legs. With the Minister between them. He turned to run down the
stairs, tears stinging his eyes, his mouth hanging open, pulling for air like a
carp out of water. Footsteps echoed. Someone was coming up. He froze in the
middle of the room, ten feet from the door, ten feet from the steps, not
knowing what to do. He heard the footsteps shuffling up the stairs. He heard
two voices. He looked to the halls on each side, trying to decide if one might
offer escape, if one or both might offer a dead end where he would be trapped,
or guards who might throw him in chains.
The two
stopped on the landing below. It was two women. Ander women. They were
gossiping about the feast that night. Who was going to be there. Who wasn't
invited. Who was. Though their words were hardly more than whispered, in his
stiff state of wide-eyed alarm he could make them out clear enough. Fitch's
heart pounded in Ms ears as he panted in frozen panic, praying they wouldn't
come up the stairs all the way to the third floor.
The two
fell to discussing what they were going to wear to catch Minister Chanboor's
eye. Fitch could hardly believe he was hearing a conversation about how close
above their nipples they dared wear their neckline. The image it put in Fitch's
head would have been blindingly pleasant had he not been trapped and about to
be caught where he shouldn't be, seeing something he shouldn't have seen, and
maybe get himself put out on the street, or worse. Much worse.
One
woman seemed bolder than the second. The second said she intended to be
noticed, too, but didn't want more than that. The first chuckled and said she
wanted more than to be noticed by the Minister, and that the other shouldn't
worry because either of their husbands would be lauded to have their wife catch
the full attention of the Minister.
Fitch
turned around to keep an eye on the Minister's door. Someone had already caught
the attention of the Minister. Beata.
Fitch
took a careful step to the left. The floor creaked. He stilled, alert, his ears
feeling like they were stretching
157
big.
The two below were giggling about their husbands. Fitch pulled back the foot.
Sweat trickled down the back of his neck.
The two
below started moving as they talked. He held his breath. He heard a door squeak
open. Fitch wanted to scream over his shoulder at them to hurry it up and go
somewhere else to gossip. One of the women mentioned the other's
husband-Dalton.
The
door closed behind them. Fitch exhaled.
Right
in front of him, the Minister's door burst open.
The big
stranger had Beata by the upper arm. Her back was to Fitch as she was put out
of the room. The man shoved her, as if she weighed no more than a feather
pillow. She landed on her bottom with a thud. She didn't know Fitch was
standing right behind her.
The
stranger's unconcerned gaze met Fitch's wide eyes. The man's thick mat of dark
hair, in tangled stringy strands, hung to his Shoulders. His clothes were dark,
covered in leather plates and straps and belts. Most of his weapons were lying
on the floor in the room. He looked a man who didn't need them, though, a man
who could, with his big callused hands, crush the throat of nearly anyone.
When he
turned back to the room, Fitch realized to his horror that the odd cape was
made from scalps. That was why it looked like it was covered with patches of
hair. Because it was covered with patches of hair, human hair. Every color from
blond to black.
From
beyond the doorframe, the Minister called the stranger by name,
"Stein," and pitched him a small white handful of cloth. Stein caught
it and then stretched Beata's underpants between two meaty fingers for a look.
He tossed them into her lap as she sat on the floor struggling for breath,
trying mightily not to cry.
Stein
looked up into Fitch's eyes, completely unconcerned, and smiled. His smile
wrinkled aside his heavy mat of stubble.
He gave
Fitch a larking wink.
Fitch
was stunned by the man's disregard for someone
158
being
there, seeing what was happening. The Minister peered out as he buttoned his
trousers. He, too, smiled, and then pulled the door shut behind himself as he
stepped out into the hall.
"Shall
we visit the library now?"
Stein
held out a hand in invitation. "Lead the way, Minister."
Beata
sat hanging her head as the two men, chatting amicably, strode off down the
hall to the left. She seemed crushed by the ordeal, too disillusioned to be
able to muster the will to stand, to leave, to go back to her life the way it
had been.
Stock-still,
Fitch waited, hoping that, somehow, the impossible would happen-that maybe she
wouldn't turn, that maybe she would be confused and wander off down the other
hall, and she wouldn't notice him there behind her, unblinking, holding his
breath.
Sucking
back her sobs, Beata staggered to her feet. When she turned and saw Fitch, she
stiffened with a gasp. He stood paralyzed, wishing more than anything that he
had never gone up the stairs for a look. He'd gotten considerably more of a
look than he wanted.
"Beata..."
He wanted to ask if she was hurt, but of course she was hurt. He wanted to
comfort her, but didn't know how, didn't know the right words to use. He wanted
to take her in his arms and shelter her, but he feared she might misconstrue
his aching concern.
Beata's
face warped from misery to blind rage. Her hand unexpectedly whipped around,
striking his face with such fury that it made his head ring inside like a bell.
The
wallop wrenched his head to the side. The room swam in his vision. He thought
he saw someone in the distance down a hall, but he wasn't sure. As he tried to
get his bearings, to grope for a railing as he staggered back, his hand found
the floor instead. One knee joined his hand on the floor. He saw a blur of her
blue dress as Beata raced down the stairs, the staccato sounds of her footfalls
hammering an echo up the stairwell.
159
Dazing
pain, sharp and hot, drove into his upper jaw just in front of his ringing ear.
His eyes hurt. He was stupefied by how hard she had hit him. Nausea bloated in
the pit of his stomach. He blinked, trying to force his vision to clear.
A hand
under his-arm startled him. It helped lift him back to his feet. Dalton
Campbell's face loomed close to his.
Unlike
the other two men, he did not smile but, rather, studied Fitch's eyes the way
Master Drummond scrutinized a halibut brought in by the fishmonger. Just before
he gutted it.
"What
is your name?"
"Fitch,
sir. I work in the kitchen, sir." Between the punch and his dread, Fitch's
legs felt like boiled noodles.
The man
glanced toward the stairs. "You seem to have wandered from the kitchen,
don't you think?"
'I took
a paper to the brewer." Fitch paused to gulp air, trying to make his voice
stop trembling. "I was just on my way back to the kitchen, sir."
The
hand tightened on Fitch's arm, drawing him closer. "Since you were rushing
to the brewer, down on the lower level, and then right back to the kitchen, on
the first floor, you must be a hardworking young man. I would have no reason to
recall seeing you up here on the third floor." He released Fitch's arm.
"I suppose I recall seeing you downstairs, rushing back to the kitchen
from the brewer? Without wandering off anywhere along the way?"
Fitch's
concern for Beata turned to a focused hope to keep himself from being thrown
out of the house, or worse.
"Yes,
sir. I'm on my way right back to the kitchen."
Dalton
Campbell draped his hand over the hilt of his sword. "You've been working,
and haven't seen a thing, have you?"
Fitch
swallowed his terror. "No, sir. Nothing. I swear. Just that Minister
Chanboor smiled at me. He's a great man, the Minister. I'm thankful that a man
so great as he would give work to a worthless Haken such as myself."
The
corners of Dalton Campbell's mouth turned up just enough that Fitch thought the
aide might be pleased by what
160
he'd
heard. His fingers drummed along the length of the brass crossguard of his
sword. Fitch stared at the lordly weapon. He felt driven to speak into the
silence.
"I
want to be good and be a worthy member of the household. To work hard. To earn
my keep."
The
smile widened. "That is indeed good to know. You seem a fine young man.
Perhaps, since you are so earnest in your desire, I could count on you?"
Fitch
wasn't sure exactly what he was to be counted on for, but he gave a "Yes,
sir" anyway, and without hesitation.
"Since
you swear you didn't see anything on your way back to the kitchen, you are
proving to me that you are a lad of potential. Perhaps one who could be
entrusted with more responsibility."
"Responsibility,
sir?"
Dalton
Campbell's dark eyes gleamed with a terrifying, incomprehensible intelligence,
the kind Fitch imagined the mice must see in the eyes of the house cats.
"We
sometimes have need of people desiring to move up in the household. We will
see. Keep yourself vigilant against the lies of people wishing to bring
disrepute to the Minister, and we will see."
"Yes,
sir. I'd not like to hear anyone say anything against the Minister. He's a good
man, the Minister. I hope the rumors I've heard are true, that one day we might
be blessed enough by the Creator that Minister Chanboor would become
Sovereign."
Now the
aide's smile truly did take hold. "Yes, I do believe you have potential.
Should you hear any ... lies, about the Minister, I would appreciate knowing
about it." He gestured toward the stairs. "Now, you had best get back
to the kitchen."
"Yes,
sir, if I hear any such thing, I'll bring it to you." Fitch made for the
stairs. "I'd not want anyone lying about the Minister. That would be
wrong."
"Young
man-Fitch, was it?"
Fitch
turned back from the top step. "Yes, sir. Fitch."
Dalton
Campbell crossed his arms and turned his head to
161
peer
with one questioning eye. "What have you learned at penance about
protecting the Sovereign?"
"The
Sovereign?" Fitch rubbed his palms on his trousers. "Well... um...
that anything done to protect our Sovereign is a virtue?"
"Very
good." Arms still folded, he leaned toward Fitch. "And, since you
have heard that Minister Chanboor is likely to be named Sovereign, then ...
?"
The man
expected an answer. Fitch groped wildly for it. He cleared his throat, at last.
"Well... I guess ... that if he's to be named Sovereign, then maybe he
ought to be protected the same?"
By the
way Dalton Campbell smiled as he straightened his back, Fitch knew he'd hit
upon the right answer. "You may indeed have potential to move up in the
household."
"Thank
you, sir. I would do anything to protect the Minister, seeing as how he'll be
Sovereign one day. It's my duty to protect him in any way I can."
"Yes
..." Dalton Campbell drawled in an odd way. He cocked his head, catlike,
as he considered Fitch. "If you prove to be helpful in ... whatever way we
might need in order to protect the Minister, it would go a long way toward
clearing your debt."
Fitch's
ears perked up. "My debt, sir?"
"Like
I told Morley, if he proves to be of use to the Minister, it might be that he
could even earn himself a sir name, and a certificate signed by the Sovereign
to go with it. You seem a bright lad. I would expect no less might be in your
future."
Fitch's
jaw hung open. Earning a sir name was one of his dreams. A certificate signed
by the Sovereign proved to all that a Haken had paid his debt and was to be
recognized with a sir name, and respected. His mind tumbled backward to what
he'd just heard.
"Morley?
Scullion Morley?"
"Yes,
didn't he tell you I talked to him?"
Fitch
scratched behind an ear, trying to imagine that Morley would have kept such
astonishing news from him.
162
"Well,
no, sir. He never said nothing. He's about my best friend; I'd recall if he'd
said such a thing. I'm sorry, but he never did."
Dalton
Campbell stroked a finger against the silver of the scabbard at his hip as he
watched Fitch's eyes: "I told him not to mention it to anyone." He
arched an eyebrow. "That kind of loyalty pays plums. I expect no less from
you. Do you understand, Fitch?"
Fitch
surely did. "Not a soul. Just like Morley. I got it, Master
Campbell."
Dalton
Campbell nodded as he smiled to himself. "Good." He again rested a
hand on the hilt of his magnificent sword. "You know, Fitch, when a Haken
has his debt paid, and earns his sir name, that signed certificate entitles him
to carry a sword."
Fitch's
eyes widened. "It does? I never knew."
The
tall Ander smiled a stately farewell and with a noble flourish turned and
started off down the hall. "Back to work, then, Fitch. Glad to have made
your acquaintance. Perhaps we will speak again one day."
Before
anyone else caught him up there, Fitch raced down the stairs. Confounding
thoughts swirled through his head. Thinking again about Beata, and what had
happened, he just wanted the day to end so he could get himself good and drunk.
He
ached with sorrow for Beata, but it was the Minister, the Minister she admired,
the Minister who would someday be Sovereign, that Fitch had seen on her.
Besides, she struck him, a terrible thing for a Haken to do, even to another
Haken, although he wasn't certain the prohibition extended to women. But even
if it didn't, that wouldn't make him feel any less miserable about it.
For
some unfathomable reason, she hated him, now.
He
ached to get drunk.
163
C H A P
T E R\xA0\xA0 1 6
"FETCH!
HERE, BOY! FETCH!"
Usually,
when Master Drummond called him by that name, Fitch knew he blushed with
humiliation, but this time he was in such anguish over what he had seen
upstairs earlier that he hardly felt any shame over so petty a thing. Master
Drummond's talking down to him as if he were dirt could not match Beata's
hating him, and hitting him.
It had
been a couple of hours, but his face still throbbed where, she'd clouted him,
so he was clear on that much of it: she hated him. It confused and confounded
him, but he was sure she hated him. It seemed to him she should be angry at
someone, anyone, besides him.
Angry
at herself, maybe, for going up there in the first place. But he guessed she
couldn't very well have refused to go see the Minister if he asked for her.
Then Inger the butcher would have thrown her out when the Minister told him
that his Haken girl refused to go up to take his special request. No, she
couldn't very well have done that.
Besides,
she wanted to meet the man. She'd told him she did. Fitch knew, though, that
she never expected he would have his way with her. Maybe it wasn't the Minister
she was so distraught about. Fitch remembered that man, Stein, winking at him.
She was up there a long time.
164
That
was still no reason for her to hate Fitch. Or to hit him.
Fitch
came to a halt. His fingers throbbed from having them in scalding water for so
long, scrubbing and scraping. The rest of him felt sick and numb. Except, of
course, his face.
"Yes,
sir?"
Master
Drummond opened his mouth to speak, but then closed it and instead leaned down.
He frowned.
"What
happened to your face?"
"One
of the billets of apple slipped and hit me as I picked up an armload,
sir."
Master
Drummond shook his head as he wiped his hands
on his
white towel. "Idiot," he muttered. "Only an idiot,"
he
said, in a voice loud enough so others could hear, "would hit himself in
the face with a stick of wood as he picked it up."
"Yes,
sir."
Master
Drummond was just about to speak when Dalton Campbell, studying a well-used
piece of paper covered with messy lines of writing, glided up beside Fitch. He
had a whole stack of disheveled papers, their curled and crumpled edges
protruding every which way. He followed down the writing with one finger as he
nested the papers in the crook of his other arm.
"Drummond,
I came to make sure of a few items," he said without looking up.
Master
Drummond quickly finished at wiping his hands and then straightened his broad
back. "Yes sir, Mr. Campbell. Whatever I can do for you."
The
Minister's aide lifted the paper to peer at a second sheet beneath.
"Have
you seen to putting the best platters and ewers in the ambry?"
"Yes,
Mr. Campbell."
Dalton
muttered absently to himself about how they must have been changed after he'd
looked. He scanned the paper and then flipped to a third piece. "You will
need, to make
165
two
additional places at the high table." He flipped back to the second page.
Master
Drummond's mouth twisted in agitation. "Two more. Yes, Mr. Campbell. If
you could, in the future, would you kindly let me know such as this a little
earlier in the day?"
Dalton
Campbell's finger flicked at the air, but his eyes never left his papers.
"Yes, yes. Only too happy to do so. If the Minister informs me of it
sooner, that is." He tapped a place in his papers and looked up.
"Lady Chanboor objects to the musicians' stomachs grumbling along with
their music. Please see to it that they are fed something first, this time?
Especially the harpist. She will be closest to Lady Chanboor."
Master
Drummond dipped his head in acknowledgment. "Yes, Mr. Campbell. I will see
to it."
Fitch,
ever so slowly so as not to be obvious, slipped backward several paces, keeping
his head down, trying not to appear as if he were listening to the Minister's
aide giving the kitchen master instructions. He wished he could leave, rather
than risk being thought a snoop, but he knew he'd be yelled at if he left
without being sent off, so he compromised at trying to be inconspicuous but at
hand.
"And
the spiced wine, there needs to be more of a variety this time. Some people
thought last time's selection skimpy. Hot and cold, both, please."
Master
Drummond pressed his lips together. "Short notice, Mr. Campbell. If you
could, in the future-"
"Yes,
yes, if I am informed, so will you be." He flipped over another page.
"Dainties. They are to be served at the head table only, until they have
had their fill. Last time the Minister was embarrassed to discover them gone
and some guests at his table left wanting more. Let the other tables go wanting,
first, if for some reason you have been unable to acquire a proper
supply."
Fitch
remembered that incident, too, and he knew that this time Master Drummond had
ordered more of the deer testicles fried up. Fitch had pilfered one of the
treats as he took
166
the fry
pan to be washed, although he had to eat it without the sweet-and-sour sauce.
It was still good.
As
Dalton Campbell checked his papers, he asked questions about different salts,
butters, and breads, and gave Master Drummond a few more corrections to the
dinner. Fitch, as he waited, trying not to watch the two men, watched instead
the woman at a nearby table make the pig's stomachs, stuffed with ground meats,
cheeses, eggs, and spices, into hedgehogs by covering them with almond "spines."
At
another table, two women were re-feathering roasted peacocks with feathers
colored by saffron and yellow turnsole. Even the beaks and claws were colored,
so that the newly plumed birds looked like spectacular creatures of gold-like
gold statues-only more lifelike.
Dalton
Campbell, at last seeming to finish with his list of questions and
instructions, lowered his arms, one hand loosely holding the hand holding the
papers.
"Is
there anything you would like to report, Drummond?"
The
kitchen master licked his lips, seeming not to know what the aide was talking
about. "No, Mr. Campbell."
"And
everyone in your kitchen, then, is doing their job to your satisfaction?"
His face was blank of emotion.
Fitch
saw eyes in the room cautiously turn up for a quick peek. The work going on all
about seemed to grow quieter. He could almost see ears getting bigger.
It
seemed to Fitch like maybe Dalton Campbell was working around the edges of
accusing Master Drummond of not running a good kitchen by allowing lazy people
to avoid their duties and then failing to punish them. The kitchen master
seemed to suspect the same accusation.
"Well,
yes sir, they are doing their job to my satisfaction. I keep them in line, Mr.
Campbell. I'll not have slackers ruining the workings of my kitchen. I couldn't
have that; this is too important a household to allow any sluggard to spoil
things. I don't allow it, no sir, I don't."
Dalton
Campbell nodded his pleasure at hearing this. "Very good, Drummond. I,
too, would not like to have
167
slackers
in the household." He scanned the room of silent, quietly hardworking
people. "Very well. Thank you, Drummond. I will check back later, before
it's time to begin serving."
Master
Drummond bowed his head. "Thank you, Mr. Campbell."
The
Minister's aide turned and started to leave, and as he did so, he caught sight
of Fitch standing there. As he frowned, Fitch lowered his head on his shoulders
even more, wishing he could melt into the cracks in the wood floor. Dalton
Campbell glanced back over his shoulder at the kitchen master.
"What
is this scullion's name?"
"Fitch,
Mr. Campbell."
"Fitch.
Ah, I get it, then. And how long has he worked in the household?"
"Some
four years, Mr. Campbell."
"Four
years. That long." He turned fully around to face Master Drummond.
"And is he a slacker, then, who ruins the workings of your fine kitchen?
One who should have been put out of the household long ago, but has not been
for some mysterious reason? You haven't been overlooking your responsibility as
kitchen master, allowing a slacker to be under the Minister's roof, have you?
Are you truly guilty of such dereliction?"
Fitch
stood in frozen terror, wondering if he would be beaten before they threw him
out, or if they would simply show him the door and send him away without so
much as a morsel of food. Master Drummond's gaze flicked back and forth between
Fitch and the aide.
"Well,
uh, no sir. No, Mr. Campbell. I see to it that Fitch pulls his share of the
load. I'd not let him be a slacker under the Minister's roof. No sir."
Dalton
Campbell peered back at Fitch with a puzzling expression. He looked once again
to the kitchen master. "Well, then, if he does as you ask, and does his
work, I see no reason to demean the young man by calling him Fetch,
168
do you?
Don't you think that reflects badly on you, Drummond, as kitchen master?"
"Well,
I-"
"Very
good, then. I'm glad you agree. We'll have no more of that kind of thing in the
household."
Either
with stealth or bold intent, nearly every eye in the kitchen was on the
exchange between the two men. That fact was not lost on the kitchen master.
"Well,
now, just a minute, if you don't mind. No real harm is meant, and the boy
doesn't mind, do you now, Fitch-"
Dalton
Campbell's posture changed in a way that halted the words in Master Drummond's
mouth before they could finish coming out. The noble-looking aide's dark Ander
eyes took on a dangerous gleam. He seemed suddenly taller, his shoulders
broader, his muscles more evident under his fine, dark blue doublet and quilted
jerkin.
His
offhanded, distracted, casual, and at times stuffy official tone was suddenly
gone. He'd transformed into a threat as deadly-looking as the weapon at his
hip.
"Let
me put it another way for you, Drummond. We'll not have that sort of thing
under this roof. I expect you to comply with my wishes. If I ever again hear
you demean any of our staff by calling them by names intended to be
humiliating, I will have a new kitchen master and you put out. Is that
clear?"
"Yes,
sir. Very clear, thank you, sir."
Campbell
started to leave, but turned back, his whole person conveying the image of
menace. "One other thing. Minister Chanboor gives me orders, and I carry
them out without fail. That is my job. I give you orders, and you carry them
out without fail. That is your job.
"I
expect the boy to do his work or be put out, but you put him out and you had
better be prepared to provide proof of why, and moreover, if you make it hard
on him because of my orders, then I will not put you out, but instead I will
gut you and have you roasted on that spit over there. Now, is all that
absolutely clear, Mr. Drummond?"
169
Fitch
hadn't known Master Drummond's eyes could go so wide. Sweat beaded all over his
forehead. He swallowed before he spoke.
"Yes
sir, absolutely clear. It will be as you say. You have my word."\xA0\xA0 x .
Dalton
Campbell seemed to shrink back to his normal size, which was not small to begin
with. The pleasant expression returned to his face, including the polite smile.
"Thank
you, Drummond. Carry on."
Not
once during the exchange had Dalton Campbell looked at Fitch, nor did he as he
turned and strode out of the kitchen. Along with Master Drummond and half the
people in the kitchen, Fitch let out his breath.
When he
thought again about what had just happened, and he realized, for the first
time, really, that Master Drummond would no longer be calling him
"Fetch," he was overcome with weak-kneed astonishment. He suddenly
thought very highly of Dalton Campbell.
Pulling
his white towel from behind his belt and blotting his forehead, Master Drummond
noticed people watching. "Back to work, all of you." He replaced the
towel. "Fitch," he called in a normal voice, just like when he called
the other people in his kitchen.
Fitch
took two quick steps forward. "Yes, sir?"
He
gestured. "We need some more oak. Not as much as the last time. About half
that much. Be quick about it, now."
"Yes,
sir."
Fitch
ran for the door, eager to get the wood, not even caring about the splinters he
might get.
He
would never again have to be humiliated by that hated name. People would not
laugh at him over it. All because of Dalton Campbell.'
At that
moment, Fitch would have carried hot coals in his bare hands if Dalton Campbell
asked it, and smiled all the way.
170
CHAPTER
17
UNBUTTONING
THE TOP BUTTON of his doublet, Dalton Campbell, with his other hand, nudged the
tall mahogany door to their quarters until he felt the latch click home. At
once, the balm of quiet began to soothe him. It had been a long day, and it was
far from over; there was still the feast to attend.
"Teresa,"
he called across the sitting room back toward the bedroom, "it's me."
He
wished they could stay in. Stay in and make love. His nerves needed the
diversion. Later, perhaps. If business didn't interfere.
He
unfastened another button and tugged open the collar as he yawned. The
fragrance of lilacs filled his lungs. Heavy blue moire drapes at the far
windows were drawn against the darkening sky, leaving the room to perfumed
mellow lamplight, scented candles, and the flickering glow of a low fire in the
hearth, burning for the cheer it brought, rather than the need of heat.
He
noted the dark violet carpet and its wheat-colored fringe looked freshly
brushed. The gilded chairs were angled to show off the tawny leather seats and
backs as they posed beside elegant tables set with lush sprays of fresh
flowers. The plush throws and pillows on the couches were set just
171
so, the
deliberate precision meant to convey a casual intimacy with luxury.
Dalton
expected his wife to oversee the staff and insure that the quarters were kept
presentable for business as well as entertaining, which were, although
approached differently, one and the same. Teresa would know that with a feast
that night, it was even more likely he would ask someone back to their
apartments-someone important. That could be anyone from a dignitary to an
inconspicuous pair of eyes and ears".
They
were all important, in their own way, all meshing into the cobweb he worked,
listening, watching, for any tiny little tug. Crowded feasts were concentrated
confusion, alive with drinking, conversation, commotion, and emotion. They often
provided opportunities to forge alliances, reinforce loyalties, or enforce
fealties-to tend his cobweb.
Teresa
stuck her head past the doorframe, grinning her joy upon seeing him.
"There's my sweetheart."
Despite
the weary mood enveloping him as he had closed the door behind, shutting out
the day's troubles if only for the moment, he smiled helplessly at her dark,
sparkling eyes. "Tess, my darling. Your hair looks grand." A gold
comb decorated the front lift of the full top. The wealth of dangling dark
tresses were tied with an abundance of sequined gold ribbons that added to her
hair's length, almost forming a collar. Parting as she leaned forward, the
sparkling strips teasingly revealed her graceful neck.
In her
mid-twenties, she was younger than he by nearly ten years. Dalton thought her a
ravishing creature beyond compare-a bonus to her allure of trenchant commitment
to objectives. He could scarcely believe that a short six months ago she had
finally and at long last become his wife. Others had been in contention, some
of greater standing, but none with more ambition.
Dalton
Campbell was not a man to be denied. Anyone who took him lightly came to a day
of reckoning, when they learned better than to underestimate him, or came to
regret the mistake.
172
Nearly
a year ago, when he had asked her to be his wife, she had quizzed him, asking,
in that velvet bantering manner of hers that often cloaked the steel of her
aims, if he was really a man who intending on going places, as she certainly
meant to rise up in the world. At the time, he had been an assistant to the
magistrate in Fairfield, not an unimportant job, but only a convenient port as
far as he was concerned, a place to gather his resources and cultivate
connections.
He had
not played into her chaffing questions, but instead assured her in all sobriety
that he was a man on the way up, and no other man she was seeing, despite his
present station, had any chance of approaching Dalton Campbell's future
stature. She had been taken aback by his solemn declaration. It wiped the smile
off her face. On the spot, in the spell of his conviction, the truth of his
purpose, she consented to marry him.
She had
been pleased to learn the reliability of his predictions. As plans proceeded
for their wedding, he was awarded a better appointment. In their first few
months of marriage, they had moved three times, always to improved quarters,
and as a result of advanced positions.
The
public who had cause to know of him, either because of his reputation or
because of their dealings with Anderith government, valued his keen
understanding of Anderith law. Dalton Campbell was widely recognized for his
brilliant insight into the complexities of the law, the fortress bedrock it was
built upon, the intricate structure of its wisdom and precedent, and the scope
of its protective walls.
The men
for whom Dalton worked appreciated his vast understanding of the law, but
valued most his knowledge of the law's arcane passages, burrows, and obscure
openings out of dark traps and corners. They also valued his ability to swiftly
abandon the law when the situation required a different solution, one the law
couldn't provide. In such cases, he was just as inventive, and just as
effective.
In no
more time than a snap of the fingers, it seemed, Teresa easily adjusted to the
meliorated circumstances in which she regularly found herself, taking up the
novel task
173
of
directing household staff with the aplomb of one who had been doing it for the
whole of her life.
Only
weeks before, he had won the top post at the Minister's estate. Teresa had been
jubilant to learn they would be taking on luxurious charters in such a
prestigious place. She now found herself a woman of standing among women of
rank and privilege.
She
might have been overjoyed, nearly tearing off his clothes to have him on-the
spot when he told her the news, but the truth be known, she had expected no
less.
If
there was one person who shared his ruthless ambition, it was Teresa.
"Oh,
Dalton, will you tell me what dignitaries will be at the feast? I can't stand
the suspense a moment longer."
He
yawned again as he stretched. He knew she had her own cobwebs to tend.
"Boring dignitaries." "But the Minister will be there."
"Yes."
"Well,
silly, he's not boring. And I've gotten to know some of the women, the wives,
of the estate. They're all grand people. Good as I could have hoped. Their
husbands are all important."
She
touched the tip of her tongue to her upper lip in a sly, teasing gesture.
"Just not as important as my husband." "Tess, my darling,"
he said with a smile, "you could inspire a dead man to become important
for you."
She
winked and then disappeared. "There were several messages slipped under
the door for you," she called back from the other room. "They're in
the desk."
The
elegant desk in the corner glowed like a dark gem. Made of polished elm burl,
each panel of quartered, book-matched veneer was outlined with
diamond-patterned banding of alternating plain and dyed maple. Each dark
diamond was inset with a dot of gold. The legs were varnished to a deep luster,
rather than gilded, as were the legs of most of the other furniture in the
room. In the secret compartment behind, an upper drawer, there
174
were
several sealed messages. He broke the seals and scanned each message, assessing
its importance. Some were of interest, but none were urgent. They mostly meant
to pass along information-little vibrations from every corner of his cobweb.
One
reported an odd and apparently accidental drowning in a public fountain. It had
happened in early afternoon as crowds regularly passed the landmark in the
Square of the Martyrs. Even though it had been daylight and in full view of
everyone, no one noticed until it was too late. Having seen similar messages of
unexplained deaths of late, Dalton knew the unspoken implication of the message
was a admonition, that it might have been some sort of a vendetta involving
magic, but made to look like an unfortunate accident.
One
mentioned only a "perturbed lady," reporting that she was restless
and that she had written a missive to a Director, asking for a moment of his
time in private at the feast, and asking him to keep her letter confidential.
Dalton knew the woman to whom the message referred, and, because of that, he
knew also it would be Director Linscott to whom she had written-the person
writing the message for him knew better than to write down names.
He
suspected the reason for the restless part. It was the desire for the private
meeting that concerned him. The message said the woman's letter was somehow
lost, and never delivered.
Dalton
slipped the messages back into the compartment for later review and replaced
the drawer. He was going to have to do something about the woman. What, he
didn't yet know.
Overreacting
could sometimes cause as much trouble as doing nothing. It might be he need
only give the woman an ear, let her vent her pique, as perhaps she meant to do
with Director Linscott. Dalton could just as easily hear her grievance.
Someone, somewhere in his intricate cobweb of contacts, would give him the bit
of information he needed to make the right decision, and if not, talking to the
woman in
175
a
reassuring manner might smooth things enough to give him the direction he
needed.
Dalton
had only had his new post a short time, but he'd wasted none of it in
establishing himself in nearly every aspect of life at the estate. He became a
useful colleague to many, a confidant to others, and shield to a few. Each
method, in its own way, earned him loyalty. Along with the gifted people he
knew, his evergrowing cobweb of connections virtually hummed like a harp.
From
the first day, though, Dalton's primary objective had been to make himself
indispensable to the Minister. During his second week on the job, a
"researcher" had been sent out to the estate libraries by one of the
Directors from the Office of Cultural Amity. Minister Chanboor had not been
pleased. The truth be known, he had flown into a resentful rage, not an
uncommon response from Bertrand Chanboor when presented with worrisome, even
ominous, news.
Two
days after the researcher arrived, Dalton was able to inform Minister Chanboor
that the man had ended up getting himself arrested, drunk and in the bed of a
harlot back in Fairfield. None of that was a crime of any consequence, of
course, even though it would have looked bad enough to some of the Directors,
but the man was found to have had an extremely rare and valuable book in the
pocket of his
coat.
An
extremely rare and valuable book written by none other than Joseph Ander
himself. The ancient text, valuable beyond price, had been reported missing
from the Minister of Culture's estate right after the researcher went off
drinking.
At
Dalton's instructions, the Directors' office was immediately-informed of the
book's disappearance-hours before the culprit was apprehended. With the report,
Dalton had sent his personal assurance to the Directors that he would not rest
until the malefactor was found, and that he intended to launch an immediate
public investigation to discover if such a cultural crime was the precursor to
a trea-
176
sonous
plot. The stunned silence from the Office of the Directors had been thunderous.
The
magistrate in Fairfield, the one for whom Dalton had once worked, was an
admirer of the Minister of Culture, serving as he did at the Minister's
pleasure, and of course did not take lightly the theft from the Anderith
Library of Culture. He recognized the theft for what it was: sedition. The
researcher who had been caught with the book was swiftly put to death for
cultural crimes against the Anderith people.
Far
from quelling the scandal, this caused the air to become rampant with ugly
rumors of a confession, taken before the man was put to death-a confession, it
was said, that implicated others. The Director who had sent the man to the
estate to do "research," rather than be associated with a cultural
crime, as a point of honor and in order to end speculation and innuendo, had
resigned. Dalton, as the Minister's official representative looking into the
whole affair, after reluctantly taking the Director's resignation, issued a
statement discrediting the rumors of a confession, and officially closed the
entire matter.
An old
friend of Dalton's had been fortunate enough to earn the appointment to the
suddenly vacant seat for which he had been working nearly his whole life.
Dalton had been the first to shake his hand, the hand of a new Director. A more
grateful and joyous man Dalton had never met. Dalton was pleased by that, by
seeing deserving people, people he loved and trusted, happy.
After
the incident, Bertrand Chanboor decided his responsibilities required a closer
working relationship with his aide, and designated Dalton as chief of staff, as
well as aide to the Minister, thus giving him authority over the entire
household. Dalton now reported only to the Minister. The position had also
accorded them their latest quarters-the finest on the estate other than those
of the Minister himself.
Dalton
thought Teresa had been even more pleased about it than he-if that was
possible. She was in love with the
177
apartment
that came with the elevated authority. She was captivated by the people of
noble standing among whom she now mingled. She was intoxicated with meeting
important and powerful people who came to the estate.
Those
guests, as well as people of the estate, treated Teresa with the deference due
one of her high standing, despite the fact that most of them were nobly born
and she, like Dalton, was well born but not noble. Dalton had always found
matters of birth to be petty, and less consequential than some people thought,
once they understood how auspicious allegiances could be considerably more significant
to a providential life.
Across
the room, Teresa cleared her throat. When Dalton turned from the desk, she
lifted her nose and with noble grace stepped out into the sitting room to
display herself in her new dress.
His
eyes widened. Displaying herself was exactly what she was doing.
The
fabric glimmered dreamlike in the light from lamps, candles, and the low fire.
Golden patterns of leafy designs swirled across a dark background. Goldcolored
piping trimmed seams and edges, drawing attention to her narrow waist and
voluptuous curves. The silk fabric of the skirt, like new wheat hugging every
nuance of the rolling lowland hills, betrayed the shape of her curvaceous legs
beneath.
But it
was the neckline that had him speechless. Sweeping down from the ends of her
shoulders, it plunged to an outrageous depth. The sight of her sensuous breasts
so exposed had a profound effect on him, as arousing as it was unsettling.
Teresa
twirled around, showing off the dress, the deeply cut back, the way it sparkled
in the light. With long strides' Dalton crossed the room to catch her in his
arms as she came back around the second time. She giggled to find herself
trapped in his embrace. He bent to kiss her, but she pushed his face away.
"Careful.
I've spent hours painting my face. Don't muss it, Dalton."
178
She
moaned helplessly against his mouth as he kissed her anyway. She seemed pleased
with the effect she was having on him. He was pleased with the effect she was
having on him.
Teresa
pulled back. She reached up and tugged the sequined gold ribbons tied to her
hair.
"Sweetheart,
does it look any longer yet?" she asked in a pleading voice. "It's
pure misery waiting for it to grow."
With
his new post and attendant new apartments, he was moving up in the world,
becoming a man of power. With that new authority came the privileges of rank:
his wife was allowed to wear longer hair to reflect her status.
"Other
wives in the household wore hair nearly to their shoulders; his wife would be
no different, except perhaps that her hair would be just a little longer than
all but a few other women in the house, or in the whole land of Anderith for
that matter, in the whole of the Midlands. She was married to an important man.
The
thought washed through him with icy excitement, as it did from time to time
when it really sank in just how far he had risen, and what he had attained.
Dalton
Campbell intended this to be only the beginning. He intended to go further. He
had plans. And he had the ear of a man with a lust for plans.
Among
other things. But, no matter; Dalton could handle such petty matters. The
Minister was simply taking the perks of his position.
"Tess,
darling, your hair is growing beautifully. If any woman looks down her nose at
you for it not yet being longer, you just remember her name, for your hair in
the end will be longer than any of theirs. When it finally grows, you can then
revisit that name for recompense."
Teresa
bounced on the balls of her feet as she threw her arms around his neck. She
squealed in giddy delight.
Intertwining
her fingers behind his back, she peeked up at him with a coquettish look.
"Do you like my dress?" To make her point, she pressed up against him
while gazing
179
into
his eyes, watching deliberately as his gaze roamed lower.
In
answer, he bent to her, and in one swift motion slipped his hand up under her
silky skirt, along the inside of her leg, up to the bare flesh above her
stockings. She gasped in mock surprise as his hand reached her private places.
Dalton
kissed her again as he groped her. He was no longer thinking about taking her
to the feast. He wanted to take her to the bed.
As he
pushed her toward the bedroom, she squirmed out of his lustful grip.
"Dalton! Don't muss me, sweetheart. Everyone will see the wrinkles in my
dress."
"I
don't think anyone will be looking at the wrinkles in the dress. I think they
will be looking at what is spilling out of it.
"Teresa,
I don't want you to wear such a thing anywhere but to greet your husband at the
door upon his return home to you."
She
playfully swatted his shoulder. "Dalton, stop."
"I
mean it." He looked down her cleavage again. "Teresa, this dress is
... it shows too much."
She
turned away. "Oh, Dalton, stop. You're being silly. All the women are
wearing such dresses nowadays." She twirled to him, the flirt back on her
face. "You aren't jealous, are you? Having other men admire your
wife?"
She was
the one thing he had wanted more than power. Unlike everything else in his
life, he entertained no invitations for understandings where Teresa was
concerned. The spirits knew there were enough men at the estate who were
admired, even envied, because they gained for themselves the courtesy of
influence, inasmuch as their wives made themselves available to Minister
Chanboor. Dalton Campbell was not one of them. He used his talent and wits to
get where he was, not his wife's body. That, too, gave him an edge over the
others.
His
forbearance was rapidly evaporating, leaving his tone less than indulgent.
"And how will they know it to be my wife? Their eyes will never make it up
to your face."
180
"Dalton,
stop. You're being insufferably stodgy. All the other women will be wearing
dresses similar to this. It's the style. You're always so busy with your new
job you don't know anything about prevailing custom. I do.
"Believe
it or not, this dress is conservative compared to what others will be wearing.
I wouldn't wear a dress as revealing as theirs-I know how you get-but I don't
want to look out of place, either. No one will think anything of it, except
that perhaps the wife of the Minister's right-hand man is a tad prissy."
No one
was going to think her "prissy." They were going to think she was
proclaiming herself available to invitation.
'Teresa,
you can wear another. The red one with the V neck. You can still see ... see
enough of your cleavage. The red one is hardly prissy."
She
showed him her back, folding her arms in a pout. "I suppose you will be
happy to have me wear a homely dress, and have every other woman there
whispering behind my back at how I dress like the wife of a lowly assistant to
a magistrate. The red dress was what I wore when you were a nobody. I thought
you would be happy to see me in my new dress, to see how your wife can fit in
with the fashion of the important women here.
"But
now I'll never fit in around here. I'll be the stuffy wife of the Minister's
aide. No one will even want to talk to me. I'll never have any friends."
Dalton
drew a deep breath, letting it out slowly. He watched her dab a knuckle at her
nose. "Tess, is this really what the other women will be wearing at the
feast?"
She
spun around, beaming up at him. It occurred to him that it was not so unlike
the way the Haken girl, down in the kitchen, had beamed at his invitation to
meet the Minister of Culture.
"Of
course it's like what the other women are wearing. Except that I'm not as bold
as they, so it shows less. Oh, Dalton, you'll see. You'll be proud of me. I want
to be a proper wife of the Minister's aide. I want you to be proud.
I'm
proud of you. Only you, Dalton.
181
"A
wife is crucial to a man as important as you. I protect your station when you
aren't there. You don't know what women can be like-petty, jealous, ambitious,
scheming, treacherous, traitorous. One clever nasty word to their husband, and
soon it's on-every tongue. I make sure that if there is a nasty word, it dies
quickly, that none dare repeat it."
He
nodded; he knew full well that women brought their husbands information and
gossip. "I suppose."
"You
always said we were partners. You know how I protect you. You know how hard I
work to make sure you fit in at each new place we go. You know I would never do
anything to jeopardize what you've worked so hard to gain for us. You always
told me how you would take me to the best places, and I would be accepted as
the equal of any woman.
"You've
done as you promised, my husband. I always knew you would; that was why I
agreed to marry you. Even though I always loved you, I would never have married
you had I not believed in your future. We have only each other, Dalton.
"Have
I ever made a misstep when we went to a new place?"
"No,
Tess, you never have."
"Do
you think I would recklessly do so, now, at a place as important as this? When
you stand on the brink of true greatness?"
Teresa
was the only one in whom he confided his audacious ambitions, his boldest
plans. She knew what he intended, and she never derided him for it. She believed
him.
"No,
Tess, you wouldn't jeopardize all that. I know you wouldn't." He wiped a
hand over his face as he sighed. "Wear the dress, if you think it proper.
I will trust your judgment."
The
matter settled, she shoved him toward the dressing room. "Come on, now,
change your clothes. Get ready. You will be the most handsome one there, I just
know it. If there is any cause for jealously, it is I who will have it, for all
182
the
other wives will be green with envy that I have the prize of the household, and
it is you who will get the whispered invitations."
He
turned her around and grasped her by the shoulders, waiting until she looked up
into his eyes. "You just stay away from a man named Stein-Bertrand's guest
of honor. Keep your ... your new dress out of his face. Understand?"
She
nodded. "How will I know him?"
He
released her shoulders and straightened. "It won't be hard. He wears a
cape of human scalps."
Teresa
gasped. "No." She leaned closer. "The one you told me about,
come from beyond the wilds to the south? From the Old World? Come to discuss
our future allegiance?"
"Yes.
Stay away from him."
She
blinked again at such startling news. "How stimulating. I don't know that
anyone here has ever met such an interesting foreigner. He must be very
important." - "He is an important man, a man with whom we will be
discussing business, so I'd like not to have to slice him into little pieces
for trying to force you to his bed. It would waste valuable time, waiting for the
emperor to send another representative from the Old World."
It was
no idle boast, and she knew it. He studied the sword as intently as he studied
the law. Dalton could behead a flea on a peach without disturbing the fuzz.
Teresa
smirked. "He need not look my way, and he'll not sleep alone tonight,
either. There will be women fighting over the chance to be with so outrageous a
man. Human scalps ..." She shook her head at so astounding a notion.
"The woman who wins his bed will be at the head of every invitation for
months to come."
"Maybe
they would like to invite a Haken girl to tell them how exciting and grand it
was," Dalton snapped.
"Haken
girl?" Teresa grunted dismissively at such whimsy. "I think not.
Haken girls don't count to those women."
She turned
once more to the important part of his news.
183
"So,
no decision has yet been made? We still don't know if Anderith will stick with
the Midlands, or if we will break and join with Emperor Jagang from the Old
World?"
"No,
we don't yet know how it will go. The Directors are divided. Stein only just
arrived to speak his piece."
She
stretched up on her toes to give him a peck. "I will stay away from the
man. While you help decide the fate of Anderith, I will watch your back, as
always, and keep my ears open."
She
took a step toward the bedroom, but spun back to him. "If the man has come
to speak his side of matters ..." Sudden realization stole into her dark
eyes. "Dalton, the Sovereign is going to be here tonight, isn't he? The
Sovereign himself will be at the feast."
Dalton
took her chin in his fingertips. "A smart wife is the best ally a man can
have."
Smiling,
he let her seize him by his little fingers and tug, pulling him into the
dressing room. "I've only seen the man from afar. Oh, Dalton, you are a
marvel, bringing me to such a place as I would get to break bread with the
Sovereign himself."
"You
just remember what I said and stay away from Stein, unless I'm with you. For
that matter, the same goes for Bertrand, though I doubt he'd dare to cross me.
If you're good, I'll introduce you to the Sovereign."
She was
struck speechless for only a moment. "When we retire to bed tonight, you
will find out just how good I can be. The spirits preserve me," she added
in a whisper, "I hope I can wait that long. The Sovereign. Oh, Dalton, you
are a marvel."
While
she sat before a mirror on her dressing table, checking her face to see what
damage he had wrought with his kisses, Dalton pulled open the tall wardrobe.
"So, Tess, what gossip have you heard?"
184
He
peered into the wardrobe, looking through his shirts, looking for the one with
the collar he liked best. Since her dress was a golden color, he changed his
plans and decided to wear his red coat. Best, anyway, if he was to put forth an
assured appearance.
As
Teresa leaned toward the mirror, dabbing her cheeks with a small sponge she had
dragged across a silver container of rose-colored powder, she rambled on about
the gossip of the house. None of it sounded important to Dalton. His thoughts
wandered to the real concerns with which he had to deal, to the Directors he
had yet to convince, and about how to handle Bertrand Chanboor.
The
Minister was a cunning man, a man Dalton understood. The Minister shared
Dalton's ambition, if in a larger, more public sense. Bertrand Chanboor was a
man who wanted everything-everything from a Haken girl- who caught his eye to
the seat of the sovereign. If Dalton had any say, and he did, Bertrand Chanboor
would get what Bertrand Chanboor wanted.
And
Dalton would have the power and authority he wanted. He didn't need to be
Sovereign. Minister of Culture would do.
The
Minister of Culture was the true power in the land of Anderith, making most
laws and appointing magistrates to see them carried through. The Minister of
Culture's influence and authority touched every business, every person in the
land. He held sway over commerce, arts, institutions, and beliefs. He oversaw
the army and all public projects. He was the embodiment of religion, as well.
The Sovereign was all ceremony and pomp, jewels and exquisite dress, parties
and affairs.
No,
Dalton would "settle" for Minister of Culture. With a Sovereign who
danced on the cobweb Dalton thrummed.
"I
had your good boots polished," Teresa said. She pointed to the other side
of the wardrobe. He bent to retrieve them.
"Dalton,
what news is there from Aydindril? You said Stein is to speak his peace of the
Old World, and the
185
Imperial
Order. What about Aydindril? What has the Midlands to say?"
If
there was one thing that could spoil Dalton's ambitions and plans, it was the
events in Aydindril.
"The
ambassadors returning from Aydindril reported that the Mother Confessor has not
only thrown her lot, and that of the Midlands, in with Lord Rahl, the new
leader of the D'Haran Empire, but she was to marry the man. By now, she -must
be wedded to him."
"Married!
The Mother Confessor herself, married." Teresa returned her attention to
the mirror. "That must have been a grand affair. I can imagine such a
wedding would put anything in Anderith to shame." Teresa paused at her
mirror. "But a Confessor's power takes a man when she marries him. This
Lord Rahl will be nothing but a puppet of the Mother Confessor."
Dalton
shook his head. "Apparently, he is gifted, and not subject to being
destroyed by her power. She's a clever one, marrying a gifted Lord Rahl of
D'Hara; it shows cunning, conviction, and deft strategic planning. Joining the
Midlands with D'Hara has created an empire to be feared, an empire to be
reckoned with. It will be a difficult decision."
The
ambassadors had further reported Lord Rahl a man of seeming integrity, a man of
great conviction, a man committed to peace and the freedom of those who joined
with him.
He was also
a man who demanded their surrender into the growing D'Haran Empire, and
demanded it immediately.
Men
like that tended to be unreasonable. A man like that could be no end of
trouble.
Dalton
brought out a shirt and held it up to show Teresa. She nodded her approval. He
stripped to the waist and slipped his arms into the crisp, clean shirt,
savoring the fresh aroma.
"Stein
brings Emperor Jagang's offer of a place for us in his new world order. We will
hear what he has to say."
If
Stein was any indication, the Imperial Order understood the nuances of power.
Unlike all indications from Aydindril,
186
they
were willing to negotiate a number of points important to Dalton and the
Minister.
"And
the Directors? What have they to say about our fate?"
Dalton
grunted his discontent. "The Directors committed to the old ways, to the
so-called freedom of the people of the Midlands, dwindle in number all the
time. The Directors insisting we stay with the rest of the Midlands-join with
Lord Rahl-are becoming isolated voices. People are tired of hearing their
outdated notions and uninspired morals."
Teresa
set down her brush. Worry creased her brow. "Will we have war, Dalton?
With whom will we side? Will we be thrown into war, then?"
Dalton
laid a reassuring hand on her shoulder. "The war is going to be a long,
bloody struggle. I have no interest in being dragged into it, or having our
people dragged into it. I'll do what I must to protect Anderith."
Much
hinged on which side held the upper hand. There was no point in joining the
losing side.
"If
need be, we can unleash the Dominie Dirtch. No army, not Lord Rahl's, not
Emperor Jagang's, can stand against such a weapon. But, it would be best,
before the fact, to join the side offering the best terms and prospects."
She
clasped his hand. "But this Lord Rahl is a wizard. You said he was gifted.
There is no telling what a wizard might do."
"That
might be a reason to join with him. But the Imperial Order has vowed to
eliminate magic. Perhaps they have ways of countering his ability."
"But
if Lord Rahl is a wizard, that would be fearsome magic-like the Dominie Dirtch.
He might unleash his power against us if we fail to surrender to him."
He
patted her hand before going back to his dressing. "Don't worry, Tess.
I'll not let Anderith fall to ashes. And as I said, the Order claims they will
end magic. If true, then a wizard wouldn't hold any threat over us. We will
just have to see what Stein has to say."
He
didn't know how the Imperial Order could end magic.
187
Magic,
after all, had been around as long as the world. Maybe what the Order really
meant was that they intended to eliminate those who were gifted. That would not
be a novel idea and to Dalton's mind had a chance of success.
There
were those who already advocated putting to the torch all the gifted. Anderith
held several of the more radical leaders in chains, Serin Raja among them.
Charismatic, fanatical, and rabid, Serin Rajak was ungovernable and dangerous.
If he was even still alive; they'd had him in chains for months.
Rajak
believed "witches," as he called those with magic, to be evil. He had
a number of followers he had incited into wild and destructive mobs before
they'd arrested him.
Men
like that were dangerous. Dalton had lobbied against his execution, though. Men
like that could also be useful.
"Oh,
and you just won't believe it," Teresa was saying. She had started back on
the gossip she'd heard. As he pondered Serin Rajak, he only half listened.
"This woman, the one I mentioned, the one who thinks so much of herself,
Claudine Winthrop, well, she told us that the Minister forced himself on
her."
Dalton
was still only half listening. He knew the gossip to be true. Claudine Winthrop
was the "perturbed lady" in the message in the secret compartment of
his desk, the one for whom he needed to find a plum. She was also the one who
had sent the letter to Director Linscott-the letter that never arrived.
Claudine
Winthrop hovered around the Minister whenever she had the chance, flirting with
him, smiling, batting her eyelashes. What did she think was going to happen?
She'd gotten what she had to know she was going to get. Now she complains?
"And
so, she's so angry to be treated in such a coarse manner by the Minister, that
after the dinner she intends to announce to Lady Chanboor and all the guests
that the Minister forced himself on her in the crudest fashion."
Dalton's
ears perked up.
"Rape
it is, she called it, and rape she intends to report it
188
to the
Minister's wife." Teresa turned in her seat to shake a small squirrel-hair
eye-color brush up at him. "And to the Directors of Cultural Amity, if any
are there. And Dalton, if the Sovereign is there, it could be an ugly row. The
Sovereign is liable to hold up a hand, commanding silence, so she may
speak."
Dalton
was at full attention, now. The twelve Directors would be at the feast. Now, he
knew what Claudine Winthrop was about.
"She
said this, did she? You heard her say it?"
Teresa
put one hand on a hip. "Yes. Isn't that something? She should know what
Minister Chanboor is like, how he beds half the women at the estate. And now
she plans to make trouble? It should create quite the sensation, I'd say. I
tell you, Dalton, she's up to something."
When
Teresa started prattling onto another subject, he broke hi and asked,
"What had the other women to say about her? About Claudine's plans?"
Teresa
set down the squirrel-hair brush. "Well, we all think it's just terrible.
I mean, the Minister of Culture is an important man. Why, he could be Sovereign
one day-the Sovereign is not a young man anymore. The Minister could be called
upon to step into the Seat of Sovereign at any moment. That's a terrible
responsibility."
She
looked back to the mirror as she worked with a hair pick. She turned once more
and shook it at him. "The Minister is terribly overworked, and has the
right to seek harmless diversion now and again. The women are willing. It's
nobody's business. It's their private lives-it has no bearing on public
business. And it's not like the little tramp didn't ask for it."
Dalton
couldn't dispute that much of it. For the life of him, he couldn't understand
how women, whether a noble or a Haken girl, could bat their lashes at the letch
and then be surprised when he rose, so to speak, to the bait.
Of
course, the Haken girl, Beata, hadn't been old enough, or experienced enough,
to truly understand such mature games. Nor, he supposed, had she foreseen Stein
in the bar-
189
gain.
Dalton felt a bit sorry for the girl, even if she was Haken. No, she hadn't
seen Stein lurking in the tall wheat when she smiled in awe at the Minister.
But the
other women, the women of the household, and mature women come from the city
out to the estate for feasts and parties, they knew what the Minister was
about, and had no grounds to call foul after the fact.
Dalton
knew some only became unhappy when they didn't get some unspecified, but
significant, recompense. Some plum. That was when it became Dalton's problem.
He found them a plum, and did his best to convince them they would love to have
it. Most, wisely, accepted such generosity-it was all many had wanted in the
first place.
He
didn't doubt that the women of the estate were agitated that Claudine was
scheming to bring trouble. Many of those wives had been with the Minister,
seduced by the heady air of power around the man. Dalton had reason to suspect
many who had not been to the Minister's bed wanted to end there. Bertrand
either simply hadn't gotten to them yet, or didn't wish to. Most likely the
former; he tended to appoint men to the estate only after he'd met their wives,
too. Dalton had already had to turn down a perfectly good man as regent because
Bertrand thought his wife too plain.
Not
only was there no end to the women swooning to fall under the man, but he was a
glutton about it. Even so, he had certain standards. Like many men as they got
older, he savored youth.
He was
able to indulge his wont for voluptuous young women without needing, as most
men passing fifty, to go to prostitutes in the city. In fact, Bertrand Chanboor
avoided such women like the plague, fearing their virulent diseases.
Other
men his age who could have young women no other way, and could not resist, did
not get a chance to grow much older. Nor did the young women. Disease swiftly
claimed many.
Bertrand
Chanboor, though, had his pick of a steady sup-
190
ply of
healthy young women of limited experience, and standards. They flew, of their
own accord, into that candle flame of high rank and nearly limitless authority.
Dalton
ran the side of his finger gently along Teresa's cheek. He was fortunate to
have a woman who shared his ambition but, unlike many others, was discerning in
how to go about it.
"I
love you, Tess."
Surprised
by his sudden tender gesture, she took his hand in both of hers and planted
kisses all along it.
He
didn't know what he could possibly have done in his life to deserve her. There
had been nothing about him that would augur well for his ever having a woman as
good as Teresa. She was the one thing in his life he had not earned by sheer
force of will, by cutting down any opposition, eliminating any threat to his
goal. With her, he had simply been helplessly hi love.
Why the
good spirits chose to ignore the rest of his life and reward him with this
plum, he couldn't begin to guess, but he would take it and hold on for dear
life.
Business
intruded on his lustful wanderings as he stared into her adoring eyes.
Claudine
would require attention. She needed to be silenced, and before she could cause
trouble. Dalton ticked off favors he might have to offer her in return for
seeing the sense in silence. No one, not even Lady Chanboor, gave much thought
to the Minister's dalliances, but an accusation of rape by a woman of standing
would be troublesome.
There
were Directors who adhered to ideals of rectitude. The Directors of the Office
of Cultural Amity held sway over who would be Sovereign. Some wanted the next
Sovereign to be a man of moral character. They could deny an initiate the Seat.
After
Bertrand Chanboor was named Sovereign, it would not matter what they thought,
but it certainly mattered before.
191
Claudine
would have to be silenced. "Dalton, where are you going?"
He
turned back from the door. "I just have to write a message and then send
it oh its way. I won't be long."
CHAPTER\xA0 18
NORA
STIRRED WITH A groan, thinking it must be light already. Her thoughts rumbled
woodenly in the numb blur between asleep and awake. She wanted nothing so much
as to sleep on. The straw beneath her was bunched just right. It always bunched
just right in perfect, comfortable, cuddling lumps, right as it was time to be
up and out of bed.
She
expected her husband to slap her rump any moment. Julian always woke just
before first light. The chores had to be done. Maybe if she lay still, he would
leave her be for just a few moments longer, let her sleep for a few dreamy
minutes more.
She
hated him at that moment, for always waking just before first light and
slapping her rump and telling her to get up and to the day's work. The man had
to whistle first thing, too, when her head was still a daze in the morning,
rickety with sleep still trying to get out of her head.
She
flopped over on her back, lifting her eyebrows in an effort to wake by forcing
her eyes open. Julian wasn't there beside her.
192
A
feeling skittered up her insides, bringing her wide awake in an ice cold
instant. She sat up in the bed. For some reason, something about him not being
there gave her a feeling of queasy dismay.
Was it
morning? Just about to be light? Was it still somewhere in the night? Her mind
snatched wildly to get her bearings.
She
leaned over, seeing the glow from the embers she'd banked in the hearth before
she went to bed. A few on the top still glowed, hardly diminished at all from
the way she'd left them. In that weak light, she saw Bruce peering at her from
his pallet.
"Mama?
What's wrong?" his older sister, Bethany, asked.
"What
are you two doing awake?"
"Mama,
we just gone to bed," Bruce whined.
She
realized it was true. She was so tired, so dead tired from pulling rocks from
the spring field all day, that she'd been asleep before she closed her eyes.
They'd come home when it got too dark to work any more, ate down their
porridge, and got right to bed. She could still taste the squirrel meat from
the porridge, and she was still burping new radishes. Bruce was right; they'd
only just gone to bed.
Trepidation
trembled through her. "Where's your pa?"
Bethany
lifted a hand to point. "Went to the privy, I guess. Mama, what's
wrong?"
"Mama?"
Bruce puled.
"Hush,
now, it be nothin'. Lay back down, the both of you."
Both
children stared at her, wide-eyed. She couldn't stick a pin in the alarm she
felt. The children saw it in her face, she knew they did, but she couldn't hide
it no matter how she tried.
She
didn't know what was wrong, what the trouble was, but she felt it sure,
crawling on her skin.
Evil.
Evil
was in the air, like smoke from a woods fire, wrinkling her nose, sucking her
breath. Evil. Somewhere, out in the night, evil, lurking about.
193
She
glanced again to the empty bed beside her. Gone to the privy. Julian was in the
privy house. Had to be.
Nora
recalled him going' to the privy house just after they ate, before they went to
their bed. That didn't mean he couldn't go again. But he never did say he was
having no problem.
Consternation
clawed at her insides, like the fear of the Keeper himself.
"Dear
Creator, preserve us," she whispered in prayer. "Preserve us, this
house of humble people. Send evil away. Please, dear spirits, watch over us and
keep us safe."
She
opened her eyes from the prayer. The children were still staring at her.
Bethany must feel it, too. She never let nothing go without asking why. Nora
called her the "why child" in jest. Brace just trembled.
Nora
threw the wool blanket aside. It scared the chickens in the corner, making them
flap with a start and let out a surprised squawk.
"You
children go back to sleep."
They
lay back down, but they watched as she squirmed a shift down over her
nightdress. Shaking without knowing why, she knelt on the bricks before the
hearth and stacked birch logs on the embers. It wasn't that cold-she'd thought
to let the embers do for the night-but she felt the sudden need for the comfort
of a fire, the assurance of its light.
From
beside the hearth, she retrieved their only oil lamp. With a curl of flaming
birch bark, she quickly lit the lamp wick and then replaced the chimney. The
children were still watching.
Nora
bent and kissed little Brace on the cheek. She smoothed back Bethany's hair and
kissed her daughter's forehead. It tasted like the dirt she'd been in all day
trying to help carry rocks from the field before they plowed and planted it.
She could only carry little ones, but it was a help.
"Back
to sleep, my babies," she said in a soothing voice. "Pa just went to
the privy. I'm only taking him a light to see his way back. You know how your
pa stubs his toes in
194
the
night and then curses us for it. Back to sleep, the both of you. Everything is
all right. Just takin' your pa a lamp."
Nora
stuck her bare feet into her cold, wet, muddy boots, which had been set by the
door. She didn't want to stub her toes and then have to work with a lame foot.
She fussed with a shawl, settling it around her shoulders, fixing it good and
right before she tied it. She feared to open the door. She was in near tears
with not wanting to open that door to the night.
Evil
was out there. She knew it. She felt it.
"Burn
you, Julian," she muttered under her breath. "Burn you crisp for
making me go outside tonight."
She
wondered, if she found Julian sitting in the privy, if he'd curse her foolish
woman ways. He cursed her ways, sometimes. Said she worried over nothing for no
good end. Said nothing ever came of her worrying so why'd she do it? She didn't
do it to get herself cursed at by him, that sure was the truth of it.
As she
lifted the latch, she told herself how she wanted very much for him to be out
in the privy and to curse her tonight, and then to put his arm around her
shoulders and tell her to hush her tears and come back to bed with him. She
shushed the chickens when they complained at her as she opened the door.
There
was no moon: The overcast sky was as black as the Keeper's shadow. Nora
shuffled quickly along the packed dirt path to the privy house. With a shaking
hand, she rapped on the door.
"Julian?
Julian, you in there? Please, Julian, if you're in there, say so. Julian, I'm
begging you, don't trick with me, not tonight."
Silence
throbbed in her ears. There were no bugs making noise. No crickets. No frogs.
No birds. It was just plain dead quiet, like the ground in the lamp's little
glow around her was all there was to the world and beyond that there was
nothing, like if she left the lamp and stepped out there into the darkness she
might fall through that black beyond till
195
she was
an old lady and then still fall some more. She knew that was foolish, but right
then the idea seemed very real and scared her something fierce.
The
privy door squeaked when she pulled it open. She hadn't even been hoping, as
she done it, because she knew Julian wasn't in there. Before she got out of the
bed, she knew he wasn't in the privy house. She didn't know how she knew, but
she did.
And she
was right.
She was
sometimes right about such feelings. Julian said she was daft to think she had
some mind power to know things, like the old woman what lived back in the hills
and came down when she knew something and thought she ought to tell folks of
it.
But
sometimes, Nora did know things. She'd known Julian wasn't in the privy.
Worse,
she knew where he was.
She
didn't know how she knew, no more than she knew how she knew he wasn't in the
privy. But she knew, and the knowing had her shaking something fierce. She only
looked in the privy because she hoped she was wrong, and because she didn't
want to look where she knew he was.
But now
she had to go look.
Nora
held the lamp out, trying to see down the path. She couldn't see far. She
turned as she tramped along, looking back at the house. She could make out the
window, because the fire was going good. The birch logs had caught, and the
fire was throwing off good light.
The
feeling of terrible wickedness felt like it was grinning at her from the black
night between her and the house. Clutching her shawl tight, Nora held the lamp
out to the path again. She didn't like leaving the children. Not when she had
her feelings.
Something,
though, was pulling her onward, down the path.
"Please,
dear spirits, let me be a foolish woman, with foolish woman ways. Please, dear
spirits, let Julian be safe. We all needs him. Dear spirits, we needs
him."
196
She was
sobbing as she made her way down the hill, sobbing because she feared so much
to find out. Her hand holding the lamp shook, making the flame jitter.
At
last, she heard the sound of the creek, and was glad for it because then the
night wasn't so dead quiet and frightfully empty. With the sound of the water,
she felt better, because there was something out there, something familiar. She
began to feel foolish for thinking there was no world beyond the lamplight,
like she was on the brink of the underworld. She was just as likely wrong about
the rest of it, too. Julian would roll his eyes, in that way of his, when she
told him she was afraid because she thought the world was empty beyond the
light.
She
tried to whistle, like her Julian whistled, so as to make herself feel better,
but her lips were as dry as stale toast. She wished she could whistle, so
Julian could hear her, but no good whistling sound would come out. She could
just call out to him, but she feared to do it. Feared to get no answer. She'd
rather just come on him and find him there, and then get cursed for her foolish
crying over nothing.
A
gentle breeze lapped the water against the edge of the lake, so she could hear
it before she could see it. She hoped to see Julian sitting there on his stump,
tending a line, waiting to catch them a carp. She hoped to see him look up and
curse her for scaring his fish.
The
stump was empty. The line was slack.
Nora,
her whole arm trembling, held up the lamp, to see what she came to see. Tears
stung at her eyes so she had to blink to see better. She had to sniffle to get
her breath.
She
held the lamp higher as she walked out into the water till it poured over the tops
of her boots. She took another step, till the water soaked the bottom of her
nightdress and shift and dragged the dead weight back and forth with the
movement of her steps and the waves.
When
the water was up to her knees, she saw him.
He was
floating there, facedown in the water, his arms limp out to his sides, his legs
parted slightly. The little
197
breeze-borne
waves slopped over the back of his head, making his hair move as if it were
some of the lake weed. He bobbed gently there in the water, like a dead fish
floating on the surface.
Nora
had feared to "find him there, like that. It was just what she feared, and
because she feared it so, she wasn't even shocked when she saw it. She stood
there, water to her knees, Julian floating like a dead bloated carp twenty feet
out hi the lake. The water was too deep to wade out to get him. Out where he
was it would be over her head.
She
didn't know what to do. Julian always did the stuff she couldn't do. How was
she going to get her husband in to shore?
How was
she going to live? How was she going to feed herself and her children without
Julian? Julian did the hard stuff. He knew the things she didn't know. He
provided for them.
She
felt numb, dead, stunned, like she did when she'd just come awake. It didn't
seem possible.
Julian
couldn't be dead. He was Julian. He couldn't die. Not Julian.
A sound
made her spin around. A thump to the air. A howl, like wind on a blizzard
night. A wail and a whoosh lifted into the night air.
From
then- house up on the hill, Nora could see sparks shooting up out the chimney.
Sparks flew up in wild swirls, spiraling high up into the darkness.
Thunderstruck, Nora stood in frozen terror.
A
scream ripped the quiet night. The awful sound rose, like the sparks,
screeching into the night air with horror such as she had never heard. It was
such a brutal cry she didn't think it could be human.
But she
knew it was. She knew it was Brace's scream. With a wail of wild terror of her
own, she suddenly dropped the lamp in the water and ran for the house. Her
screams answered his, feeding on his, shattering the silence with his.
198
Her
babies were in the house.
Evil
was in the house.
And she
had left them to it.
She
wailed in feral fright at what she had done, leaving her babies alone. She
screamed to the good spirits to help her. She squalled for her children. She
choked on her sobbing panic as she stumbled through the brush in the dark.
Huckleberry
bushes snagged and tore her clothes. Branches slashed her arms as she ran with
wild abandon. A hole in the ground caught arid twisted her foot, but she stayed
up and kept running toward her house, toward her babies.
Brace's
piercing scream went on without end, lifting the hair at the back of her neck.
She didn't hear Bethany, just Brace, little Brace, screaming his lungs out,
like he was having his eyes stabbed out.
Nora
stumbled. Her face slammed the ground. She scrambled to her feet. Blood gushed
from her nose. Stunning pain staggered her. She gagged on blood and dirt as she
gasped for breath, crying, screaming, praying, panting, choking all at the same
time. With desperate effort, Nora raced to the house, to the screams.
She
crashed through the door. Chickens flew out around her. Brace had his back
plastered to the wall beside the door. He was in the grip of savage terror, out
of his mind, shrieking like the Keeper had him by the toes.
Brace
saw her, and made to throw his arm around her, but flung himself back against
the wall when he saw her bloody face, saw strings of blood dripping from her
chin.
She
seized his shoulder. "It's Mama! I just fell and hit my nose, that's
all!"
He
threw himself at her, his arms clutching her hips, his fingers snatching at her
clothes. Nora twisted around, but even with the bright firelight, she didn't
see her daughter.
"Brace!
Where's Bethany?"
His arm
lifted, shaking so much she feared it would come undone. She wheeled to see
where he pointed.
199
Nora
screeched. She threw her hands up to cover her face, but couldn't, her fingers
quaking violently before her mouth as she screamed with Bruce.
Bethany
was standing in the hearth, engulfed in flames.
The
fire roared around her, swirling in tumbling eddies as it consumed her little
body. Her arms were lifted out into the angry white heat, the way you lifted
your arms into the warm spring afternoon sunlight after a swim.
The
stink of bubbling burning flesh suddenly wormed into Nora's bleeding nose,
gagging her until she choked on the smell and taste and couldn't get another
breath. She couldn't seem to look away from Bethany, look away from her
daughter being burned up alive. It didn't seem real. She couldn't make her mind
understand it.
Nora
lunged a step toward the flames, to snatch her daughter out of the fire.
Something inside, some last scrap of sense, told her it was far too late. Told
her to get away with Bruce before it had them, too.
The
tips of Bethany's fingers were all gone. Her face was nothing but yellow-orange
whorls of flame. The fire burned with wild, roused, determined fury. The heat
sucked Nora's breath from her lungs.
A
shrill scream suddenly rose from the girl, as if her soul itself had finally
caught fire. It made the very marrow in Nora's bones ache.
Bethany
collapsed in a heap. Flames shot up around the crumbled form, tumbling out
around the stone, licking briefly up over the mantel. Sparks splashed out into
the room, bouncing and rolling across the floor. Several hissed out against the
wet hem of Nora's dress.
Nora
snatched at Bruce, clutching his nightshirt in a death grip, and ran with him
from the house, as evil consumed what was left of her daughter.
200
CHAPTER\xA0 19
FITCH
FOLDED HIS LEGS as he sat on the grass. The cool brick felt good against his
sweaty back. He took a deep breath of the sweet-smelling night, the aromas of
roasting meat wafting out through open windows, and the clean smell of the
apple-wood pile. Since they would be working late cleaning up the mess after
the feast, they'd been given a welcome respite.
Morley
handed him the bottle. It would be late before they could get good and drunk,
but at least they could have a sample. Fitch took a big swig. Instantly, he
coughed violently, before he could get it down, losing most of the mouthful of
liquor.
Morley
laughed. "Told you it was strong."
Fitch
wiped the back of his sleeve across his dripping chin. "You're right about
that. Where'd you get it? This is good stuff."
Fitch
had never had anything so strong that it burned that much going down. From what
he'd heard, if it burned, that meant it was good stuff. He'd been told that if
he ever had a chance, he'd be a fool to turn down good stuff. He coughed again.
The back of his nose, back in his throat, burned something awful.
Morley
leaned closer. "Someone important ordered it sent
201
back.
Said it was swill. They were trying to be pompous in front of everyone. Pete,
the cupbearer, he ran it back and set it down. When he grabbed another and ran
out, I snatched it up and slipped it under my tunic before anyone
noticed."
Fitch
was used to drinking the wine they'd managed to scavenge. He'd drain almost
empty small casks and bottles, collecting the dregs and what was left behind.
He'd never gotten his hands on any of the scarce liquor before.
Morley
pushed at the bottom of the bottle, tipping it to Fitch's lips. Fitch took a
more cautious pull, and got it down without spitting it back out. His stomach
felt like a boiling cauldron. Morley nodded approvingly. Fitch smiled with smug
pride.
Through
distant open windows, he could hear people talking and laughing in the
gathering hall, waiting for the feast to begin. Fitch could already feel the
effects of the liquor. Later, after they cleaned up,, they could finish getting
drunk.
Fitch
rubbed the gooseflesh on his arms. The music drifting out from the windows put
him in a mood. Music always did that, made him feel like he could rise up and
do something. He didn't know what, but something. Something powerful.
When
Morley held out his hand Fitch handed over the bottle. He watched the knob in
Morley's throat move up and down with every swallow. The music built with
emotion, quickened with excitement. On top of the effects of the drink, it gave
him chills.
Off past
Morley, Fitch saw someone tall coming down the path toward them. The person was
walking deliberately, not just out for a stroll, but going someplace. In the
yellow lamplight coming from all the windows, Fitch saw the glint off the
silver scabbard. He saw the noble features and bearing.
It was
Dalton Campbell. He was coming right for them.
Fitch
elbowed his friend and then stood. He steadied himself on his feet before
straightening his tunic. The front of it was wet with liquor he'd coughed out.
He quickly swiped
202
back
his hair. With the side of his foot, he kicked Morley and signaled with a thumb
for him to get up.
Dalton
Campbell walked around the woodpile, headed straight toward them. The tall
Ander seemed to know right where he was going. Fitch and Morley, when it was
just the two of them lifting drink and sneaking off, never told anyone where
they went.
"Fitch.
Morley," Dalton Campbell called out as he approached.
"Good
evening, Master Campbell," Fitch said, lifting a hand in greeting.
Fitch
guessed, what with the light from the windows, it wasn't really that hard to
see. He could see Morley good enough, see him holding the bottle behind his
back. It must be that the Minister's aide saw them from a window as they were
going out to the woodpile.
"Good
evening, Master Campbell," Morley said.
Dalton
Campbell looked them over, like he was inspecting soldiers. He held out his
hand.
"May
I?"
Morley
winced as he pulled the bottle from behind his back and handed it over. "We
was ... that is ..."
Dalton
Campbell took a good swig.
"Ahh,"
he said, as he handed the bottle back to Morley. "You two are fortunate to
have such a good, and full, bottle of liquor." He clasped his hand behind
his back. "I hope I'm not interrupting anything."
Both
Fitch and Morley, stunned at Dalton Campbell taking a swig of their bottle, and
more so that he handed it back, both shook their heads vigorously.
"No,
sir, Master Campbell," Morley said.
"Good,
then," Campbell said. "I was looking for the two of you. I have a bit
of trouble."
Fitch
leaned a little closer, lowering his voice. "Trouble, Master Campbell? Is
there anything we can do to help?"
Campbell
watched Fitch's eyes, and then Morley's. "Well, yes, as a matter of fact,
that's why I was looking for you. You see, I thought you two might like a
chance to
203
prove
yourselves-to begin showing me you have the potential I hope "you have. I
could take care of it myself, but I thought you two might like to have a chance
to do something worthwhile."
Fitch
felt like the good spirits themselves had just asked if he'd like a chance to
do good.
Morley
set the bottle down and straightened his shoulders like a soldier going to
attention. "Yes sir, Master Campbell, I surely would like a chance."
Fitch
straightened himself up. "Me, too, Master Campbell. You just name it, and
we'd both like a chance to prove to you we're men ready to take
responsibility."
"Good
... very good," he said as he studied them. He let the silence go on a bit
before he spoke again. "This is important. This is very important. I
thought about taking it to someone else, someone more experienced, but I
decided to give you two a chance to show me you can be trusted."
"Anything,
Master Campbell," Fitch said, and he meant it. "You just name
it."
Fitch
trembled with the excitement of having the chance to prove himself to Dalton
Campbell. The music seemed to pump him full of need to do something important.
"The
Sovereign is not well," Campbell said.
"That's
terrible," Morley said.
"We're
sorry," Fitch added.
"Yes,
it's a shame, but he is old. Minister Chanboor is still young and vigorous.
He's undoubtedly going to be named Sovereign, and it isn't likely to be long.
Most of the Directors are here to discuss business with us-Seat of the
Sovereign business. Making inquiries, as it were, while they have the leisure
to do so. They want to determine certain facts about the Minister. They are
looking into his character to see what kind of man he is. To see if he's a man
they could support, when the times comes."
Fitch
snatched a quick glance and saw Morley's wide eyes fixed on Dalton Campbell.
Fitch could hardly believe he was hearing such important news from a man as
important as this-they were just Hakens, after all. This was the
204
Minister's
aide, an Ander, an important Ander, telling them about matters of the highest
substance.
"Thank
the Creator," Fitch whispered. "Our Minister is finally getting the
recognition he deserves."
"Yes,"
Campbell drawled in an odd way. "Well, the thing is, there are people who
would like to prevent the Minister from being named Sovereign. These people
mean to harm the Minister."
"Harm
him?" Morley asked, clearly astonished.
"That's
right. You both recall learning how the Sovereign is to be protected, that
anything done to protect our Sovereign is a virtue?"
"Yes,
sir," Morley said.
"Yes,
sir," Fitch echoed. "And since the Minister is to be Sovereign, then
he should be protected just the same."
"Very
good, Fitch."
Fitch
beamed with pride. He wished the drink didn't make it so hard to focus his
eyes.
"Master
Campbell," Morley said, "we'd like to help. We'd like to prove
ourselves to you. We're ready."
"Yes
sir, we surely are," Fitch added.
"I
shall give you both your chance, then. If you can do right, and keep silent
about it no matter what-and that means to your graves-I will be pleased my
faith in you was well placed."
"To
our graves," Fitch said. "Yes sir, we can do that."
Fitch
heard an odd metallic sound. He realized with horror that there was a sword
point under his chin.
"But
if either of you fails to live up to my faith, I would be very disappointed,
because the Minister would then be in danger. Do you understand? I won't have
people I trust let me down. Let the future Sovereign down. Do you both
understand?"
"Yes,
sir!" Fitch nearly shouted.
The
sword point flashed to Morley's throat, poised before the prominent bump in his
gullet. "Yes, sir!" he said.
"Did
either of you tell anyone where you would be tonight having your drink?"
205
"No,
sir," Motley and Fitch said as one.
"Yet
I knew where to find you." The tall Ander lifted an eyebrow. "You
just remember that, if you ever think to get it in your head that you could
hide from me. If you ever cause me trouble, I will find you, no matter where
you go to ground?
"Master
Campbell," Fitch said, after he swallowed, "you just tell us what it
is we can do to help, and we'll do it. We can be trusted. We'll not let you
down-I swear."
Morley
was nodding. "That's right. Fitch is right."
Dalton
Campbell slid his sword back into its scabbard and smiled. "I'm already
proud of you both. You two are going to advance around here. I just know you
will prove my faith in you."
"Yes
sir," Fitch said, "you can count on us both."
Dalton
Campbell put one hand on Fitch's shoulder and the other on Morley's. "All
right, then. You listen close, now."
"Here
she comes," Morley whispered in Fitch's ear.
Fitch
nodded after looking where his friend pointed. Morley moved off to the black
maw of the open service doors while Fitch squatted down behind some barrels
stacked to the side of the loading dock. Fitch recalled earlier in the day
seeing Brownie standing with the butcher's cart across the way. Fitch wiped the
palms of his hands on his trousers. It had been a day of important events.
They'd
talked about it on the way over, and Morley felt the same way; as much as the
idea of it had Fitch's heart hammering against his ribs, there was no way he
was going to let Dalton Campbell's faith in him be spoiled. Morley thought the
same.
The
music coming from the open windows across the lawn-strings and horns and a
harp-was filling his head
206
with
purpose, swelling his chest with pride to be chosen by Dalton Campbell.
The
Minister-the future Sovereign-had to be protected.
Quietly,
with light steps, she climbed the four steps up onto the dock. In the dim
light, she looked around at the deep shadows, stretching her neck to peer
about. Fitch swallowed at how good-looking she was. She was older, but she was
a looker. He'd never looked so long and hard at an Ander lady as he did at her.
Morley
made his voice come out deep in order to sound older.
"Claudine
Winthrop?"
She
wheeled expectantly toward Fitch's friend, standing in the dark doorway.
"I'm Claudine Winthrop," she whispered. "You received my
message, then?"
"Yes,"
Morley said.
"Thank
the Creator. Director Linscott, it's important I speak with you about Minister
Chanboor. He pretends to uphold Anderith culture, but he is the worst example
we could have in his post, or any other. Before you consider his name for a
future Sovereign, you must hear of his corruption. The pig forced himself on
me-raped me. But that is only the beginning of it. It gets worse. For the sake
of our people, you must hear my words."
Fitch
watched as she stood with the soft yellow light from the windows falling across
her pretty face. Dalton Campbell hadn't said she was going to be so pretty. She
was older, of course, and so not someone he ordinarily thought of as pretty. It
surprised him to realize he was thinking of someone so old-she looked almost
thirty-as attractive. He took a slow, silent breath, trying to tighten his
resolve. But he couldn't help staring at what she wore, or more accurately, at
where she wasn't wearing anything.
Fitch
recalled the two women in the stairwell talking about such dresses as the one
Claudine Winthrop wore now. Fitch had never seen so much of a woman's breasts.
The way they heaved as she wrung her hands had his eyes popping.
207
"Won't
you come out?" she asked in a whisper toward the darkness where Morley
waited. "Please? I'm frightened."
Fitch
suddenly realized he was supposed to be doing his part. He sneaked out from
behind the barrels, taking careful steps so she wouldn't hear him coming.
His
stomach felt like it was in a knot. He had to wipe the sweat out of his eyes in
order to see. He tried to breathe calmly, but his heart seemed to have a mind
of its own. He had to do this. But, dear spirits, he was more than afraid.
"Director
Linscott?" she whispered toward Morley.
Fitch
snatched her elbows and wrenched her arms behind her back. She gasped. He was
surprised at how easy it was for him to keep her arms pinned behind her as she
struggled with all her might. She was confused and startled. Morley shot out
from the dark, once he saw that Fitch had her.
Before
she could get much of a scream out, Morley slugged her in the gut as hard as he
could. The powerful blow nearly knocked both her and Fitch from their feet.
Claudine
Winthrop doubled over, vomit spewing all over the dock. Fitch let go of her
arms. She crossed them over her middle as she went to her knees, heaving
violently. Both he and Morley stepped back as it splashed the dock and her
dress, but they weren't about to get more than an arm's length away from her.
After a
few long convulsions, she straightened, seeming to have finished, and tried to
get to her feet as she struggled and gasped for breath. Morley lifted her and
spun her around. With his powerful grip, he locked her arms behind her back.
Fitch
knew this was his chance to prove himself. This was his chance to protect the
Minister. This was his chance to make Dalton Campbell proud.
Fitch
punched her in the stomach as hard as he dared.
He'd
never punched anyone before, except his friends, and that was only in fun.
Never like this, not for real, not deliberately to hurt someone. Her middle was
small, and soft. He could see how much his fist had hurt her.
208
It made
him feel sick. Made him feel like throwing up, too. This was the violent way
his Haken ancestors behaved. This was what was so terrible about them. About
him.
Her
eyes were wide with terror as she tried over and over to suck in a breath, but
couldn't seem to. She fought desperately to get her wind as her eyes fixed on
him, like a hog watching the butcher. Like her Ander ancestors used to watch
his.
"We're
here to give you a message," Fitch said.
They'd
agreed Fitch would do the talking. Morley didn't remember so well what they
were to tell Claudine Winthrop; Fitch had always been better at remembering.
She
finally got her breath back. Fitch hunched forward and landed three blows.
Quick. Hard. Angry.
"Are
you listening?" he growled.
"You
little Haken bastard-"
Fitch
let go with all his strength. The wallop hurt his fist. It staggered even
Morley back a step. She hung forward in Morley's grip as she vomited in dry
heaves. Fitch had wanted to hit her face-punch her in the mouth-but Dalton
Campbell had given them clear instructions to only hit her where it wouldn't
show.
"I'd
not call him that again, were I you." Morley grabbed a fistful of her hair
and savagely yanked her up straight.
Arching
her up so forcefully made her breasts pop out the top of her dress. Fitch
froze. He wondered if he should pull the front of her dress back up for her.
His jaw hung as he stared at her. Morley leaned over her shoulder for a look.
He grinned at Fitch.
She
glanced down to see herself spilled out of her dress. Seeing it, she put her
head back and closed her eyes hi resignation.
"Please,"
she said, panting for breath toward the sky, "don't hurt me anymore?"
"Are
you ready to listen?"
She
nodded. "Yes, sir."
That
surprised Fitch even more than seeing her naked breasts. No one in his whole
life had ever called him "sir."
209
Those
two meek words felt so strange to his ears that he just stood there staring at
her. For a moment, he wondered if she was mocking him. As she looked him in the
eye, her expression told him she wasn't.
The
music was filling him with such feelings as he'd never had before. He'd never
been important before, never been called "sir" before. That morning
he'd been called "Fetch." Now, an Ander women called him
"sir." All thanks to Dalton Campbell.
Fitch
punched her in the gut again. Just because he felt like it.
"Please,
sir!" she cried. "Please, no more! Tell me what you want. I'll do it.
If you wish to have me, I'll submit-just don't hurt me anymore. Please,
sir?"
Although
Fitch's stomach still felt heavy with queasy disgust at what he was doing, he
also felt more important than he'd ever felt before. Her, an Ander woman with
her breasts exposed to him like that, and her calling him "sir."
"Now,
you listen to me you filthy little bitch."
His own
words surprised him as much as they surprised her. Fitch hadn't planned them.
They just came out. He liked \x95 the sound of it, though.
"Yes
sir," she wept, "I will. I'll listen. Whatever you say."
She
looked so pitiful, so helpless. Not ah hour ago, if an Ander woman, even this
Claudine Winthrop, would have told him to get down on his knees and clean the
floor with his tongue, he'd have done it and been trembling at the same time.
He'd never imagined how easy this would be. A few punches, and she was begging
to do as he said. He never imagined how easy it would be to be important, to
have people do as he said.
Fitch
remembered what it was Dalton Campbell told him to say.
"You
were strutting yourself before the Minister, weren't you? You were offering
yourself to him, weren't you?"
He'd
made it clear it wasn't really a question. "Yes, sir."
"If
you ever again think of telling anyone the Minister raped you, you'll be sorry.
Saying such a lie is treason. Got
210
that?
Treason. The penalty for treason is death. When they find your body, no one
will even be able to recognize you. Do you understand, bitch? They'll find your
tongue nailed to a tree.
"It's
a lie that the Minister raped you. A filthy treasonous lie. You ever say such a
thing again, and you'll be made to suffer before you die."
"Yes
sir," she sobbed. "I'll never lie again. I'm sorry. Please, forgive
me? I'll never lie again, I swear."
"You
were putting it out there for the Minister, offering yourself. But the Minister
is a better man than to have an affair with you-or anyone. He turned you down.
He refused you."
"Yes,
sir."
"Nothing
improper happened. Got that? The Minister never did nothing improper with you,
or anyone."
"Yes,
sir." She whined in a long sob, her head hanging.
Fitch
pulled her handkerchief from her sleeve. He dabbed it at her eyes. He could
tell in the dim light that her face paint, what with the throwing up and
crying, was a shambles.
"Stop
crying, now. You're making a mess of your face. You better go back to your room
and fix yourself up before you go back to the feast."
She
sniffled, trying to stop the tears. "I can't go back to the feast, now. My
dress is spoiled. I can't go back."
"You
can, and you will. Fix your face and put on another dress. You're going to go
back. There will be someone watching, to see if you go back, to see if you got
the message. If you ever slip again, you'll be swallowing the steel of his
sword."
Her
eyes widened with fright. "Who-"
"That's
not important. It don't matter none to you. The only thing that matters is that
you got the message and understand what will happen if you ever again tell your
filthy lies."
She
nodded. "I understand."
"Sir,"
Fitch said. Her brow twitched. "I understand, sir!"
211
She
pressed back against Morley. "I understand, sir. Yes, sir, I truly
understand."
"Good,"
Fitch said.
She
glanced down at herself. Her lower lip trembled. Tears ran down her cheeks.
"Please,
sir, may I fix my dress?"
"When
I'm done talking."
"Yes,
sir."
"You've
been out for a walk. You didn't talk to no one. Do you understand? No one. From
now on, you just keep your mouth shut about the Minister, or when you open it
the next time, you'll find a sword going down your throat. Got all that?"
"Yes,
sir."
"All
right, then." Fitch gestured. "Go ahead and pull up your dress."
Morley
leered over her shoulder as she stuffed herself back in the dress. Fitch didn't
think covering herself with the dress, as low as it was, showed much less, but
he surely enjoyed standing there watching her do it. He never thought he'd see
such a thing. Especially an Ander woman doing such a thing.
The way
she straightened with a gasp, Morley must have done something behind her, up
under her dress. Fitch surely wanted to do something, too, but remembered
Dalton Campbell.
Fitch
grabbed Claudine Winthrop's arm and pulled her ahead a couple of steps.
"You be on your way, now."
She
snatched a quick glance at Morley, then looked back at Fitch. "Yes, sir.
Thank you." She dipped a hasty curtsy. "Thank you, sir."
Without
further word, she clutched her skirts in her fists, rushed down the steps, and
ran off across the lawn into the night.
"Why'd
you send her off?" Morley asked. He put a hand on his hip. "We could
have had a time with her. She'd of had to do anything we wanted. And after a
look at what she had, I wanted."
212
Fitch
leaned toward his disgruntled friend. "Because Master Campbell never told
us we could do anything like that, that's why. We was helping Master Campbell,
that's all. No more."
Morley
made a sour face. "I guess." He looked off toward the woodpile.
"We still got a lot of drinking to do."
Fitch
thought about the look of fear on Claudine Winthrop's face. He thought about
her crying and sobbing. He knew Haken women cried, of course, but Fitch had
never before even imagined an Ander woman crying. He didn't know why not, but
he never had.
The
Minister was Ander, so Fitch guessed he couldn't really do wrong. She must have
asked for it with her low-cut dress and the way she acted toward him. Fitch had
seen the way a lot of women acted toward him. Like they would rejoice if he had
them.
He
remembered Beata sitting on the floor crying. He thought about the look of
misery on Beata's face, up there, when the Minister threw her out after he'd
finished with her.
Fitch
thought about the way she'd clouted him.
It was
all too much for him to figure out. Fitch wanted nothing more right then than
to drink himself into a stupor.
"You're
right. Let's go have ourselves a drink. We've a lot to celebrate. Tonight, we
became important men."
With an
arm over each other's shoulders, they headed for their bottle.
213
C H A P
T E R\xA0\xA0 2 0
"WELL,
ISN'T THAT SOMETHING," Teresa whispered.
Dalton
followed her gaze to see Claudine Winthrop haltingly work her way among the
roomful of milling people. She was wearing a dress he had seen before when he
worked in the city, an older dress of modest design. It was not the dress she
had worn earlier in the evening. He suspected that beneath the mask of rosy
powder, her face was ashen. Mistrust would now color her vision.
People
from the city of Fairfield, their eyes filled with wonder, gazed at their
surroundings, trying to drink it all in so they might tell their friends every
detail of their grand evening at the Minister of Culture's estate. It was a
high honor to be invited to the estate, and they wished to overlook no detail.
Details were important when vaunting one's self.
Patches
of intricate marquetry flooring showed between each of the richly colored rare
carpets placed at even intervals the length of the room. There was no missing
the luxuriously thick feel underfoot. Dalton guessed that thousands of yards of
the finest material had to have gone into the draperies swagged before the file
of tall windows on each side of the room, all constructed with complex
ornamental tracery to hold colored glass. Here and there a woman
214
would,
between thumb and finger, test the cloth's high-count weave. The edges of the
azure and golden-wheat-colored fabric were embellished with multicolored
tassels as big as his fist. Men marveled at the fluted stone columns rising to
hold the massive, cut-stone corbel along the length of the side walls at the
base of the gathering hall's barrel ceiling. A panoply of curved mahogany
frames and panels, looking like the ends of elaborately cut voussoirs,
overspread the arched barrel ceiling.
Dalton
lifted his pewter cup to his lips and took a sip of the finest Nareef Valley
wine as he watched. At night, with all the candles and lamps lit, the place had
a glow about it. It had taken discipline, when he first arrived, not to gape as
did these people come out from the city.
He
watched Claudine Winthrop move among the well-dressed guests, clasping a hand
here, touching an elbow there, greeting people, smiling woodenly, answering
questions with words Dalton couldn't hear. As distressed as he knew she had to
be, she had the resourcefulness to conduct herself with propriety. The wife of
a wealthy businessman who had been elected burgess by merchants and grain
dealers to represent them, she was not an unimportant member of the household
in her own right. When at first people saw that her husband was old enough to
be her grandfather, they usually expected she was no more than his
entertainment; they were wrong.
Her
husband, Edwin Winthrop, had started out as a farmer, raising sorgo-sweet
sorghum grown widely in southern Anderith. Every penny he earned through the
sale of the sorghum molasses he pressed was spent frugally and wisely. He went
without, putting in abeyance everything from proper shelter and clothes, to the
simple comforts of life, to a wife and family.
What
money he saved eventually purchased livestock he foraged on sorghum left from
pressing his molasses. Sale of fattened livestock bought more feeder stock, and
equipment for stills so he could produce .rum himself, rather than sell his
molasses to distilleries. Profits from the rum he distilled
215
from
his molasses earned him enough to rent more farmland and purchase cattle,
equipment and buildings for producing more rum, and eventually warehouses and
wagons for transporting the goods he produced. Rum distilled by the Winthrop
farms was sold from Kenwold to Nicobarese, from just down the road in Fairfield
all the way to Aydindril. By doing everything himself-or, more accurately,
having his own hired workers do everything-from growing sorgo to pressing it to
distilling it to delivering the rum, to raising, cattle on the fodder of his
leftover stocks of pressed sorghum to slaughtering the cattle and delivering the
carcasses to butchers, Edwin Winthrop kept his costs low and made for himself a
fortune.
Edwin
Winthrop was a frugal man, honest, and well liked. Only after he was successful
had he taken a wife. Claudine, the well-educated daughter of a grain dealer,
had been in her mid-teens when she wed Edwin, well over a decade before.
Talented
at overseeing her husband's accounts and records, Claudine watched every penny
as carefully as would her husband. She was his valuable right hand-much as
Dalton served the Minister. With her help, his personal empire had doubled.
Even in marriage, Edwin had chosen carefully and wisely. A man who never seemed
to seek personal pleasure perhaps had at last allowed himself this much;
Claudine was as attractive as she was diligent.
After
Edwin's fellow merchants had elected him burgess, Claudine became useful to him
in legal matters, helping, behind the scenes, to write the trade laws he
proposed. Dalton suspected she had a great deal to do with proposing them to
her husband in the first place. When he was not available, Claudine discreetly
argued those proposed laws on his behalf. No one in the household thought of
her as "entertainment."
Except,
perhaps, Bertrand Chanboor. But then, he viewed all women in that light. The
attractive ones, anyway.
Dalton
had in the past seen Claudine blushing, batting her eyelashes, and flashing
Bertrand Chanboor her shy smile.
216
The
Minister believed demure women coquettish. Perhaps she innocently flirted with
an important man, or perhaps she had wanted attention her husband couldn't
provide; she hadn't, after all, any children. Perhaps she had cunningly thought
to gain some favor from the Minister, and afterward discovered it wasn't to be
forthcoming.
Claudine
Winthrop was nobody's fool; she was intelligent and resourceful. How it had
started-Dalton was not sure, Bertrand Chanboor denied touching her as he denied
everything out of hand-had become irrelevant. With her seeking secret meetings
with Director Linscott, matters had moved past polite negotiation of favors.
Brute force was the only safe way to control her now.
Dalton
gestured with his cup of wine toward Claudine. "Looks like you were wrong,
Tess. Not everyone is going along with the fashion of wearing suggestive dresses.
Or maybe Claudine is modest."
"No,
it must be something else." Teresa looked truly puzzled. "Sweetheart,
I don't think she was wearing that dress earlier. But why would she now be
wearing something different? And an old dress it is."
Dalton
shrugged. "Let's go find out, shall we? You do the asking. I don't think
it would be right coming from me."
Teresa
looked askance at him. She knew him well enough to know by his subtle reply
that a scheme was afoot. She also knew enough to take his lead and play the
part he had just assigned her. She smiled and hooked a hand over his offered
arm. Claudine was not the only intelligent and resourceful woman in the
household.
Claudine
flinched when Teresa touched the back of her shoulder. She twitched a smile as
she glanced up briefly.
"Good
evening, Teresa." She dropped a half-curtsy to Dalton. "Mr.
Campbell."
Teresa,
concern creasing her brow, leaned toward the woman. "Claudine, what's
wrong? You don't look well. And your dress, why, I don't recall you coming in
wearing this."
Claudine
pulled at a lock of hair over her ear. "I'm fine.
217
I...
was just nervous about all the guests. Sometimes crowds get my stomach worked
up. I went for a walk to get some air. In the dark, I guess I put my foot in a
hole, or something. I fell."
"Dear
spirits. Would you" like to sit?" Dalton asked as he took the woman's
elbow, as if to hold her up. "Here, let me help you to a chair."
She dug
in her heels. "No. I'm fine. But thank you. I soiled my dress, and had to
go change, that's all. That's why it's not the same one. But I'm fine."
She
glanced at his sword as he pulled back. He had seen her looking at a lot of
swords since she returned to the gathering hall.
"You
look as if something is-"
"No,"
she insisted. "I hit my head, that's why I look so shaken. I'm fine.
Really. It simply shook my confidence."
"I
understand," Dalton said sympathetically. "Things like that make one
realize how short life can be. Make you realize how"-he snapped his fingers-"you
could go at any time."
Her lip
trembled. She had to swallow before she could speak. "Yes. I see what you
mean. But I feel much better, now. My balance is back."
"Is
it now? I'm not so sure."
Teresa
pushed at him. "Dalton, can't you see the poor woman is shaken?" She
gave him another push. "Go on and talk your business while I see to poor
Claudine."
Dalton
bowed and moved off to allow Teresa some privacy to find out what she would. He
was pleased with the two Haken boys. It looked as if they had put the fear of
the Keeper into her. By the unsteady way she walked, they had obviously
delivered the message in the way he had wanted it delivered. Violence always
helped people understand instructions.
He was
gratified to know he had judged Fitch correctly. The way the boy stared at
Dalton's sword, he knew. Claudine's eyes reflected fear when she looked at his
sword; Fitch's eyes held lust. The boy had ambition. Morley was
218
useful,
too, but mostly as muscle. His head, too, was not much more than muscle. Fitch
understood instructions better and, as eager as he was, would be of more use.
At that age they had no clue how much they didn't know.
Dalton
shook hands with a man who rushed up to pay him a compliment about his new
position. He presented a civil face, but didn't remember the man's name, or
really hear the effusive praise; Dalton's attention was elsewhere.
Director
Linscott was just finishing speaking with a stocky man about taxes on the wheat
stored in the man's warehouses. No trifling matter, considering the vast stores
of grain Anderith held. Dalton politely, distantly, extracted himself from the
nameless man and sidled closer to Linscott.
When
the Director turned, Dalton smiled warmly at him and clasped his hand before he
had a chance to withdraw it. He had a powerful grip. His hands still bore the
calluses of his life's work.
"I
am so glad you could make it to the feast, Director Linscott. I pray you are
enjoying the evening, so far. We yet have much the Minister would like to
discuss."
Director
Linscott, a tall wiry fellow with a sun-rumpled face invariably looking as if
he were plagued by an everlasting toothache, didn't return the smile. The four
oldest Directors were guild masters. One was from the important clothmaking
guild, one from the associated papermaking guild, another a master armorer, and
Linscott. Linscott was a master mason. Most of the remaining Directors were
respected moneylenders or merchants, along with a solicitor and several
barristers.
Director
Linscott's surcoat was an outdated cut, but finely kept nonetheless, and the
warm brown went well with the man's thin gray hair. His sword, too, was old,
but the leather scabbard's exquisite brassware at the throat and tip was in
gleaming condition. The silver emblem-the mason's dividers-stood out hi bright
silhouette against the dark leather. The sword's blade, undoubtedly, would be
just as well maintained as everything else about the man.
Linscott
didn't deliberately try to intimidate people, it just
219
seemed
to come naturally to him, the way a surly disposition came naturally to a
mother brown bear with cubs. Linscott considered the Anderith people, those
working fields, or hauling nets, or at employment in a trade through a
guildhall, his cubs.
"Yes,"
Linscott said, "I hear rumors the Minister has grand plans. I hear he has
thoughts of disregarding the strong advice of the Mother Confessor, and
breaking with the Midlands."
Dalton
spread his hands. "I'm sure I don't speak out of turn when I tell you from
my knowledge of the situation that Minister Chanboor intends to seek the best
terms for our people. Nothing more, nothing less.
"You,
for instance. What if we were to surrender to the new Lord Rahl and join the
D'Haran Empire? This Lord Rahl has decreed all lands must surrender their
sovereignty-unlike our alliance with the Midlands. That would mean, I suppose,
he would no longer have need for Directors of Cultural Amity."
Linscott's
tanned face turned ruddy with heat. "This isn't about me, Campbell. It's
about the freedom of the people of the Midlands. About their future. About not
being swallowed up and having our land brutalized by a rampaging Imperial Order
army bent on the conquest of the Midlands. "The Anderith ambassador has
relayed Lord Rahl's word that while all lands must surrender to him and be
brought under one rule and one command, each land will be allowed to retain its
culture, so long as we do not break laws common to all. He has promised that if
we accept his entreaty while the invitation is still open to all, we will be
party to creating those common laws. The Mother Confessor has put her word to
his."
Dalton
respectfully bowed his head to the man. "You misunderstand Minister
Chanboor's position, I'm afraid. He will propose to the Sovereign we go with
the Mother Confessor's advice, if he sincerely believes it to be in the best
interest of our people. Our very culture is at stake, after all. He has' no
wish to choose sides prematurely. The Imperial Order
220
may
offer our best prospects for peace. The Minister wants only peace."
The
Director's dark scowl seemed to chill the air. "Slaves have peace."
Dalton
affected an innocent, helpless look. "I am no match for your quick wit,
Director."
"You
seem ready to sell your own culture, Campbell, for the empty promises of an
invading horde obsessed with conquest. Ask yourself, why else have they come,
uninvited? How can you so smoothly proclaim you are considering thrusting a
knife into the heart of the Midlands? What kind of man are you, Campbell, after
all they have done for us, to turn your back on the advice and urging of our
Mother Confessor?"
"Director,
I think you-"
Linscott
shook his fist. "Our ancestors who fought so futilely against the Haken horde
no doubt shiver in their eternal rest to hear you so smoothly consider
bargaining away their sacrifice and our heritage."
Dalton
paused, letting Linscott hear his own words fill the silence and echo between
the two of them. It was for this harvest Dalton had sowed his seeds of words.
"I
know you are sincere, Director, in your fierce love of our people, and in your
unflinching desire to protect them. I am sorry you find my wish for the same
insincere." Dalton bowed politely. "I pray you enjoy the rest of the
evening."
To
graciously accept such an insult was the pinnacle of courtesy. But more than
that, it revealed the one who would inflict such wounds as beneath the ancient
ideals of Ander honor.
Only
Hakens were said to be so cruelly demeaning to Anders.
With
the utmost respect for the one who had insulted him, Dalton turned away as if
he had been asked to leave, as if he had been driven off. As if he had been
humiliated by a Haken overlord.
The
Director called his name. Dalton paused and looked back over a shoulder.
221
Director
Linscott screwed up his mouth, as if loosening it to test rarely used courtesy.
"You know, Dalton, I remember you when you were with the magistrate in
Fairfield. I always believed you were a moral man. I don't now believe
differently."
Dalton
cautiously turned around, presenting himself, as if he were prepared to accept
another insult should the man wish to deliver one.
"Thank
you, Director Linscott. Coming from a man as respected as you, that is quite
gratifying."
Linscott
gestured in a casual manner, as if still brushing at cobwebs in dark corners in
his search for polite words. "So, I'm at a loss to understand how a moral
man could allow his wife to parade around showing off her teats like
that."
Dalton
smiled; the tone, if not the words themselves, had been conciliatory. Casually,
as he stepped closer, he caught a full cup of wine from a passing tray and
offered it to the Director. Linscott took the cup with a nod.
Dalton
dropped his official tone and spoke as if he had been boyhood chums with the
man. "Actually, I couldn't agree more. In fact, my wife and I had an
argument about it before we came down tonight. She insisted the dress was the
fashion. I put my foot down, as the man of the marriage, and unconditionally
forbade her from wearing the dress."
"Then
why is she wearing it?"
Dalton
sighed wearily. "Because I don't cheat on her."
Linscott
cocked his head. "While I am glad to hear you don't ascribe to the seeming
new moral attitudes where indulgences are concerned, what has that to do with
the price of wheat in Kelton?"
Dalton
took a sip of his wine. Linscott followed his lead.
"Well,
since I don't cheat on her, I'd have no play in bed if I won every
argument."
For the
first time, the Director's face took on a small smile. "I see what you
mean."
"The
younger women around here dress in an appalling
222
fashion.
I was shocked when I came here to work. My wife is younger, though, and wishes
to fit in with them, to have friends. She fears being shunned by the other
women of the household.
"I
have spoken with the Minister about it, and he agrees the women should not
flaunt themselves in such a manner, but our culture grants to women prerogative
over their own dress. The Minister and I believe that, together, we might think
of a way to influence fashion to the better."
Linscott
nodded approvingly. "Well, I've a wife, too, and I don't cheat, either. I
am glad to hear you are one of the few today who adheres to the old ideals that
an oath is sacred, and commitment to your mate is sacrosanct. Good man."
Anderith
culture revolved a great deal around honor and word given in solemn oath-about
holding to your pledge. But Anderith was changing. It was a matter of great concern
to many that moral bounds had, over the last few decades, fallen to scorn by
many. Debauchery was not only accepted, but expected, among the fashionable
elite.
Dalton
glanced over at Teresa, back at the Director, and to Teresa again. He held out a
hand.
"Director,
could I introduce you to my lovely wife? Please? I would consider it a personal
favor if you lent your considerable influence to the issue of decency. You are
a greatly respected man, and could speak with moral authority I could never
begin to command. She thinks I speak only as a jealous husband."
Linscott
considered only briefly. "I would, if it would please you."
Teresa
was encouraging Claudine to drink some wine and was offering comforting words
as Dalton shepherded the Director up beside the two women.
"Teresa,
Claudine, may I introduce Director Linscott."
Teresa
smiled into his eyes as he lightly kissed her hand. Claudine stared at the
floor as the procedure was repeated on her hand. She looked as if she wanted
nothing more than
223
to
either jump into the man's arms for protection or run away as fast as she
could. Dalton's reassuring hand on her shoulder prevented either.
"Teresa,
darling, the Director and I were just discussing the issue of the women's
dresses and fashion versus decorum."
Teresa
canted a shoulder toward the Director, as if taking him into her confidence.
"My husband is so stuffy about what I wear. And what do you think,
Director Linscott? Do you approve of my dress?" Teresa beamed proudly. "Do
you like it?"
Linscott
glanced down from Teresa's eyes only briefly. "Quite lovely, my dear.
Quite lovely."
"You
see, Dalton? I told you. My dress is much more conservative than the others.
I'm delighted one so widely respected as yourself approves, Director
Linscott."
While
Teresa turned to a passing cupbearer for a refill, Dalton gave Linscott a
why-didn't-you-help-me? look. Linscott shrugged and bent to Dalton's ear.
"Your
wife is a lovely, endearing woman," he whispered. "I couldn't very
well humiliate and disappoint her."
Dalton
made a show of sighing. "My problem, exactly." Linscott straightened,
smiling all the way. "Director," Dalton said, more seriously,
"Claudine, here, had a terrible accident earlier. While taking a walk
outside she caught her foot and took a nasty tumble."
"Dear
spirits." Linscott took up her hand. "Are you badly hurt, my
dear?"
"It
was nothing," Claudine mumbled. "I've known Edwin a good many years.
I'm sure your husband would be understanding if I helped you to your rooms.
Here, take my arm, and I will see you safely to your bed."
As he
took a sip, Dalton watched over the top of his cup. Her eyes swept the room.
Those eyes held a world of longing to accept his offer. She might be safe if
she did. He was a powerful man, and would have her under his wing. This test
would tell Dalton what he needed to know. It
224
wasn't
really a huge risk to play out such an experiment. People did disappear, after
all, without ever being found. Still, there were risks in it. He waited for
Claudine to tell him which way it would go. At last, she did.
"Thank
you for your concern, Director Linscott, but I'm fine. I have so looked forward
to the feast, and seeing the guests come to the estate. I would forever regret
missing it, and seeing our Minister of Culture speak."
Linscott
took a sip of wine. "You and Edwin have labored vigorously on new laws
since he was elected burgess. You have worked with the Minister. What think you
of the man?" He gestured with his cup for emphasis. "Your honest
opinion, now."
Claudine
took a gulp of wine. She had to catch her breath. She stared at nothing as she
spoke.
"Minister
Chanboor is a man of honor. His policies have been good for Anderith. He has
been respectful of the laws Edwin has proposed." She took another gulp of
wine. "We are fortunate to have Bertrand Chanboor as the Minister of
Culture. I have a hard time imagining another man who could do everything he
does."
Linscott
lifted an eyebrow. "Quite a ringing endorsement, from a woman of your
renown. We all know that you, Claudine, are as important to those laws as
Edwin." , "You are too kind," she mumbled, staring into her cup.
"I am just the wife of an important man. I would be little missed and
quickly forgotten were I to have broken my neck out there tonight. Edwin will
be honored long and well."
Linscott
puzzled at the top of her head.
"Claudine
thinks far too little of herself," Dalton said. He caught sight of the
seneschal, impeccably dressed in a long-tailed red coat crossed with a sash of
many colors, opening the double doors. Beyond the doors, the lavers, with rose
petals floating in them, awaited the guests.
Dalton
turned to the Director. "I suppose you know who will be the guest of honor
tonight?"
Linscott
frowned. "Guest of honor?"
"A
representative from the Imperial Order.\xA0
A high-
225
ranking
man by the name of Stein. Come to tell us Emperor Jagang's words." Dalton
took another sip. "The Sovereign has come, too, to hear those words."
Linscott
sighed with the weight of this news. Now the man knew why he had been summoned,
along with the other Directors, to what they had thought was no more than an
ordinary feast at the estate. The Sovereign, for his own safety, rarely
announced his appearances in advance. He had arrived with his own special
guards and a large contingent of servants.
Teresa's
face glowed as she smiled up at Dalton, eager for the evening's events.
Claudine stared at the floor.
"Ladies
and gentleman," the seneschal announced, "if it would please you,
dinner is served."
CHAPTER
21
SHE
SPREAD HER WINGS, and her rich voice sang out with the somber strains of a tale
more ancient than myth.
Came
the visions of icy beauty,
from
the land of death where they dwell.
Pursuing
their prize and grisly duty,
came
the thieves of the charm and spell.
The
bells chimed thrice, and death came a-calling.
226
Alluring
of shape though seldom seen,
they
traveled the breeze on a spark.
Some
fed twigs to their newborn queen,
while
others invaded the dark.
The
bells chimed thrice, and death came a-calling.
Some
they called and others they kissed
as they
traveled on river and wave.
With
resolve they came and did insist:
every
one touched to a grave.
The
bells chimed thrice, and death came a-calling.
Roving
to hunt and gathering to dance,
they
practiced their dark desires
by
casting a hex and a beautiful trance,
before
feeding the queen's new fires.
The
bells chimed thrice, and death came a-calling.
Till he
parted the falls and the bells chimed thrice, till he issued the calls and
demanded the price, the bells chimed thrice and death met the Mountain.
They
charmed and embraced
and
they tried to extoll
but he
bade them in grace
and
demanded a soul.
The
bells fell silent and the Mountain slew them
all.
And the Mountain entombed them all.
With an
impossibly long note, the young woman concluded her bewitching song. The guests
broke into applause.
It was
an archaic lyric of Joseph Ander and for that reason alone was cherished.
Dalton had once leafed through old
227
texts
to see what he could learn of the song's meaning, but found nothing to shed
light on the intent of the words, which, there being a number of versions,
weren't always the same. It was one of those songs which no one really
understood but everyone treasured because it was obviously a triumph of some
sort for one of their land's beloved venerable founders. For the sake of
tradition the haunting melody was sung on special occasions.
For
some reason, Dalton had the odd feeling that the words now meant more to him
than ever before. They seemed somehow nearly to make sense. As quickly as the
sensation came, his mind was on to other things and the feeling passed.
The
woman's long sleeves skimmed the floor as she held her arms wide while bowing
to the Sovereign, and then once again to the applauding people at the head
table beside the Sovereign's table. A baldachin of silk and gold brocade ran up
the wall behind and then in billowing folds out over the two head tables. The
baldachin's corners were held up with outsized Anderith lances. The effect was
to make the head tables appear as if they were on a stage-which, in many ways,
Dalton supposed they were.
The
songstress bowed to the diners at the long rows of tables running down each
side of the dining hall. Her sleeves were overlaid with spotted white owl
feathers, so that when she spread her arms in song she appeared to be a winged
woman, like something out of the ancient stories she sang.
Stein,
on the other side of the applauding Minister and his wife, applauded
apathetically, no doubt envisioning the young woman without her feathers. On
Dalton's right, Teresa added enthusiastic calls of admiration to her clapping.
Dalton stifled a yawn as he applauded.
As the
songstress strode away, her arms lifted to wave in winged acknowledgment of the
whistles trailing after her. , After she'd vanished, four squires entered from
the opposite side of the room carrying a platform atop which sat a marzipan
ship floating in a sea of marzipan waves. The ship's billowing sails looked to
be made of spun sugar,
228
The
purpose, of course, was to announce that the next course would be fish, just as
the pastry deer, pursued by pastry hounds leaping a hedge of holly in which hid
aspic boar, had announced one of the meat courses, and the stuffed eagle with
its huge wings spread over a scene of the capital city of Fairfield made of
paper board buildings had announced a course of fowl. Up in the gallery, a
fanfare trumpeted and drums rolled to add a musical testament to the arrival of
the next course.
There
had been five courses, each with at least a dozen specialties. That meant there
were seven courses yet to come, each with at least a dozen distinctive dishes
of its own. Music from flute and fife and drum, jugglers, troubadours, and
acrobats entertained the guests between courses as a tree with candied fruits
toured the tables. Gifts of mechanical horses with opposing legs that moved in
unison were passed out to the delight of all.
Meat
dishes had included everything from Teresa's all-time favorite of suckers-she
had eaten three of the infant rabbits-to fawn, to pig, to cow, to a bear
standing on its hind legs. The bear was wheeled from table to table; at each
table its hide, draped around the roasted carcass, was pulled back to allow
carvers to slice off pieces for the guests. Fowl ranged from the sparrows the
Minister favored for their stimulation of lust, to pigeons, to swan's neck
pudding, to eagles, to baked heron that had been re-feathered and held by wires
in a display depicting them as a flock in flight.
It was
not expected that everyone would eat such a plenitude of food; the variety was
meant to offer an abundance of choice, not only to please honored guests, but
to astonish them with opulence. A visit to the Minister of Culture's estate was
an occasion long remembered, and for many became a legendary event talked about
for years.
As they
sampled the dishes, most people kept an eye to the head table, where the
Minister sat with two wealthy backers he had invited to dine at his table, and
the other object of great interest: the representative from the Imperial Order.
Stein had arrived earlier, to the whispered oohing and
229
aahing
of all at his man-of-war outfit and cape of human scalps. He was a sensation,
drawing the inviting looks of a number of women weak in the knees at the
prospect of winning such a man to their bed.
In
vivid outward contrast to the warrior from the Old World, Bertrand Chanboor
wore a close-fitting, sleeveless, padded purple doublet embellished with
elaborate embroidery, gold trim, and silver braiding over a simple sleeved
short jacket. Together, they gave his soft rounded shape the illusion of a more
manly frame. A frill of white stood above the doublet's low, erect collar. A
similar ruff stood out at wrists and waist.
Slung
over the shoulders of the doublet and short jacket was a magnificent dress coat
of a deeper purple with fur trim running around the collar and all the way down
the front. Below the padded rolls standing at the ends of the shoulders, the
baggy sleeves had slashes lined with red silk. Between the spiral slashes,
galloon braiding separated rows of pearls.
With
his intent eyes, his easy smile-which, along with those eyes, always seemed
directed at no other than the person with whom he had eye contact at the
moment-and his shock of thick, graying hair, he struck an impressive figure.
That, and Bertrand Chanboor's presence, or rather the presence of the power he
wielded as the Minister of Culture, left many a man in awed admiration and many
a woman in breathless yearning.
If not
watching the Minister's table, guests cast stealthy glances at the table beside
it, where sat the Sovereign, his wife, and their three grown sons and two grown
daughters. No one wanted to stare openly at the Sovereign. The Sovereign was,
after all, the Creator's deputy in the world of life-a holy religious leader as
well as the ruler of their land. Many in Anderith, Anders and Haken alike,
idolized the Sovereign to the point of falling to the ground, wailing, and
confessing sins when his carriage passed.
The
Sovereign, alert and perceptive despite deteriorating health, was dressed in a
glittering golden garment. A red
230
vest
emphasized the outfit's bulbous sleeves. A long, richly colored, embroidered
silk stole was draped over his shoulders. Bright yellow stockings laced at
midthigh to the bottom of teardrop-shaped puffed and padded breeches with
colored slashes. Jewels weighed each finger. The Sovereign's head hovered low
between his rounded shoulders, as if the gold medallion displaying a
diamond-encrusted mountain had, over time, weighed so heavily on his neck that
it bowed his back. Liver spots as large as the jewels mottled his hands.
The
Sovereign had outlived four wives. With loving care, the man's latest wife
dabbed at the food on his chin. Dalton doubted she was yet out of her teens.
Thankfully,
even though the sons and daughters brought their spouses, they had left their
children home; the Sovereign's grandchildren were insufferable brats. No one
dared do anything more than chuckle approvingly at the little darlings as they
rampaged unchecked. Several of them were considerably older than their latest
stepgrandmother.
On the
other side of the Minister from Dalton, Lady Hildemara Chanboor, in an elegant
silvery pleated gown cut as low as any in the room, gestured with one finger,
and the harpist, stationed before but below the head table's raised platform,
gently trailed her soft music to silence. The Minister's wife directed the
feast.
It
actually needed no directing from her, but she insisted she be acknowledged as
the regal hostess of the majestic and stately event, and therefore from time to
time contributed to the proceedings by lifting her finger to silence the
harpist at the appropriate time so that all might know and respect her social
position. People were spellbound, believing the entire feast turned on Lady
Chanboor's finger.
The
harpist certainly knew when she was to let her music end for an impending
slated event, but nonetheless waited and watched for that noble finger before
daring to still her own. Sweat dotted her brow as she watched for Lady
Chanboor's finger to rise, daring not to miss it.
Though
universally proclaimed radiant and beautiful, Hil-
231
demara
was rather thick of limb and feature, and had always put Dalton in mind of a
sculpture of a woman chiseled by an artisan of greater ardor than talent. It
was not a piece of work one wished to consider for long stretches.
The
harpist took the chance of the break to reach for a cup on the floor beside her
golden harp. As she bent forward for the cup, the Minister ogled her cleavage,
at the same time giving Dalton an elbow in the ribs lest he miss the sight.
Lady
Chanboor noticed her husband's roving eye, but showed no reaction. She never
did. She relished the power she wielded, and willingly paid the requisite price.
In
private, though, Hildemara occasionally clouted Bertrand with any handy object,
more likely for a social slight to her than a marital indiscretion. She had no
real cause to raise objections to his philandering; she was not exactly
faithful, enjoying at times the discreet company of lovers. Dalton kept a
mental list of their names.
Dalton
suspected that, like many of her husband's dalliances, her partners were
attracted to her power, and hoped they might earn a favor. Most people had no
clue as to what went on at the estate, and could imagine her as nothing other
than a faithful loving wife, an image she cultivated with care. The Anderith
people loved her as the people of other lands loved a queen.
In many
ways, she was the power behind the office of Minister; she was adept,
knowledgeable, focused. While Bertrand was often at play, Hildemara, behind
closed doors, issued orders.' He relied on his wife's expertise, often
deferring to her in material matters, disinterested in what patronage she doled
out to miscreants, or the cultural carnage she left in her wake.
No
matter what she might think of her husband in private, Hildemara worked
zealously to preserve his dominion. If he fell, she would surely crash down
with him. Unlike her husband, Hildemara was rarely drunk and discreetly
confined whatever couplings she had to the middle of the night
232
Dalton
knew better than to underestimate her. She tended cobwebs of her own.
The
company gasped with delighted surprise when a "sailor" sprang from
behind the marzipan ship, piping a merry fisher's tune on his fife while
accompanying himself on a tabor hung from his belt. Teresa giggled and clapped,
as did many others.
She
squeezed her husband's leg under the table. "Oh, Dalton, did you ever
think we would live at such a splendid place, come to know such splendid
people, and see such splendid things?"
"Of
course."
She
giggled again and gently bumped his shoulder with hers. Dalton watched Claudine
applaud from a table to the right. To his left Stein stabbed-a chunk of meat
and with shameless manners pulled it from the knife with his teeth. He chewed
with his mouth open as he viewed the entertainment. This didn't look to be the
sort of entertainment Stein favored.
Servers
had already begun carrying in silver chargers of the fish course, taking them
to the dresser table for saucing and dressing before service. The Sovereign had
his own servants at a sideboard to taste and prepare his food. They used knives
they had brought with them to slice off for the Sovereign and his family the
choice upper crust of rolls and breads. They had other knives just to prepare
the trenchers upon which the Sovereign's food was placed, which, unlike
everyone else's plates, were changed after each course. They had one knife to
slice, one to trim, and one just to smooth the trenchers.
The
Minister leaned close, his fingers holding a slice of pork he had dipped in
mustard. "I heard a rumor that there is a woman who might be inclined to
spread unpleasant lies. Perhaps you should inquire after the matter."
From
the platter he shared with Teresa, Dalton plucked up with his second finger and
thumb a slice of pear in almond milk. "Yes, Minister, I already have. She
intends no
233
disrespect."
He popped the pear in his mouth.
The
Minister lifted an eyebrow. "Well and good, then."
He
grinned and winked past Dalton. Smiling, Teresa bowed her head in
acknowledgment of his greeting.
"Ah,
my dear Teresa, have I yet told you that you look especially divine this
evening. And your hair is wondrous- it makes you look as if you are a good
spirit come to grace my table. If you weren't married to my right-hand man, I'd
invite you to a dance, later."
The
Minister rarely danced with anyone but his wife and, as a matter of protocol,
visiting dignitaries.
"Minister,
I would be honored," Teresa said, stumbling over the words, "as would
my husband-I'm sure. I could be in no better hands on the dance floor-or
anywhere."
Despite
Teresa's usual ability to maintain a state of social equanimity, she blushed at
the high honor Bertrand had almost extended. She fussed with the glittering
sequins tied in her hair, aware of envious eyes watching her speak with the
Minister of Culture himself.
Dalton
knew by the scowl behind the Minister that there was no need to fret that such
a dance-with the man doubtlessly pressing up against Teresa's half-exposed
bosom- would take place. Lady Chanboor would not have Bertrand formally showing
such a lack of complete devotion to her.
Dalton
returned to business, steering the conversation in the direction of his
intentions. "One of the officials from the city is very concerned about
the situation we spoke of."
"What
did he say?" Bertrand knew which Director they were discussing and wisely
refrained from using names aloud, but his eyes flashed anger.
"Nothing,"
Dalton assured him. "But the man is persistent. He might inquire after
matters-press for explanations. There are those who conspire against us, and
would be eager to stir the cry of impropriety. It would be a bothersome waste
of time and take us away from our duty to the Anderith people, were we forced
to acquit ourselves of groundless accusations of misconduct."
"The
whole idea is absurd," the Minister said, as he fol-
234
lowed
in the form of their cover conversation. "You don't really believe, do
you, that people really plot to oppose our good works?"
His
words sounded by rote, he used them so often. Simple prudence required that
public discussion be circumspect. There might be gifted people slipped in among
the guests, hoping to use their skill to overhear something not meant to be
heard.
Dalton
himself employed a gifted woman with such talent.
"We
devote our lives to doing the work of the Anderith people," Dalton said,
"and yet there are those greedy few who would wish to stall the progress
we make on behalf of the working people."
From
the trencher he shared with his wife, Bertrand picked up a roasted swan wing
and dragged it through a small bowl of frumenty sauce. "You think
fomenters might be intending to cause trouble, then?"
Lady
Chanboor, closely following the conversation, leaned close to her husband.
"Agitators would jump at the chance to destroy Bertrand's good work. They
would willingly aid any troublemaker." She glanced pointedly to the
Sovereign being fed from the fingers of his young wife. "We have important
work before us and don't need antagonists meddling in our efforts."
Bertrand
Chanboor was the most likely candidate to be named Sovereign, but there were
those who opposed him. Once named, a Sovereign served for life. Any slip at
such a critical time could remove the Minister from consideration. There were
any number of people wishing he would make such a slip, and they would be watching
and listening for it.
After
Bertrand Chanboor was named Sovereign, they would be free of worry, but until
then, nothing was certain or safe.
Dalton
bowed his head in acknowledgment. "You see the situation well, Lady
Chanboor."
235
Bertrand
let out a little grunt. "I take it you have a suggestion."
"I
do," Dalton said, lowering his voice to little more than a whisper. It was
impolite to be seen whispering, but it was unavoidable; he needed to act, and
whispers would not be heard. "I think it would be best if we upset the
balance of things. What I have in mind will not only pull the weed from the
wheat, but it will discourage other weeds from springing up."
Keeping
an eye to the Sovereign's table, Dalton explained his proposal. Lady Chanboor
straightened with a sly smile; Dalton's advice pleased her disposition. Without
emotion, Bertrand, as he watched Claudine picking at her food, agreed.
Stein
dragged his knife blade across the table, making a show of slicing through the
fine white linen overcloth.
"Why
don't I just slit their throats."
The
Minister glanced about, checking to see if he could tell if anyone had
overheard Stein's offer. Hildemara's face flushed with anger. Teresa's went
white to hear such talk, especially from a man who wore a cape of human scalps.
Stein
had been warned before. If overheard and reported, such words could open the
floodgates of investigation, which would undoubtedly bring the Mother Confessor
herself down on them. She would not rest until she discovered the truth of it,
and if that happened, she very well might be inclined to use her magic to
remove the Minister from office. For good.
With a
deadly look, Dalton delivered a silent threat to Stein. Stein grinned out
through yellow teeth. "Just a friendly joke."
"I
don't care how large the Imperial Order's force is," the Minister growled
for the ears of any who might have heard Stein. "Unless they are invited
through--which is yet to be decided-they will all perish before the Dominie
Dirtch. The emperor knows the truth of it, or he wouldn't ask us to consider
the generous offers of peace he has made. I am sure he would be displeased to
know how one of his men
236
insults
our culture and the laws by which we live.
"You
are here as a delegate from Emperor Jagang to explain to our people the
emperor's position and liberal offers-no more. If need be, we can get another
to do such explaining."
Stein
smirked at all the agitation directed his way. "I was joking, of course.
Such empty talk is the custom among my people. Where I come from, such words
are common and harmless. I assure you all, it was only meant for the sake of
amusement."
"I
hope you intend to exercise better judgment when you speak to our people,"
the Minister said. "This is a serious matter you have come to discuss. The
Directors would not appreciate hearing such offensive humor."
Stein
let out a coarse laugh. "Master Campbell did explain your culture's
intolerance for such crude banter, but my unpolished nature caused me to forget
his wise words. Please excuse my poor choice of a joke. No harm was
intended."
"Well
and good, then." Bertrand leaned back, his wary gaze sweeping over the
guests. "All Anderith people take a dim view of brutality, and are not
used to such talk, much less such action."
Stein
bowed his head. "I have yet to learn the exemplary customs of your great
culture. I look forward to being given the opportunity to learn your better
ways."
With
those precisely disarming words, Dalton raised his estimate of the man. Stein's
unkempt hair was misleading; what was under it was not nearly so disordered.
If Lady
Chanboor caught the mordant satire in Stem's repartee, she did not show it as
her face relaxed back to its usual sweet-and-sour set. "We understand, and
admire your sincere effort to learn what must be ... strange customs to
you." Her fingertips slid Stein's goblet toward him. "Please, have
some of our fine Nareef Valley wine. We are all very fond of it."
If Lady
Chanboor failed to grasp the subtle sarcasm in Stein's words, Teresa did not.
Unlike Hildemara, Teresa had skirmished much of her adult life among the
cut-and-thrust
237
front
lines of female social structure, where words were wielded as weapons meant to
draw blood. The higher the level of engagement, the more refined the edge.
There, you had to be adept to know you had been cut and were bleeding, or the
wound was all that much greater for others seeing it and you missing it.
Hildemara
didn't need the blade of wit; raw power alone shielded her. Anderith generals
rarely swung swords.
As she
watched with practical fascination, Teresa took a sip when Stein swept up his
goblet for a long swig.
"It
is good. In fact, I would declare it to be the best I've ever tasted."
"We
are pleased to hear such a widely traveled man's opinion," the Minister
said.
Stein
thunked his goblet down on the table. "I've had my fill of food. When do I
get to speak my piece?"
The
Minister lifted an eyebrow. "When the guests have finished."
Grinning
again, Stein stabbed a chunk of meat and leaned back to gnaw it off the
knifepoint. As he chewed, his eyes boldly met the sultry looks he was getting
from some of the women."
CHAPTER
22
MUSICIANS
UP IN THE gallery piped a nautical tune while ushers unfurled lengthy blue
banners down into the dining hall. The pairs of men holding the banners flapped
them in time with the music, giving the effect of ocean waves as the fishing
boats painted on the banners bobbed upon the blue-cloth waters.
While
the Sovereign's own servants catered to his table, squires in estate livery
eddied around the Minister's head table, bearing silver platters arrayed with
the colorfully prepared fish course. The Minister selected crab legs, salmon
belly, fried minnows, bream, and eels in saffron sauce, the squire placing each
item between the Minister and his wife for them to transfer as they would to
their shared trencher.
Minister
Chanboor swirled a long piece of eel in the saffron sauce and offered it,
draped over a finger, to his wife. She smiled affectionately and with the tips
of long nails plucked it from his finger, but before putting it to her lips,
she instead set it down and turned to Stein to ask, as if suddenly taken with
curiosity, about the food of his homeland. In the short time he had been at the
estate, Dalton had learned that Lady Chanboor disliked eel above all else.
When
one of the squires held out a platter of crayfish, Teresa told Dalton, by the
hopeful lift of her eyebrows, that
239
she
would like one. The squire deftly split the shell, removed the vein, fluffed
the meat, and stuffed the shell beneath with crackers and butter, as Dalton
requested. He used his knife to lift a slice of porpoise from a platter held
out by a squire with his head bowed low between his outstretched arms. The
squire genuflected, as did they all, before moving on with a dancelike step.
Teresa's
wrinkled nose told him she didn't want any eel. He took one for himself, only
because the Minister's nodding and grinning told him he should. After he did,
the Minister leaned close and whispered, "Eel is good for the eel, if you
follow my meaning."
Dalton
simply smiled, feigning appreciation for the pointer. His mind was on his job
and the task at hand, and besides, he wasn't preoccupied with concern about his
"eel."
As
Teresa sampled the gingered carp, Dalton idly tasted the baked herring with
sugar as he watched the Haken squires, like an invading army, sweep down on the
tables of guests. They brought platters of fried pike, bass, millet, and trout;
baked lamprey herring, haddock, and hake; roast perch, salmon, seal, and
sturgeon; crabs, shrimp, and whelk on beds of glazed roe, along with tureens of
spiced scallop bisque and almond fish stew, in addition to colorful sauces of
every kind. Other dishes were served in inventive presentations of sauces and
florid concoctions of combined ingredients, from porpoise and peas in onion
wine sauce, to sturgeon roe and gurnard flanks, to great plaice and codling pie
in sauce vert.
The
abundance of food presented in such elaborate profusion was intended not only
to be political spectacle wherein the Minister of Culture manifested his power
and wealth, but also to convey-to protect the Minister from accusations of
ostentatious excess-a profound religious connotation. The plenty was ultimately
an exhibition of the Creator's splendor and, despite the seeming opulence, but
an infinitesimal sampling of His endless bounty.
The
feast was not convened to oblige a gathering of people, but a gathering of
people had been called to attend the
240
feast-a
subtle but significant difference. That the feast wasn't held for a social
reason-say, a wedding, or to celebrate an anniversary of a military
victory-underlined its religious substance. The Sovereign's attendance, his
being the Creator's deputy in the world of life, only consecrated the sacred
aspects of the feast.
If
guests were impressed with the wealth, power, and nobility of the Minister and
his wife, that was incidental and unavoidable. Dalton incidentally, noticed a
great many people being unavoidably impressed.
The
room droned with conversation sprinkled with the chime of laughter as the
guests sipped wine, nibbled food of every sort, and sampled with different
fingers the variety of sauces. The harpist had started in again to entertain
the guests while they dined. The Minister ate eel as he spoke with his wife,
Stein, and the two wealthy backers at the far end of the table.
Dalton
wiped his lips, deciding to make use of the opening offered by the relaxed
mood. He took a last sip of wine before leaning toward his wife. "Did you
find out anything from your talk earlier?"
Teresa
used her knife to part a piece of fried pike, then picked up her half with her
fingers and dipped it in red sauce. She knew he meant Claudine. "Nothing
specific. But I suspect the lamb is not locked in her pen."
Teresa
didn't know what the whole matter was about, or that Dalton had enlisted the
two Haken boys to deliver a warning to Claudine, but she knew enough to
understand that Claudine was probably making trouble over her tryst with the
Minister. While they never discussed specifics, Teresa knew she wasn't sitting
at the head table simply because Dalton knew the law forward and backward.
"
Teresa
lowered her voice. "While I talked with her, she paid a lot of attention
to Director Linscott-you know, watching him while trying to act as if she
wasn't; watching, too, to see if anyone saw her looking."
Her
word was always trustworthy, never embellished with supposition without being
tagged as such.
241
"Why
do you think she was so brazen before about telling the other women that the
Minister forced himself on her?"
"I
think she told others about the Minister as protection. I believe she reasoned
that if people already knew about it, then she was safe from being silenced
before anyone could find out.
"For
some reason, though, she has suddenly become closemouthed. But, like I said,
she was watching the Director a lot and pretending as if she wasn't."
Teresa
left it to him to draw his own conclusions. Dalton leaned toward her as he
rose. "Thank you, darling. If you will excuse me briefly, I must see to
some business."
She
caught his hand. "Don't forget you promised to introduce me to the
Sovereign."
Dalton
lightly kissed her cheek before meeting the Minister's eye. What Teresa had
said only confirmed his belief in the prudence of his plan. Much was at stake.
Director Linscott could be inquisitorial. Dalton was reasonably sure the
message delivered by the two boys had silenced Claudine, but if it didn't, this
would end her ability to sow her seeds. He gave Bertrand a slight nod. .
As he
moved around the room, Dalton stopped at a number of tables, leaning over,
greeting people he knew, hearing a joke here, a rumor there, a proposal or two,
and promised to get together with some. Everyone thought him a representative
of the Minister, come from the head table to make the rounds of the tables,
seeing to everyone's pleasure.
Arriving
at last at his true destination, Dalton presented a warm smile. "Claudine,
I pray you are feeling better. Teresa suggested I inquire-see if you need
anything-seeing as how Edwin is not able to be here."
She
flashed him a reasonably good imitation of a sincere smile. "Your wife is
a dear, Master Campbell. I'm fine, thank you. The food and company has put me
right. Please tell her I'm feeling much better."
"I
am glad to hear it." Dalton leaned close to her ear. "I was going to
relay an offer for Edwin-and you-but I'm reluctant to ask this of you not only
with Edwin out of the
242
city,
but with your unfortunate tumble. I don't wish to force work on you when you
aren't up to it, so please come to see me when you are fit."
She
turned to frown at him. "Thank you for your concern, but I'm fine. If you
have business that involves Edwin, he wishes me to hear it. We work closely and
have no secrets where business is concerned. You know that, Master
Campbell."
Dalton
not only knew it, but was counting on it. He squatted down on the balls of his
feet as she scooted her chair back to be out of the table's circle of
conversation.
"Please
forgive my presumption? Well, you see," he began, "the Minister feels
profound sympathy for men unable to feed their families any other way but to
beg food. Even if they can beg food, their families still go for want of
clothes, proper shelter, and other necessities. Despite the charity of good
Anderith people, many children go to bed with the ache of hunger in their
bellies. Hakens as well as Anders suffer this fate, and the Minister feels
compassion for both, for they are all his responsibility.
"The
Minister has labored feverishly, and has at last worked out the final details
of a new law to at last put a number of people to work who otherwise would have
no hope."
"That's,
that's very good of him," she stammered. "Bertrand Chanboor is a good
man. We are lucky to have him as our Minister of Culture."
Dalton
wiped a hand across his mouth as she looked away from his eyes. "Well, the
thing of it is, the Minister often mentions his respect for Edwin-for all the
unsung work Edwin has done-so I suggested to the Minister that it would be
appropriate to somehow show our respect for Edwin's hard work and dedication.
"The
Minister fervently agreed and instantly sprang to the idea of having the new
law headed as proposed and sponsored by Burgess Edwin Winthrop. The Minister
even wishes it to be called the Winthrop Fair Employment Law in honor of your
husband-and you, too, of course, for all
243
your
work. Everyone knows the input you have in the laws Edwin drafts."
Claudine's
gaze had already returned to meet his. She put a hand to her breast.
"Why,
Master Campbell, that is very generous of you and the Minister. I am completely
taken by surprise, as I'm sure Edwin will be. We will certainly review the law
as soon as possible, so as to allow its most expeditious implementation."
Dalton
grimaced. "Well, the thing is, the Minister just now informed me he is
impatient to announce it tonight. I had originally planned to bring you a draft
of the law, for you and Edwin to review before it was announced, but with all
the Directors here the Minister decided that in good conscience he must
act-that he couldn't bear to have those men out of work another day. They need
to feed their families."
She
licked her lips. "Well, yes, I understand ... I guess, but I really-"
"Good.
Oh, good. That is so very kind of you."
"But
I really should have a look at it. I really must see it. Edwin would
want-"
"Yes,
of course. I understand completely, and I assure you that you will get a copy
straightaway-first thing tomorrow."
"But
I meant before-"
"With
everyone here, now, the Minister was set on announcing it this evening. The
Minister really doesn't want to have to delay the implementation, nor does he
want to abandon his desire to have the Winthrop name on such a landmark law.
And the Minister was so hoping that the Sovereign, since he is here tonight-and
we all know how rare his visits are-would hear of the Winthrop Fair Employment
Law designed to help people who otherwise have no hope. The Sovereign knows
Edwin, and would be so pleased."
Claudine
stole a glance at the Sovereign. She wet her lips. "But-"
244
"Do
you wish me to ask the Minister to postpone the law? More than the Sovereign
missing it, the Minister would be very disappointed to let the opportunity
pass, and to let down those starving children who depend on him to better their
lives. You can understand, can't you, that it's really for the sake of the
children?"
"Yes,
but in order to-"
"Claudine,"
Dalton said as he took up one of her hands in both of his, "you don't have
any children, so I realize it must be particularly difficult for you to
empathize with parents desperate to feed their young ones, desperate to find
work when there is none, but try to understand how frightened they must
be."
She
opened her mouth, but no words came. He went on, not allowing her the tune to
form those words.
"Try
to understand what it would be like to be a mother and father waiting day after
day, waiting for a reason to hope, waiting for something to happen so that you
could find work and be able to feed your children. Can't you help? Can you try
to understand what it must be like for a young mother?"
Her
face had gone ashen.
"Of
course," she finally whispered. "I understand. I really do. I want to
help. I'm sure Edwin will be pleased when he learns he was named as the law's
sponsor-"
Before
she could say anything else, Dalton stood. "Thank you, Claudine." He
took up her hand again and gave it a kiss. "The Minister will be very
pleased to hear of your support-and so will those men who will now find work.
You have done a good thing for the children. The good spirits must be smiling
on you right now."
By the
time Dalton had returned to the head table, the squires were making the rounds
again, quickly placing a turtle pie in the center of each table. Guests puzzled
at the pies, their crusts quartered but not cut all the way through. Frowning,
Teresa was leaning in staring at the pie placed before the Minister and his
wife at the center of the head table.
245
"Dalton,"
she whispered, "that pie moved of its own accord."
Dalton
kept the smile from his face. "You must be mistaken, Tess. A pie can't
move."
"But
I'm sure-"
With
that, the crust broke, and a section of it lifted. A turtle poked its head up
to peer at the Minister. A claw grasped the edge, and the turtle hauled itself
out, to be followed by another. All around the room surprised guests laughed,
applauded, and murmured in astonishment as turtles began climbing out of the
pies.
The
turtles, of course, had not been baked alive in the pies; the pies had been
baked with dried beans inside. After the crust was baked, a hole was cut in the
bottom to allow the beans to be drained out and the turtles put in. The crusts
had been cut partly through so it would break easily and allow the animals to
make good their escape.
The
turtle pies, as one of the amusements of the feast, were a grand success.
Everyone was delighted by the spectacle. Sometimes it was turtles, sometimes it
was birds, both specially raised for the purpose of popping out of pies at a
feast to delight and astonish guests.
While
squires with wooden buckets began making the rounds of the tables to collect
the liberated turtles, Lady Chanboor summoned the chamberlain and asked him to
cancel the entertainment due to perform before the next course. A hush fell
over the room as she rose.
"Good
people, if I may have your attention, please." Hildemara looked to both
sides of the room, making sure every eye was upon her. Her pleated dress seemed
to glow with cold silver light. "It is the highest calling and duty to help
your fellow citizens when they are in need. Tonight, at last, we hope to take a
step to help the children of Anderith. It is a bold step, one requiring
courage. Fortunately, we have a leader of such courage.
"It
is my high honor to introduce to you the greatest man I have ever had the
privilege to know, a man of integrity, a
246
man who
works tirelessly for the people, a man Who never forgets the needs of those who
need us most, a man who holds our better future above all else, my husband, the
Minister of Culture, Bertrand Chanboor."
Hildemara
pulled a smile across her face and, clapping, turned to her husband. The room
erupted with applause and a great groan of cheering. Beaming, Bertrand stood
and slipped an arm around his wife's waist. She stared adoringly up into his
eyes. He gazed lovingly down into hers. People cheered louder yet, joyful to
have such a high-minded couple boldly leading Anderith.
Dalton
rose as he applauded with his hands over his head, bringing everyone to their
feet. He put on his widest smile so the farthest guest would be able to see it
and then, continuing to applaud loudly, turned to watch the Minister and his
wife.
Dalton
had worked for a number of men. Some he could not trust to announce a round of
drinks. Some were good at following the plan as Dalton outlined it, but didn't
grasp it fully until they saw it unfold. None were in Bertrand Chanboor's
league.
The
Minister had immediately grasped the concept and goal as Dalton had quickly
explained it to him. He would be able to embellish it and make it his own;
Dalton had never seen anyone as smooth as Bertrand Chanboor.
Smiling,
holding a hand in the air, Bertrand both acknowledged the cheering crowd and
finally silenced them.
"My
good people of Anderith," he began in a deep, sincere-sounding voice that
boomed into the farthest reaches of the room, "tonight I ask you to
consider the future. The time is overdue for us to have the courage to leave
our past favoritism where it belongs-in the past. We must, instead, think of
our future and the future of our children and grandchildren."
He had
to pause and nod and smile while the room again roared with applause. Once
more, he began, bringing "the audience to silence.
247
"Our
future is doomed if we allow naysayers to rule our imagination, instead of
allowing the spirit of potential, given us by the Creator, room to soar."
He
again waited until the wild clapping died down. Dalton marveled at the sauce
Bertrand could whip up on the spot to pour over the meat.
"We
in this room have had thrust upon us the responsibility for all the people of
Anderith, not just the fortunate. It is time our culture included all the
people of Anderith, not just the fortunate. It is time our laws served all the
people of Anderith, not just the few."
Dalton
shot to his feet to applaud and whistle. Immediately following his lead,
everyone else stood as they clapped and cheered. Hildemara, still beaming with
the loving grin of wifely devotion and fawning, stood to clap for her husband.
"When
I was young," Bertrand went on in a soft voice after the crowd quieted,
"I knew the pang of hunger. It was a difficult time in Anderith. My father
was without work. I watched my sister cry herself to sleep as hunger gnawed in
her belly.
"I
watched my father weep in silence, because he felt the shame of having no work,
because he had no skills." He paused to clear his throat. "He was a
proud man, but that nearly broke his spirit."
Dalton
idly wondered if Bertrand even had a sister.
"Today,
we have proud men, men willing to work, and at the same time plenty of work
that needs to be done. We have several government buildings under construction
and more planned. We have roads being built in order to allow for the expansion
of trade. We have bridges yet to be built up in the passes over the mountains.
Rivers await workers to come build piers to support bridges to those roads and
passes.
"But
none of those proud men who are willing to work and who need the work can be
employed at any of these jobs or the many other jobs available, because they
are unskilled. As was my father."
248
Bertrand
Chanboor looked out at people waiting in rapt attention to hear his solution.
"We
can provide these proud men with work. As the Minister of Culture, it is my
duty to our people to see to it that these men have work so they can provide
for their children, who are our future. I asked our brightest minds to come up
with a solution, and they have not let me, nor the people of Anderith, down. I wish
I could take credit for this brilliant new statute, but I cannot.
"These
scholarly new proposals were brought to me by people who make me proud to be in
office so that I might help them guide this new law into the light of day.
There were those in the past who would use their influence to see such fair
ideas die in the dark recesses of hidden rooms. I won't allow such selfish
interests to kill the hope for our children's future."
Bertrand
let a dark scowl descend upon his face, and his scowls could make people pale
and tingle with dread.
"There
were those in the past who held the best for their own kind, and would allow no
others the chance to prove themselves."
There
was no mistaking the allusion. Time meant nothing in healing the wounds inflicted
by the Haken overlords- those wounds would always be open and raw; it served to
keep them so.
Bertrand's
face relaxed into his familiar easy smile, by contrast all the more pleasant
after the scowl. "This new hope is the Winthrop Fair Employment Law."
He held out a hand toward Claudine. "Lady Winthrop, would you please
stand?"
Blushing,
she looked about as people smiled her way. Applause started in, urging her to
stand. She looked like a deer caught inside the garden fence at dawn.
Hesitantly, she rose to her feet.
"Good
people, it is Lady Winthrop's husband, Edwin, ,who is the sponsor of the new
law, and, as many of you know, Lady Winthrop is his able assistant in his job
as burgess. I have no doubt that Lady Winthrop played a critical
249
role in
her husband's new law. Edwin is away on business, but I would like to applaud
her fine work in this, and hope she relays our appreciation to Edwin when he
returns."
Along
with Bertrand, the room applauded and cheered her and her absent husband.
Claudine, her face red, smiled cautiously to the adoration. Dalton noticed that
the Directors, not knowing what the law was about, were polite but reserved in
their congratulations. With people leaning toward her, touching her to get her
attention, and offering words of appreciation, it was a time before everyone
returned to their seats to hear the nature of the law.
"The
Winthrop Fair Employment Law is what its name implies," Bertrand finally
explained, "fair and open, rather than privileged and closed, employment.
With all the construction of indispensable public projects, we have much work
to do in order to serve the needs of the people."
The
Minister swept a look of resolve across the crowd.
"But
one brotherhood holds itself to outmoded prerogative, thus delaying progress.
Don't get me wrong, these men are of high ideals and. are hard workers, but the
time has come to throw open the doors of this archaic order designed to protect
the special few.
"Henceforth,
under the new law, employment shall go to anyone willing to put their back to
the work, not just to the closed brotherhood of the Masons Guild!"
The
crowd took a collective gasp. Bertrand gave them no pause.
"Worse,
because of this shrouded guild, where only a few meet their obscure and
needlessly strict requirements, the cost to the people of Anderith for public
projects they construct is far and away above what would be the cost were
willing workers allowed to work." The Minister shook his fist. "We
all pay the outrageous cost!"
Director
Linscott was near to purple with contained rage.
Bertrand
uncurled a finger from his fist and pointed out at the crowd. "The masons'
vast knowledge should be employed, by all means it should, but with this new
law, the common man will be employed, too, under the supervision
250
of
masons, and the children will not go hungry for their fathers' want of
work."
The
Minister struck a fist to the palm of his other hand to emphasize each point he
added.
"I
call upon the Directors of Cultural Amity to show us, now, by their raised
hands, their support of putting starving people to work, their support of the
government finally being able to complete projects at a fair price by using
those willing to work and not just the members of a secret society of masons
who set their own exorbitant rates we all must bear! Their support for the
children! Their support of the Winthrop Fair Employment Law!"
Director
Linscott shot to his feet. "I protest such a show of hands! We have not
yet had time to-"
He fell
silent when he saw the Sovereign lift his hand.
"If
the other Directors would like to show their support," the Sovereign said
in a clear voice into the hush, "then the people gathered here should know
of it, so that none may bear false witness to the truth of each man's will.
There can be no harm in judging the sentiment of the Directors while they are
all here. A show of hands is not the final word, and so does not close the
matter to debate before it becomes law."
The
Sovereign's impatience had just unwittingly saved the Minister the task of
forcing a vote. Though it was true that a show of hands here would not make the
law final, in this case such a schism among the guilds and professions would
insure it did.
Dalton
did not have to wait for the other Directors to show their hands; there was no
doubt in his mind. The law the Minister had announced was a death sentence to a
guild, and the Minister had just let them all see the glint off the
executioner's axe.
Though
they would not know why, the Directors would know one of their number had been
singled out. While only four of the Directors were guild masters, the others
were no less assailable. The moneylenders might have their allowed interest
lowered or even outlawed, the merchants their trade
251
preferences
and routes changed; the solicitors and barristers could have their charges set
by law at a rate even a beggar could afford. No profession was safe from some
new law, should they displease the Minister.
If the
other Directors did not support the Minister in this, that blade might be
turned on their guild or profession. The Minister had called for a public
showing of their hands rather than a closed-door vote, the implication being
that the axe would not swing in their direction if they went along.
Claudine
sank into her chair. She, too, knew what this meant. Men were formerly
forbidden work at the trade of mason unless they were members of the Masons
Guild. The guild set training, standards, and rates, governed disputes,
assigned workers to various jobs as needed, looked after members injured or
sick, and helped widows of men killed on the job. With unskilled workers
allowed to work as masons, guild members would lose their skilled wages. It
would destroy the Masons Guild.
For
Linscott, it would mean-the end of his career. For the loss of the protection
of guild law while under his watch as a Director, the masons would doubtless
expel him within a day. The unskilled would now work; Linscott would be an
outcast.
Of
course, the land's projects would, in the end, cost more. Unskilled workers
were, after all, unskilled. A man who was expensive, but knew his job, in the
end cost less, and the finished job was sound.
A
Director lifted his hand, showing his informal, but for all practical purposes
final, support for the new law. The others watched that hand go up, as if
seeing an arrow fly to a man's chest to pierce his heart. Linscott was that
man. None wanted to join his fate. One by one, the other Directors' hands began
going up, until there were eleven.
Linscott
gave Claudine a murderous look before he stalked out of the feast. Claudine's
ashen face lowered.
Dalton
started applauding the Directors. It jolted everyone out of the somber drama,
and people began joining in; All those around Claudine began congratulating
her, telling her
252
. what
a wonderful thing she and her husband had done for the children of Anderith.
Tongues began indignantly scolding the masons' selfish ways. Soon a line of
people wanting to thank her formed to file past and add their names to those on
the side of the Minister of Culture and the courage of his fairness.
Claudine
shook their hands but managed only a pallid smile.
Director
Linscott was not likely to ever again wish to listen to anything Claudine
Winthrop had to say.
Stein
glanced over, giving Dalton a cunning smile. Hildemara directed a
self-satisfied smirk his way, and her husband clapped Dalton on the back.
When
everyone had returned to their seats, the harpist poised her hands with fingers
spread to pluck a cord, but the Sovereign again raised his hand. All eyes went
to him as he began to speak.
"I
believe we should take this opportunity, before the next course, to hear what
the gentleman from afar has to say to us."
No
doubt the Sovereign was having trouble staying awake and, before he fell
asleep, wanted to hear Stein speak. The Minister stood to once again address
the room.
"Good
people, as you may know, a war is spreading. Each side has arguments as to why
we should join with them. Anderith wants only peace. We have no desire to see
our young men and women bleed in a foreign struggle. Our land is unique in
being protected by the Dominie Dirtch, so we have no need to fear violence
visiting us, but there are other considerations, not the least of which is
trade with the world beyond our borders.
"We
intend to hear what the Lord Rahl of D'Hara and Mother Confessor have to say.
They are pledged to wed, as you have all no doubt heard from the diplomats
returning from Aydindril. This will join D'Hara with the Midlands to create a
formidable force. We await listening respectfully to their words.
"But
tonight we are going to hear what the Imperial Order
253
wishes
us to know. The Emperor Jagang has sent a representative from the Old World
beyond the Valley of the Lost, which has now for the first time in thousands of
years been opened for passage." Bertrand held out a hand. "May I
introduce the emperor's spokesman, Master Stein."
People
applauded politely, but it trailed off as Stein rose up. He was an imposing,
fearsome, and fascinating figure. He hooked his thumbs behind his empty weapon
belt.
"We
are engaged in a struggle for our future, much the same as the struggle you
have just witnessed, only on a larger scale."
Stein
picked up a small loaf of hard bread. His big hands squeezed until it broke
apart. "We, the race of mankind, and that includes the good people of
Anderith, are slowly being crushed. We are being held back. We are being suffocated.
We are being denied our destiny, denied our future, denied life itself.
"Just
as you have men without work because a self-interested guild held sway over the
lives of others, denying them work and thus food for their children, magic
holds sway over all of us."
A hum
rose in the room as whispering spread. People were confused, and just a little
worried. Magic was loathed by some, but respected by many.
"Magic
decides for you your destiny," Stein went on. "Those with magic rule
you, though you have not willingly consented to it. They have the power, and
they keep you in their grip.
"Those
with magic cast spells to harm those they resent. Those with magic bring harm
to innocent people they fear, they dislike, they envy, and simply to keep the
masses in check. Those with magic rule you, whether you like it or not. The
mind of man could flourish, were it not for magic. "It is time regular
folks decided what will be, without magic holding its shadow over those
decisions, and your future."
Stein
lifted his cape out to the side. "These are the scalps of the gifted. I
killed each myself. I have prevented each of
254
these
witches from twisting the lives of normal people.
"People
should fear the Creator, not some sorceress or wizard or witch. We should
worship the Creator, none other."
Low
murmurs of agreement began to stir.
"The
Imperial Order will end magic in this world just as we ended the magic that
kept the people of the New and Old World separated for thousands of years. The
Order will prevail. Man will decide his own destiny.
"Even
without our help fewer and fewer gifted are born all the time as even the
Creator, with his nearly infinite patience, tires of their vile ways. The old
religion of magic is dying out. The Creator Himself has thus given us a sign
that the time has come for man to cast magic aside."
More
rustles of agreement swept through the room.
"We
do not wish to fight the people of Anderith. Nor do we wish to force you,
against your will, to take up arms to join us. But we intend to destroy the
forces of magic led by the bastard son of D'Hara. Any who join him will fall
under our blade, just as those with magic"-he held out the cape-
"fell under mine."
He
slowly swept a finger before the crowd as he held his cape out with his other
hand. "Just as I killed these gifted witches who came up against me, we
will kill any who stand against us.
"We
also have other means beyond the blade to end magic. Just as we brought down
the magic separating us, we will bring an end to all magic. The time of man is
upon us."
The
Minister casually lifted a hand. "And what is it, then, if not the swords
of our powerful army, the Order wishes from us?"
"Emperor
Jagang gives his word that if you do not join with the forces fighting for
those with magic, we will not attack you. All we wish is to trade with you,
just as you trade with others."
"Well,"
the Minister said, playing the part of the skeptic for the benefit of the
crowd, "we already have arrangements
255
that
commit a great deal of our commodities to the Midlands."
Stein
smiled. "We offer double the highest price anyone else offers to
pay."
The
Sovereign lifted his hand, bringing even the whispering to a halt. "How
much of the output of Anderith would you be interested in purchasing?"
Stein
looked out over the crowd. "All of it. We are a huge force. You need not
lift a blade to fight in the war, we will do the fighting, but if you sell us
your goods, you will be safe and your land will become wealthy beyond your
hopes and dreams."
The
Sovereign stood, surveying the room. 'Thank you for the emperor's words, Master
Stein. We will want to hear more.
"For
now, your words have given us much to consider." He swept a hand before
the people. "Let the feast resume."
CHAPTER
23
FITCH'S
HEAD HURT SOMETHING awful. The dawn light hurt his eyes. Despite sucking on a
small piece of ginger, he couldn't get the foul sour taste in the back of his
throat to go away. He figured the headache and awful taste was probably from
too much of the fine wine and rum he and Morley
256
had
treated themselves to. Even so, he was in good spirits and smiled as he
scrubbed the crusty pots.
Slow as
he was moving, trying not to make his head feel any worse, Master Drummond
wasn't yelling at him. The big man seemed relieved that the feast was over and
they could go back to their regular cooking chores. The kitchen master had sent
him after a number of things, not once calling him "Fetch."
Fitch
heard someone coming his way, and looked up to see that it was Master Drummond.
"Fitch,
dry your hands."
Fitch
pulled up his arms and shook off some of the soapy water. "Yes, sir."
He
snatched up a nearby towel as he recalled with acute pleasure the title of
"sir" being directed to him the night before.
Master
Drummond wiped his forehead with his own white towel. With the way his head was
sweating, he looked like he might have had some drink the night before, too,
and might not be feeling his best, either. It had been a tremendous amount of
work getting ready for the feast, so Fitch grudgingly guessed that Master
Drummond deserved to get drunk, too. At least the man got to be called
"sir" all the time.
"Get
yourself up to Master Campbell's office."
"Sir?"
Master
Drummond tucked the white towel behind his belt. The nearby women were
watching. Gillie was scowling, no doubt waiting for an opportunity to twist
Fitch's ear and scold him for his wicked Haken ways.
"Dalton
Campbell just sent word that he wants to see you. I'd guess he means right now,
Fitch, so get to it and see what he needs."
Fitch
bowed. "Yes, sir, right away."
Before
she could give him much of a thought, he cut a wide path around Gillie, keeping
out of her reach and disappearing as quickly as possible. This was one task
Fitch
257
was
only too happy to rash to do, and he didn't want to be snagged by the
sour-faced saucer woman.
As he
took the stairs two at a time, his throbbing head seemed to be only a minor
annoyance. By the time he'd reached the third floor, he suddenly felt pretty
good. He rushed past the spot where Beata had clouted him and down the hall
just a short ways to the right, to where only a week before he'd taken a plate
of sliced meat late one evening, to Dalton Campbell's office.
The
door to the outer office stood open. Fitch caught his breath and shuffled in,
keeping his head low in a respectful sort of way; he'd only been there that
once before, and he wasn't exactly sure how he was supposed to act in the offices
of the Minister's aide.
There
were two tables in the room. One had disorderly stacks of papers all over it,
along with messenger pouches and sealing wax. The other dark shiny table was
nearly clean except for a few books and an unlit lamp. The morning sun
streaming in the tall windows provided light aplenty.
Along
the far wall to the left, opposite the wall with the windows, four young men
lounged and chatted on a long padded bench. They were talking about road
conditions to outlying towns and cities. They were messengers, a coveted job in
the household, so Fitch guessed it seemed a logical enough thing for them to
discuss, but he always thought messengers would talk 'more of the grand things
they saw in their job.
The
four were well dressed, all the same, in the Minister's aide's exclusive livery
of heavy black boots, dark brown trousers, white shirts with ruffled collars,
and sleeved doublets quilted with an interlocking cornucopia design. The edges
of the doublets were trimmed with distinctive brown and black braided wheat
banding. To Fitch's way of thinking, the outfits made any of the messengers
look almost noble, but especially so those messengers belonging to the
Minister's aide.
There
were a number of different kinds of messengers in the household, each with its
own individual uniform, each
258
working
for a specific person or office. Fitch knew of messengers working for the
Minister, Lady Chanboor, the chamberlain's office, the marshal's office; the
sergeant-at-arms had several; there were a number of army messengers working
out of the estate and those who brought messages to the estate but lived
elsewhere-even the kitchen had a messenger. From time to time he saw others he
didn't recognize. Fitch couldn't understand why they were all needed. He
couldn't understand how much messaging a person could possibly need to do.
Far and
away the largest contingent of messengers- nearly an army's worth, it
seemed-belonged to the office of the Minister's chief aide: Dalton Campbell.
The
four men sitting on the padded bench watched him with friendly enough smiles.
Two nodded in greeting, something messengers had done before when he came
across them. Fitch always thought it odd when they did because, even though
they too were Haken, he always figured messengers were better than he, as if,
while not Ander, they were some indefinable step above a mere Haken.
Fitch
nodded in kind to return the greeting. One of the men who had nodded, perhaps a
year or two older than Fitch, lifted a thumb toward the room beyond.
"Master
Campbell is waiting on you, Fitch. You're to go on in."
Fitch
was surprised to be called by name. "Thank you." He shambled over to
the tall doorway to the inner room and waited at the threshold. He'd been in
the outer waiting room before-the interior door had always been closed- and he
expected Master Campbell's inner office to be more or less the same, but it was
larger and much more grand, with rich-looking blue and gold drapes on the three
windows, a wall of fancy oak shelves holding a colorful array of thick books,
and, in the other corner, several magnificent Ander battle standards. Each long
banner was of a yellow background with red markings along with a bit of blue.
The standards were arranged in a display flanked by formidable-looking pole
weapons.
259
Dalton
Campbell looked up from behind a massive desk of shiny mahogany with curved
legs and a scalloped skirt. The top had three inset leather squares, smaller
ones to each side of a large one in the middle, each with a curly design
painted in gold around its edges.
"Fitch,
there you are. Good. Come in and shut the door, please."
Fitch
crossed the big room and stood before the desk when he had done as bidden.
"Yes, sir? You needed something?"
Campbell
leaned back in his brown leather chair. His princely scabbard and sword stood
beside a tufted bench, in their own special holder of hammered silver made to
look like a scroll. Lines of writing were engraved on the scroll, but Fitch
couldn't read, so he didn't know if they were real words.
Tipping
his chair back on the two rear legs while he sucked on the end of a glass
dipping pen, the Minister's aide studied Fitch's face.
"You
did a good job with Claudine Winthrop."
"Thank
you, sir. I tried my best to remember everything you told me you wanted me to
do and say."
"And
you did that quite well. Some men would have turned squeamish and failed to do
as I instructed. I can always use men who follow orders and remember what I
tell them I want done. In fact, I would like to offer you a new position with
my office, as a messenger."
Fitch
stared dumbly. He'd heard the words, but they didn't seem to make any sense to
him. Dalton Campbell had plenty of messengers-a whole army of them, it seemed.
"Sir?"
"You
did well. I'd like you to be one of my messengers."
"Me,
sir?"
"The
work is easier than kitchen work, and the job, unlike kitchen work, pays a wage
in addition to food and living quarters. Earning a wage, you could begin to set
money aside for your future. Perhaps one day when you earn your
260
sir
name, you might be able to buy yourself something. Perhaps a sword."
Fitch
stood frozen, his mind focused intently on Dalton Campbell's words, running
them through his head again. He never even dreamed such dreams as working as a
messenger. He'd not considered the possibility of work that would give him more
than a roof and food, the opportunity to lift some good liquor, and perhaps a
penny bonus now and again.
Of
course he dreamed of having a sword and reading and other things, but those
were silly dreams and he knew it- they were just for fun dreaming. Daydreaming.
He hadn't dared dream close to real things such as this, such as actually being
a messenger.
"Well,
what do you say, Fitch? Would you like to be one of my messengers? Naturally,
you couldn't wear those ... clothes. You would have to wear messenger
livery." Dalton Campbell leaned forward to look over the desk and down.
"That includes boots. You would have to wear boots to be a messenger.
"You
would have to move to new quarters, too. The messengers have quarters together.
Beds, not pallets. The beds have sheets. You have to make up your bed, of
course, and keep your own trunk in order, but the staff washes the messenger's
clothes and bedding.
"What
do you say, Fitch? Would you like to join my staff of messengers?"
Fitch
swallowed. "What about Morley, Master Campbell? Morley did just as you
said, too. Would he become a messenger with me?"
The
leather squeaked when Dalton Campbell again tipped back onto the two rear legs
of his chair. He sucked on the end of the spiraled-blue and clear-glass pen for
a time as he studied Fitch's eyes. At last he took the pen away from his mouth.
"I
only need one messenger right now. It's time you started thinking about
yourself, Fitch, about your future. Do
261
you
want to be a kitchen boy the rest of your life?
"The
time has come for you to do what's right for you, Fitch, if you ever want to
get places in life. This is your chance to rise up out of that kitchen. It may
be the only chance you get.
"I'm
offering the position to you, not Morley. Take it or leave it. What's it going
to be, then?"
Fitch
licked his lips. "Well, sir, I like Morley-he's my friend. But I don't think
there's anything I'd rather do in the whole world than be your messenger,
Master Campbell. I'll take the job, if you'll have me."
"Good.
Welcome to the staff, then, Fitch." He smiled in a friendly way.
"Your loyalty to your friend is admirable. I hope you feel the same of
this office. I will have a... part-time position for Morley for now, and I
suspect that at some point in the future a position may open up and he could
then join you on the messenger staff."
Fitch
felt relief at that news. He'd hate to lose his friend, but he would do
anything to get out of Master Drummond's kitchen and to be a messenger.
"That's
awfully kind of you, sir. I know Morley will do right by you, too. I swear I
will."
Dalton
Campbell leaned forward again, letting the front legs of the chair thunk down.
"All right, then." He slid a folded paper across the desk. "Take
this down to Master Drummond. It informs him that I have engaged your services
as a messenger, and you are no longer responsible to him. I thought you might
like to deliver it yourself, as your first official message."
Fitch
wanted to jump up and hoot a cheer, but he instead remained emotionless, as he
thought a messenger would. "Yes, sir, I would." He realized he was
standing up straighter, too.
"Right
after, then, one of my other messengers, Rowley, will take you down to estate
supply. They will provide you with livery that fits close enough for the time
being. When you're down there, the seamstress will measure you up so your new
clothes can be fitted to you.
262
"While
in my service, I expect all my messengers to be smartly dressed in tailored
livery. I expect my messengers -to reflect well on my office. That means you
and your clothes are to be clean. Your boots polished. Your hair brushed. You
will conduct yourself properly at all times. Rowley will explain the details to
you. Can you do all that, Fitch?"
Fitch's
knees trembled. "Yes, sir, I surely can, sir."
Thinking
about the new clothes he would be wearing, he suddenly felt very ashamed of
what had to be his filthy scruffy look. An hour ago he thought he looked just
fine as he was, but no longer. He couldn't wait to get out of his scullion
rags.
He
wondered what Beata would think when she saw him in his handsome new
messenger's livery.
Dalton
Campbell slid a leather pouch across the desk. The flap was secured with a
large dribbling of amber wax impressed with a sheaf-of-wheat seal design.
"After
you clean up and get on your new outfit, I want you to deliver this pouch to the
Office of Cultural Amity, in Fairfield. Do you know where it is?"
"Yes,
sir, Master Campbell. I grew up in Fairfield, and I know just about any place
there."
"So
I was told. We have messengers from all over Anderith, and they mostly cover
the places they know-the places where they grew up. Since you know Fairfield,
you will be assigned to that area for most of your work."
Dalton
Campbell leaned back to fish something from a pocket. "This is for
you." He flipped it through the air.
Fitch
caught it and stared dumbly at the silver sovereign in his palm. He expected
that most rich folk didn't even carry such a huge sum about.
"But,
sir, I haven't worked the month, yet."
"This
is not your messenger's wage. You get your wage at the end of every
month." Dalton Campbell lifted an eyebrow. "This is to show my
appreciation for the job you did last night."
263
Claudine
Winthrop. That was what he meant-scaring Claudine Winthrop into keeping quiet.
She had
called Fitch "sir."
Fitch
laid the silver coin on the desk. With a finger, he reluctantly slid the coin a
few inches toward Dalton Campbell.
"Master
Campbell, you owe me nothing for that. You never promised me anything for it. I
did it because I wanted to help you, and to protect the future Sovereign, not
for a reward. I can't take money I'm not owed."
The
aide smiled to himself. "Take the coin, Fitch. That's an order. After you
deliver that pouch in Fairfield, I don't have anything else for you today, so I
want you to spend some of that-all of it if you wish-on yourself. Have some
fun. Buy candy. Or buy yourself a drink. It's your money; spend it as you
wish."
Fitch
swallowed back his excitement. "Yes, sir. Thank you, sir. I'll do as you
say, then."
"Good.
Just one thing, though." Campbell put an elbow on the desk and leaned
forward. "Don't spend it on prostitutes in the city. There are some very
nasty diseases going through the whores in Fairfield this spring. It's an
unpleasant way to die. If you go to the wrong prostitute, you will not live
long enough to be a good messenger."
While
the idea of being with a woman was achingly tantalizing, Fitch didn't see how
he would ever work up the nerve to go through with it and get naked in front of
one. He liked looking at women, the way he liked looking at Claudine Winthrop
and he liked looking at Beata, and he liked imagining them naked, but he never
imagined them seeing him naked, in an aroused state. He had enough trouble
hiding his aroused condition from women when he had his clothes on. He ached to
be with a woman, but couldn't figure how the embarrassment of the situation
wouldn't ruin the lust of it. Maybe if it was a girl he knew, and liked, and he
kissed and cuddled and courted her for a period of time- came to know her well-he
might see how he could get to the point of the procedure, but he couldn't
imagine how
264
anyone
ever worked up the nerve to go to a woman he didn't even know and just strip
naked right in front of her.
Maybe
if it was dark. Maybe that was it. Maybe it was dark in the prostitutes' rooms,
so the two people wouldn't actually see each other. But he still-
"Fitch?"
Fitch
cleared his throat. "No, sir. I swear an oath not to go to any of the
prostitutes in Fairfield. No, sir, I won't."
CHAPTER
24
AFTER
THE BOY LEFT, Dalton yawned. He had been up long before dawn, calling in staff,
meeting with trusted assistants to hear their reports of any relevant
discussions at the feast, and then seeing about the preparation of all the
messages. The staff employed in the copying and preparation of messages, among
other things, took up the next six rooms down the hall, but they had needed his
outer offices to complete the task in such short order.
By
first light Dalton had his messengers off to the criers in every corner of
Anderith. Later, when the Minister was up and had finished with whoever had
ended up as his bed partner, Dalton would let the man know the wording of the
statement so he might not be taken by surprise, seeing as how he was the signatory
to the announcement.
The
criers would read the messages in meeting halls,
265
guild
halls, merchant and trade halls, town and city council halls, taverns, inns,
every army post, every university, every worship service, every penance
assembly, every fulling, paper, and grain mill, every market square-anywhere
people gathered;-from one end of Anderith to the other. Within a matter of
days, the message, the exact message as Dalton had written it, would be in
every ear.
Criers
who didn't read the messages exactly as written were sooner or later reported
and replaced with men more interested in keeping their source of extra income.
Besides sending the messages to the criers, Dalton, on a rotating basis, sent
identical messages to people about the land who earned a bit of extra money by
listening to the crier and reporting if the message was altered. All part of
tending his cobweb.
Few
people understood, as did Dalton, the importance of a precisely tailored,
cogent-sounding, uniform message reaching every ear. Few people understood the
power wielded by the one controlling the words people heard; what people heard,
if put to them properly, they believed, regardless of what were those words.
Few people understood the weapon that was a properly fashioned twist of
information.
Now
there was a new law in the land. Law forbidding partial hiring practices in the
mason profession, and ordering the hiring of willing workers who presented
themselves for work. The day before, such action against a powerful guild would
have been unthinkable. His messages chided people to act by the highest Ander
cultural ideals, and not to take understandably belligerent action against
masons for their past despicable practices of being a party to children
starving. Instead, his message insisted that they follow the new, higher
standards of the Winthrop Fair Employment Law. And the startled masons, rather
than attacking the new law, would be busily and vigorously trying to prove that
they were not intentionally starving the children of their neighbors.
Before
long, masons across the land would not only comply, but embrace the new law as
if they themselves had all
266
along
been urging its passage. It was either that, or be stoned by angry mobs.
Dalton
liked to consider every eventuality and have the road laid before the cart
arrived. By the time Rowley got Fitch cleaned up and into messenger livery, and
the boy off on his way with the law pouch, it would be too late for the Office
of Cultural Amity, if for some reason the eleven Directors changed their minds,
to do anything about it. The criers would already be proclaiming the new law
all over Fairfield, and soon it would be known far and wide. None of the eleven
Directors would now be able to alter their show of hands at the feast.
Fitch
would fit right in with the rest of Dalton's messengers. They were all men he
had collected over the previous ten years, young men pulled from obscure
places, otherwise doomed to a life of hard labor, degradation, few options, and
little hope. They were the dirt under the heels of Anderith culture. Now,
through the delivery of messages to criers, they helped shape and control
Anderith culture.
The
messengers did more than merely deliver messages; in some ways they were almost
a private army, paid for by the public, and one of the means by which Dalton
had risen to his present post. All his messengers were unshakably loyal to no
one but Dalton. Most would willingly go to their death if he requested it.
There had been occasions when he had.
Dalton
smiled as his thoughts wandered to more pleasant things-wandered to Teresa. She
was floating on air from having been introduced to the Sovereign. When they had
returned to their apartments after the feast and retired to bed, as she had promised,
she had soundly rewarded him with just how good she could be. And Teresa could
be extraordinarily good.
She had
been so inspired by the experience of meeting the Sovereign that she was
spending the morning in prayer.. He doubted she could have been more moved had
she met the Creator Himself. Dalton was pleased that he could provide Teresa
such an exalting experience.
267
At
least she had not fainted, as had several women and one man when they were
presented to the Sovereign. Were it not a common occurrence, it would have been
embarrassing for those people. As it was, everyone understood and readily
accepted their reaction. In some ways, it was a mark of distinction, a talisman
of faith, proving one's devotion to the Creator. No one considered it anything
but sincere faith laid bare.
Dalton,
however, recognized the Sovereign as the man he was, a man in a high office,
but a man nonetheless. For some people, though, he transcended such worldly
notions. When Bertrand Chanboor, a man already widely respected and admired as
the most outstanding Minister of Culture ever to serve, became Sovereign, he,
too, would become the object of mindless adoration.
Dalton
suspected, though, that a great many of the swooning women would be endeavoring
to fall under him, rather than faint before him. To many, it would be a
religious experience beyond the mere coupling with a man of power such as the
Minister of Culture. Even husbands would be ennobled by their wives' holy
acceptance into such congress with the Sovereign.
When he
heard a knock at the door, Dalton looked up and began to say "Enter,"
but the woman was already barging in. It was Franca Gowenlock.
Dalton-rose.
"Ah, Franca, how good to see you. Did you enjoy the feast?"
For
some reason, the woman had a dark look. Added to her dark eyes and hair, and
the general aspect which made her seem as if she were somehow always standing
in a shadow even when she wasn't, that made the look very dark indeed. The air
always seemed still and cool whenever Franca was about.
She
snatched the top rail of a chair on her way past, dragging it along to his
desk. She set the chair before the desk, plopped herself down in front of him,
and folded her arms. Somewhat taken aback, Dalton sank back into his chair.
268
Fine
lines splayed out from her squinted eyes. "I don't like that one from the
Order. Stein. I don't like him one bit."
Dalton
relaxed back into his chair. Franca wore her black, nearly shoulder length hair
loose, yet it swept back somewhat from her face, as if it had been frozen stiff
by an icy wind. A bit of gray streaked her temples, but, rather than adding
years to her looks, it added only to her serious mien.
Her
simple sienna dress buttoned to her neck. A little higher up, a band of black
velvet hugged her throat. It was usually black velvet, but not always. Whatever
it was made from, it was always at least two fingers wide.
Because
she always wore a throat band, Dalton wondered all the more why, and what, if
anything, might be under it. Franca being Franca, he never asked.
He had
known Franca Gowenlock for nearly fifteen years, and had employed her talents
for well over half that time. He had sometimes mused to himself that she must
have once been beheaded and sewn her own head back on.
"I'm
sorry, Franca. Did he do something to you? Insult you? He didn't lay a hand to
you, did he? I will have him dealt with, if that's the case-you have my
word."
Franca
knew his word to her was beyond reproach. She twined her long graceful fingers
together in her lap. "He had enough women willing and eager; he didn't
need me for that."
Dalton,
truly at a loss, but cautious nonetheless, spread his hands. "Then what is
it?"
Franca
put her forearms on the desk and tipped her head in. She lowered her voice.
"He
did something with my gift. He scrambled it all up, or something."
Dalton
blinked, true concern roiling through him. "You mean you think the man has
some kind of magical power? That he cast a spell, or something?"
"I
don't know," Franca growled, "but he did something."
"How
do you know?"
"I
tried to listen to conversations at the feast, just like I
269
always
do. I tell you, Dalton, I wouldn't know I had the gift if I didn't know I did.
Nothing. I got nothing from no one. Not a thing."
Dalton's
frown now mimicked hers. "You mean that your gift didn't help you overhear
anything?"
"Don't
you hear anything? Isn't that what I just said?"
Dalton
drummed his fingers on the table. He turned and peered out the window. He got
up and lifted the sash, letting in the warm breeze. He motioned to Franca, and
she came around the desk.
Dalton
pointed to two men engaged in conversation under a tree across .the lawn.
"Down there, those two. Tell me what they're saying."
Franca
put her hands on the sill and leaned out a little, staring at the two men. The
sun on her face showed how time truly was beginning to wrinkle, stretch, and
sag what he had always thought was one of the most beautiful, if not the
strangest, women he had ever known. Even so, despite the advance of time, her
beauty was still haunting.
Dalton
watched the men's hands move, gesturing as they spoke, but he could hear none
of their words. With her gift, she should be able to easily hear them.
Franca's
face went blank. She stood so still she looked like one of the wax figures from
the traveling exhibition that came through Fairfield twice a year. Dalton
couldn't even tell if the woman was breathing.
She
finally pulled an annoyed breath. "Can't hear a word. They're too far away
to see their lips, so I can't get any help by that, but still, I don't hear a
thing, and I should."
Dalton
looked down, close to the building, three stories below. "What about those
two."
Franca
leaned out for a look. Dalton could almost hear them himself; a chuckle rose
up, and an exclamation, but no more. Franca again went still.
This
time, the breath she pulled bordered on rage. "Nothing, and 1 can almost
hear them without the gift."
Dalton
closed the window. The anger went out of her face
270
in a
rush, and he saw something he had never before seen from her: fear.
"Dalton,
you have to get rid of that man. He must be a wizard, or something. He's got me
all tied up in knots."
"How
do you know it's him?"
She
blinked twice at the question. "Well... what else could it be? He claims
to be able to eliminate magic. He's only been here a few days, and I've only
had this problem a few days."
"Have
you had trouble with other things? Other aspects of your gift?"
She
turned away, wringing her hands. "A few days ago I made up a little spell
for a woman who came to me, a little spell so she would have her moon flow
back, and not be pregnant. This morning she returned and said it didn't
work."
"Well,
it must be a complex kind of conjuring. There must be a lot involved. I expect
such things don't always work."
She
shook her head. "It always worked before."
"Perhaps
you're ill. Have you felt different of late?"
"I
feel exactly the same. I feel like my power is as strong as ever. It should be,
but it's not. Other charms have failed, too-I'd not let this go without testing
it, thorough like."
Troubled,
Dalton leaned closer. "Franca, I don't know a lot about it, but maybe some
of it is just confidence in yourself. Maybe you just have to believe you can do
it for it to work again."
She
glared back over her shoulder. "Where'd you ever get such a daft notion
about the gift?"
"I
don't know." Dalton shrugged. "I admit I don't know a great deal
about magic, but I really don't believe Stein has the gift-or any magic about
him. He's just not the sort.
"Besides,
he's not even here today. He couldn't be interrupting your ability hearing
those people down there; he went out to tour the countryside. He's been gone
for hours."
She
slowly rounded on him, looking fearsome and at the
271
same
time frightened. Such opposing aspects at the same time gave him gooseflesh.
"Then
I fear," she whispered, "that I've simply lost my power. I'm
helpless."
"Franca,
I'm sure-"
She
licked her lips. "You have Serin Rajak locked away in chains, don't you?
I'd not like to think him or his lunatic followers..."
"I
told you before, we have him in chains. I'm not even sure he's still alive.
After all this time, I doubt it, but either way there is no need to worry about
Serin Rajak."
Staring
off, she nodded.
He
touched her arm. "Franca, I'm certain your power will return. Try not to
be overly concerned."
Tears
welled in her eyes. "Dalton, I'm terrified."
Cautiously,
he took the weeping woman in his consoling arms. She was, after all, besides
being a dangerous gifted woman, a friend.
The
words from the song at the feast came to mind.
Came
the thieves of the charm and spell.
CHAPTER
25
ROBERTA
LIFTED HER CHIN high in the air, stretching her neck, to guardedly peer off
past the brink of the cliff not far away and look out over the fertile fields
of her beloved Nareef Valley far below. Freshly plowed fields were a deep
272
rich
brown among breathtakingly bright green carpets of new crops and the darker
verdant pastures where livestock, looking like tiny slow ants, cropped at
tender new grass. The Dammar River meandered through it all, sparkling in the
early-morning sunshine, escorted along its route by a gathering of dark green
trees, as if they'd come to watch the river's showy parade.
Whenever
she went up in the woods near Nesting Cliff, she had herself a look from afar,
just to see the pretty valley below. After allowing herself that brief look,
she always lowered her eyes to the shaded forest floor at her feet, the leaf
litter, and mossy stretches among dappled sunlight, where the ground was firm
and comforting.
Roberta
shifted the sack slung over her shoulder, and moved on. As she maneuvered
through the clear patches among the huckleberry and hawthorn, stepped on stones
set like islands among dark crevices and holes, and ducked under low pine
boughs and alder limbs, she flipped aside with her walking stick a fern here or
a low spreading balsam branch there, looking, always looking, as she moved
along.
She
spied a vase-shaped yellow cap and stooped for a look. Chanterelle, she was
pleased to see, and not the poisonous jack-o'-lantern. Most folk favored the
smooth yellow chanterelle mushroom for its nutlike flavor. She hooked the stem
with a finger and plucked it up. Before sticking the prize in her sack, she ran
her thumb over the featherlike gills just for the pleasure of the soft feel.
The
mountain she searched for her mushrooms was only a small mountain, compared to
the others jutting up all around, and but for Nesting Cliff, reassuringly
round, with trails, a few made by man but most made by animal, crisscrossing
the gentle wooded slopes. It was the kind of woods her aging muscles and
increasingly aching bones favored.
It was
said a person could see the ocean far off to the south from many of the taller
mountains. She'd often heard it to be an inspiring sight. Many people went up
there once every year or two just to view the splendor of the Creator by what
He'd wrought.
273
Some of
those trails took a person along the scruffy edges of cliffs and scree and
such. Some folk even tended herds of goats up on those steep and rocky slopes.
But for a journey when she was a small child, when her pa, rest his soul, took
them off to Fairfield, for what she could no longer remember, she had never
even been up there. Roberta was content to remain near the alluvial land.
Unlike a lot of other folk, Roberta never climbed the higher mountains; she was
afraid of high places.
Up
higher yet, in the highlands above, were far worse places, like the wasteland
up above where the warfer birds nested.
There
was nothing in that desolate place, not a blade of grass nor a sprig of scrub
brush, except those paka plants growing in that poison swampy water. Nothing
else up there but the vast stretches of dark, rocky, sandy soil, and a few
bleached bones, as she heard tell. Like another world, those who'd seen it
said. Silent but for the wind that dragged the dark sandy dirt into mounds that
shifted over time, always moving on, as if they were looking for something, but
never finding it.
The
lower mountains, like the ones she hunted for mushrooms, were beautiful, lush
places, rounder and softer, mostly, and except for Nesting Cliff, not so steep
and rocky. She liked it where it was full of trees and critters and growing
things of all sorts. The deer trails she searched stayed away from the edges
she didn't like, and never went very close to Nesting Cliff, as it was called
because the falcons liked to nest there. She liked the deep woods, where her
mushrooms grew.
Roberta
collected mushrooms to sell at market; some fresh, some dried, some pickled,
and others fixed in various ways. Most folk called her the mushroom lady, and
knew her by no other name. Sold at market, the mushrooms helped earn her family
some trading money for the things that made life easier: needles and thread,
some ready-made cloth, buckles and buttons, a lamp, oil, salt, sugar, cinnamon,
nuts-things to help a body have an easier time of it. Easier
274
for her
family, and especially for her four grandchildren still living. Roberta's
mushrooms provided all those things to supplement what they grew or raised
themselves.
Of
course, they made good eating, too. She did like best the mushrooms that grew
in the forests up on the mountain, rather than those down in the valley.
Touched as they were up there by clouds so much of the time, the mushrooms grew
well in the damp conditions. She always thought there were none better than
those from up on the mountain, and many folk sought her out just for her
mountain mushrooms. Roberta had her secret places, too, where she found the
best ones every year. The big pockets in her apron were plump and full with
them, as was the sack over her shoulder.
Because
it was still early in the year, she'd mostly found heavy clusters of the
tawny-colored oyster mushrooms. Their fleshy, tender caps were best for dipping
in egg and frying, so she'd sell them fresh. But she'd been lucky, and would be
setting out chanterelles to dry as well as offering fresh. She found a goodly
number of pheasant's-backs, too, and they'd be best pickled, if she wanted to
get the highest price.
It was
too early for woolly velvet in most places, even though it would be common
enough later on in the summer, but she'd gone to one of her special spots-where
there were a lot of pine stumps and she'd found some of the ocher-colored
woolly velvet used to make dye. Roberta had even found a rotting birch with a
cluster of smoky brown poly-pores. The kidney-shaped mushrooms were favored by
cooks to keep a fire blazing and by men to strop their razors.
Leaning
on her walking stick, Roberta bent over a harmless-looking brownish mushroom.
It had a ring on the off-white stalk. She saw that the yellowish gills were
just starting to turn a rust color. It was that time of year for this mushroom,
too. Grunting her displeasure, she let the deadly galerina be and moved on.
Back
under the spreading limbs of an oak, as big around as her two oxen
shoulder-to-shoulder when they were yoked up, she plucked up three good sized
spicy chanterelles. The
275
spicy
variety grew almost exclusively under oak wood. They had already turned from
yellow to orange, so they'd be choice eating.
Roberta
knew where she was, but was off her usual path, so she'd never seen the huge
oak before. When she'd seen the tree's crown, she knew that with all the shade
it provided it would be a good spot for mushrooms. She was not disappointed.
At the
base of the oak, around part of the trunk where it came up from the ground, she
was delighted to see a bunch of small pipes, or beef vein as some folk called
them because the standing tubes were sometimes a vivid red like a whole passel
of veins bunched together and cut off even like. These, though, were pinkish,
streaked with just a bit of red. Roberta preferred the name small pipes, but
she still didn't hold much favor with them. Some folk, though, bought them for
their tart taste and they were on the rare side, so they brought a decent
price.
Under
the tree, in the deep shade, was a ring of spirit-bells, so called because of
their bell-like tops. They weren't poisonous, but because of the bitter taste
and woody texture, no one liked them. Worse, though, people thought that anyone
stepping inside the ring would be bewitched, so folks generally didn't even
want to see the lovely little spirit bells. Roberta had been walking through
spirit-bell rings since she was a toddler when her mother would take her along
mushrooming.
Since
she held no favor with such superstition about her beloved mushrooms, she
stepped through the ring of spirit bells, imagining she heard their delicate
chimes, and gathered up the small pipes.
One of
the spreading branches of the oak grew down low enough to make a seat. Big
around as her ample waist, it was comfortable enough, and dry enough, for a
good sit.
Roberta
slipped her sack to the ground. She sighed with relief as she laid her weary
bones back against another branch, which turned up at just the right angle to
rest her
276
shoulders
and head against. The tree seemed to cup her in its sheltering hand.
Daydreaming
as she was, she thought it was part of the dream when she heard a whisper that
sounded like her name. It was a pleasing, low, warm sound, more a feeling of
good things and pleasant thoughts than a word.
The
second time, she knew it wasn't part of her daydream, and she was sure it was
her name being spoken, but in a fashion somehow more intimate than a mere
spoken word.
The
thing was, the way it was spoken strummed the strings of her heart. Like the
spirit's own music, it was. All lovely with kindness, compassion, and warmth.
It made her sigh. It made her happy. It fell across her like warm sunlight on a
chill day.
The
third time, she sat up to look, longing to see the source of such a touching
voice. Even as she moved, she felt like she was in one of her daydreams, all
peaceful and content. The forest all about seemed to sparkle in the morning
sun, seemed to glow.
Roberta
let out a small gasp when she saw him not far away.
She'd
never seen him before, but she'd always known him, it seemed. She realized he
was a familiar friend, a comfort, a partner from her mind since youth, though
she never really gave it much thought before. He was the one who had always
been there with her, it seemed. The one she always thought about when she was
daydreaming. The face without definition, yet one she knew well.
Now she
realized he was as real as she had always imagined when she kissed him in her
fancies, which she had done ever since she was young enough to know that a kiss
was something more than your mother, gave you before bed. His were kisses given
in bed. All warm and ardent.
She'd
never thought he was real, but now she was sure she'd always known he was. As
he stood there, gazing into her eyes, how could he not be real? His tumble of
hair swept
277
back
from his glorious face, showing his warm smile, though she thought it puzzling
that she couldn't say just what he looked like. Yet at the same time, she knew
his face as well as she knew hers.
And,,
she knew his every thought, just as he knew every thought and longing of hers.
He was her soul's true mate.
She
knew his thoughts; she didn't need his name. That she didn't know his name was
only proof to her that they were connected on a spiritual level that
transcended words.
And now
he had stepped out of the mist of that spiritual world, needing to be with her,
just as she needed to be with him. His hand opened to her, as if avowing his
need. Roberta reached for the hand. She seemed almost to float above the
ground. Her feet touched like dandelion fluff drifting on a breath. Her body
floated like weed in water as she stretched out to him. Stretched out for his
embrace.
The
closer she got, the warmer she felt. Not warm as if from the sun on her face,
but warmed as if from a lover's arms, a lover's smile, a lover's sweet kiss.
Her
whole life came down to this, to needing to be in his arms feeling his tender
embrace, needing to whisper her yearning because she knew he would understand,
needing the breath from his lips on her ear, telling her he understood.
She
burned to whisper her love, to have him whisper his.
She
needed nothing in life so much as she needed to be in those arms she knew so
well.
Her
muscles were no longer weary; her bones no longer ached. She was no longer old.
The years had slipped away from her like clothes slipping from lovers shedding
encumbrances in order to get down to the bare essence of their being.
Because
of him, because of him alone; she was again in the winsome bloom of youth,
where everything was possible.
His arm
floated out to her, his need for her as great as hers for him. She stretched
for his hand, but it seemed farther away, and she stretched more, but it was
more distant still.
Panic
raced through her as she feared he would be gone
278
before
she could at last touch him. She felt as if she were swimming in honey and
could make no progress. Her whole life she had longed to touch him. Her whole
life she had longed to tell him. Her whole life she had longed to have her soul
join with his.
But now
he was drifting from her.
Roberta,
her legs leaden, leaped through the spring sunshine, through the sweet air,
racing to her lover's arms.
And yet
he was farther still.
Both
his arms lifted to her. She could feel his need. She ached to comfort him. To
shelter him from hurt. To sooth his strife.
He
could feel those longings in her, and cried out her name that she might be
strengthened in her effort to reach him. The sound of her name on his lips made
her heart lift with joy, lift with a terrible pang of need to return such
passion as he put into her name.
She
wept to know his name, now, that she might put it to her undying love.
With
all her might, she stretched out to him. She put her entire being into her
reckless lunge for him, forsaking all care but her fierce need to reach him.
Roberta
cried her nameless love, cried her need, as she reached for his ringers. His
arms spread to take her into his loving embrace. As she rushed into those arms,
the sun sparkled all about, the warm wind lifted her hair, ruffled her dress.
As he
cried her name with such beauty it made her ache, her arms spread wide to take
him at last into her embrace. She felt as if she were floating endlessly
through the air toward him, the sun on her face, the breeze in her hair, but it
was all right because now she was where she wanted to be-with him.
At that
moment, there was no more perfect time in the whole of her life. No more
perfect feeling in the whole of her existence. No more perfect love in the
whole of the world.
279
She
heard the perfect chimes of those feelings ring out with the glory of it all.
Her
heart nearly burst as she at last plunged into his embrace in one wild rush,
screaming out her need, her love, her completion, wanting only to know his name
so she might give everything of herself to him.
His
glowing smile was for her and her alone. His lips were for her and her alone.
She closed that last bit of space toward him, longing to at last kiss the love
of her life, the mate to her soul, the one and the only true passion in all of
life.
His
lips were there, at last, as she fell into his outstretched arms, into his
embrace, into his perfect kiss.
In that
flawless instant when her lips were just touching his, she, saw through him,
just beyond him, the merciless unyielding valley floor hurtling up toward her,
and she knew at last his name.
Death.
280
CHAPTER
26
"THERE,"
RICHARD SAID, LEANING close so Kahlan could sight down his arm as he pointed
off toward the horizon. "See that really dark fleck of cloud in front of
the lighter part?" He waited for her nod. "Under that, and just a bit
to the right."
Standing
amid a seemingly endless sea of nearly waist-high grass, Kahlan straightened
and held a hand to her brow to shield her eyes from the morning light.
"I
still can't see him." Her frustration came out as a sigh. "But I've
never been able to see distant things as well as you."
"I
don't see him, either," Cara said.
Richard
again checked over his shoulder, scanning the empty grassland all around to
make sure they weren't about to be surprised by someone sneaking up while they
watched the approach of this one man. He saw no other threat.
"You
will, soon enough."
He
reached over to check that his sword was clear in its scabbard, only realizing
he was doing so when he found the sword absent from his left hip. He instead
pulled his bow from his shoulder and nocked an arrow.
There
had been countless times he had wished to be rid of the Sword of Truth and its
attendant magic, inasmuch as
281
it
brought forth from within himself things he abhorred. The sword's magic could
fuse with those feelings into a lethal wrath. Zedd, when he first gave Richard
the sword, told him it was only a tool. Over time, he had come to comprehend
Zedd's advice.
Still,
it was a horrifying tool to have to use.
It was
up to the one wielding the sword to govern not simply the weapon, but himself.
Understanding that part of it, among other things, was essential to using the
weapon as it was intended. And it was intended for none but a true Seeker of
Truth.
Richard
shuddered to think of that contrivance of magic in the wrong hands. He thanked
the good spirits that, if he couldn't have it with him, it was at least safe.
Below
distant billowing clouds, their interiors glowing in the morning light colors
from a deep yellow to an unsettling violet that marked the violence of the
storms contained within, the man continued to approach. Lightning, silent at
this distance, flashed and flickered inside the colossal clouds, illuminating hidden
canyons, valley walls, and seething peaks.
Compared
with other places he had been, the sky and clouds above the flat plains somehow
appeared impossibly grand. He guessed it was because from horizon to horizon
there was nothing-no mountains, no trees, nothing-to interrupt the drama of the
vast vault of stage overhead.
The
departing storm clouds had only finally moved on eastward before dawn, taking
with them the rain that had so" vexed them when with the Mud People, their
first day of traveling, and their first miserable cold night without a fire.
Traveling in the rain was unpleasant. In its wake the rain had left the three
of them irritable.
Like
him, Kahlan was worried about Zedd and Ann and troubled by what the Lurk might
bring next. It was also frustrating to have to undertake a long journey, when
they were in such, a rush and it was so vitally important, rather than return
to Aydindril in short order through the sliph.
Richard
was almost willing to take the risk. Almost.
282
With Cara,
though, it seemed something more was disturbing her. She was as disagreeable as
a cat in a sack. He wasn't eager to reach in and get scratched. He figured that
if it was truly important, she would tell them.
Added
to all that, Richard was unsettled by not having his sword with him when there
was trouble about. He feared the Lurk trying to harm Kahlan, while he was
unable to protect her. Even without the trouble caused by the Sisters of the
Dark, there were any number of ordinary dangers for a Confessor, any number of
people who would, were she defenseless, like to settle what they viewed as
injustices.
With
the spell eroding magic, sooner or later her Confessor's power would be gone,
and she would be without its ability to protect her. He needed to be able to
protect her, but without the sword he feared being inadequate to the task.
Every
time he reached for his sword and it wasn't there, he felt an emptiness he
couldn't express in words. It was as if part of him was missing.
Even
so, Richard was for some reason uneasy about going to Aydindril. Something
about it felt wrong. He rationalized it as worry about leaving Zedd when he was
so weak and vulnerable. But Zedd had made it clear there was no choice.
Up
until he had spotted the approaching stranger, their second day had been
looking sunny, dry, and more agreeable. Richard put some tension to the
bowstring. After their encounter with the chicken-thing, or rather the Lurk,
and with so much at stake, he didn't intend to let anyone get close unless he
knew them to be a friend.
Richard
frowned over at Kahlan. "You know, I think my mother once told me a story
or something about a cat named 'Lurk.' "
Holding
a fistful of hair to keep the breeze from blowing it across her face, Kahlan
frowned back. "That's odd. Are you sure?"
"No.
She died when I was young. It's hard to remember if I'm really remembering, or
just fooling myself into thinking I am."
"What
do you think you remember?" Kahlan asked.
283
Richard
stretched the bowstring to test it, and then relaxed it partway. "I think
I fell down and skinned a knee, or something, and she was trying to make me
laugh-you know, to make me forget my hurt. I think she just that one time told
me how when she was little, her mother told her a story of a cat that lurked
about pouncing on things, and so earned the name Lurk. I'd swear I remember her
laughing and asking if I didn't think that was a funny name."
"Yes,
very funny," Cara said, making clear she thought it wasn't.
With a
finger, she lifted the point of his arrow, and thus his bow, in the direction
of the danger she seemed to think he was ignoring.
"What
made you think of that, now?" Kahlan asked.
Richard
pointed with his chin toward the approaching man. "I was considering a man
being out here-you know, thinking of what other dangers might be lurking
about."
"And
when you thought of all these dangers lurking about," Cara said, "did
you also decide to just stand around and let them all come to attack you as
they wish?"
Ignoring
Cara, Richard tilted his head toward the man. "You must see him now."
"No,
I still don't see where it is you .... wait..." Hand to her brow, Kahlan
rose up onto her tiptoes, as if that would help her see better. "There he
is. I see him now."
"I
think we should conceal ourselves in the grassland then pounce on him,"
Cara said.
"He
saw us at the same time I saw him," Richard said. "He knows we're
here. We couldn't surprise him."
"At
least there is only one." Cara yawned. "We will have no trouble."
Cara,
standing the middle watch, hadn't wakened him as early as she was supposed to
for his turn at watch. She had left him sleeping an extra hour, at least.
Middle watch, too, usually got less sleep.
Richard
checked over his shoulder again. "You may see only one, but there are a
number more. A dozen, at least."
Kahlan
put her hand back to her forehead to shield her
284
eyes.
"I don't see any more." She looked to the sides and behind. "I
only see the one. Are you sure?"
"Yes.
When-I first saw him, and he saw me, he left the others and came alone toward
us. They still wait."
Cara
snatched up a pack. She shoved Kahlan's shoulder, then Richard's. "Let's
go. We can outdistance them until we're out of sight and then hide. If they
follow we will take them by surprise and put a quick end to the pursuit."
Richard
returned the shove. "Would you just settle down? He's coming alone so as
not to draw any arrows. If it was an attack he would have brought all his men
at once. We will wait."
Cara
folded her arms and pressed her lips together in a bit of ire. She seemed to be
beyond her usual protective self. Whether or not she was ready to tell him,
they were going to have to talk to her and find out what her problem was. Maybe
Kahlan would have some luck.
The man
lifted his arms, waving at them in a friendly gesture.
Suddenly
recognizing the man, Richard took his hand from the bowstring and returned the
greeting.
"It's
Chandalen."
It
wasn't long until Kahlan waved her arm, too. "You're right, it is
Chandalen."
Richard
returned his arrow to the quiver hung on his belt. "I wonder what he's
doing out here."
"When
you were still searching the chickens gathered together in the buildings,"
Kahlan said, "he went to check on some of his men on far patrol. He said
they had encountered some heavily armed people. His men were worried about the
behavior of the strangers."
"They
were hostile?"
"No."
Kahlan pushed her damp hair back over her shoulder. "But Chandalen's men
said they had a calm about them when approached. That troubled him."
Richard
nodded as he watched Chandalen's approach, seeing that he brought no weapons
except a belt knife. As was the custom, he didn't smile as he trotted up to
them.
285
Until
proper greetings were exchanged, Mud People didn't usually smile when they
encountered even friends on the plains.
With a
grim expression, Chandalen quickly slapped Richard, Kahlan, and Cara. Though he
had run most of the way, he seemed hardly winded as he greeted them by their
titles.
"Strength
to the Mother Confessor. Strength to Richard with the Temper." He added a
nod to his spoken greeting of Cara; she was a protector, the same as he.
All
three returned the slap and wished him their strength.
"Where
are you going?" Chandalen asked.
"There's
trouble," Richard said as he offered his water-skin. "We have to get
back to Aydindril."
Chandalen
accepted the waterskin as he let out a grumble of worry. "The chicken that
is not a chicken?"
"In
a way, yes," Kahlan told him. "It turns out it was magic conjured by
the Sisters of the Dark Jagang is holding prisoner."
"Lord
Rahl used his magic to destroy the chicken that was not a chicken," Cara
put in.
Chandalen,
looking relieved to hear her news, took a swig of water. 'Then why must you go
to Aydindril?"
Richard
rested the end of his bow on the ground and gripped the other end. "The
spell the Sisters cast endangers everyone and everything of magic. It's making
Zedd and Ann weak. They're waiting back at your village. In Aydindril we hope
to unleash magic to counter the Sisters of the Dark, and then Zedd will be
strong enough to put everything right again.
"The
Sisters' magic made the chicken-thing that killed Juni. Until we can get to
Aydindril, no one is safe."
Having
listened carefully, Chandalen finally replaced the stopper and handed back the
waterskin.
"Then
you must soon be on your way to do what only you can." He checked over his
shoulder. Now that Chandalen had identified himself, the others were
approaching. "But my men have met strangers who must see you, first."
Richard
hooked his bow back over his shoulder as he
286
peered
off into the distance. He couldn't make out the people.
"So,
who are they?"
Chandalen
stole a glance at Kahlan before directing his answer to Richard. "We have
an old saying. It is best to hold your tongue around the cook, or you may end
up in the pot with the chicken that ate her dinner greens."
It
seemed to Richard that Chandalen was trying very hard to keep from looking at
Kahlan's puzzled expression. Although Richard couldn't fathom the reason, he
thought he understood the figure of speech-odd as it was. He thought maybe it
was a bad translation.
The
approaching people\xA0 weren't far
off.\xA0 Chandalen, having had one of his
trusted hunters killed by the Lurk, would want Richard and Kahlan to do what
they could to stop the enemy; he would not insist they delay their journey
unless he had a good reason. "If it's important for them to see us, then let's
go." Chandalen caught Richard's arm. "They only asked to see you.
Perhaps you wish to go alone? Then you could be on your way."
"Why
would Richard want to go alone," Kahlan asked, suspicion bubbling up in
her voice. She then added something in the Mud People's language which Richard
didn't understand.
Chandalen
lifted his hands, showing her his empty palms, as if to say he held no weapon
arid wished no fight. For some reason, he seemed to want no part of whatever
was going on.
"Maybe
I should-" Richard closed his mouth when Kahlan's suspicious glower
shifted to him. He cleared his throat.
"I
was going to say we have no secrets." Richard hefted
his
gear. "Kahlan is always welcome at my side. We have
no time
to waste. Let's go."
Chandalen
nodded and turned to lead them to their fate. Richard thought he saw the man
roll his eyes in a don't-say-I-didn't-warn-you fashion. Richard could see ten
of Chandalen's hunters following
287
behind
the seven oncoming travelers, with another three hunters winged out distantly
to each side, hemming in the strangers without being overtly threatening. The
Mud People hunters seemed merely to accompany and guide the strangers, but
Richard knew they were ready to strike at any sign of hostility. Armed outsiders
on Mud People land were like tinder before a lightning storm.
Richard
hoped this storm, too, would move away and leave sunny skies to follow. Kahlan,
Cara, and Richard hurried behind Chandalen through the wet new grass.
Chandalen's
men were the first line of defense for the Mud People. That the Mud People's
land was given a wide berth by almost everyone spoke to their fighting
ferocity.
Yet
Chandalen's skilled and deadly hunters, now turned escorts, elicited no more
than detached indifference from the six men in loose flaxen clothes. Something
about that indifference at being surrounded tickled at Richard's memory. As the
approaching group got close enough for Richard to suddenly recognize them, he
missed a step.
It took
a few moments of scrutiny before he could believe what he was seeing. He at
last understood the strangers' fearless indifference to Chandalen's men. He
couldn't imagine what these people were doing away from their own homeland.
Each
man was dressed the same and carried the same weapons. Richard knew only one by
name, but knew them all. These people were dedicated to a purpose laid down by
their lawgivers thousands of years before-those wizards in the great war who
had taken their homeland and created the Valley of the Lost to separate the New
World from the Old. Their black-handled swords, with their distinctive curved
blades that widened toward clipped points, remained in their scabbards. One end
of a cord was tied to a ring on the pommel of each man's sword; the other end
of the cord, looped around the swordsman's neck as a precaution against losing
the weapon in battle. Additionally, each of the six carried spears and a small,
round, unadorned shield. Richard had seen women clothed and armed the same, and
commit-
288
ted to
the same purpose, but this time they were all men.
For
these men, practice with their swords was an art form. They practiced that art
by moonlight, after the day did not provide them all the time they wished.
Using their swords was near to a religious devotion, and they went about their
bladework with pious commitment. These men were blade masters.
The
seventh, the woman, was dressed differently, and not armed-at least not in the
conventional sense.
Richard
wasn't good at judging such things by sight, but a quick calculation told him
she had to be at least six months pregnant.
A thick
mass of long black hair framed a lovely face, her presence giving her features,
especially her dark eyes, a certain edginess. Unlike the men's loose outfits of
simple cloth, she wore a knee-length dress of finely woven flax dyed a rich
earth color and gathered at the waist with a buckskin belt. The ends of the
belt were decorated with roughly cut gemstones.
Up the
outside of each arm and across the shoulders of the dress was a row of little
strips of different-colored cloth. Each was knotted on through a small hole
beneath a corded band and each, Richard knew, would have been tied on by a
supplicant.
It was
a prayer dress. Each of the little colored strips, when they fluttered in the
breeze, meant-to send a prayer to the good spirits. The dress was worn only by
their spirit woman.
Richard's
mind raced with possibilities as to why these people would have traveled so far
from their homeland. He could come up with nothing good, and a lot that was
unpleasant.
Richard
had halted. Kahlan waited to his left, Cara to his right, and Chandalen to the
right of her.
Ignoring
everyone else, the men in the loose clothes all laid their spears on the ground
beside themselves as they went to their knees before Richard. They bowed
forward, touching their foreheads to the ground, and stayed there.
289
The
woman stood silently regarding Mm. Her dark eyes bore the timeless look Richard
had often seen in others; Sister Verna, Shota the witch woman, Ann, and Kahlan,
among others. That timeless look was the mark of the gift.
As she
gazed into Richard's eyes with a look that seemed to hint at wisdom he would
never grasp, a ghost of a smile touched her lips. Without a word, she went to
her knees at the head of the six men accompanying her. She touched her forehead
to the ground and then kissed the toe of his boot.
"Caharin,"
she whispered reverently.
Richard
reached down and tugged on the shoulder of her dress, urging her up.
"Du
Chaillu, it pleases my heart to see you are well, but what are you doing
here?"
She
rose up before him, a heartening handsome smile widening across her face. She
bent forward and kissed his cheek.
"I
have come to see you, of course, Richard, Seeker, Caharin, husband."
CHAPTER
27
"HUSBAND?"
RICHARD HEARD KAHLAN say in a rising tone of concern.
With a
jolt of astonished shock that nearly took him from his feet, and did take his
breath, Richard abruptly recalled
290
Du
Chaillu's account of her people's old law. The dire implications staggered him.
At the
time, he had dismissed her adamant assertions as either irrational conviction
or perhaps misconceptions about their history. Now, this old ghost had
unexpectedly returned to haunt him.
"Husband?"
Kahlan repeated, a little louder, a little more insistently.
Her
dark eyes turned to Kahlan, as if annoyed she had to take them from Richard.
"Yes. Husband. I am Du Chaillu, wife of the Caharin, Richard, the Seeker."
Du Chaillu rubbed her hand over her pronounced belly. Her look of annoyance
passed and she beamed with pride. "I bear his child."
"Leave
it to me, Mother Confessor," Cara said. There was no mistaking the
resolute menace in her voice. "This time, I will take care of it."
Cara
yanked the knife from Chandalen's belt and lunged for the woman.
Richard
was quicker. He spun to Cara and shoved the tips of his stiffened fingers
against her upper chest. It not only halted her forward progress, but drove her
back three paces. He had enough problems without her causing more. He shoved
her again and drove her back another three, and then another three, away from
the group of people.
Richard
twisted the knife from her grip. "Now, you listen to me. You don't know
the first thing about this woman."
"I
know-"
"You
know nothing! Listen to me! You are fighting the last war. This is not Nadine.
This is nothing like Nadine!"
His
quiescent fury had at last erupted. With a cry of unleashed rage, Richard heaved
the knife at the ground. The force drove it beneath the grass mat, burying it
completely into the soil of the plains.
Kahlan
laid her hand on the back of his shoulder.
"Richard,
calm down. What's this about? What's going on?"
Richard
raked his fingers back through his hair. Clenching
291
his
jaw, he glanced about and saw the men still on their knees.
"Jiaan-the
rest of you-get off your knees! Get up!"
The men
rose up at once. Du Chaillu waited passively, patiently. Chandalen and his men
backed off. The Mud People had named him Richard with the Temper and, while not
surprised, looked to think it best to give ground.
Chandalen
and his men had no idea his anger was for what had killed one of them-had most
likely, he realized, killed two of them-and would surely kill more.
Kahlan
regarded him with a look of concern. "Richard, calm down and get ahold of
yourself. Who are these people?"
He
couldn't seem to slow his breathing. Or his heart. Or unclench his fists. Or
stop his racing thoughts. Everything seemed to be reeling out of control. Fears
laid to rest seemed to have unshackled themselves and suddenly sprung up to
snare him. He should have seen it before. He cursed himself for missing it.
But
there had to be a way to stop it. He had to think. He had to stop fearing
things that had not yet happened, and think of a way to prevent them from
coming to be.
He
realized it had already happened. He now had to think of the solution.
Kahlan
lifted his chin to look into his eyes. "Richard, answer me. Who are these
people?"
He
pressed a hand to his forehead in frustrated rage. "The Baka Ban Mana. It
means 'those without masters.' "
"We
now have a Caharin; we are no longer the Baka Ban Mana," Du Chaillu said
from not far away. "We are now the Baka Tau Mana."
Not
really comprehending Du Chaillu's explanation, Kahlan turned her attention once
more to Richard. This time her voice had a razor's edge to it. "Why is she
saying you are her husband?"
His
mind had already galloped so far off down another road he had to concentrate
for a moment to understand what Kahlan was asking. She didn't realize the
implications. To
292
Richard,
Kahlan's question seemed insignificant past history in the face of the future
looming before them.
He
impatiently tried to wave away her concern. "Kahlan, it's not what you
think."
She
licked her lips and took a breath. "Fine." Her green eyes fixed on
him. "So, why don't you just explain it to me, then."
It was
not a question. Richard instead asked his own. "Don't you see?"
Overwhelmed by impatience, he pointed at Du Chaillu. "It's the old law! By
the old law, she is my wife. At least she thinks she is."
Richard
pressed his fingertips to his temples. His head was throbbing.
"We
are in a great deal of trouble," he muttered.
"You
are, anyway," Cara said.
"Cara,"
Kahlan said through her teeth, "that's enough." She turned back to
him. "Richard, what are you talking about? What's going on?"
Accounts
from Kolo's journal echoed through his mind.
He
couldn't seem to order his thoughts enough to put all the tumbling elements
into words. The world was shredding apart, and she was asking him yesterday's
questions. Since he saw it so clearly looming before them, he couldn't
comprehend why Kahlan wouldn't comprehend the danger, too.
"Don't
you see?"
Richard's
mind picked madly through the shadowy possibilities as he tried to decide what
to do next. Time was slipping away. He didn't even know how much they had.
"I
see you got her pregnant," Cara said.
Richard
turned a glare on the Mord-Sith. "After all we have been through, Cara, do
you think no more of me?"
Looking
galled, Cara folded her arms and didn't answer.
"Do
the math," Kahlan told Cara. "Richard would have been a prisoner of
the Mord-Sith, far off at the People's Palace in D'Hara, back when this woman
got pregnant."
Unlike
the Agiel Richard wore out of respect for the two women who had died protecting
them, Kahlan wore the Agiel of Denna, the Mord-Sith who had, at the behest of
293
Darken
Rahl, captured Richard and tortured him nearly to death. Denna had decided to
take Richard as her mate, but she had never once implied it was marriage. To
Denna, it was just another way to torture and humiliate him.
In the
end, Richard forgave Denna for what she had done to him. Denna, knowing he was
going to kill her in order to escape, gave him her Agiel and asked him to
remember her as having been more in life than simply Mord-Sith. She had asked
him to share her last breath of life. It had been through Denna that Richard
had come to understand and empathize with these women, and by so doing he had
been the only one ever to have escaped a Mord-Sith.
Richard
was surprised at Kahlan already having done "the math." He would not
have expected her to doubt him. He was wrong. She seemed to read his thoughts
in his eyes.
"It's
just something you do without thinking," she whispered. "All right?
Richard, please, tell me what's going on?" "You're a Confessor. You
know how different arrangements can constitute marriage to different peoples.
Except for you, Confessors always picked their mates for reasons of their own,
reasons other than love, and then took them with their power before wedding
them. The man had no say."
The man
a Confessor singled out to be her husband was selected for little more reason
than his value as breeding stock. Since her power would destroy the man she
picked, love, despite what she might wish, had never been an option for a
Confessor. A Confessor chose a man for the qualities he would contribute to her
daughter.
"Where
I came from," Richard went on, "parents often chose who their
children would wed. A father would one day tell his child, 'This will be your
husband' or 'This will be your wife.' Different people have different ways and
different laws."
Kahlan
cast a furtive glance at Du Chaillu. Her gaze pausing twice, once on Du
Chaillu's face, and once on her belly. When Kahlan's gaze returned to him, her
eyes had turned brutally cold. "So tell me about her laws."
294
Richard
didn't think Kahlan was aware that she was stroking the dark stone on the
delicate gold necklace Shota had given her. The witch woman had appeared
unexpectedly at their wedding, and Richard remembered well her words to them.
"This
is my gift to you both. I do this out of love for you both, and for everyone
else. As long as you wear it, you will bear no children. Celebrate your union
and your love. You_ have each other, now, as you always wanted.
"Mark
my words well-never take this off when you are together. I will not allow a
male child of this union to live. I do not make a threat. I deliver you a
promise. Disregard my request, and suffer the consequences of my vow."
The
witch woman had then looked into Richard's eyes, and said, "Better you
battle the Keeper of the underworld himself, than me."
Shota's
elaborate throne was covered with the hide of an experienced wizard who had
crossed her. Richard knew little of his birthright of the gift. He didn't
necessarily believe Shota's claim that their child would be a fiend unleashed
upon the world, but for now he and Kahlan had decided to heed the witch woman's
warning. They had little choice.
Kahlan's
fingers on his cheek drew his gaze to hers and reminded him she wanted an
answer.
Richard
made an effort to slow his words. "Du Chaillu is from the Old World, on
the other side of the Valley of the Lost. I helped her when Sister Verna took
me across to the Old World.
"These
other people, the Majendie, had captured Du Chaillu and were going to sacrifice
her. They held her prisoner for months. The men used her for their amusement.
'The
Majendie expected me, being gifted, to help them sacrifice her in return for
passage through their land. A gifted man helping with the sacrifice was part of
their religious beliefs. Instead, I freed Du Chaillu, hoping she would see us
through her trackless swamps, since we could no longer cross the Majendie's
land."
"I
provided men to guide Richard and the witch safely
295
through
the swamps to the big stone witch house," Du Chaillu said, as if that
would clarify matters.
Kahlan
blinked at the explanation. "Witch? Witch house?"
"She
means Sister Verna and the Palace of the Prophets," Richard said.
"They led Sister Verna and me there not because I freed Du Chaillu, but
because I fulfilled an ancient prophecy."
Du
Chaillu stepped to Richard's side, as if by right. "According to the old
law, Richard came to us and danced with the spirits, proving he is the Caharin,
and my husband."
Richard
could almost see Kahlan's hackles lifting. "What does that mean?"
Richard
opened his mouth as he searched for the words. Du Chaillu lifted her chin and
spoke instead.
"I
am the spirit woman of the Baka Tau Mana. I am also the keeper of our laws. It
is proclaimed that the Caharin will announce his arrival by dancing with the
spirits, and spilling the blood of thirty Baka Ban Mana, a feat none but the
chosen one could accomplish and only then with the aid of the spirits.
"It
is said that when this happens, we are no longer a free people, but bound to
his wishes. We are his to rule.
"It
was for this our blade masters trained their entire lives. They had the honor
of teaching the Caharin so that he might fight the Dark Spirit. This proved
Richard was the Caharin come to return us to our land, as the old ones
promised."
A light
breeze ruffled Du Chaillu's thick hair. Her dark eyes revealed no emotion, but
the slightest break in her voice betrayed it. "He killed the thirty, as
set down in the old law. The thirty are now legend to our people."
"I
didn't have any choice." Richard could manage little more than a whisper.
"They would have killed me, otherwise. I begged them to stop. I begged Du
Chaillu to stop them. I didn't save her life just to end up killing those
people. In the end, I defended myself."
Kahlan
gave Du Chaillu a long hard look before turning to Richard. "She was held
prisoner, and you saved her life
296
and
then returned her to her people." Richard nodded. "And she then had
her people try to kill you? That was her thanks?"
"There
was more to it." Richard felt uncomfortable defending those people's
actions-actions that had resulted in so much bloodshed. He could still remember
the sickening stench of it.
Kahlan
stole another icy sidelong glance at Du Chaillu. "But you saved her
life?"
"Yes."
"So
tell me what more there is to it, then."
Through
the pain of the memories, Richard sought to explain, in words Kahlan would
understand. "What they did was a kind of test. A live-or-die test. It
forced me to learn to use the magic of the sword in a way I never before
realized was possible. In order to survive, I had to draw on the experience of
the people who had used the sword before me."
"What
do you mean? How could you draw on their experience?"
"The
magic of the Sword of Truth retains the essence of the fighting knowledge of
all those who've used the sword before-both the good and the wicked. I figured
out how to tap that skill by letting the spirits of the sword speak to me, in
my mind. But in the heat of combat there isn't always time for me to comprehend
it in words.
"So,
sometimes the information I need comes to me in images-symbols-that relate it.
That was a pivotal connection in understanding why I was named in prophecy fuer
grissa ost drauka: the bringer of death."
Richard
touched the amulet on his chest. The ruby represented a drop of blood. The
lines around it were a symbolic portrayal of the dance. It held meaning for a
war wizard.
"This,"
Richard whispered. "This is the dance with death. But back then, with Du
Chaillu and her thirty, that was when I first understood.
"Prophecy
said I would someday come to them. Prophecy
297
and
their old laws said they had to teach me this-to dance with the spirits of
those who had used the sword before. I doubt they fully understood how their
test would do this, just that they were to uphold their duty and if they did
and I was the one, I would survive.
"I
needed that knowledge to stand against Darken Rahl and send him back to the
underworld. Remember how I called him in the gathering with the Mud People, and
how he escaped into this world, and then the Sisters took me?"
"Of-course,"
Kahlan said. "So they forced you into a life-or-death fight against
impossible odds in order to make you call upon your inner strength-your gift.
And as a result you killed her thirty blade masters?"
"Yes,
exactly. They were fulfilling prophecy." He shared a long look with his
only true wife-in his heart, anyway. "You know how terrible prophecy can
be."
Kahlan
looked away at last and nodded, caught in her own painful memories. Prophecies
had caused them many hardships and subjected them to many trials. His second
wife, Nadine, forced upon him by prophecy, had been one of those trials.
Du
Chaillu's chin lifted. "Five of those the Caharin killed were my husbands
and the fathers to my children."
"Her
five husbands ... Dear spirits."
Richard
shot Du Chaillu a look. "You're not helping."
"You
mean, by her law, killing her husbands compels you to become her husband?"
"No.
It's not because I killed her husbands, but because defeating the thirty proved
I was their Caharin. Du Chaillu is their spirit woman; by their old laws the
spirit woman is meant to be the wife of the Caharin. I should have thought of
it before."
"That's
obvious," Kahlan snapped.
"Look,
I know how it must sound-I know it doesn't seem to make any sense-"
"No,
it's all right. I understand." Her chill expression heated to simmering
hurt. "So you did the noble thing, and married her. Of course. Makes
perfect sense to me." She
298
leaned
close. "And you just got so busy and all, you forgot to mention it before
you married me. Of course. I understand. Who wouldn't? A man can't be expected
to recall all the wives he leaves lying about." She folded her arms and
turned away. "Richard, how could you-"
"No!
It wasn't like that. I never agreed. Never. There was no ceremony. No one said
any words. I never stood and swore an oath. Don't you understand? We weren't
married. It never happened!
"So
much has been going on. I'm sorry I forgot to tell you, but it never entered my
mind because at the time I dismissed it as an irrational belief of an isolated
people. I didn't put any stock in it She simply thinks that since I killed
those men to defend myself, that makes me her husband."
"It
does," Du Chaillu said.
Kahlan
glanced briefly at Du Chaillu as she coolly considered his words. "So then
you never, in any sense, really agreed to marry her?"
Richard
threw up his hands. "That's what I've been trying to tell you. It's just
the Baka Ban Mana's beliefs."
"Baka
Tau Mana," Du Chaillu corrected.
Richard
ignored her and leaned close to Kahlan. "I'm sorry, but can we talk about
it later? We may have a serious problem." She lifted an eyebrow. He
amended to, "Another serious problem."
She
gave him an indulgent scowl. He turned away, pulling a stalk of grass as he
considered the plausibility of worse trouble than Kahlan's ire.
"You
know a lot about magic. I mean, you grew up in Aydindril with wizards who
instructed you, and you've studied books at the Wizard's Keep. You're the
Mother Confessor."
"I'm
not gifted in the conventional sense," Kahlan said, "not like a
wizard or a sorceress-my power is different- but, yes, I know about magic.
Being a Confessor, I had to be taught about magic in many of its various
forms."
"Then
answer me this. If there's a requirement for magic,
299
can the
requirement be fulfilled by some ambiguous rule without the actual required
ritual taking place?" "Yes, of course. It's called the reflective
effect." "Reflective effect. How does that work?"
Kahlan
wound a long lock of damp hair on a finger as she turned her mind to the
question. "Say you have a room with only one window and therefore the sun
never reaches the corner. Can you get the sunlight to shine into a corner it
never touches?"
"Since
it's called the reflective effect, I'd guess you'd use a mirror to reflect the
sunlight into the corner."
"Right."
Kahlan let the hair go and held up the finger. "Even though the sunlight
could never itself reach the corner, by using a mirror you can get the sunlight
to fall where it ordinarily wouldn't. Magic can sometimes work like that. Magic
is much more complex, of course, but that's the easiest way I can explain it.
"Even
if only by some ancient law that completes a long-forgotten condition, the
spell might reflect the condition to fulfill the arcane requirements of the
magic involved. Like water seeking its own level, a spell will often seek its
own solution-within the laws of its nature."
"That's
what I was afraid of," Richard murmured.
He
tapped the end of the stalk of grass flat between his teeth as he stared out at
the lightning flickering ominously in the distant clouds.
"The
magic involved dates from the time of that ancient mandate about the
Caharin," he said at last. "Therein lies the problem."
Kahlan
gripped his arm, turning him back to face her. "But Zedd said-"
"He
lied to us. I fell for it." Exasperated, Richard flung the stalk of grass
aside. Zedd had used the Wizard's First Rule-people will believe a lie either
because they want to believe it's true, or because they fear it is-to mislead
them.
"I
wanted to believe him," Richard muttered. "He tricked, me."
"What
are you talking about?" Cara asked.
300
Richard
heaved a crestfallen sigh. He had been careless in more ways than one.
"Zedd. He made all that up about the Lurk."
Cara made
a face. "Why would he do that?"
"Because
for some reason he didn't want us to know the chimes are loose."
He
couldn't believe how stupid he'd been, forgetting about Du Chaillu. Kahlan was
right to be angry. When it came down to it, his excuse was pathetically
inadequate. And he was supposed to be the Lord Rahl? People were supposed to
believe in and follow him?
Kahlan
rubbed her fingertips across the furrows of her brow. "Richard, let's
think this through. It can't be-"
"Zedd
said you would have to be my third wife in order to have called the chimes
forth into this world."
"Among
other things," Kahlan insisted. "He said, among other things."
Wearily,
Richard lifted a finger. "Du Chaillu." He lifted a second finger.
"Nadine." He lifted a third finger. "You. You are my third wife.
In principle, anyway.
"I
may not look at it that way, but the wizards who cast the spell wouldn't care
how I may wish to look at it. They cast magic that would be set into motion by
keying off a prescribed set of conditions."
Kahlan
heaved a long-suffering sort of sigh. "You're forgetting one important
element. When I spoke aloud the names of the three chimes, we weren't yet
married. I wasn't yet your second wife, much less your third."
"When
I was forced to wed Nadine in order to gain entrance to the Temple of the
Winds, and you were likewise forced to wed Drefan, in our hearts we said the
words to each other. We were married then and there because of that vow-as far
as the spirits were concerned, anyway. Ann herself agreed it was so.
"As
you have just explained, magic sometimes works by such ambiguous rules. No
matter our feelings about it, the formal requirements-the requirements of some
ancient magic conjured by wizards during the great war when the
301
prophecy
about the Caharin and the old law were set down-have been met."
"But-"
Richard
gestured emphatically. "Kahlan, I'm sorry I foolishly didn't think, but we
have to face it-the chimes are loose."
CHAPTER
28
DESPITE
HOW VALID HE thought his reasoning, it didn't at all look to Richard that
Kahlan was convinced. She didn't even look amenable to reason. What she looked
was angry.
"Did
you tell Zedd about... her?" Kahlan gestured heatedly at Du Chaillu.
"Did you? You had to have said something to him."
He
could understand her feelings. He wouldn't like to discover she had another
husband she had neglected to mention-no matter how innocent she might have
been-even if it was as tenuous as was his connection with Du Chaillu.
Still,
this was about something considerably more important than some convoluted
condition that contrived to make Du Chaillu his first wife. It was about
something dangerous in the extreme. Kahlan had to understand that. She had to
see that they were in a great deal of trouble.
They
had already wasted valuable time. He prayed to the good spirits that he could
make her see the truth of what he
302
was
telling her without having to reveal to her the full extent of why he knew it
to be true.
"I
told you, Kahlan, I didn't even remember it until now because at the time I
didn't consider it authentic and so I didn't realize it could have any bearing
on this. Besides, when would I have had time to tell him? Juni died before we
had a chance to really talk to him, and then he made up that story about the
Lurk and sent us on this fool task."
"Then
how did he know? In order to be tricking us, he would have had to know about it
first. How did Zedd know I am in fact your third wife-even if only by some
..." Her fists tightened. "... some stupid old law you artfully
forgot?"
Richard
threw up his hands. "If it's raining at night, you don't have to be able
to see the clouds in the dark to know the rain has to be falling from the sky.
If Zedd knew the fact of something and knew it was trouble, he wouldn't worry
about the how of it, he would worry about fixing the leak in the roof."
She
pinched the bridge of her nose as she took a breath. "Richard, maybe he
really believes what he told us about the Lurk." Kahlan cast a cool glance
at his first wife. "Maybe he believes it because it's true."
Richard
shook his head. "Kahlan, we have to face it. We make it worse if we ignore
the truth and invest hope in a lie. People are already dying."
"Juni's
death doesn't prove the chimes are really loose."
"It's
not just Juni. The chimes' presence in this world caused that stillborn
baby."
"What!"
In
frustration, Kahlan ran her fingers back into her hair. Richard could
understand her wishing it to be the Lurk, and not the chimes, because unlike
the chimes they had a solution for the Lurk. But wishing didn't make it so.
"First
you forget you already have another wife, now you rush off down some road of
fancy. Richard, how could you come to such a conclusion?"
303
"Because
the chimes being in this world somehow destroys magic. The Mud People have
magic."
Though
the Mud People were a remote people living a simple life, they were unlike any
others; only they had the ability to call their ancestors' spirits in a
gathering and talk to the dead. While they didn't think of themselves as having
magic, only-the Mud People could call an ancestor from beyond that outer circle
of the Grace, bringing them across the boundary of the veil and into the inner
circle of life, if only for a brief time.
If the
Imperial Order won the war, the Mud People, among many others, would eventually
all be slaughtered for possessing magic. With the chimes loose, they might not
live long enough to face that possibility.
Richard
noticed Chandalen, not far off, listening intently. "The Mud People have
the unique magical ability of the gathering. Each is born with this ability,
this magic. That makes them all vulnerable to the chimes.
"Zedd
told us, and I also read it in Kolo's journal, that the weak are affected
first." Richard's voice softened with sorrow. "What could be weaker
than an unborn child?"
Kahlan,
touching the stone of her necklace, looked away from his eyes. She dropped her
hand to her side, and looked to be trying to veneer her ire with patient logic.
"I
can still feel my power-just as always. As you said, if the chimes were loose,
they would be causing the failure of magic. We have no proof that's happening.
If it were true, don't you think I would know? Do you think me woefully
inexperienced in knowing my own power?
"Richard,
we can't leap to conclusions. Newborns die all the time. That is no proof magic
is failing."
Richard
turned to Cara. She was standing not far off, listening as she watched the
grasslands, the Mud People hunters, and in particular, the Baka Tau Mana.
"Cara,
how long has your Agiel been useless?" he asked.
Cara
quailed. She could hardly have looked more startled had he unexpectedly slapped
her. She opened her mouth, but no words came.
304
She
lifted her chin, thinking better of admitting such defeat. "Lord Rahl,
what makes you think-"
"You
pulled Chandalen's knife. I have never before seen you forsake your Agiel in
favor of another weapon. No Mord-Sith would. How long, Cara?"
She wet
her lips. Her eyes closed in defeat as she turned away.
"In
the last few days I have begun to have trouble sensing you. I don't feel any
difference, except I have increasing difficulty sensing your location. At
first, I thought it was nothing, but apparently the bond grows weaker by the
day. The Agiel is powered by the bond to our Lord Rahl."
When
the Mord-Sith were within a reasonable distance, they always knew precisely
where he was by that bond. He imagined it had to be disorienting to suddenly
lose that sense.
Cara
cleared her throat as she stared off at the distant storm clouds. Tears
glistened in her blue eyes.
"The
Agiel is dead in my fingers."
Only a
Mord-Sith would anguish over the failure of magic that gave her pain every time
she touched it. Such was the nature of these women and their unqualified
commitment to duty.
Cara
looked back at him, the fire returning to her expression. "But I am still
sworn to you and will do what I must to protect you. This changes nothing for
the Mord-Sith."
"And
the D'Haran army?" Richard whispered as he considered the spreading extent
of their troubles. The D'Haran people were charged to purpose through their
bond. "Jagang is coming. Without the army ..."
The
bond was ancient magic he had inherited because he was a gifted Rahl. That bond
was created to be protection from the dream walkers. Without it...
Even if
Kahlan believed it was the Lurk, and not the chimes, Zedd had told them that,
too, would cause magic to fail. Richard knew Zedd would have had to make
whatever story he invented relate closely to reality in order to fool them.
305
Either
way, Kahlan would understand the rotting fruits of the dying tree of magic. Her
reassuring fingers found his arm.
"The
army may not feel their bond like before, Richard, but they are bonded to you
in other ways. Most in the Midlands follow the Mother Confessor, and they are
not bonded to her by any magic. In the same way, soldiers follow you because
they believe in you. You have proven yourself to them, and they to you."
"The
Mother Confessor is right," Cara said. "The army will remain loyal
because you are their leader. Their true leader. They believe in you-the same
as I."
Richard
let out a long breath. "I appreciate that, Cara, I really do, but-"
"You
are the Lord Rahl. You are the magic against magic. We are the steel against
steel. It will remain so."
"That's
just it. I can't be the magic against magic. Even if it were the Lurk instead
of the chimes, magic won't work."
Cara
shrugged. "Then you will figure a way for it to work. You are the Lord
Rahl; that is what you do."
"Richard,"
Kahlan said, "Zedd told us the Sisters of the Dark conjured the Lurk and
that's what's causing magic to fail. You have no proof it's really the chimes
instead. We have but to do as Zedd has asked of us, and then he will be able to
counter the Sisters' magic. As soon as we get to Aydindril, everything will be
back to right."
Still,
Richard could not bring himself to tell her. "Kahlan, I wish it were as
you say, but it isn't," he said simply.
Her
veneer of patience began cracking. "Why do you insist it's the chimes when
Zedd told us it was the Lurk?"
Richard
leaned closer to her. "Think about it. My grandmother-Zedd's
wife-apparently told her little girl, my mother, a story about a cat named
Lurk. Just that one time she told me about a cat named Lurk, but Zedd wouldn't
know she did. It was a small thing my mother told me once when I was little,
like a hundred other little words of com-
306
fort,
or phrases, or stories to bring a smile. I never mentioned it to Zedd.
"For
some reason Zedd wanted to hide the truth. 'Lurk,' because he once had a cat by
that name, was probably just the first thing that came into his head. Admit it,
doesn't the name 'Lurk' strike you as a bit... whimsical, once you think about
it?"
Kahlan
folded her arms across her breasts. She made a reluctant grimace.
"I
thought I was the only one who thought so." She mustered her resolve.
"But that doesn't really prove it. It could be coincidence."
Richard
knew it was the chimes. In much the same way he could sense the chicken that
wasn't a chicken, and had wished Kahlan would believe him, he dearly wished she
would trust him in this.
"What
are these things, these chimes?" Cara asked.
Richard
turned away from the others and stared off toward the horizon. He didn't know a
lot about them, but what he did know made his hair want to stand on end.
"Those
in the Old World wanted to end magic, much as Jagang does today, and probably
for the same reason-so they could more easily rule by the sword. Those in the
New World wanted magic to live on. In order to prevail, the wizards on both
sides created weapons of inconceivable horror, desperately hoping they would
bring the war to an end.
"Many
of those weapons-the mriswith, for example- were created from people by using
Subtractive Magic to remove certain attributes from a person, and Additive
Magic to put in some other desired ability or quality. Still others, they
simply added some ability they wanted.
"I
think dream walkers were such people, people who had a capability added, people
who the wizards obviously intended as weapons. Jagang is a descendant of those
dream walkers from the great war. Now the weapon is in charge of making war.
"Unlike
Jagang, who only wants to end our magic so he
307
can use
his against us, during the great war the people in the Old World truly were
trying to end magic. All magic. The chimes were intended to do just that-to
steal magic away from the world of life. They were conjured forth from the
underworld-the Keeper's world of the dead.
"As
Zedd explained, such a thing conjured from the underworld, once unleashed, not
only may end magic but, in so doing, could very well extinguish life
itself."
"He
also said he and Ann could take care of it," Kahlan said.
Richard
looked back over his shoulder. "Then why did he lie to us? Why didn't he
trust us? If he really can take care of it, why not simply tell us the truth?"
He shook his head. "Something more is going on."
Du
Chaillu, long silent, impatiently folded her arms. "Our blade masters will
easily cut down these filthy-"
"Hush!"
Richard crossed his finger over her lips. "Don't say another word, Du
Chaillu. You don't understand this. You don't know what trouble you might
cause."
When
Richard was sure Du Chaillu would remain silent, he turned away from everyone
again to stare off toward the clearing skies to the northeast, toward
Aydindril. He was tired of arguing; he knew the truth of the chimes being
loose. He needed to think what to do about them. There were things he needed to
know.
He
remembered that while frantically searching Kolo's journal for other
information, he had come across places where Kolo talked about the chimes,
among a great many other things. Wizards were continually sending messages and
reports back to the Wizard's Keep in Aydindril, not only relaying information
concerning the chimes, but also reporting on any number of other frightening
and potentially catastrophic events that were taking place.
Kolo
wrote about those communications, at least the ones he found interesting,
significant, or curious, but he didn't give complete accounts of them; he would
have had no reason to reproduce them in his private journal. Richard doubted
Kolo ever intended anyone to read the journals.
308
Kolo's
habit was to briefly mention the pertinent information from a message, and then
remark on the matter at hand, so the information Richard read on the reports
had been frustratingly sketchy-and opinionated.
Kolo
set down more information when he was frightened, seeming almost to use his
journal as a way to think through a problem in an effort to find a solution.
There was a period of time when he had been very frightened by what the reports
were saying in regard to the chimes. In several places Kolo wrote down what he
had read in reports, almost as if to justify his fear, to underscore for
himself his grounds for concern.
Richard
recalled Kolo mentioning the wizard who had been sent to deal with the chimes:
Ander. Somebody Ander-Richard couldn't remember the whole name.
Wizard
Ander proudly bore the cognomen "the Mountain." Apparently, he was
big. Kolo didn't like the man, though, and in his private journal often
derisively referred to him as "the Moral Molehill." Richard gathered
from Kolo's journal that Ander thought a lot of himself.
Richard
clearly remembered at one point Kolo expressing indignation that people were
failing to properly apply the Wizard's Fifth Rule: Mind what people do, not
only what they say, for deeds will betray a lie.
Kolo
had seemed incensed when he scrawled that by not minding the totality of the
actions people were failing to properly apply the Fifth Rule to Wizard Ander.
He complained that if they had, they would have easily discovered that the
man's true allegiance lay solely with himself, and not with the good of his
people.
"You
still have not said what the chimes are," Cara said.
Richard
felt the insistent breeze tug at his hair and his golden cloak, as if urging
him onward. To where, he didn't know. Here and there bugs lifted out of the wet
spring grass to loop through the air. Far off to the east, backlit by the
billowing honeyed storm clouds, the dark dots of geese in an undulating V
formation were winging their way north.
Richard
had never given any serious thought to the
309
chimes
when the subject came up at the wedding. Zedd had dismissed their concern, and
besides, Richard's mind was on other things.
But
later, after the chicken had been killed outside the spirit house, after Juni
had been murdered, after the chicken-thing gave him gooseflesh every time it
was anywhere near, and after Zedd had filled in some of the details, Richard's
rising sense of alarm had caused him to give himself over to recalling
everything he could about the chimes. At the time, he had been searching Kolo's
journal for solutions to other problems, and hadn't been paying particular
attention to the information on the chimes, but nearly constant concentration
and occasional trancelike effort had brought back a great deal.
"The
chimes are ancient beings spawned in the underworld. The Grace must be breached
to bring them into the world of life. Being from the underworld, they were
conjured from the Subtractive side alone, and so create an imbalance once in
this world. Magic needs balance. Being totally Subtractive, their mere presence
here requires Additive Magic for them to exist in this state, since existence is
a form of Additive power, and so the chimes drain magic away from this world as
long as they're here."
Cara,
never being one with any outward appearance of an aptitude for magic, appeared
only more confused than ever by his answer. Richard understood her confusion.
He didn't know much about magic, either, and barely had a grasp of what he had
just told her. He wasn't even convinced it was accurate.
"But
how do they do that?" she asked.
"You
might think of the world of life as like a barrel of water. The chimes are a
hole in that barrel that has just been uncorked, letting the water drain away.
Once the water all drains off, the barrel will dry out, the staves will shrink,
and it will no longer be the container it once was. You might say it is then a
dead shell, only resembling what it once was.
"The
chimes' mere existence here drains magic away from the world of life, like that
hole in the barrel, but also,
310
as a
way to bring them into this world, they were conjured as creatures. They have a
nature of their own. They can kill.
"Being
creatures of magic they have the ability, if they wish, to take on the
appearance of the creature they kill- such as a chicken-but they retain all the
power of what they truly are. When I shot the chicken with an arrow, the chime
fled its phantom form. From the beginning, the real chicken had been lying dead
behind the wall; the chime only borrowed its form as a pattern-as a disguise-to
taunt us."
Cara
took on the unfamiliar countenance of worry. "You mean to tell
me"-she glanced at the people around her- "that anyone here could
really be a chime?"
"From
what I gather, they're conjured creatures and have no soul, so they can't take
on the appearance of a person- just animals. According to Zedd, the converge is
true; Jagang has a soul and so can only enter the mind of a person because a
soul is needed.
"When
the wizards created weapons out of people, those things they created still had
souls. That was how they could be controlled, at least to some extent. The
chimes, once here, could not be governed. That was one of the things that made
them so dangerous. It's like trying to reason with lightning."
"All
right"-Cara held up a finger as if making a mental note" for
herself-"so it couldn't be a person. That's good." She gestured to
the sky. "But could it be that one of those meadowlarks is a chime?"
Richard
glanced up at the yellow-breasted birds flitting past. "I guess so. If it
could be a chicken, it surely could kill any animal and take its form. It
wouldn't need to, though." Richard pointed at the wet ground. "It
could just as easily be hiding in that puddle at your feet. Some apparently
have an affinity for water."
Cara
looked down at the puddle and then took a step back.
"You
mean the chime that killed Juni was hiding in the water? Stalking him?"
Richard
glanced briefly at Chandalen and then with a single nod acknowledged his belief
that it was so.
311
"Chimes
hide, or wait, in dark places," he went on. "They somehow travel
along the edges of things, such as cracks in rock, or along the water's edge.
I'm assuming so, anyway; the way Kolo put it was that they slip along borders,
where this meets that. Some hide in fire, and they can travel on sparks."
He
glanced at Kahlan out of the corner of his eye as he recalled the way the house
of the dead-where Juni's body lay-had burst into flame. "When annoyed or
angered, they will sometimes burn a place down, just for spite.
"It
was said that some are of such beauty that to see them is to take your breath
away-forever. They are only vaguely visible, unless you catch their attention.
Kolo's journal made it sound like once the victim sees them, they're partially
shaped by the victim's own desire, and that desire is irresistible. That must be
how they were able to seduce people to their death.
"Maybe
that's what happened to Juni. Maybe he saw something so beautiful that he
abandoned his weapons, his judgment, even his common sense and followed it down
into the water where he drowned.
"Yet
others crave attention and like to be worshiped. I guess, because they came
from the underworld, they share the Keeper's hunger for veneration. It was said
that some even protected those who uncritically revered them, but it's a
dangerous balancing act. It lulls them, according to what Kolo said. But if you
stop worshiping them, they will turn on you.
"They
enjoy most the hunt, never tiring of it. They hunt people. They are without
mercy. They enjoy especially killing with fire.
"The
full translation of their name from High D'Haran roughly means 'the chimes of
doom,' or 'the chimes of death.' "
Du
Chaillu was scowlingly silent. The Baka Tau Mana blade masters for the most
part managed to continue to look indifferent, aloof, and relaxed, but they had
a new restive-
312
ness in
their posture that to Richard was inescapable.
"Either
way," Cara said with a sigh, "I think we can grasp the idea."
Chandalen,
listening attentively, finally spoke up. "But you do not believe this,
Mother Confessor? You believe what Zedd had to say, that it is not these chimes
of death?"
Kahlan
met Richard's gaze before addressing Chandalen. Her tone wasn't harsh.
"Zedd's
explanation of the problem is in many ways similar, and so could just as easily
account for what's happened, but being similar, it- would be no less dangerous.
The important difference, from what he told us, is that when we get to
Aydindril we will be able to halt the trouble. I reluctantly hold Zedd was
right. I don't believe it's the chimes."
"I
wish that were the case, I really do, because as you said when we get to
Aydindril we could counter it," Richard said. "But it's the chimes. I
would guess Zedd simply wanted to get us out of harm's way while he saw to
trying to solve the problem of sending the chimes back to the underworld."
"Lord
Rahl is the magic against magic," Cara said to Kahlan. "He would know
best about this. He believes it is the chimes, so it must be the chimes."
Sighing
in frustration, Kahlan pushed her long hair back over her shoulder.
"Richard,
you're talking yourself into believing this is the chimes. By talking about it
as being true, you're starting to convince Cara, just as you've convinced
yourself. Just because you're afraid of it being true, you're giving it more
credence than it deserves."
She was
obviously reminding him of the Wizard's First Rule, suggesting that he was
believing a lie.
Richard
weighed the fiery determination so evident in her green eyes. He needed her to
help him. He couldn't face this alone.
He
finally decided he had no choice. Asking everyone to wait, he put an arm around
her shoulders and walked her
313
away so
he could be sure the others wouldn't hear.
He
needed her to believe in him. He no longer had any choice.
He had
to tell her.
C H A P
T E R\xA0\xA0 29
KAHLAN
WENT WILLINGLY AS he walked her off through the wet grass, more content to
argue with him alone than in front of everyone else. For Richard's part, he
didn't want to tell her what he had to say in front of others.
Over
his shoulder, Richard saw Chandalen's hunters leaning casually on their spears,
spears dipped in poison. They looked to lazily wait for Richard and Kahlan to
finish their talk and return. He knew there was nothing lazy about them. He could
see they were strategically positioned to keep the Baka Tau Mana under guard.
This was their land, after all, and despite them knowing Richard, the Baka Tau
Mana were outsiders.
The
Baka Tau Mana, for their part, looked completely indifferent to the Mud People
hunters. The blade masters spoke a few nonchalant words to one another, looked
out at the storm clouds on the horizon, or stretched and yawned.
Richard
had fought Baka Ban Mana blade masters; he knew they were anything but
indifferent. They were poised to kill. Having lived a tenuous existence
surrounded by en-
314
emies
bent on destroying them, their nature, by training, was to be prepared to kill
at any moment.
When
Richard had been with Sister Verna and they had first encountered the blade
masters, he had asked her if they were dangerous. Sister Verna told him that
when she was young, she had seen a Baka Ban Mana blade master who had gotten
into the garrison in Tanimura kill nearly fifty well-armed soldiers before he
was taken down. She said they fought as if they were invincible spirits, and
that some people believed they were.
Richard
wouldn't like some small lapse in judgment or misstep in understanding to bring
the Mud People and the Baka Tau Mana to a fight. They were all too good at
fighting.
Cara,
looking anything but dispassionate, painted them all with her glares.
Like
the three sides of a triangle, the Mud People, the Baka Tau Mana, and Cara were
all part of the same struggle. They were all allied to Richard and Kahlan, and
to their cause, even though each looked at the world differently. They all
valued most of the same things in life. Family, friends, hard work, honesty,
duty, loyalty, freedom.
Kahlan
placed her hand gently but insistently on his chest.
"Richard,
despite anything else I'm feeling at the moment, I know your heart is in the
right place, but you simply aren't being reasonable. You're the Seeker of
Truth; you have to stop insisting you're right and see the truth of this. We
can stop the Sisters' magic and their Lurk. Zedd and Ann will counter the
spell. Why are you being so obstinate?"
"Kahlan,"
he said, keeping his voice low, "the chicken-thing was a chime."
She
absently, unconsciously, fingered the dark stone on the delicate gold chain around
her neck. "Richard, you know I love you and you know I believe in you, but
in this case I've just about-"
"Kahlan,"
he said, cutting her off. He knew what she thought and what she had to say. Now
he wanted her only
315
to
listen. He waited until her eyes told him she would.
"You
called the chimes into this world.
"You
didn't do it intentionally, or to cause harm-no one would believe otherwise.
You did it to save me. I was near death and needed your help, so I'm part of
this, too. Without my actions, yours would not have been necessary."
"Don't
forget our ancestors. Had they not borne children, we wouldn't have been born
to commit our crimes. I suppose you'll want to hold them to account, too?"
\x95 He wet his lips as he gently gripped her shoulders. "I'm just saying
that giving help is the thing that started this. That does not, however, in any
sense, make you guilty of malicious intent. You must understand that. But
because you spoke the words completing the spell, that makes you inadvertently
responsible. You brought the chimes into this world.
"For
some reason, Zedd didn't want us to know. I wish he would have trusted us with
the truth, but he didn't. I'm sure he had reasons that to him seemed important
enough to make him lie to us. For all I know, maybe they were."
Kahlan
put her fingertips to her forehead, closed her eyes, and sighed with
forbearance. "Richard, I agree there are puzzling aspects to what Zedd
did, and there are matters yet to be answered, but that doesn't mean we have to
leap to a different answer just for the sake of having one. Zedd is First
Wizard; we must trust in what he's asked us to do."
Richard
touched her cheek. He wished he could be alone with her, really alone, and he
could try to make up for his foolish forgetfulness. He dearly didn't want to be
telling her these things, but he had to.
"Please,
Kahlan, listen to what I have to say, and then you decide? I want to be wrong,
I really do. You decide.
"When
the Mud People hunters were guarding us in the spirit house, the chimes were
outside. One of them killed a chicken just because they like to kill.
"When
Juni heard the noise, the same as I heard it, he investigated but found
nothing. He then insulted the spirit of the killer in order to bring it out in
the open. It came out
316
in the
open, and killed him for insulting them."
"I
insulted the chicken-thing, so why didn't it kill me?" Kahlan wearily
wiped a hand across her eyes. "Answer me that, Richard. Why didn't it kill
me?"
He
gazed into her beautiful green eyes for a moment as he gathered his courage.
"The
chime told you why, Kahlan."
"What?"
she said with a squint. "What are you talking about?"
"That
chicken-thing wasn't a Lurk. It was a chime, and it wasn't calling you by your
title of Mother Confessor. It was a chime. It said what it meant.
"It
called you 'Mother.' "
Kahlan
stared at him in startled wide-eyed shock.
"They
respect you," he said, "to some limited extent, anyway, because you
brought them into the world of life. You gave them life. They consider you
their life-giver, their mother. You only assumed the chicken-thing was going to
add the word 'Confessor' after it called you 'Mother' because you are so used
to hearing yourself called by that title.
"But
the chime wasn't calling you by title, Kahlan. It was calling you by the name
it meant: Mother."
He
could almost see the truth of his words inundating her carefully constructed
fortress of rationale. Some truths, after a-certain point, could be felt viscerally,
and at that point everything clicked with the finality of a dead bolt on a
prison of truth.
Kahlan's
eyes filled with tears.
She
pressed closer to him, into the comfort and understanding of his arms. She
gasped a sob against his chest and then angrily wiped her cheek as a tear
rolled down.
"I
think that was the only thing that saved you," he said softly as he hugged
her. "I wouldn't want to again trust your life to their charity."
"We
have to stop them." She stifled another sob. "Dear spirits, we have
to stop them."
"I
know."
"Do
you know what to do?" she asked. "Do you have
317
any
idea how to send them back to the world of the dead?"
"Not
yet. To find a solution, the first thing to be done is to recognize the true
problem. I guess we've done that, now?"
Kahlan
nodded as she wiped at her eyes. As quickly as understanding had brought tears,
resolve banished them.
"Why
would the chimes have been outside the spirit house?"
While
they had been together after being married, exulting in their love, something
had been outside the door exulting in death. It made him feel sick at his
stomach just to think about it.
"I
don't know. Maybe the chimes wanted to be near you."
Kahlan
simply nodded. She understood. Near their mother.
Richard
remembered the stricken look on Kahlan's face when Nissel brought the stillborn
baby into the house of the dead. The chimes had caused that, too. It was only
the beginning.
"What's
a fatal Grace? You mentioned it before, yesterday, when we went to see Zedd and
Ann."
"Most
of the stories about the chimes that I recounted came from an early report.
Because Kolo was frightened, he wrote at greater length than usual. The report
he quoted said at the end, 'Mark well my words: Beware the chimes, and if need
be great, draw for yourself thrice on the barren earth, in sand and salt and
blood, a fatal Grace.'
"And
what does that mean?"
"I
don't know. I was hoping maybe Zedd or Ann might know. He knows all about the
Grace. I thought he might know about this."
"But
do you think this fatal Grace would stop the. chimes?"
"I
just don't know, Kahlan. It occurred to me that it might be desperate advice on
suicide."
Kahlan
nodded absently as she mulled over the words from Kolo's journal.
"I
could understand if it was advice on suicide. I could
318
feel
its evil," she said as she stared off into her visions. "When I was
in the house where the Mud People prepared bodies for burial, and the
chicken-thing-the chime-was in there with me, I could feel its evil. Dear
spirits, it was awful. \x95
"It
was pecking out Juni's eyes. Even though he was dead, it still wanted to peck
out his eyes."
He
pulled her into his arms again. "I know."
She
pushed away with rekindled hope. "Yesterday, with Zedd and Ann, you told
us Kolo said they were quite alarmed at first, but after investigating they
discovered the chimes were a simple weapon and easily overcome."
"Yes,
but Kolo only reported the relief at the Wizard's Keep when they discovered it
wasn't the problem to counter they at first thought it would be. He didn't
write down the solution. They sent a wizard they called the Mountain to see to
it. Obviously, he did."
"Do
you have any idea if there are any weapons that would be effective against
them? Juni was heavily armed, and it didn't do him any good, but might there be
others?"
"Kolo
never gave any indication. Arrows didn't kill the chicken-thing, and fire
certainly isn't going to harm them.
"However,
Zedd was emphatic that I retrieve the Sword of Truth. If he lied about it being
a Lurk, that may have been to keep us away from harm. I don't believe he would
lie about the sword. He wanted me to get it, and he said it might be the only
magic that would still work to protect us. I believe him in that much of
it."
"Why
do you suppose the chicken-thing fled from you? I mean, if they consider me
their mother, I could understand them maybe having some kind of... reverence,
for me, and being reluctant to harm me, but if they're so powerful, why would
they run from you? You only shot at them with an arrow. You said arrows
couldn't hurt them. Why would it run from you?"
Richard
raked back his hair. "I've wondered about that myself. The only answer
I've been able to come up with is that they're creatures of Subtractive Magic,
and I'm the only
319
one in
thousands of years born with that side of magic. Maybe they fear my Subtractive
Magic can harm them- maybe it can. It's a hope, anyway."
"And
the fire? That one lone bit of our wedding bonfires that was still burning that
you snuffed out? That was one of them, wasn't it?"
Richard
hated that they had been in their wedding bonfire. It was a defilement.
"Yes.
Sentrosi-the second chime. It means 'fire.' Ree-chani, the first, means
'water.' The third, Vasi, means 'air.' "
"But
you put out the fire. The chime didn't do anything to stop you. If they would
kill Juni for insulting them, it certainly seems they would be angered by what
you did. The chicken thing, too, ran from you."
"I
don't know, Kahlan. I don't have an answer."
Peering
into his eyes, she hesitated for a moment. "Maybe they didn't harm you for
the same reason they didn't harm me."
"They
think I, too, am their mother?"
"Father,"
she said, unconsciously stroking the dark stone at her throat. "I used the
spell to keep you alive, to keep you from crossing over into the world of the
dead. The spell called the chimes because they were from the other side and had
the power to do that. Maybe, since we were both involved, they think of us as
father and mother-as their parents."
Richard
let out a long breath. "That's possible, I'm not saying it isn't, but when
I felt them near, I just got the sense of something more to it-something that
made my hair stand on end."
"More?
More like what?"
"It
was an overwhelming sense of their lust whenever they were near me, and at the
same time monstrous loathing."
Kahlan
rubbed her arms, chilled by such obscene wickedness among them. A humorless
smile, bitter with irony, crossed her face.
320
"Shota
always said we would together conceive a monstrous offspring."
Richard
cupped her cheek. "Someday, Kahlan. Someday."
On the
verge of tears, she turned from his hand, his gaze, to stare off at the
horizon. She cleared her throat and gathered her voice.
"If
magic is failing, at least Jagang will lose his help. He controls those with
magic to help his army. At least if he could no longer do that, there would be
that much good in all this.
"He
used one of those wizards to try to kill us. He was able to use one of the
Sisters of the Light to bring the plague from the Temple of the Winds. If magic
fails because of the chimes, at least it will fail for Jagang, too."
Richard
pulled his lower lip through his teeth. "I've been thinking about that. If
the chicken-thing was afraid of me because I have Subtractive Magic, Jagang's
control over those with magic might very well no longer work, but'-"
"Dear
spirits," she whispered, turning back to look up at him. "The Sisters
of the Dark. They may not have been born with it, but they know how to use
Subtractive Magic."
Richard
nodded reluctantly. "I fear that Jagang, if nothing else, might still have
the Sisters of the Dark. Their magic will work."
"Our
only hope, then, is with Zedd and Ann. Let's hope they will be able to stop the
chimes."
Richard
couldn't force a smile for her. "How? Neither of them is able to use
Subtractive Magic. The magic they do have is failing along with all other
magic. They will be just as helpless as that unborn child that died. I'm sure
they've gone, but where?"
She
gave him a look, very much a Mother Confessor look. "Had you remembered
your first wife when you should have, Richard, we could have told Zedd. It
might have made a difference. Now that chance is lost to us. You picked a very
bad time to become negligent."
He
wanted to argue with her, tell her it wouldn't have
321
made
any difference, tell her she was wrong, but he couldn't. She wasn't wrong. Zedd
would have gone off alone to battle the chimes. Richard wondered if they might
go back and track his grandfather.
She at
last took his hand in hers, gave it a brave pat with her other, and then
marched them back to where the others waited. She held her head erect. Her face
was a Confessor's face, devoid of emotion, full of authority.
"We
don't yet know what to do about them," Kahlan announced, "but I'm
convinced beyond doubt: the chimes are loose upon the world."
CHAPTER
30
FOR THE
BENEFIT OF the hunters, Kahlan repeated her announcement in the Mud People's
language. Richard wished she had been right that it was the Lurk and not the
chimes. They would have had a solution for the Lurk.
Everyone
looked understandably disquieted to hear Kahlan, after having been so steadfast
in her arguments it was the Lurk, now tell them she accepted beyond doubt the
fact that they were confronted with nothing less than the full threat of the
chimes.
It
didn't look to Richard, once she had said she agreed with him, that anyone
still harbored doubts of their own.
322
With
Kahlan's words, it seemed the world had for everyone just changed.
Uneasy
silence enveloped the plains.
Richard
needed to get on with trying to figure but what to do next, but didn't really
have any idea how to do that. He didn't even know where to start. He now
realized what he should have done, when he had the chance. He had been so
intent on the danger he had ignored everything else.
He was
a long way from the woods he knew. He wished he were back in those woods. At
least when he had been a guide, he never forgot what path he was on, or led
anyone over a cliff.
He
turned his attention to the Baka Tau Mana's dark-haired spirit woman.
"Du
Chaillu, why have you came all this way? What are you doing here?"
"Ahh,"
Du Chaillu said as she folded her hands before herself with deliberate care.
"Now the Caharin wishes me to speak?"
The
woman was bottled ire. Richard didn't really see why, and he didn't really
care.
"Yes,
why have you come?"
"We
have traveled many days. We have suffered hardship. We have buried some of
those who started with us. We have had to fight our way through hostile places.
We have shed the blood of many to reach you.
"We
left our families and loved ones to bear warning to our Caharin. We have gone
without food, without sleep, and without the comfort of a safe place. We have
faced nights where we all wept for we felt afraid and sick at heart away from
our homeland.
"I
have traveled with the child the Caharin asked .me to bear when I would have
gone to an herb woman and shed it-shed the dreadful memories I carry with it.
Yet he does not even acknowledge that I chose to honor his words and accept the
responsibility of this child thrust upon me.
"The
Caharin does not even recognize that I must every
323
day be
reminded, by the child he asked me to bear, of the time I spent chained naked
to a wall in the stinking place of the Majendie. Reminded of where I came to be
with this child. Reminded of how those men used me for their pleasure and then
laughed at me. Reminded of where I daily endured the fear that would be the day
I was to be butchered and sacrificed. Reminded of where I wept my heart out
for. my own babies who would be left without their mother, and wept that I
would never again see their little smiles or have the joy of watching them
grow.
"But
I honored the Caharin's words and carry the child of dogs, because the Caharin
asked it of me.
"The
Caharin pays his own people, who have journeyed all this way, little more than
passing notice, as if we were no more than fleas at which he must scratch. He
asks not how we do in our homeland. He does not invite us to at long last sit
with him that we might rejoice to be together. He asks not if we are at peace.
He inquires not if we are fed, or if we are thirsty.
"He
only shouts and argues that we are not his people because he is ignorant of the
sacred laws by which we have lived for countless centuries, and dismisses those
same laws solely because he was not taught their words, as if that alone,,
makes them unimportant. Many have died by those laws so that he might learn by
them and live another day.
"He
gives his people no more thought than the dung beneath his boots. He turns his
wife by our law away from his mind without a second thought. He treats his wife
by law as a pest, to be put aside until he has want of her.
'The
old laws promised us a Caharin. I admit they did not promise us one who would
honor his people and their ways and laws that have joined us in purpose,
although I thought any man would honor those who have suffered so much for him.
"I
have suffered the loss of my husbands by your hand and grieved out of your
sight so that you might not suffer for it. My children have endured with brave
sorrow the loss of their fathers by your hand. They weep at bed for the man
324
who
kissed their brow and wished them good dreams of their homeland. Yet you do not
bother to ask how I fare without those husbands who I and my children loved dearly,
nor do you even ask how my children fare in their heartache.
"You
do not even ask how I fare without my new husband by our law while he is off
acquiring other wives. You think so little of me that you bother not to mention
my existence to your new wife."
Du
Chaillu's chin rose with indignation.
"So,
now I am permitted to speak? So, now you wish at last to hear my words after my
long and difficult journey? So, now you wish to hear if I have anything worthy
of your lofty ears?"
Du
Chaillu spat at his feet. "You shame me."
She
folded her arms and turned her back to him.
Richard
stared at the back of her head. The blade masters were peering off as if deaf
and wishing for little more than to spot a bird in the sky.
"Du
Chaillu," Richard said, growing a bit heated himself, "don't lay the
death of those people on me. I tried everything I knew to keep from having to
fight them, from harming them. You know I did. I begged you to stop it. It was
within your power, yet you would not halt it. I was loath to do as I did. You
know I had no choice."
She
glared over her shoulder. "You had choice. You could have chosen to die
rather than to kill. In honor of what you had done for me, saving me from the
Majendie's sacrifice, I promised you that if you did not resist, your death
would be quick. It would have been your one life lost instead of thirty; if you
are so noble and so concerned for preserving life, then you would have let it
be so."
Richard
ground his teeth and shook his finger at her. "You have your men attack
me, and you expect me to simply let myself be murdered rather than defend
myself? After I saved you? Had I died instead of those men, the killing would
have then started in earnest! You know I brought a peace that saved many more lives.
And yon don't understand the first thing about the rest of it."
325
She
huffed. "You are wrong, my husband." She turned her back again.
"I understand more than you wish I did."
Cara
rolled her eyes. "Lord Rahl, you really need to learn to respect your
wives better, or you will never have a moment of domestic tranquility."
She spoke out of the side of her mouth as she stepped past him. "Let me
speak with her-woman to woman. See if I can't smooth things over for you."
Cara
hooked a hand under Du Chaillu's arm to walk her off for a private talk. Six
swords cleared their scabbards. In the blink of an eye, steel was spinning in
the morning light as the blade masters advanced, passing the whirling weapons
back and forth from left hand to right and back again.
The Mud
People hunters moved to block them. Within the space of a heartbeat, the plains
had gone from uneasy peace to the brink of a bloody battle.
Richard
threw up his hands. "Everyone stop!"
He
moved in front of Cara and Du Chaillu, blocking the men's advance.
"Cara,
let go of her. She is their spirit woman. You are not permitted to touch her.
The Baka Ban Mana were persecuted and sacrificed by the Majendie for millennia.
They are understandably fractious when it comes to strangers laying hands on
them."
Cara
released Du Chaillu's arm, but both groups of men were unwilling to be the
first to back down. The Mud People had suddenly hostile strangers on their
hands. The Baka Tau Mana suddenly had men about to attack them for defending
their spirit woman. With all the heated blood, the risk was that someone would
go for the advantage of striking first and later worry about counting the dead.
Richard
held one hand up. "Listen to me! All of you!"
With
his other hand, he reached out and tugged on the leather thong around Du
Chaillu's neck, hoping it held under the neckline of her dress what he thought
it did.
The
hunters' eyes widened when Richard pulled it free and they saw the Bird Man's
whistle on the end of that thong.
326
"This
is the Whistle the Bird Man gave to me." He glanced out of the corner of
his eye at Kahlan and whispered for her to translate. She began talking to the
hunters in the Mud People's language as Richard went on.
"You
remember the Bird Man, in a gesture of peace, giving me this whistle. This
woman, Du Chaillu, is a protector of her people. In the Bird Man's honor, and
in his hope for peace, I gave her the whistle so she could call birds to eat
the seeds her enemies planted. When her enemies feared they would have no crops
and starve, they finally agreed to peace. It was the first time these two
peoples ever had peace, and they all owe that peace to the great gift of the
Bird Man's whistle.
"The
Baka Tau Mana owe the Mud People a great debt. The Mud People also owe a debt
to the Baka Tau Mana for honoring that gift as the Mud People intended it by
using it to bring peace, rather than harm. The Mud People should be proud that
the Baka Tau Mana would trust in the Mud People's gift to bring their families
safety.
"Your
two peoples are friends."
No one
moved as they considered Richard's words. Finally, Jiaan put his sword over his
shoulder, letting it hang behind his back by the cord around his neck. He
pulled open his outfit, exposing his chest to Chandalen.
"We
thank you and your people for the safety and peace brought to our people by
your gift of powerful magic. We will not fight you. If you wish to take back
the peace you have given us, you may strike at our hearts. We will not defend
ourselves against such great peace-givers as the Mud People."
Chandalen
withdrew his spear, planting the butt in the soil of his homeland.
"Richard with the Temper speaks the truth. We are pleased your people used
our gift as it was meant to be used-to bring peace. You will be welcomed and
safe while in our homeland."
Accompanied
by a lot of arm waving, Chandalen gave orders to his hunters. As all the men
began standing down,
327
Richard
at last let out his breath and thanked the good spirits for their help.
Kahlan
took Du Chaillu's arm and spoke with finality. "I am going to have a talk
with Du Chaillu."
The
Baka Tau Mana clearly didn't like it, but were now unsure what to do about it.
Richard wasn't sure if he liked the idea either. It might be the start of
another war.
Reluctantly,
though, he decided he had better let Kahlan have her way and talk to Du
Chaillu. He could tell by the look on Kahlan's face that it wasn't his decision
to make, anyway. He turned to the blade masters.
"Kahlan,
my wife, is the Mother Confessor and the leader of all the people of the New
World. She is to be respected as is our spirit woman, Du Chaillu. You have my
word as Caharin that the Mother Confessor will not harm Du Chaillu. If I lie to
you, you may consider my life forfeit."
The men
nodded their agreement. Richard didn't know if he or Du Chaillu ranked higher
in their eyes, but his calm and reassuring tone, if nothing else, helped to
disarm their objections. He knew, too, that, if nothing else, these men
respected him, not just because he had killed thirty of their number, but
because he had done something much more difficult. He had returned them to
their ancestral homeland.
Richard
stood shoulder to shoulder with Cara watching Kahlan walk Du Chaillu off into
the tall grass. It still glistened with droplets of water from the night's rain
that had here and there left behind puddles.
"Lord
Rahl," Cara asked under her breath, "do you think that is wise?"
"I
trust Kahlan's judgment. We have a great deal of trouble on our hands. We don't
have any time to waste."
Cara
rolled her Agiel in her fingers, considering it for a long, silent moment.
"Lord Rahl, if magic is failing, has yours failed yet?"
"Let's
hope not."
Cara
stayed close by his side as he approached the blade masters. Though he
recognized several, he only knew one by name.
328
"Jiaan,
Du Chaillu said some of your people died on your journey here."
Jiaan
sheathed his sword. "Three."
"In
battler-Looking uncomfortable, the man swiped his dark hair back off his
forehead. "One. The other two ... had accidents."
"Involving
fire or water?"
Jiaan
let out a heavyhearted breath. "Not water, but while standing watch one
fell into the fire. He burned to death before we knew what had happened. At the
time we thought he must have fallen and hit his head. From what you say, maybe
this was not true. Maybe these chimes killed him?"
Richard
nodded. He whispered in sorrow the name of one of the chimes of death-Sentfosi,
the chime of fire. "And the third?"\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0 .
Jiaan
shifted his weight to his other foot. "Coming across a high trail, he
suddenly thought he could fly."
"Fly?"
Jiaan
nodded. "But he could fly no better than a rock."
"Maybe
he lost his footing and fell."
"I
saw his face just before he tried to fly. He was smiling as he did when he saw
our homeland for the first time."
Again
in sorrow, Richard whispered the name of the third chime. The three chimes,
Reechani, Sentrosi, Vasi-water, fire, air-had claimed more lives.
"The
chimes have killed Mud People, too. I had been - hoping they were only here,
where Kahlan and I are, but it seems the chimes are other places, too."
Over
the shoulders of the six blade masters, Richard saw that the Mud People had
flattened an area of grass and were preparing to start a fire in order to
share- a meal with their new friends.
"Chandalen!"
The man looked up. "Don't start a fire."
Richard
trotted over to where Chandalen and his hunters waited.
"What
is the trouble?" Chandalen asked. "Why do you wish us not to have
fire? As long as we are to stop here for
329
a time,
we wish to cook meat and share our food."
Richard
scratched his brow. "The evil spirit that killed Juni can find people
through water and fire. I'm sorry, but you need to keep your people from using
fire for the time being. If you use fire you may have more evil spirits killing
your people."
"Are
you sure?"
Richard
put a hand on Jiaan's shoulder. "These people are strong like the Mud
People. On their way here, one of them was killed by an evil spirit from a
fire."
Chandalen
took in Jiaan's nod that it was true.
"Before
we knew what was happening, he was burned alive by the fire," Jiaan said.
"He was a strong man, and brave. He was not a man to be taken easily by an
enemy, but we did not hear a word before he died."
Frustration
tightened Chandalen's jaw as he looked out over the plains before returning his
attention to Richard. "But if we cannot have fire, how are we to eat? We
must bake tava bread and cook our food. We cannot eat raw dough and raw meat.
The women use fire to make pottery'. The men use it to make weapons. How are we
to live?"
Richard
let out a frustrated sigh. "I don't know, Chandalen. I only know that fire
may bring the evil spirit-the chimes-again. I'm simply telling you the only
thing I know to do to help keep our people safe.
"I
guess you will be forced to use fire, but keep in mind the danger it may bring.
If everyone knows of the danger, maybe it will be safe to use fire when you
must."
"And
are we not to drink for fear of going near water?"
"Chandalen,
I wish I knew the answers." Richard wiped a weary hand across his face.
"I only know that water, fire, and high places are dangerous. The chimes
are able to use those things to harm people. The more we can stay away from
them, the safer we will be."
"But
even if we do this, from what you said before the chimes will still kill."
"I
don't have nearly enough answers, Chandalen. I'm try-
330
ing to
tell you everything I can think of in order that you might help keep our people
safe. There very well may be yet more dangers I don't even know about."
Chandalen
put his hands on his hips as he looked out over his people's grasslands. His
jaw muscles flexed as he thought on matters Richard could only guess. Richard
waited silently until Chandalen spoke.
"Is
it true, as you said, that a child yet to be born in our village died because
of these chimes of death that are loose in the world?"
"I'm
sorry, Chandalen, but I believe it is so."
His
intent dark eyes met Richard's gaze. "How did these evil spirits come to
be in this world?"
Richard
licked the corners of his mouth. "I believe Kahlan, without realizing it
or intending it, may have called them with magic in order to save my life.
Because they were used to save my life, it is my fault they are here."
Chandalen
considered Richard's admission. "The Mother Confessor would not intend
harm. You would not intend harm. Yet it is because of you the chimes of death
are here?"
Chandalen's
tone had changed from confusion and alarm to authority. He was, after all, now
an elder. He had a responsibility to the safety of his people that went beyond
that of hunter.
In much
the way the Mud People and the Baka Tau Mana shared many of the same values yet
had nearly come to blows, Chandalen and Richard had at one time a fractious
relationship. Fortunately, they both now understood that they shared much more
in common than they disagreed about.
Richard
looked out at the distant clouds and the sheets of rain lashing the dark and
distant horizon. "I'm afraid that's the truth of it. Added to that, I
neglected to remember valuable information to tell Zedd, when I had the chance.
Now he will be gone in search of the chimes."
Chandalen
again considered Richard's words before speaking.
331
"You
are Mud People and have both struggled to protect us. We know you both did not
mean to bring the chimes and cause harm."
Chandalen
drew himself up tall-he didn't come up to Richard's shoulder-and delivered his
pronouncement.
"We
know you and the Mother Confessor both will do what you must to set this
right."
Richard
understood only too well the code of responsibility, obligation, and duty by
which this man lived. Though he and Chandalen came from very different peoples,
with very different cultures, Richard had grown up by many of the same
standards. Perhaps, he thought, they weren't really that different. Maybe they
wore different clothes, but they had much the same heart, the same longings,
and the same desires. They shared, too, many of the same fears.
Not
only Richard's stepfather but also Zedd had taught him many of the very things
Chandalen's people had taught him. If you brought harm, no matter the reason,
you had to set it right as best you could.
- While
it was understandable to be afraid, and no one would expect you not to be, the
worst thing you could do was to run from the trouble you had caused. No matter
how accidental it was, you didn't try to deny it. You didn't run. You did what
you must to right it.
If not
for Richard, the chimes would not be free. Kahlan's actions to save his life
had already cost others theirs. She, too, would not waver for an instant from
their duty to do whatever they could to stop the chimes. It wasn't even a
question open to debate.
"You
have my solemn word, Elder Chandalen. I will not rest until the Mud People and
everyone else are safe from the chimes. I will not rest until the chimes are
back in the underworld where they belong. Or I will die trying."
A small
smile, warm with pride, crept onto Chandalen's face.
"I
knew I did not need to remind you of your promise to always protect our people,
but it is good to hear from your own lips that you have not forgotten your
vow."
332
Chandalen
surprised Richard with a hard slap.
"Strength
to Richard with the Temper. May his anger burn hot and swift against our
enemies."
Richard
comforted his stinging jaw and had turned from Chandalen when he noticed Kahlan
returning with Du Chaillu.
"For
a woods guide," Cara said, "you manage to get yourself in a lot of
trouble. Do you think you will have any wives left, now that they are
finished?"
He knew
Cara was only nettling him, in her odd way trying to buoy his spirits.
"One, I hope."
"Well,
if not," Cara said with a smirk, "we will always have each
other."
Richard
made for the other two women. "The position of wife is filled, thank
you."\xA0 . .
Kahlan
and Du Chaillu walked side by side through the grass, their faces showing no
emotion. At least he didn't see any blood.
"Your
other wife has convinced me to talk to you," Du Chaillu said when Richard
met them.
"You
are fortunate to have us both," she added.
Richard
thought better of opening his mouth, lest he allow to leap off his tongue the
flip remark dancing impatiently there.
333
CHAPTER\xA0 31
Du
CHAILLU WALKED OFF to her blade masters, apparently telling the men to sit and
rest themselves while she spoke with the Caharin. While she was seeing to that,
Kahlan, with the end of her finger in his ribs, prodded Richard in the
direction of their gear.
"Get
Du Chaillu a blanket to sit on," Kahlan murmured.
"Why
does she need ours? They have their own blankets with them. Besides, she doesn't
need a blanket to sit on to tell me why she's here."
Kahlan
poked his ribs again. "Just get it," she said under her breath so the
others wouldn't hear. "In case you hadn't noticed, the woman is pregnant
and could use a rest off her feet."
"Well
that doesn't-"
"Richard,"
Kahlan snapped, hushing him. "When you insist someone submit to your will,
it is accomplished most easily if you give them a small victory so they can
retain their dignity while they do as you insist. If you wish, I will carry it
over to her."
"Well,"
Richard said, "all right, then. I guess-"
"See?
You just proved it. And you will carry the blanket."
"So
Du Chaillu gets a small victory, but I don't?"
334
"You're
a big boy. Du Chaillu's price is a blanket to sit on while she tells you why
she's here. The price is minuscule. Don't continue a war we have already won
just to make the opponent's humiliation crushing and complete."
"But
she-"
"I
know. Du Chaillu was out of line in what she said to you. You know it, I know
it, she knows it. But her feelings were hurt and not entirely without cause. We
all make mistakes.
"She
didn't understand the dimensions of the danger we have only just discovered we
face. She has agreed to peace for the price of our blanket to sit upon. She
only wants you to pay her a courtesy. It won't hurt you to indulge her
sensibilities."
Richard
glanced over his shoulder when they reached their things. Du Chaillu was
speaking to the blade masters.
"You
threaten her?" Richard whispered as he pulled his blanket from his pack.
"Oh
yes," Kahlan whispered back. She put a hand on his arm. "Be gentle.
Her ears are liable to be a bit tender after our little talk."
Richard
marched over and made a show of flattening the grass and spreading his blanket
on the ground before Du Chaillu. With the flat of his hand, he smoothed out the
bigger wrinkles. He set a waterskin in the middle. When finished, he held out a
hand in invitation.
"Please,
Du Chaillu"-he couldn't make himself address her as his wife, but he
didn't think that mattered-"sit and speak with me? Your words are
important, and time is precious."
She
inspected the way he had matted down the grass, all in one direction, and
scrutinized the blanket. Satisfied with the arrangement, she sat at one end and
crossed her legs under herself. With her back straight, her chin held high, and
her hands clasped in her lap, she looked somehow noble. He guessed she was.
Richard
flipped his golden cape back over his shoulders
335
and sat
cross-legged at the other end of the blanket. It wasn't very big, so their
knees almost touched. He smiled politely and offered her the waterskin.
As she
graciously accepted the waterskin, he recalled the first time he had seen her.
She had been in a collar and chained to a wall. She had been naked and filthy,
and smelled as if she had been there for months, which she had, yet her bearing
was such that she had somehow seemed to him just as noble as she did now, clean
and dressed in her spirit-woman prayer dress.
He
remembered, too, how when he had been trying to free her, she feared he was
going to' kill her and she had bitten him. Just recalling it, he could almost
feel her teeth marks.
The
troubling thought occurred to him that this woman had the gift. He wasn't sure
the extent of her powers, but he could see it in her eyes. Somehow, his ability
allowed him to see that timeless look in the eyes of others who were at least
brushed with a dusting of the gift of magic.
Sister
Verna had told Richard that she had tried little things on Du Chaillu, to test
her. Verna said the spells she sent at Du Chaillu disappeared like pebbles
dropped down a well, and they did not go unnoticed. Du Chaillu, Verna had said,
knew what was being tried, and was somehow able to annul it.
From
other things, Richard had long ago come to the realization that Du Chaillu's
gift involved some primitive form of prophecy. Since she had been held in
chains for months, he doubted she was able to affect the world around her with
her magical ability. People whose magic could affect others in an overt manner
didn't need to bite, he imagined, nor would they allow themselves to be held
captive to await being sacrificed. But she was able to prevent others from
using magic against her, not an uncommon form of mystical protection against
the weapon of magic, Richard had learned.
With
the chimes in the world of life, Du Chaillu's magic, whatever its extent, would
fail, if it hadn't already. He
336
waited
until she had her drink and had handed back the waterskin before he began.
"Du
Chaillu, I need-"
"Ask
how are our people."
Richard
glanced up at Kahlan. Kahlan rolled her eyes and gave him a nod.
Richard
set down the waterskin and cleared his throat.
"Du
Chaillu, I rejoice to see you are well. Thank you for considering my words of
advice to keep your child. I know it is a great responsibility to raise a
child. I am sure you will be rewarded with a lifetime of joy at your decision,
and the child will be rewarded by your teachings. I also know my words were not
as important in your decision as was your own heart."
Richard
didn't have to try to sound sincere, because he truly was. "I'm sorry you
had to leave your other babies to make this long and difficult journey to bring
me your words of wisdom. I know you would not have undertaken such a long and
arduous journey were it not important."
She
waited, clearly not yet content. Richard, patiently trying to play her game,
let out a breath and went on.
"Please,
Du Chaillu, tell me how the Baka Tau Mana fare, now that they are returned at
last to their ancestral homeland?"
Du
Chaillu smiled at last with satisfaction. "Our people are well and happy
in their homeland, thanks to you, Caharin, but we will talk of them later. I
must now tell you of why I have come."
Richard
made an effort to school his scowl. "I am eager to hear your words."
She
opened her mouth, but then scowled herself. "Where is your sword?"
"I
don't have it with me."
"Why
not?"
"I
had to leave it back in Aydindril. It's a long story and it isn't-"
"But
how can you be the Seeker if you do not have your sword?"
337
Richard
drew a breath. "The Seeker of Truth is a person. The Sword of Truth is a
tool the Seeker uses, much like you used the whistle to bring peace. I can
still be the Seeker without the sword, just as you can be the spirit woman
without the gift of the whistle."
"It
doesn't seem right." She looked dismayed. "I liked your sword. It cut
the iron collar off my neck and left my head where it was. It announced you to
us as the Caharin. You should have your sword."
Deciding
that he had played her game long enough, and considering the vital matters on
his mind, he leaned forward and let his scowl have its way.
"I
will recover my sword as soon as I return to Aydindril. We were on our way
there when we met you here. The less time I spend sitting around on a good
traveling day, the sooner I will arrive in Aydindril and be able to recover my
sword.
"I'm
sorry, Du Chaillu, if I seemed in a rush. I mean no disrespect, but I fear for
innocent lives and the lives of ones I love. It is for the safety of the Baka
Tau Mana, too, that I am in a hurry.
"I
would be thankful if you would tell me what you're doing here. People are
dying. Some of your own people have lost their lives. I must see if there is
anything I can do to stop the chimes. The Sword of Truth may help me. I need to
get to Aydindril to get it. May we please get on with this?"
Du
Chaillu smiled to herself, now that he had given her the proper respect.
Slowly, she seemed to 1956 her ability to hold the smile, losing with it her
bluster. For the first time, she seemed unsure, looking suddenly small and
frightened.
"My
husband, I had a troubling vision of you. As the spirit woman, I sometimes have
such visions."
"Good
for you, but I don't want to hear it."
She
looked up at him. "What?"
"You
said it was a vision."
"Yes."
"I
don't want to hear about any visions."
338
"But-but-you
must. It was a vision."
"Visions
are a form of prophecy. Prophecy has yet to help me, and almost always causes
me grief. I don't want to hear it-"
"But
visions help."
"No,
they do not help."
"They
reveal the truth."
"They
are no more true than dreams."
"Dreams
can be true, also."
"No,
dreams are not true. They are simply dreams. Visions are not true, either. They
are simply visions."
"But
I saw you in a vision."
"I
don't care. I don't want to hear it."
"You
were on fire."
Richard
heaved a breath. "I've had dreams where I can fly, too. That doesn't make
it true."
Du
Chaillu leaned toward him. "You dream you can fly? Really? You mean like a
bird?" She straightened. "I have never heard of such a thing."
"It's
just a dream, Du Chaillu. Like your vision."
"But
I had a vision of this. That means it is true."
"Just
because I can fly in my dreams, that doesn't make it true. I don't go jumping
off high places and flapping my arms. It's just a dream, like your vision.
"I
can't fly, Du Chaillu."
"But
you can burn."
Richard
put his hands on his knees and leaned back a little as he took a deep and
patient breath.
"All
right, fine. What else was there to this vision?"
"Nothing.
That was all."
"Nothing?
That was it? Me on fire? Just a little dream of me on fire?"
"Not
a dream." She held up a finger to make her point. "A vision."
"And
you journeyed all this way to tell me that? Well, thank you very much for
coming such a distance to tell me, but we really must be on our way, now. Tell
your people the Caharin wishes them well. Good journey home."
339
Richard
made to look like he was going to get up.
"Unless
you have something more to say?" he added.
Du
Chaillu melted a little at the rebuff. "It frightened me to see my husband
on fire."
"As
well as it would frighten me to be on fire."
"I
would not like it if the Caharin was on fire."
"Nor
would the Caharin like to be on fire. So, did your vision tell you how I might
avoid being on fire?"
She
looked down and picked at the blanket. "No."
"You
see? What good is it, then?"
"It
is good to know such things," she said as she rolled a little fuzz ball
across the blanket. "It might help."
Richard
scratched his forehead. She was working up her courage to tell him something
more important, more troubling. The vision was a pretext, he reasoned. He
softened his tone, hoping to ease it out of her.
"Du
Chaillu, thank you for your warning. I will keep it in mind that it might
somehow help me."
She met
his eyes and nodded.
"How
did you find me?" he asked.
"You
are the Caharin." She was looking noble again. "I am the Baka Tau
Mana spirit woman, the keeper of the old laws. Your wife."
Richard
understood. She was bonded to him, much like the D'Harans-like Cara. And like
Cara, Du Chaillu could sense where he was.
"I
was a day south of here. You nearly missed finding me. Have you begun to have
difficulty telling where I am?"
She
looked away from his eyes as she nodded. "I could always go and stand
looking out at the horizon, with the breeze in my hair and the sun or stars
upon my face, and I could point, and say, 'The Caharin is that way.' "
She
took a moment to again find her voice. "It has become harder and harder to
know where to point."
"We
were in Aydindril until just a few days ago," Richard said. "You
would have had to start on your journey long before I came to this place."
"Yes.
You were not in this place when I first knew I must
340
come to
you." She gestured over her shoulder. "You were much, much farther to
the northeast."
"Why
would you come here to find me if you could sense me to the northeast, in
Aydindril?"
"When
I began to feel you less and less, I knew that meant there was trouble. My
visions told me I needed to come to you before you were lost to me. If I had
traveled to where I knew you were when I started, you would not be there when I
arrived. I consulted my visions, instead, while I still had them, and journeyed
to where they told me you would be.
"Toward
the end of our journey, I could feel you were now in this place. Soon after, I
could no longer feel you. W6 were still a goodly distance away, so all we could
do was to continue on in this direction. The good spirits answered my prayers,
and allowed our paths to cross."
"I
am pleased the good spirits helped you, Du Chaillu. You are a good person, and
deserve their help."
She
picked at the blanket again. "But my husband does not believe in my
visions."
Richard
wet his lips. "My father used to tell me not to eat mushrooms I found in
the forest. He would say he could see me eating a poison mushroom and then
getting sick and dying. He didn't really mean he could see it was going to
happen, but that he feared for me. He was warning me what might happen if I ate
mushrooms I didn't know."
"I
understand," she said with a small smile.
"Was
yours a true vision? Maybe it was a vision of something that's only possible-a
vision of a danger-but not a certainty?"
"It
is true some visions are of things that are possible, but not yet settled in
the fates. It could be that yours was that kind."
Richard
took up her hand in both of his. "Du Chaillu," he asked in a gentle
voice, "please tell me now why you have come to me?"
She
reverently smoothed the little colored strips running down her arm, as if
reminding herself of the prayers her
341
people
sent with her. This was a woman who bore the mantle of responsibility with
spirit, courage, and dignity.
"The
Baka Tau Mana are joyous to be in their homeland after all these generations
separated from the place of our hearts. Our homeland is all the old words
passed down said it was. The land is fertile. The weather favorable. It is a
good place to raise our children. A place where we can be free. Our hearts sing
to be there.
"Every
people should have what you have given to us, Caharin. Every people should be
safe to live as they would."
A
terrible sorrow settled through her expressions "You are not. You and your
people of this land of the New World you told me about are not safe. A great
army comes."
"Jagang,"
Richard breathed. "You had a vision of this?"
"No,
my husband. We have seen it with our own eyes. I was ashamed to tell you of
this, ashamed because we were so frightened by them, and I did not want to
admit our fear.
"When
I was chained to the wall, and I knew the Majendie would come any day to
sacrifice me, I was not this frightened because it was only me, not all my
people, who would die. My people were strong and they would get a new spirit
woman to take my place. They would fight off the Majendie, if they came into
the swamp. I could die knowing the Baka Ban Mana would live on.
"We
practice every day with our weapons, so none may come and destroy us. We stand
ready, as the old laws say, to do battle for our lives against any who come
against us. There is no man but the Caharin who could face one of our blade
masters.
"But
no matter how good our blade masters, they could not fight an army like this.
When they at last put their eye toward us, we will not be able to fight off
this foe."
"I
understand, Du Chaillu. Tell me what you saw?"
"What
I have seen I have no way of telling you. I do not know how to tell you that
you might understand how many men we have seen. How many horses. How many
wagons. How many weapons.
"This
army stretches from horizon to horizon for days as
342
they
pass. They are beyond count. I could no more tell you how many blades of grass
are on these plains. I have no word that can express such a vast number."
"I
think you just have," Richard murmured. "They didn't attack your
people, then?"
"No.
They did not come through our homeland. Our fear for ourselves is but for the
future, when these men decide to swallow us. Men like this will not forever
leave us to ourselves. Men like these take everything; there is never enough
for them.
"Our
men will all die. Our children will all be murdered. Our women will all be
taken. We have no hope against this foe.
"You
are the Caharin, so you must be told these things. That is the old law.
"As
spirit woman to the Baka Tau Mana, I am ashamed that I must show you my fear
and tell you our people are frightened we will all perish in the teeth of this
beast. I wish I could tell you we look with bravery to the jaws of death, but
we do not. We look with trembling hearts.
"You
are Caharin, you would not know. You have no fear."
"Du
Chaillu," Richard said with a startled guffaw, "I'm often
afraid."
"You?
Never." Her gaze withdrew to the blanket. "You are just saying so
that I might not be shamed. You have faced the thirty without fear and defeated
them. Only the Caharin could do such a thing. The Caharin is fearless."
Richard
lifted her chin. "I faced the thirty, but not without fear. I was terrified,
as I am right now of the chimes, and the war facing us. Admitting your fear is
not a weakness, Du Chaillu."
She
smiled at his kindness. "Thank you, Caharin."
"The
Imperial Order didn't try to attack you, then?"
"For
now, we are safe. I came to warn you, because they come into the New World.
They passed us by. They come for you, first."
343
Richard
nodded. They were headed north, into the Midlands.
General
Reibisch's army of nearly a hundred thousand men was marching east to guard the
southern reaches of the Midlands. The general had asked Richard's permission
not to return to Aydindril, his plan being to watch the southern passes into
the Midlands, and especially the back routes into D'Hara. It made sense to
Richard.
Fortune
now put the man and his D'Haran army in Jagang's path.
Reibisch's
force might not be large enough to take on the Imperial Order, but D'Harans
were fierce fighters and would be well placed to guard the passes north. Once
they knew where Jagang's forces were going, more men could be sent to join
Reibisch's army.
Jagang
had gifted wizards and Sisters in his army. General Reibisch had a number of
the Sisters of the Light with him, too. Sister Verna-Prelate Verna, now-had
given Richard her word that the Sisters would fight against the Order and the
magic they used. Magic was now failing, hut so would the magic of those aiding
Jagang, except, perhaps, the Sisters of the Dark and the wizards with them who
knew how to conjure Subtractive Magic.
General
Reibisch, as well as Richard and the other generals back in Aydindril and
D'Hara, had been counting on the Sisters to use their abilities to keep track
of Jagang's army when it advanced into the New World, and with that knowledge,
aid the D'Haran forces in selecting an advantageous place to take a stand. Now,
magic was failing, leaving them blind.
Luckily,
Du Chaillu and the Baka Tau Mana had kept the Order from surprising them.
"This
is a great help, Du Chaillu." Richard smiled at her. "It is important
news you bring. Now we know what Jagang is doing. They didn't try to come
through your land, then? They simply passed you by?"
"They
would have had to go out of their way to attack us now. Because of their
numbers, the edges of their army
344
came
near but, like a porcupine in the belly of a dog, our blade masters made it
painful for them to brush against us.
"We
captured some of the leaders of these dogs on two legs. They told us that for
now their army was not interested in our small homeland and people, and they
were content to pass us by. They hunt bigger game. But they will one day
return, and wipe the Baka Tau Mana from the land."
"They
told you their plans?"
"Everyone
will talk, if asked properly." She smiled. "The chimes are not the
only ones to use fire. We-"
Richard
held up his hand. "I get the idea."
"They
told us their army was going to a place that could provide them with
supplies."
Richard
idly stroked his lower lip as he considered that important bit of news.
"That
makes sense. They've been gathering their forces in the Old World for some
time. They can't stay put forever, not an army like that. An army has to be
fed. An army that size would need to move, and would need supplies. A lot of
supplies. The New World would offer them a tempting meal along with their
conquests."
He
looked up at Kahlan, standing behind his left shoulder. "Where would they
likely go to find supplies?"
"There
are any number of places," Kahlan said. "They could pillage from each
place as they invade, getting what they need as they strike deeper into the
Midlands. As long as they pick their route with that in mind, they could feed
the army as they go, like a bat scooping up bugs.
"Or,
they might strike at a place with larger stocks. Lifany, for example, could net
them a lot of grain, Sanderia has vast sheep herds and would get them meat. If
they picked targets with enough food, they could supply their army for a long
time to come, allowing them the freedom to pick their targets at will, for strategic
reasons alone. We would have a difficult time of it.
"If
I were them, that would be my plan. Without their urgent need for food, we
would be at their mercy as far as picking a place to stand against them."
345
"We
could use General Reibisch," Richard said, thinking aloud. "Maybe he
could block the Order, or at least slow them, while we evacuate people and
supplies before Jagang can get to them."
"That
would be a huge task, moving so many supplies. If Reibisch surprises Jagang's
troops," Kahlan said, also thinking aloud, "engages him to stall
their advance, and we could move enough other forces in from the sides
..."
Du
Chaillu was shaking her head. "When we were banished from our homeland by
the law-givers," she said, "we were made to live in the wet place.
When it rained to the north for many days, great floods came. The river
overflowed its banks and spread wide.
"In
its rush, churning with mud and big uprooted trees, it swept everything before
it. We could not stand against the weight and fury of so much water-no one
could. You think you can, until you see it coming. You find higher ground,
or die.
"This
army is like that. You cannot imagine how big it is."
Seeing
the burden of dread in her eyes and hearing the weight of her words made
gooseflesh rise on Richard's arms. Though she couldn't express the number, it
was unimportant. He understood the concept as if she were somehow pouring her
image and impressions of the Imperial Order directly into his mind.
"Dru
Chaillu, thank you for bringing us this information. You may have saved a great
many lives with your words. At least, now, we won't be caught unawares-as we
might well have been. Thank you."
"General
Reibisch is already headed east, so we have that much in our favor,"
Kahlan said. "We must now get word to him."
Richard
nodded. "We can take a roundabout way to Aydindril so we can meet up with
him and decide what to do next. Also, we can get horses from him. That would
save us time in the long run. I only wish he wasn't so far away. Time is
vital."
346
After
the battle in which the D'Haran army had defeated Jagang's huge expeditionary
force, Reibisch had turned his army and was racing east. The D'Harans were
returning to guard the routes north from the Old World, where Jagang had
gathered his forces in preparation for marching into the Midlands or possibly
D'Hara.
"If
we can get to the general and warn him Jagang's army is coming," Cara
offered, "then we could get his messengers sent off to D'Hara to call reinforcements."
"And
to Kelton, Jara, and Grennidon, among others," Kahlan said. "We have
a number of lands with standing armies already on our side."
Richard
nodded. "That makes sense. We'll know where they're needed, at least. I
just wish we could get to Aydindril faster."
"Are
we sure it really even makes any difference, now?" Kahlan asked.
"Remember, it's the chimes, not the Lurk."
"What
Zedd asked us to do may not help," Richard said, "but then again, we
don't know that for sure, do we? He might have been telling us the truth about
the urgency of what we need to do, but simply cloaked it with the name Lurk
instead of chimes."
"We
could lose to Jagang before the chimes can get us. Dead is dead." Kahlan
let out a frustrated sigh. "I don't know Zedd's game, but the truth would
have served us in better stead."
"We
must get to Aydindril," Richard said with finality. "That's all there
is to it."
His
sword was in Aydindril.
In much
the same way Cara could sense him by her bond, and Du Chaillu could tell where
he was, Richard had been named Seeker and was connected to the Sword of Truth.
He was bonded to the blade. He felt as if something inside him was missing
without it.
"Du
Chaillu," Richard asked, "when this great army went past you on its
way north-"
"I
never said they went north."
Richard
blinked. "But... that's where they would have
347
to be
going. They're coming up into the Midlands-or else D'Hara. They have to come
north for either."
Du
Chaillu shook her head emphatically. "No. They are not going north. They
went past our land on our south side, staying near the shore-turning with it,
and now go west."
Richard
stared dumbfounded. "West?"
Kahlan
sank to her knees beside him. "Du Chaillu, are you sure?"
"Yes.
We shadowed them. We had men scout in all directions, because my visions warned
me these men were a great danger to the Caharin. Some of the men of rank we
captured knew the name 'Richard Rahl.' That is why I had to come to warn you.
This army knows you by name.
"You
have dealt them blows and frustrated their plans. They have great hate for you.
Their men told us these things."
"Could
your visions of me and fire really be the fire of hatred these men have in
their hearts for me?"
Du
Chaillu mulled over his question. "You understand visions, my husband. It
could be as you say. A vision does not always mean what it shows. It sometimes
means only this thing is possible and a danger that must be watched, and it
sometimes is as you say, a vision of an impression of an idea, not an
event."
Kahlan
reached out and snatched Du Chaillu's sleeve. "But where are they going?
Somewhere they will turn north into the Midlands. Lives are at stake. Did you
find out where? We must know where they will turn to the north."
"No," Du Chaillu said, looking befuddled by their surprise.
"They plan on following the shoreline with the great water."
"The
ocean?" Kahlan asked.
"Yes,
that was their name for it. They intend to follow the great water and go to the
west. The men did not know what the place they go is called, only that they are
to go far to the west, to a land that has, as you said, vast supplies of
food."
348
Kahlan
let go of the woman's sleeve. "Dear spirits," she whispered, "we
are in trouble."
"I'd
say so," Richard said as he clenched a fist. "General Reibisch is far
off to the east, and running in the wrong direction."
"Worse,"
Kahlan said as she turned to look southwest, as if she could see where the
Order was headed.
"Of
course," Richard breathed. "That's the land Zedd was talking about,
near that Nareef Valley place, the isolated land to the southwest of here that
grows so much grain. Right?"
"Yes,"
Kahlan said, still staring off to the horizon. "Jagang is headed for the
breadbasket of the Midlands."
"Toscla,"
Richard said, remembering what Zedd had called it.
Kahlan
turned back to him, nodding in resigned frustration.
"It
looks that way," she said. "I never thought Jagang would go that far
out of the way. I would have expected him to strike quickly into the New World,
so as not to allow us time to gather our forces."
"That's
what I was expecting. General Reibisch thought so, too; he's racing to guard a
gate Jagang isn't going to use."
Richard
tapped a finger against his knee as he considered their options. "At least
it may buy us time-and now we know where the Imperial Order is going.
Toscla."
Kahlan
shook her head, she, too, seeming to be considering the options. "Zedd
knew the place by an old name. The name of that land has changed over time.
It's been known as Vengren, Vendice, and Turslan, among others. It hasn't been
known as Toscla for quite some time."
"Oh,"
Richard said, not really listening as he started making a mental list of things
they had to weigh. "So, what's it called, now?"
"Now,
it's Anderith," she said.
Richard's
head came up. He felt a tingling icy wave ripple
349
up
through his thighs. "Anderith? Why? Why is it called Anderith?"
Kahlan's
brow twitched at the look on his face. "It was named after one of their
ancient founders. His name was Arider."
The
tingling sensation raced the rest of the way up Richard's arms and back.
"Ander."
He blinked at her. "Joseph Ander?"
"How
do you know that?"
"The
wizard called 'the Mountain'? The one Kolo said they sent to deal with the
chimes?" Kahlan nodded. "That was his cognomen-what everyone called
him. His real name was Joseph Ander."
CHAPTER
32
RICHARD
FELT AS IF his thoughts were going to war in his head. At the same time that he
groped for solutions to the spectral threat, he was assailed by the image of
endless enemy soldiers pouring up from the Old World.
"All
right," he said, holding his hand out to stop everyone from talking at
once. "All right. Slow down. Let's just reason this out."
"The
whole world might be dead from the chimes before Jagang can conquer the
Midlands," Kahlan said. "We need to address the chimes above all
else-you're the one who
350
convinced
me of that. It's not just that the world of life might very well need magic to
survive, but we need magic to counter Jagang. He would like nothing better than
for us to have to battle him by sword alone.
"We
must get to Aydindril. As you yourself said, what if Zedd was telling the truth
about what we need to do at the Wizard's Keep-with that bottle? If we fail to
carry out our charge, we may aid the chimes in taking over the world of life.
If we don't act soon enough, it may forever be too late."
"And
I need my Agiel to work again," Cara said with painful impatience,
"or I can't protect you both as I need to. I say we must go to Aydindril
and stop the chimes."
Richard
looked from one woman to the other. "Fine. But how are we going to stop
the chimes if Zedd's task is only a fool's journey to keep us out of his way?
What if he's just worried and wants us out of harm's way while he tries to deal
with the problem himself?
"You
know, like a father, when he sees a suspicious stranger approaching, might tell
his children to run into the house because he needs them to count the sticks of
firewood in the bin."
Richard
watched both their faces sour with frustration. "I mean, it's a good piece
of information that Joseph Ander was the one sent to stop the chimes, and he's
the same one who founded this land of Anderith. Maybe it means something, and
maybe Zedd wasn't aware of it.
"I'm
not saying we should go to Anderith. The spirits know I want to get to
Aydindril, too. I just want not to overlook something important." Richard
pressed his fingers to his temples. "I don't know what to do."
"Then
we should go to Aydindril," Kahlan said. "We know that at least has a
chance."
Richard
reasoned it through aloud. "That might be best. After all, what if the
Mountain, Joseph Ander, stopped the chimes way in the opposite direction-at the
other end of the Midlands-and afterwards, later in life, after the war or
something, went on to help establish this land now called Anderith?"
351
"Right.
Then we must get to Aydindril as soon as possible," Kahlan insisted.
"And hope it will stop the chimes."
"Look,"
Richard said, holding up a finger to ask for patience, "I agree, but what
are we going to do to stop the chimes if it's all for naught? If it's part of
Zedd's trick? Then we have done nothing to stop either threat. We must consider
that, too."
"Lord
Rahl," Cara weighed in, "going to Aydindril would still be of value.
Not only could you get your sword and try what Zedd asked of you, but you would
also have Kolo's journal.
"Berdine
is there. She can help you with translating it. She would be working on it
while we have been gone; she may have already translated more about the chimes.
She may have 'answers sitting there waiting for you to see them. If not, you
will have the book and you know what to search for."
"That's
true," Richard said. "There are other books at the Keep, too. Kolo
said the chimes turned out to be much simpler to counter than they all
thought."
"But
they all had Subtractive Magic," Kahlan pointed out.
Richard
did, too, but he knew precious little about using it. The sword was the only
thing he really understood.
"Perhaps
one of the books in the Wizard's Keep has the solution to dealing with the
chimes," Cara said, "and maybe it isn't complicated. Maybe it doesn't
take Subtractive Magic."
The
Mord-Sith folded her arms with obvious distaste at the thought of magic.
"Maybe you can stir your finger in the air and proclaim them gone."
"Yes,
you are a magic man," Du Chaillu offered, not realizing Cara had been
exercising her sarcastic wit. "You could do that."
"You
give me more credit than I deserve," he said to Du Chaillu.
"It
still sounds like our only real option is to go to Aydindril," Kahlan
said.
Unsure,
Richard shook his head. He wished it weren't so
352
hard to
decide the right thing to do. He was balanced on a divide, leaning first one
way, and then the other. He wished he had some other bit of information that
would tip the balance.
Sometimes
he just wished he could scream that he was only a woods guide, and didn't know
what to do, and have someone who did step in and make everything look simple.
Sometimes he felt like an impostor in his role as Lord Rahl, and felt like
simply giving up and going home to Westand. Now was one of those times.
He
wished Zedd hadn't lied to him. Lives now hung in the balance because they
didn't know the truth. And because Richard had not used Zedd's wisdom when he
had the chance. If only he had used his head and remembered Du Chaillu.
"Why
are you against going to Aydindril?" Kahlan asked.
"I
wish I knew," Richard said. "But we do know where Jagang is going. We
need to do something about it. If he conquers the Midlands, we'll be dead,
beyond doing anything about the chimes."
He
started pacing. "What if the chimes aren't as big a threat as we fear? I
mean, in the long run, yes, of course, but what if they take years to bring
about the erosion of magic that would cause any real harm? Irreversible harm?
For all we know, it could take centuries."
"Richard,
what's wrong with you? They're killing people now." Kahlan gestured back
across the grasslands toward the Mud People's village. "They killed Juni.
They killed some of the Baka Tau Mana. We have to do whatever we can to stop
them. You're the one who convinced me of this."
"Lord
Rahl," Cara said, "I agree with the Mother Confessor. We must go to
Aydindril."
Du
Chaillu stood. "May I speak, Caharin?'
Richard
looked up from his thoughts. "Yes, of course."
She was
about to do so when she paused with her mouth open. A puzzled expression came
over her face. "This man who leads them, this Jagang, he is a magic
man?"
"Yes.
Well, in a way. He has the ability to enter the minds
353
of
people and in that way control them. He's called a dream walker. He has no other
magic, though."
Du
Chaillu considered his words a moment. "An army cannot long persevere
without the support of the people of their land. He controls all the people of
his land, then, in this way-everyone on his side?"
"No.
He can't do this with everyone at once. He must pick who he will take. Much
like a blade master, in a battle, would first pick the most important targets.
He picks those with magic and controls them in order to use their magic to his
advantage."
"So,
the witches, then, are forced to do his evil. With their magic, they hold his
people by their throat?"
"No,"
Kahlan said from behind Richard. "The people submit willingly."
Du
Chaillu looked dubious. "You believe people would choose to allow such a
man to be their leader?"
"Tyrants
can only rule by the consent of their people."
"Then
they are bad people, too, not just him?"
"They
are people like any other," Kahlan said. "Like hounds at a feast,
people gather round the table of tyranny, eager for tasty scraps tossed on the
floor. Not everyone will wag their tail for a tyrant, but most will, if he
first makes them salivate with hate and gives license to their covetous
impulses by making them feel it is only their due. Many would rather take than
earn.
"Tyrants
make the envious comfortable with their greed."
"Jackals,"
Du Chaillu said.
"Jackals,"
Kahlan agreed.
Disturbed
at hearing such a thing, Du Chaillu's eyes turned down. "That makes it
more horrible, then. I would rather think these people possessed by this man's
magic, or the Keeper himself, than to think they would follow such a beast of
their own will."
"You
were going to say something?" Richard asked. "You said you wanted to
say something. I'd like to hear it."
Du
Chaillu clasped her hands before herself. Her look of
354
dismay
was overcome by a yet graver expression.
"On
our way here, we shadowed the army to see where they went. We also captured
some of their men to be sure. This army travels very slowly.
"Their
leader, each night, has his tents put up for him and his women. The tents are
big enough to hold many people, and have many accommodations for his comfort.
They also put up other tents for other important men. Each night is a feast.
Their leader, Jagang, is like a great and wealthy king on a journey.
"They
have wagons of women, some willing, some not. At night, all are passed around
among the soldiers. This army is driven by lust for pleasure as well as
conquest. They tend well to their pleasures as they go in search of conquest.
"They
have much equipment. They have many extra horses. They have herds of meat on
the hoof. Long trains of wagons carry food and other supplies of every kind.
They have wagons with everything from flower mills to blacksmith forges. They
bring tables and chairs, carpets, fine plates and glassware they pack in
shavings in wooden boxes. Each night they unpack it all and make Jagang's tents
like a palace, surrounded by the houses of his important men.
"With
their big tents and all the comforts they carry with them, it is almost like a
city that travels."
Du
Chaillu glided the flat of her hand through the air. "This army moves like
a slow river. It takes its time, but nothing stops it. It keeps coming. Every
day a little more. A city, sliding across the land. They are many, and they are
slow, but they come.
"I
knew I must warn the Caharin, so we did not want to shadow these men any
longer." She turned the hand in the air, like dust stirring before a high
wind. "We returned to our swift travel. The Baka Tau Mana can travel as
swiftly on foot as men on running horses."
Richard
had traveled with her. It was a false boast, but not by much. He had once made
her ride a horse; she thought it an evil beast.
355
"As
we made swift journey northwest across this vast and open land, to come here,
we arrived unexpectedly at a great city with high walls."
"That
would be Renwold," Kahlan said. "It's the only big city in the wilds
anywhere near your route here. It has the walls you describe."
Du Chaillu
nodded. "Renwold. We did not know its name." Her intense gaze, like
that of a queen with grave news, moved from Kahlan to Richard. "They had
been visited by the army of this man, Jagang."
Du
Chaillu stared off, as if seeing it again. "I have never thought people
could be that cruel to others. The Majendie, as much as we hated them, would
not do such things as these men did to the people there."
Tears
welled in Du Chaillu's eyes, finally overflowing to run down her cheeks.
"They butchered the people there. The old, the young, the babies. But not
before they spent days-"
Du
Chaillu's sob broke loose. Kahlan put an understanding arm around the woman's
shoulder. Du Chaillu seemed suddenly a child in Kahlan's embrace. A child who
had seen too much.
"I
know," Kahlan soothed, near tears along with Du Chaillu. "I know. I,
too, have been to a great walled city where men who follow Jagang had been. I
know the things you've seen.
"I
have walked among the dead inside the walls of Ebinissia. I have seen the
slaughter at the hands of the Order. I have seen what these beasts first did to
the living."
Du
Chaillu, the woman who led her people with grit and guts, who had faced with
defiance and courage months of capture and the prospect of her imminent sacrifice,
who watched her husbands die to fulfill the laws she kept, who willingly
confronted death to help Richard destroy the Towers of Perdition in the hope of
returning her people to their land, buried her face in Kahlan's shoulder and
wept like a child at recalling what she had seen in Renwold.
The
blade masters turned away rather than see their spirit
356
woman
so heartsick. Chandalen and his hunters, waiting not far off for everyone to
finish with their deliberations, also turned away.
Richard
wouldn't have thought anything could bring Du Chaillu to tears in front of
others.
"There
was a man there," Du Chaillu said between sobs. "The only one we
could find still alive."
"How
did-he survive?" It sounded pretty far-fetched to Richard. "Did he
say?"
"He
was crazy. He wailed to the good spirits for his family. He cried endlessly for
what he said was his folly, and asked the spirits to forgive him and return his
loved ones.
"He
carried the rotting head of a child. He talked to it, as if it were alive,
begging its forgiveness."
Kahlan's
face took on a saddened aspect. Slowly, with apparent reluctance, she said,
"Did he have long white hair? A red coat, with gold braiding at the
shoulders?"
"You
know him?" Du Chaillu asked.
"Ambassador
Seldon. He didn't live through the attack- he wasn't there when it came. He was
in Aydindril."
Kahlan
looked up at Richard. "I asked him to join us. He refused, saying he
believed the same as the assembly of seven, that his land of Mardovia would be
vulnerable if they joined with one side or the other. He refused to join us or
the Order, saying they believed neutrality was their safety."
"What
did you tell him?" Richard asked.
"Your
words-your decree that there are no bystanders in this war. I told him that as
Mother Confessor, I have decreed no mercy against the Order. I told Ambassador
Seldon we were of one mind in this, you and 1, and that his land was either
with us, or stood against us, and that the Imperial Order would view it the same
way.
"I
tried to tell him what would happen. He wouldn't listen. I begged him to
consider the lives of his family. He said they were safe behind the walls of
Renwold."
"I
wouldn't wish that lesson on anyone," Richard whispered.
Du
Chaillu sobbed anew. "I pray the head was not his
357
own
child. I wish I did not see it in my dreams."
Richard's
touch was gentle on Du Chaillu's arm. "We understand, Du Chaillu. The
Order's terror is a calculated means of demoralizing future victims, of intimidating
them into surrender. This is why we fight these people."
Du
Chaillu looked up at him, wiping her cheek with the back of her hand as she
sniffed back the tears.
"Then
I ask you to go to this place the Order goes to. Or at least send someone to warn
them. Have the people there flee before they are tortured and butchered like
those we saw in this place, Renwold. These Ander people must be warned. They
must flee."
Her
tears returned, accompanied by racking sobs. Richard watched as she wandered off
into the grass to weep in private.
Richard
felt Kahlan's hand settle on his shoulder, and turned back. "This land,
Anderith, hasn't surrendered to us yet. They had representatives in Aydindril
to hear our side of it, didn't they? They know our position?"
"Yes,"
Kahlan said. "Their representatives were warned the same as those of other
lands. They were told of the threat and that we mean to stand against it.
"Anderith
knows the alliance of the Midlands is a thing of the past, and we expect the surrender
of their sovereignty to the D'Haran Empire."
"D'Haran
Empire." The words seemed so harsh, so cold. Here he was, a woods guide,
feeling like an impostor on some throne he wasn't even sure existed except in
title, responsible for an empire. "Not that long ago I was terrified of
D'Hara. I feared they would have all the lands. Now that's our only hope."
Kahlan
smiled at the irony. "Its name, D'Hara, is the only thing the same,
Richard. Most people know you fight for people's freedom, not their enslavement.
Tyranny now wears the iron cloak of the Imperial Order.
"Anderith
knows the terms, the same as we've given every land, that if they join us
willingly they will be one people with us, entitled to the same equal and
honest treat-
358
ment as
everyone and governed by fair and just laws we all obey. They know there are no
exceptions. And they know the sanctions and consequences should they fail to
join us." "Renwold was told the same," he reminded her.
"They didn't believe us."
"Not
all are willing to face the truth. We can't expect it, and must concern
ourselves with those who share our conviction to fight for freedom. You can't
sacrifice good people, Richard, and risk a just cause, for those who will not
see. To do that would be a betrayal to those with brave hearts who have joined
us, and to whom you are responsible."
"You're
right." Richard released a pent-up sigh. He felt the same, but it was a
comfort to hear it from her. "Does Anderith have a large army?"
"Well...
yes," Kahlan said. "But the real defense for Anderith is not their
army. It's a weapon called the Dominie Dirtch."
While
he thought the name sounded like High D'Haran, with everything else on his mind
the translation didn't immediately spring to mind. "Is it something we can
use to stop the Order?" Staring off, deep in thought as she considered his
question, Kahlan plucked the tops of the grass.
"It's
an ancient weapon of magic. With the Dominie Dirtch, Anderith has always been
virtually immune to attack. They are part of the Midlands because they need us
as trading partners, need a market for the vast quantities of food they grow.
But with the Dominie Dirtch they're nearly autonomous, almost outside the
alliance of the Midlands.
"It's
always been a tenuous relationship. As Mother Confessors before me, I forced
them to accept my authority and abide by the rulings of the' Council if they
were to sell their goods. Still, the Anders are a proud people, and always
thought of themselves as separate, better than others."
'That's
what they may think, but not what I think-and not what Jagang will think. So
what about this weapon? Could it stop the Imperial Order, do you think?"
"Well, it hasn't had to be used on a big scale for centu-
359
ries."
Kahlan brushed the head of a stalk of grass across her chin as she thought it
over. "But I can't imagine why not. Its effectiveness discourages any
attack. At least in ordinary times. Since the last large conflict, it's only
been used in relatively minor troubles."
"What
is this protection?" Cara asked. "How does it work?"
"The
Dominie Dirtch is a string of defense not far in from their borders with the
wilds. It's a line of huge bells, spaced far apart, but within sight of one
another. They stand guard across the entire Anderith frontier."
"Bells,"
Richard said. "How do these bells protect them? You mean they're used to
warn people? To call their troops?"
Kahlan
waved her stalk of grass the way an instructor might wave a switch to dissuade
a student from getting the wrong idea. Zedd used to wave his finger in much the
same way, adding that impish smile so as not to give Richard a harsh impression
as he was being corrected. Kahlan, though, was not correcting, but schooling,
and as far as the Midlands were concerned, Richard was still very much a
student.
The
word "schooling" stuck in his head as soon as it crossed his mind.
"Not
that kind of bell," Kahlan said. "They don't really look much like
bells, other than their shape. They're carved from stone that over the ages has
become encrusted with lichen and such. They are like ancient monuments.
Terrible monuments.
"Jutting
up as they do from the soil of the plains, marching off in a line to the
horizon, they almost look like the vertebra of some huge, dead, endlessly long
monster."
Richard
scratched his jaw in wonder. "How big are they?"
"They
stand up above the grass and wheat on these fat stone pedestals, maybe eight or
ten feet across." She passed her hand over her head. "The pedestals
are about as tall as we are. Steps going up the bell itself are cut into each
base. The bells are, I don't know, eight, nine feet tall, including the
carriage.
360
"The
back of each bell, carved as part of the same stone, is round... like a shield.
Or a little like a wall lamp might have a reflector behind it. The Anderith
army mans each bell at all times. When an enemy approaches, the soldier, when
given the order, stands behind the shield, and the Dominie Dirtch-these
bells-are then struck with a long wooden striker.
"They
emit a very deep knell. At least behind the Dominie Dirtch it's said to be a
deep knell. No one attacking has ever lived to say what it sounds like from
that side, from the death zone."
Richard
had gone from simple wonder to astonishment. "What do the bells do to the
attackers? What does this sound do?"
Kahlan
rolled the heads of the grass in her fingers, crumbling them.
"It
sloughs the flesh right off the bones."
Richard
couldn't even imagine such a horrific thing. "Is this a legend, do you
think, or do you know it to be a fact?"
"I
once saw the results-some primitive people from the wilds intent on a raid as
retribution for harm to one of their women by an Anderith soldier."
She
shook her head despondently. "It was a grisly sight, Richard. A pile of
bloody bones in the middle of a, a... gory heap. You could see hair in it-parts
of scalp. And the clothes. I saw some fingernails, and the whorled flesh from a
fingertip, but I could recognize little else. Except for those few bits, and
the bones, you wouldn't even know it had been human."
"That
would leave no doubt; the bells use magic," Richard said. "How far
out does it kill? And how quickly?"
"As
I understand it, the Dominie Dirtch kill every person in front of them for about
as far as the eye can see. Once they're rung, an invader takes only a step or
two before their skin undergoes catastrophic ruptures. Muscle and flesh begin
coming away from bone. Their insides-heart, lungs, everything-drops from under
the rib cage as their intestines all
361
give
way. There is no defense. Once begun, all before the Dominie Dirtch die."
"Can
an invader sneak up at night?" Richard asked. Kahlan shook her head.
"The land is flat so the defenders are able to see for miles. At night
torches can be lit. Additionally, a trench extends in front of the entire line
so no one can crawl up unseen through the grass or wheat. As long as the line
of Dominie Dirtch is manned, there's no way to get past it. At least, it has
been thousands of years since anyone has gotten past."
"Does
the number of invaders matter?" "From what I know of-it, the Dominie
Dirtch could kill any number gathered together and marched toward Anderith,
toward those stone bells, as long as the defending soldiers kept ringing
them."
"Like
an army ..." Richard whispered to himself. "Richard, I know what
you're thinking, but with the chimes loose, magic is failing. It would be a
foolhardy risk to depend on the Dominie Dirtch to stop Jagang's army."
Richard
watched Du Chaillu off in the grass, her head in her hands as she wept.
"But
you said Anderith also has a, large army." Kahlan sighed impatiently.
"Richard, you promised Zedd we would go to Aydindril."
"I
did. But I didn't promise him when." "You implied it."
He
turned back to face her. "It wouldn't break the promise to go somewhere
else first." "Richard-"
"Kahlan,
maybe with magic failing, Jagang sees this as his chance to successfully invade
Anderith and capture its stores of food."
"That
would be bad for us, but the Midlands has other sources of food."
"And
what if food isn't the only reason Jagang is going to Anderith?" He cocked
an eyebrow. "He has people with the gift. They would know as well as Zedd
and Ann that magic was failing. What if they could figure out it was the
362
chimes?
What if Jagang saw this as his chance to take a formerly invincible land, and
then, if things change, if the chimes are banished ... ?"
"He
would have no way of knowing it was the chimes, but even if he did, how could
he know what to do to banish them?"
"He
has some gifted people with him. Gifted from the Palace of the Prophets. Those
men and women have studied the books in the vaults there. For hundreds of years
they've studied those books. I can't imagine how much they know. Can you?"
The
emerging possibilities and implications etched alarm into Kahlan's face.
"You think they may have a way to banish the chimes?"
"I
have no idea. But if they did-or went to Anderith and there uncovered the
solution-think about what it would mean. Jagang's army, en masse, would be in
the Midlands, behind the Dominie Dirtch, and there wouldn't be anything we
could do to rout them.
"At
their will, they could, where and when they wish, charge into the Midlands.
Anderith is a big land. With the Dominie Dirtch in his control, we would be
unable to scout beyond the border and so would have no idea where his troops
were massing. We couldn't possibly begin to guard the entire border, yet his
spies would be able to sneak out to detect where our armies waited, and then
slip back in to report to Jagang.
"He
could then race out through holes in a .net spread too thin and drive his
attack into the Midlands. If need be, they Could strike a blow and then
withdraw back behind the Dominie Dirtch. If he used just a little planning and
patience, he could wait until he found a weak place, with our troops too
distant to respond in time, and then his entire army could roar through gaps in
our lines and into the Midlands. Once past our forces, they could rampage
virtually unchecked, with us only able to nip at their heels as we chased after
them. "Once ensconced behind the stone curtain of the Dominie
363
Dirtch,
time would be on his side. He could wait a week, a month, a year. He could wait
ten years, until we became dull and weak from bearing the weight of constant
vigilance. Then, he could suddenly burst out upon us."
"Dear
spirits," Kahlan whispered. She gave him a sharp look. "This is all
just speculation. What if they don't really have a way to banish the
chimes?"
"I
don't know, Kahlan. I'm just saying 'What if?' We have to decide what to do. If
we decide wrong, we could lose it all."
Kahlan
let out a breath. "You're right about that." Richard turned and
watched Du Chaillu kneel down. Her hands were folded, her head bowed, in what
looked to be earnest prayer.
"Does
Anderith have any books, any libraries?" "Well, yes," Kahlan
said. "They have a huge Library of Culture, as they call it."
Richard
lifted an eyebrow. "If there is an answer, why does it have to be in
Aydindril? In Kolo's journal? What if the answer, if there is one, is in their
library?"
"If
there really is an answer in some book." Wearily, Kahlan gripped a handful
of her long hair hanging down over her shoulder. "Richard, I agree that
all of this is worrisome, but we have a duty to others to act responsibly.
Lives, nations are at stake. If it came down to a sacrifice of one land to save
the rest, I would reluctantly, and with great sorrow, leave that land to their
fate while I did my duty to the greater number.
"Zedd
told us we had to get to Aydindril in order to reverse the problem. He may have
called it by another name, but the problem is much the same. If doing as he
asked will stop the chimes, then we must do it. We have a duty to act in our
best judgment to the benefit of all."
"I
know." The millstone of responsibility could be unnerving. They needed to
go both places. "There's just something about this whole thing that's
bothering me, and I can't figure it out. Worse, I fear the lives it will cost
if we make the wrong choice."
364
Her
fingers closed around his arm. "I know, Richard."
He
threw up his hands and turned away. "I really need to take a look at that
book, Mountain's Twin."
"But
didn't Ann say she wrote in her journey book to Verna, and Verna said it had
been destroyed?"
"Yes,
so there's no way-" Richard spun back to her. "Journey book." A
flash of realization ignited. "Kahlan, the journey books are how the
Sisters communicate when one goes on a long journey away from the others."
"Yes,
I know."
"The
journey books were made for them by the wizards of old-back in the time of the
great war."
Her
face twisted with a puzzled frown. "And?"
Richard
made himself blink. "The books are paired. You can only communicate with
the twin of the one you have."
"Richard
I don't see-"
"What
if the wizards used to do the same thing? The Wizard's Keep in Aydindril was
always sending wizards off on missions. What if that's how they knew what was
going on everywhere? How they coordinated everything? What if they used them
just like the Sisters of the Light used them? After all, wizards of that time
created the spell around the Palace of the Prophets and created the journey
books for the Sisters to use."
She was
frowning. "I'm still not sure I understand-"
Richard
gripped her shoulders. "What if the book that was destroyed, Mountain's
Twin, is a journey book? The twin to Joseph Ander's journey book?"
365
CHAPTERS
3
KAHLAN
WAS SPEECHLESS.
Richard
squeezed her shoulders. "What if the other, Joseph Ander's half of that
pair, still exists?"
She wet
her lips. "It's possible they might keep something like that in
Anderith."
"They
must. They revere him-after all, they named their land in his honor. It seems
only logical that if it still existed they would keep such a book."
"It's
possible. But that isn't always the way, Richard."
"What
do you mean?"
"Sometimes
a person isn't appreciated in his own time. Sometimes they aren't recognized as
important until much later, and sometimes then only to promote the contemporary
causes of those currently in power. Evidence of a person's true thoughts can be
an inconvenience in such cases, and sometimes is destroyed.
"Even
if that isn't the case, and they did respect his thinking, the land changed its
name to Anderith since Zedd left the Midlands. Sometimes people are revered
because not enough remains of their philosophy for people to find
objectionable, and so the person can become valuable as a symbol. Most likely
nothing of Joseph Ander's remains."
366
Taken
aback by the logic of her words, Richard rubbed his chin as he considered.
"The
other unknown," he finally said, "is that words written in journey
books can be wiped away, to make room for new communications. Even if
everything I'm thinking is true, and he wrote back to the Keep with the
solution to the chimes, the book still exists, and it's actually in Anderith,
it still might do us no good, because that passage could easily have been wiped
clean to make room for a future message.
"But,"
he added, "it's the only solid possibility we have."
"No,
it isn't," Kahlan insisted. "Another choice and the one with more
weight of credibility on its side, is what we must do back at the Wizard's
Keep."
Richard
felt himself drawn inexorably toward Joseph Ander's legacy. If he had any proof
that his attraction to it wasn't simply his imagination, he would have been
convinced.
"Kahlan,
I know ..."
His
voice trailed off. The hairs at the back of his neck began rising, prickling
his neck like needles of ice. His golden cloak lifted lethargically in the lazy
breeze. The slow wave billowing through it cracked like a whip when it reached
the corner. The skin on his arms danced with gooseflesh.
Richard
felt the gossamer fingers of wickedness slipping up his spine.
"What's
the matter?" Kahlan asked, consternation chilling her expression.
Without
answering, gripped by dread, he turned and scanned the grassland. Emptiness
stared back. Verdant waves rippled before him, painted with bold strokes of
sunlight. In the distance knots of dark clouds at the horizon boiled from
within with flickering light. Even though he couldn't hear the thunder, every
now and again he could feel the drumbeat underfoot.
"Where's
Du Chaillu?"
367
Cara,
standing a few paces away as she kept an eye on the idle men, pointed. "I
saw her off that way a few minutes ago."
Richard
searched but didn't see her. "Doing what?"
"She
was crying. Then I think she looked like she might have been going to sit down
for a rest, or maybe to pray."
That
was what Richard had seen, too.
He
called out Du Chaillu's name over the grasslands. In the distance, a
meadowlark's crystalline song warbled across the vast silence of the plains. He
cupped his hands beside his mouth and called again. The blade masters, when
there was no answer the second time, sprang to action, fanning out into, the
grass to search.
Richard
trotted off in the direction Cara had pointed, the direction he, too,
remembered last seeing her. Kahlan and Cara were right on his heels as he
picked up speed, cutting through the tall grass and splashing through puddles.
The blade masters and hunters searched as they ran, and with no reply as all
called Du Chaillu's name, their search became
frantic.
The
grass, a singular, undulating, sentient thing alive with mocking contempt,
teased them with bowing nods to draw the eye first here, and then there,
hinting but never divulging where it hid her.
Out of
the side of his vision, Richard caught sight of a dark shape, distinct from the
mellow green of new grass rising and falling above the washed-out tan of the
lifeless stalks beneath the waves. He cut to the right, muddling lead-enly
through a spongy area where the mat of grass, as if it floated on a sea of mud,
kept giving way beneath his feet.
The
ground firmed. He spotted the out-of-place dark shape and altered his course
slightly as he splashed through an expanse of standing water.
Richard
came suddenly upon her. Du Chaillu reposed in the grass, looking like she might
be sleeping, her dress smoothed down to the backs of her knees, her legs below
it a pasty white.
She was
facedown in water only inches deep.
368
Racing
through the wet grass, Richard dove over her to avoid falling on her. He
snatched the shoulders of her dress and yanked her back, rolling her onto her
back on the grass beside him. The front of her sodden dress plastered itself
across her pronounced pregnancy. Strings of wet hair lay across her bloodless
face.
Du
Chaillu stared up with dark dead eyes.
She had
that same odd, lingering look of lust in her eyes Juni had had when Richard
found him drowned in the shallow stream.
Richard
shook her limp body. "No! Du Chaillu! No! I saw you alive only a minute
ago! You can't be dead! Du Chaillu!"
Her
mouth slack, her arms splayed clumsily, she exhibited no response. There was no
response to show. She was gone.
When
Kahlan put a comforting hand on his shoulder, he fell back with an angry cry of
anguish.
"She
was just alive," Cara said. "I just saw her alive only moments
ago."
Richard
buried his face in his hands. "I know. Dear spirits, I know. If only I'd
realized what was happening."
Cara
pulled his hands away from his face. "Lord Rahl, her spirit might still be
with her body." ,
Blade
masters and Mud People hunters were tumbling to their knees all around.
Richard
shook his head. "I'm sorry, Cara, but she's gone." Stark, taunting memories
of her alive cavorted unbidden through his mind.
"Lord
Rahl-"
"She's
not breathing, Cara." He reached to close her eyes. "She's
dead."
Cara
gave his wrist a fierce tug. "Did Denna not teach you? A Mord-Sith would
teach her captive to share the breath of life!"
Richard
grimaced away from Cara's blue eyes. It was a gruesome rite, the sharing of
pain in that way..The memory flooded through him with horror to match that of
Du Chaillu's death.
369
A
Mord-Sith shared her victim's breath while he was on the cusp of death. It was
a sacred thing to a Mord-Sith to share his pain, share his breath of life as he
slipped to the brink of death, as if to view with lust the forbidden sight of
what lies beyond in the next world. Sharing, when the time came to kill him,
his very death by experiencing his final breath of life.
Before
Richard killed his mistress in order to escape, she had asked him to share her
last breath of life.
Richard
had honored her last wish, and had taken into himself Denna's last breath as
she died.
"Cara,
I don't know what that has to do with-"
"Give
it back to her!"
Richard
could only stare. "What?"
Cara
growled and stiff-armed him out of her way. She dropped down beside the body
and put her mouth over Du Chaillu's. Richard was horrified by what Cara was
doing. He thought he had managed to give the Mord-Sith more respect for life
than this.
The
sight staggered him with the obscene memory, seeing it new again before his
eyes, seeing her crave that corrupt intimacy again. It stunned him to see Cara
covet something so ghastly from her past. It angered him she had not risen
above her brutal training and way of life, as he had hoped for her.
Pinching
Du Chaillu's nose, Cara blew a breath into the dead woman. Richard reached for
Cara's broad shoulders to rip her away from Du Chaillu. It enraged him to see
it, to see a Mord-Sith do such a thing to the freshly dead.
He
paused, his hands floating there above her.
Something
in Cara's urgency, in her demeanor, told him all was not what it had at first
seemed. With one hand under Du Chaillu's neck and the other holding her nose
closed, Cara blew another breath. Du Chaillu's chest rose with it, and then
slowly sank again as Cara took another for herself.
A blade
master, his face red with rage, reached for Cara, since Richard seemed to have
changed his mind. Richard caught the man's wrist. He met Jiaan's questioning
eyes and
370
simply
shook his head. Reluctantly, Jiaan withdrew.
"Richard,"
Kahlan whispered, "what in the world is she doing? Why would she do such a
grotesque thing? Is it some kind of D'Haran ritual for the dead?"
Cara
took a deep breath and blew it into Du Chaillu.
"I
don't know," Richard whispered back. "But it's not what I thought."
Kahlan
looked even more bewildered. "And what could you have possibly
thought?"
Unwilling
to put such a thing into words, he could only stare into her green eyes. He
could hear Cara blow another deep breath into Du Chaillu's lifeless corpse.
He
turned away, unable to watch. He couldn't understand what good Cara thought she
was doing, but he couldn't sit there while others watched.
He
tried to convince himself that, as Kahlan had suggested, perhaps it was some
D'Haran ritual to the departing spirit. Richard staggered to his feet. Kahlan
caught his hand. He heard a wet sputtering cough.
Richard
swung back around and saw Cara hauling Du Chaillu over onto her side. Du
Chaillu gasped with a choking breath. Cara slapped the woman's back as if she
were burping a baby, but with more force.
Du
Chaillu coughed and gasped and panted. Then she threw up. Richard fell to his
knees and held her thick mass of dark hair out of her way as she vomited.
"Cara,
what did you do?" Richard was dumbfounded to see a dead woman come back to
life. "How did you do that?"
Cara
thumped Du Chaillu's back, making her cough out more water. "Did Denna not
teach you to share the breath of life?" She sounded annoyed.
"Yes,
but, but it wasn't..."
Du
Chaillu clutched at Richard's arm as she panted and spat up more water. Richard
stroked her hair and back in a comforting manner to let her know they were
there with her. The squeeze on his arm told him she knew.
"Cara,"
Kahlan asked, "what have you done? How did
371
you
bring her back from death? Was it magic?"
"Magic!"
Cara scoffed. "No, not magic. Not anything near magic. Her spirit had not
yet left her body, that's all. Sometimes, if their spirit has not had time to
leave their body, you still have time. But it must be done immediately. If so,
you can sometimes give them back the breath of life."
The men
gestured wildly as they all jibber-jabbered excitedly to one another. They had
just witnessed a marvel that was sure to be the birth of a legend. Their spirit
woman had traveled to the world of the dead-and returned.
Richard
stared slack-jawed at Cara. "You can? You can give dead people back the
breath of life?"
Kahlan
whispered encouragement as she picked wet strands of hair from Du Chaillu's
face. She had to stop and hold back the hair when the woman's coughing was
interrupted by another bout of heaving. As grim and sick as Du Chaillu looked,
she was breathing better.
Kahlan
took a blanket the men handed down and wrapped it around Du Chaillu's shivering
shoulders. Cara leaned close to Richard, so no one else would hear.
"How
'do you think Denna kept you from death for so long when she tortured you?
There was no one better at it than Denna. I am Mord-Sith, I know what would
have been done to you, and I knew Denna. There would have been times she had to
do this to keep you from dying when she was not yet finished with you. But it
would have been blood, not water."
Richard
remembered that, too-coughing up frothy blood as if he were drowning in it.
Denna was Darken Rahl's favorite, because she was the best; it was said she
could keep her captive alive and on the cusp of death longer than any other
Mord-Sith. This was part of how she did that.
"But
I never thought..."
Cara
frowned. "You never thought what?"
Richard
shook his head. "I never thought such a thing was possible. Not after the
person had died." After she had just done something noble, he didn't have
the heart to tell
372
Cara he
had thought she was sating some grisly appetite from her past. "You did a
miraculous thing, Cara. I'm proud of you."
Cara
scowled. "Lord Rahl, stop looking at me like I am a great spirit come to
our world. I am Mord-Sith. Any Mord-Sith could have done this. We all know
how."
She
snatched his shirt collar and pulled him closer. "You know of it, too.
Denna taught you, I know she did. You could have done this as easily as
I."
"I
don't know, Cara, I've only taken the breath of life. I've never given
it."
She
released his collar. "It is the same thing, just in the other
direction."
Du
Chaillu sprawled herself across Richard's lap. He smoothed her hair with gentle
empathy. She clutched at his belt, his shirt, his waist, holding on for dear
life, as he tried to keep her calm.
"My
husband," she managed between gasping and coughing, "you saved me ...
from the kiss of death."
Kahlan
was holding one of Du Chaillu's hands. Richard took the other and placed it on
a leg sheathed in leather.
"Cara
is the one who saved you, Du Chaillu. Cara gave you back the breath of
life."
Du
Chaillu's fingers kneaded at Cara's leather-clad leg, groping their way up
until she found Cara's hand.
"And
the Caharin's baby.... You saved us both.... Thank you, Cara." She gasped
another rattling breath. "Richard's child will live because of you. Thank
you."
Richard
didn't think it the proper time to point out paternity.
"It
was nothing. Lord Rahl would have done it, but I was closer and beat him to
it."
Cara
briefly squeezed the hand before standing to make way for some of the grateful
blade masters to get close to their spirit woman.
"Thank
you, Cara," Du Chaillu repeated.
373
Cara's
mouth twisted with the distaste of people appreciating her for having done
something compassionate. "We are all glad your spirit had not yet left
you, so you could stay, Du Chaillu. Lord Rahl's baby, too."
CHAPTER
34
NOT FAR
OFF, Du Chaillu was being tended to by the blade masters and most of the
hunters. The Baka Tau Mana spirit woman had returned from the spirit world, or
near to it, and Richard could see she had left behind her warmth. The blankets
were insufficient, so Richard had told the men they could make a fire to help
warm her if they all stayed together to reduce the chances of any surprises.
Two of
the Mud People cleared grass and dug a shallow pit while the other hunters made
tightly wound grass billets. Twisting wrung out most of the moisture. They
coated four of the grass bundles in a resinous pitch they carried with them and
then stacked them in a pyramid. With those burning, they windrowed the rest of
the grass billets around the little fire to dry them out. In short order they
had dry grass for firewood and a good fire going.
Du
Chaillu looked like death warmed up a bit. She was still very sick. At least
she was alive. Her breathing was better, if interrupted by coughing. The blade
masters were seeing to it that she drank hot tea while the hunters-turned-
374
mother-hens
cooked her up some tava porridge. It appeared she would recover and remain in
the world of life for the time being.
Richard
found it miraculous to think a person could come alive again after dying. Had
someone told him such a thing, instead of him seeing it himself, he doubted he
would have believed them. In more ways than one, his beliefs had been skewed
and his thinking altered.
Richard
no longer had any doubt as to what they must do.
Cara,
arms folded, watched the men as they took care of Du Chaillu. Kahlan, too, was
watching with fascination equal to any of the rest of them-except Cara; she
didn't think it was at all out of the ordinary for a dead person to breathe
again. What was ordinary for a Mord-Sith seemed very different from what others
thought ordinary.
Richard
gently took ahold of Kahlan's arm and pulled her closer. "Before, you said
no one had gotten past the Dominie Dirtch in centuries. Did someone once get
past them?"
Kahlan
turned her attention to him. "It's unclear and a matter of dispute,
outside of Anderith, anyway."
Ever
since it had first been mentioned by Du Chaillu, Richard had gotten the feeling
Anderith wasn't Kahlan's favorite place.
"How
so?"
"It's
a story requiring some explanation."
Richard
pulled three pieces of tava bread from his pack and handed one each to Cara and
Kahlan. He settled his gaze on Kahlan's face.
"I'm
listening."
Kahlan
twisted a small chunk off her tava bread, apparently pondering how to begin.
"The
land now known as Anderith was once invaded by people known as the Hakens. The
people of Anderith teach that the Hakens used the Dominie Dirtch against the
people who were then living there, those people now called the Anders.
"When
I was young and studied at the Keep, the wizards
375
taught
me differently. Either way, it was many centuries ago; history has a way of
getting muddled by those controlling the teaching of it. For example, I would
venture the Imperial Order will teach a very different account of Renwold than
we would teach."
"I'd
like to hear about Anderith history," he said as she ate the chunk of tava
bread she had torn off. "About the history as the wizards taught
you."
Kahlan
swallowed before she began. "Well, centuries ago-maybe as long as two to
three thousand years ago- the Haken people came out of the wilds and invaded
Anderith. It's thought they were a remote people whose land possibly became
unsuitable for some reason. Such a thing has happened in other places, for
example when a river's course is changed by an earthquake or flood. Sometimes a
formerly productive area will become too dry to support farming or animals.
Sometimes crops fail and people will migrate.
"Anyway,
according to what I was taught, the Hakens somehow made it past the Dominie
Dirtch. How, no one knows. Many of them were slaughtered, but they somehow
finally made it past and conquered the land now known as Anderith.
"The
Anders were a mostly nomadic people, composed of tribes who fought fiercely
among themselves. They were uneducated in things like written language,
metalworking, construction, and such, and they had little social organization.
In short, compared to the Haken invaders they were a backward people. It wasn't
that they weren't smart, just that the Hakens were a people possessed of
advanced learning and methods.
"Haken
weapons were also superior. They had cavalry for example, and they had a better
grasp of coordination and tactics on a large scale. They had a clear command
structure whereas the Anders bickered endlessly over who would direct their
forces. That was one reason the Hakens, once past the Dominie Dirtch, were
easily able to bring the Anders to heel."
376
Richard
handed Kahlan a waterskin. "The Hakens were a people of war and conquest,
I take it. They lived by conquest?"
Kahlan
wiped water that was dribbling down her chin. "No, they weren't the type
to conquer simply for booty and slaves. They didn't make war for mere
predation.
"They
brought with them their knowledge of everything from making leather shoes to
working iron. They were a literate people. They had an understanding of higher
mathematics and how to apply it to endeavors such as architecture.
"Their
core skill was farming on a large scale, with plows pulled by oxen and horses,
rather than hand-hoed gardens like the Anders kept to supplement their hunting
and gathering of things growing wild. The Hakens created irrigation systems and
introduced rice in addition to other crops. They knew how to develop and select
better strains of crops, such as wheat, to give them the best use of land and
weather. They were experts at horse breeding. They knew how to breed better
livestock and raised vast herds."
Kahlan
handed back the waterskin and ate a bite of tava bread. She gestured with the
half-eaten tava.
"As
is the way of conquest, the Hakens ruled as victors often do. Haken ways
supplanted Ander ways. Peace came to the land, albeit peace enforced by Haken
overlords. They were harsh, but not brutal; rather than slaughtering the Anders
as was the custom of many conquering invaders, they enfolded the Anders into
Haken society, even if it was at first as cheap labor."
Richard
spoke with his mouth full. "The Anders, too, benefited from the Haken
ways, then?"
"Yes.
Under direction of the Haken overlords, food was plentiful. Both the Haken and
the Ander people prospered. The Anders had been a sparse population always on
the brink of vanishing. With abundant food the population multiplied."
When Du
Chaillu fell to a coughing fit, they turned to her. Richard squatted and dug
through his pack until he
377
found a
cloth packet Nissel had given them. Unrolling it, he found inside some of the
leaves Nissel had once given him to calm pain. Kahlan pointed out the ground
herbs supposed to settle the stomach. He tied some into a cloth and handed the
bag of ground herbs to Cara.
"Tell
the men to put this in the tea and let it steep for a bit. It will help her
stomach. Tell Chandalen that Nissel gave it to us-he can explain it to Du
Chaillu's men, so they won't worry."
Cara
nodded. He put the leaves in her palm. "Tell her that after she drinks the
tea, she should chew one of these leaves. It will calm her pain. Later, if she
is sick at her stomach again, or in pain, she can chew another."
Cara
hurried to the task.
Cara
would likely not admit it, but Richard knew she would appreciate the
satisfaction of giving assistance to someone in need. He couldn't imagine how
much greater the satisfaction would be to bring a person back to life.
"So,
what happened then, with the Hakens and the Anders? Everything went well? The
Anders learned from the Hakens?" He picked up his tava bread for a bite.
"Brotherhood and peace?"
"For
the most part. The Hakens brought with them orderly rule, where before the
Anders squabbled among themselves, often leading to bloody conflicts. The
invading Hakens had actually killed fewer Anders than the Anders themselves
regularly killed in their own territorial wars. At least, so said the wizards
who taught me.
'Though
I'm not saying it was by any means entirely fair or equitable, the Hakens did
have a system of justice; it was more than the simple mob rule of the Anders,
or the right of the strongest. Once they had conquered the Anders and shown
them their ways, they taught the Anders to read."
"The
Anders, who had been a backward people, may have been ignorant, but they are a
very clever people. They may not devise things on their own, but they are quick
to grasp a better way and make it their own on a whole new scale. In that way,
they are brilliant."
378
Richard
waved his rolled up tava bread. "So, why isn't it called Hakenland, or
something? I mean, you said the vast majority of people in Anderith are
Haken."
"That's
later. I'm coming to it." Kahlan pulled off another chunk of tava. 'The
way the wizards explained it to me was that the Hakens had a system of justice,
which, once they settled in Anderith, and with the spreading prosperity, only
became better."
"Justice,
from the invaders?"
"Civilization
does not unfold fully developed, Richard. It's a building process. Part of that
process is the mixing of peoples, and that mixing is often via conquest, but it
can often bring new and better ways. You can't impulsively judge situations by
such simple criteria as invasion and conquest."
"But
if one people comes in and forces another people-"
"Look
at D'Hara. Because of conquest-by you-it is coming to be a place of justice,
where torture and murder are no longer the way of rule."
Richard
wasn't about to argue that point. "I suppose. But it just seems such a
shame for a culture to be destroyed by another that invades them. It isn't
fair."
She
gave him one of her looks akin to looks Zedd sometimes gave him: a look that
said she hoped he would see truth rather than repeat by rote a popular but
misguided notion. For that reason, he listened carefully as she spoke.
"Culture
carries no privilege to exist. Cultures do not have value simply because they
are. Some cultures, the world is better off without." She lifted an
eyebrow. "I submit, for your consideration, the Imperial Order."
Richard
let out a long breath. "I see what you mean."
He took
a swig of water as she ate some more tava. It still seemed somehow wrong to him
for a culture, with its own history and traditions, to be wiped out, but he understood,
to an extent, what she was saying.
"So
the Ander way of life ceased to be. You were saying, about the Haken system of
justice?"
"Despite
what we may now think of how they came to
379
be
there, the Hakens were a people who valued fairness. In fact, they considered
it essential to an orderly and prosperous society.
"Thus,
over time, subsequent generations of Hakens gave increasing freedoms to the
Anders they had conquered, -eventually coming to view them as equals. Those
subsequent generations came to share sensibilities similar to ours, and also
came to feel shame at what their ancestors had done to the Ander people."
Kahlan
gazed out over the plains. "Of course, it's easier to feel shame if those
guilty are centuries dead, especially when such discrediting, by default,
confers upon yourself a higher moral standard without having to stand the test
in the true environment of the time.
"Anyway,
their adherence to their notion of justice turned out to be the beginning of
the downfall of the Haken people. The Anders, because of their conquest, always
hated the Hakens and never ceased to harbor a hunger for revenge,"
One of
the hunters, who had been cooking up porridge, brought over a warm piece of
tava bread cupped in each hand and heaped with thick steaming porridge. Kahlan
and Richard each gratefully took the hot food and she thanked him in his
language.
"So
how could a Haken system of justice," Richard said, after they each had
eaten some of the porridge laced with sweet dried berries, "result in the
Hakens now being virtual slaves because of the Anders' sense of justice? That
just doesn't seem possible."
He saw
that Du Chaillu, wrapped in blankets beside the fire, wasn't interested in
porridge. Cara had steeped the tea with the bag of herbs, and was hunkered
beside Du Chaillu, seeing to it that she at least sipped some from a small
wooden cup.
"A
system of justice was not the cause of the Haken downfall, Richard, merely a
step along the way-one of the bare bones of history. I'm only telling you the
salient points. The results. Such shifts in culture and society take place over
time.
380
"Because
of fair laws, the Anders were able to make advances that in the end resulted in
them being able to seize power. Anders are no different than anyone else in
their hunger for power."
"The
Hakens were a ruling people. How did it get from there to the other way
round?" Richard shook his head. He had a hard time believing it was as the
wizards portrayed it.
"There
is more in the middle." Kahlan licked porridge off a finger. "Once
the Anders had access to fair laws, it became for them the sharp end of a
wedge.
"Once
folded into the society, Anders used their freedom to gain status. At first, it
was participation in business, the labor trades which became guilds, and
membership on small local councils, things like that. One step at a time.
"Make
no mistake, the Anders worked hard, too. Because the laws became fair to all,
they were able to gain through their own hard work the same sorts of things the
Hakens had. They became successful and respected.
"Most
importantly, though, they became the moneylenders.
"You
see, the Anders, it turned out, had a talent for business. Over time they
became the merchant class instead of simply the working class. Being the
merchants enabled families, over time, to acquire fortunes.
"They
eventually became moneylenders, and thus a financial power. A few large and
extensive Ander families controlled much of the finances and were to a large
extent the unseen power behind Haken rule. Hakens grew complacent, while the
Anders remained focused.
"Anders
also became teachers. Almost from the beginning, the Hakens considered teaching
a simple role the Ander people should be allowed to fill, freeing Hakens for
more adult matters of rule. The Anders took on all aspects of teaching-not just
the teaching itself-incrementally gaining control of the instruction of fit
teachers, and therefore of the curriculum."
381
Richard
swallowed a mouthful of porridge. "I take it that was, for the Hakens,
somehow a mistake?"
With
her half-eaten tava-bread plate of porridge, Kahlan gestured for emphasis.
"Besides reading and math, the children were taught history and culture,
ostensibly so they would grow up to understand their place in their land's
culture and society.
"The
Hakens wanted all children to learn a better way than war and conquest. They
believed the Ander teachings of brutal Haken conquest at the expense of noble
Ander people would help their children to grow up to be civilized, with respect
for others. Instead, the guilt it put on young minds contributed to the erosion
of the cohesive nature of Haken society, and of respect for the authority of
Haken rule.
"And
then came a cataclysmic event-a ruinous decade-long drought. It was during this
drought that the Anders finally made their move to oust Haken rule.
"The
entire economy was based on the production of crops-wheat, mostly. Farms
failed, and farmers were unable to deliver export crops for which the merchants
had already paid them. Debts were called due as everyone tried to survive the
hard times. Many without great financial resources lost their farms.
"There
might have been government controls placed on the economic system, to slow the
panic, but the ruling Hakens feared to displease the moneylenders who backed
them.
"And
then worse problems erupted.
"People
began dying. There were food riots. Fairfield was burned to the ground. Haken
and Ander alike rose up in violent lawless rioting. The land was in chaos. Many
people left for other lands, hoping to find a new life before they starved.
"The
Anders, though, used their money to buy food from abroad. Only the financial
resources of the wealthy Anders could purchase food from afar, and it was that
food supply that was the only hope of survival for most people. The
382
Anders,
with this supply of food from abroad, were seen as the hand of salvation.
"The
Anders bought out failed businesses and farms from people desperate for money.
The Anders' money, meager as it was, and their food supply, was the only thing
keeping most families from starving.
"It
was then the Anders began to extract the true price, and their vengeance.
"The
government, run by the Hakens, was blamed by the mobs in the streets for the
starvation. Anders, with their merchant connections, fomented and spread the
insurrection from place to place. Anarchy befell the land as the Haken rulers
were put to death in the streets, their bodies dragged before cheering crowds.
"Haken
intellectuals drew the blood lust of frightened people for somehow being
responsible for the starvation. Well-educated Hakens were viewed as enemies of
the people, even by the majority of Hakens who were farmers and laborers. The
purge of the learned Hakens was bloody. In the rioting and lawlessness, the
entire Haken ruling class was systematically murdered. Every Haken of
accomplishment was suspect, and so put to death.
"The
Anders swiftly ruined, by either financial means or violent mobs, any Haken
business or concern left.
"In
the vacuum, the Anders seized power and brought order with food for starving
people, Ander and Haken alike. When the dust settled, the Anders were in
control of the land, and with strong forces of mercenaries they could afford to
hire, soon held the land in an iron grip."
Richard
had stopped eating. He could hardly believe what he was hearing. He stared
transfixed as Kahlan swept her hand expansively in telling of the downfall of
reason.
"Anders
changed the order of everything, making black white and white black. They
declared no Haken could fairly judge an Ander, because of the ancient Haken
tradition of injustice to Anders. Conversely, Anders asserted, because they had
for so long been subjugated by their wicked Haken
383
overlords,
that they understood the nature of inequity, and so would be the only ones
qualified to rule in matters of justice.
"Woeful
tales of Haken cruelty were the currency of social acceptance. Frightened
Hakens, in an attempt to prove the horrific charges untrue, and avoid being
singled out by the well-armed troops, willingly submitted to Ander authority
and those merciless mercenaries.
"The
Anders, so long out of power, were ruthless in pressing their advantage.
"Haken
people were forbidden to hold positions of power. Eventually, supposedly
because the Haken overlords required Anders to address those overlords by
surname, even the right to have a surname was denied the Hakens, unless they
somehow proved themselves worthy and received special permission."
"But
haven't they intermixed?" Richard asked. "After all that time, didn't
the Haken and Ander people intermarry? Didn't they all blend together into one
people?"
Kahlan
shook her head. "From the beginning, the Anders, a tall dark-haired
people, thought wedding the redheaded Hakens was a crime against the Creator.
They believe the Creator, in His wisdom, made people distinct and different.
They didn't believe people should interbreed like livestock being bred for a
new quality-which was what the Hakens had done. I'm not saying it didn't
occasionally happen, but to this day such a thing is rare."
Richard
rolled up his last bite of tava with porridge. "So, what's it like there,
now?" He popped the bite in his mouth.
"Since
only the downtrodden-the Anders-can be virtuous, because they were oppressed,
only they are allowed to rule. They teach that Haken oppression continues to
this day. Even a look from a Haken can be interpreted as a projection of hate.
Conversely, Hakens cannot be downtrodden, and thus virtuous, since by nature
they are corrupt.
"It's
now against the law for Hakens to learn to read, out of fear they would again
seize rule and go on to brutalize and butcher the Ander people, as surely as
night always
384
extinguishes
day, to put their words to it. Hakens are required to attend classes called
penance assembly to keep them in line. It's all systematized and codified the
way Anders now rule Hakens.
"Keep
in mind, Richard, the history I told you is what was taught me by the wizards.
What the Anders teach is quite different. They teach that they were an
oppressed people who by their own higher nature have, after centuries of
domination, once again exerted their cultural superiority. For all I know,
their version could even be true."
Richard
was standing, hands on hips, staring incredulously. "And the council in
Aydindril allowed this? They allowed the Anders to enslave the Haken people in
such a fashion?"
"The
Hakens meekly submit. They believe as they were taught by Ander teachers-that
this is a better way."
"But
how could the Central Council allow such a perversion of justice?"
"You
forget, Richard, the Midlands was an alliance of sovereign lands. The
Confessors helped see to it that rule in the Midlands was, to a certain extent,
fair. We did not tolerate murder of political opponents, things like that, but
if a people like the Hakens willingly went along with the way their land
worked, the council had little say. Brutal rule was opposed. Bizarre rule was
not."
Richard
threw up his hands. "But the Hakens only go along because they are taught
this nonsense. They don't know how ridiculous it is. It is the equivalent of
the abuse of an ignorant people."
"Abuse
maybe to you, Richard. They see it differently. They see it as a way to peace
in their land. That is their right."
"The
fact they were deliberately taught in a way to make them ignorant is proof of
the abuse."
She
tilted her head toward him. "Aren't you the one who just told me the
Hakens had no right to destroy the Ander culture? Now you argue the council
should have done no less?"
385
Richard's
face reflected frustration. "You were talking about the council of the
Midlands?"
Kahlan
took another drink and then handed him the waterskin.
"This
all happened centuries ago. No one land was strong enough to enforce law on the
rest of the Midlands. Together, through the council, we simply try to work,
together. The Confessors interceded when rulers stepped outside the bounds.
"Had
we tried to dictate how each sovereign land was to be ruled, the alliance would
have fallen apart and war would have replaced reason and cooperation. I'm not
saying it was perfect, Richard, but it allowed most people to live in
peace."
He
sighed. "I suppose. I'm no expert on governing. I guess it served the
people of the Midlands for thousands of years."
Kahlan
picked at her tava bread. "Things like what happened in Anderith are one
reason I came to understand and believe in what you are trying to accomplish,
Richard, Until you came along, with D'Hara behind your word, no one land was
strong enough to set down just law for all peoples. Against a foe like Jagang,
the alliance of the Midlands had no chance."
Richard
couldn't really imagine how it must have been for her, as Mother Confessor, to
see what she had worked for her entire life fall apart. Richard's father,
Darken Rahl, had set in motion events that had altered the world. Kahlan, at
least, had seen the opportunity in the chaos.
Richard
rubbed his brow as he considered what to do next.
"All
right, so I now understand a bit about the history of Anderith. I'm sure that
if I knew the history of D'Hara I'd find that far more sordid, and yet they now
follow me and struggle for justice-strange as I realize that sounds. The
spirits know some people have hung the crimes of D'Hara's past around my Rahl
neck.
"From
what you've told me of Anderith history, they
386
sound
like a people who would never submit to the rule of the Imperial Order. Do you
think we can get Anderith to join with us?"
Kahlan
took a deep breath as she considered it. He had been hoping she would say yes
without having to think about it.
"They
are ruled by a sovereign, who is also their religious leader. That element of
their society hearkens back to the religious beliefs of the Anders. The
Directors of the Office of Cultural Amity hold sway over who will be named
Sovereign for life. The Directors are supposed to be a moral check on the man
appointed Sovereign-in a way like the First Wizard selecting the right person
to be Seeker.
"The
Anderith people believe that once anointed by the Directors, the man named
Sovereign transcends mere matters of the flesh, and is in touch with the Creator
Himself. Some fervently believe he speaks in this world for the Creator. Some
view him with the reverence they would reserve for the Creator Himself."
"So,
he's the one who will need to be convinced to join us?"
"In
part, but the Sovereign doesn't really rule in the day-to-day sense. He's more
a figurehead, loved by the people for what he represents. Nowadays Anders make
up less than maybe fifteen or twenty percent of the population, but the Hakens
feel much the same about their Sovereign.
"He
has the power to order the rest of the government to a course, but more often
he simply approves the one they select. For the large part, the ruling of
Anderith is done by the Minister of Culture. The Minister sets the agenda for
the land. That would be a man named Bertrand Chanboor.
"The
Minister of Culture's office just outside Fairfield is the governing body that
ultimately would make the decision. The representatives I met with in Aydindril
will report our words to Minister Chanboor.
"No
matter the dim history, the present-day fact is that Anderith is a power to be
reckoned with. If the ancient Anders were a primitive people, they are no
longer so. They
387
are
wealthy merchants who control vast trade and wealth. They govern with equal
skill; they have a secure grip on their power and their land."
Richard
scanned the empty grasslands. Ever since the chime had come to kill Du Chaillu,
and he had felt the hairs at the back of his neck stand on end, he kept
checking for the feeling, hoping that, if it came again, he would be aware of
the sensation sooner and be able to warn everyone in time.
He
glanced over to see Cara feeding Du Chaillu porridge. She needed to be back
with her people, not carrying her unborn child all over the countryside.
"The
Anders are not fat, soft, lazy merchants, either," Kahlan went on.
"Except for the army, where a semblance of equality exists, only Anders
are allowed to carry weapons, and they tend to be good with them. The Anders,
despite what you may think of them, are no fools and neither are they to be
easily won over."
Richard
again gazed out over the grasslands as he made plans in his head.
"In
Ebinissia, in Renwold," he said, "Jagang has shown what he does to
people who refuse to join him. If Anderith doesn't join us, they will again
fall to a foreign invasion. This time, though, the invaders will have no sense
of justice."
388
CHAPTER
35
RICHARD,
CONSIDERING EVERYTHING KAHLAN had told him, and what the chimes had, in their
own brutal way, told him, stood staring off toward Aydindril. Learning some of
the history of Anderith only made him feel more sure of his decision.
"I
knew we had to be going the wrong way," he said at last.
Kahlan
frowned out over the empty plains to the northeast, where he was looking.
"What do you mean?"
"Zedd
used to tell me that if the road is easy, you're likely going the wrong
way."
"Richard,
we've been all through that," Kahlan said with weary insistence as she
pushed her cloak back over her shoulder. "We need to get to Aydindril.
Now, more than ever, you must see that."
"The
Mother Confessor is right," Cara said, returning from Du Chaillu, now that
the woman was resting. Richard noticed that Cara's knuckles were white around
her Agiel. "These chimes must be banished. We must help Zedd set magic
right again."
"Oh,
really? You don't know, Cara, how pleased I am to hear that you are now such a
devotee of magic." Richard
389
looked
around, checking for their gear. "I have to go to Anderith."
"Richard,
we very well could be leaving inactive in Aydindril a spell that would be the
solution to the chimes."
"I'm
the Seeker, remember?" Richard was thankful for Kahlan's counsel, and he
highly valued it, but now that he had heard what she had to say, analyzed the
options, and made his decision, his patience was at an end. It was time to act.
"Let me do my job."
"Richard,
this is-"
"You
once swore an oath before Zedd-pledged your life in the defense of the Seeker.
You thought it that important. I'm not asking for your life, only your
understanding that I'm doing as I must."
Kahlan
took a breath, trying to be tolerant and calm with him when he was hardly
hearing her. "Zedd urged us to do this for him so he would be able to
counter the ebbing of magic." She tugged his sleeve to get his attention.
"We can't all go rushing off to Anderith."
"You're
right."
Kahlan
frowned suspiciously. "Good."
"We're
not all going to Anderith." Richard found their blanket and snatched it
up. "As you said, Aydindril is important, too."
Kahlan
seized the front of his shirt and hauled him around to face her.
"Oh
no you don't." She shook her finger in his face. "Oh no you don't,
Richard.
"We're
married. We've been through too much. We're not going to separate now. Not now.
And certainly not just because I'm angry with you for forgetting to tell Zedd
about your first wife. I'll not have it, Richard, do you hear me?"
"Kahlan,
this has nothing to do-"
Her
green eyes afire, she shook him by his shirt. "I'll not have it! Not after
all it took for us to be together."
Richard
glanced at Cara, not far away. "Only one of us needs to go to
Aydindril." He took her hand from his shirt,
390
giving
it a little squeeze of reassurance before she could say anything more.
"You
and I are going to Anderith."
Kahlan's
brow twitched. "But if we both ..." She suddenly looked over at Cara.
Alarm
shifted to the Mord-Sith. "Why are you both looking at me like that?"
Richard
put an arm around Cara's shoulders. She didn't seem to like it one bit, so he
took the arm away.
"Cara,
you have to go to Aydindril."
"We
are all going to Aydindril."
"No,
Kahlan and I must go to Anderith. They have the Dominie Dirtch. They have an
army. We have to get them to join us, and then prepare them for the coming of
the Order. I need .to see if there's anything there that will help stop the
chimes. We're a lot closer to Anderith now than I would be if I had to go there
from Aydindril. I can't not look into it.
"It
could be that we can stop the chimes and Anderith will surrender and we will be
able to use the Dominie Dirtch to halt or even destroy Jagang's army. Too much
is at stake to let such opportunity slip through our fingers. It's too
important, Cara. Surely, you can see I have no choice?"
"No,
you have a choice. We can all go to Aydindril. You are Lord Rahl. I am
Mord-Sith. I must stay with you to protect you."
"Would
you rather I sent Kahlan?"
Cara
pressed her lips tight but didn't answer.
Kahlan
took him by his arm. "Richard, as you said, you are the Seeker. You need
your sword-without it you are vulnerable. It's in Aydindril. So is the bottle
with the spell, and Kolo's journal, and libraries of other books that may hold
the answer.
"We
have to go to Aydindril. Had you only told Zedd, we might not be in this
position, but now that we are, we must do as he asked."
Richard
straightened and looked her in the eye as she
391
folded
her arms. "Kahlan, I'm the Seeker. As the Seeker, I have an obligation to
do what I think is right. I admit I made a mistake before, and I'm sorry, but I
can't allow that mistake to make me flinch from my duty as I believe it to be.
"As
the Seeker, I'm going to Anderith. As Mother Confessor, you must do what your
heart and duty dictate. I understand that. I want you with me, but if you must
take another path, I will still love you the same."
He
leaned closer to her. "Choose."
Her
arms still folded, Kahlan regarded him in silence. At last, her ire melted and
she nodded. She glanced briefly at Cara.
Seeming
to think there was one person too many for the delivery of the inevitable
orders, she spoke to him in a low voice. "I'm going to see how Du Chaillu
is getting on."
When
Kahlan was out of earshot, Cara began to speak. "My duty is to guard and
protect the Lord Rahl and I will not-"
Richard
held up a hand to silence her.
"Cara,
please, listen to me a minute. We've been through a lot together, the three of
us. The three of us have been to the brink of death together. We each have the
others to thank in more ways than one for our lives today. You are more to us
than a guard and you know it.
"Kahlan
is your sister of the Agiel. You are my friend. I know I mean more to you than
simply being your Lord Rahl, or with the bond gone you wouldn't have to stay
with me. We are all bonded in friendship."
"That
is why I cannot leave you. I will not leave you, Lord Rahl. I will guard you
whether or not you allow it."
"How
does it feel to be without your Agiel?"
She
didn't answer. It looked as if she didn't trust herself to try to speak.
"Cara,
would it surprise you to learn I feel the same way about the Sword of Truth? I
have been without it longer than you have been without your Agiel. It's an
awful gnawing feeling in the pit of my stomach. A constant empty ache,
392
like I
need nothing so much as to feel that terrible thing in my hand. The same with
you?"
She
nodded.
"Cara,
I hate that sword, the same as you surely, somewhere inside, must hate your
Agiel. One time, you surrendered it to me. Remember? You and Berdine and Raina?
I asked you to forgive me that I had to ask you to keep your weapon for now to
help us in our struggle."
"I
remember."
"I
would like nothing more than not to need the sword. I would like the world to
be at peace, and I could put that weapon in the Keep and leave it there.
"But
I need it, Cara. Just as you need your Agiel, just as you feel an emptiness
without it, feel vulnerable and defenseless and afraid, and ashamed to admit
it, I feel the same. Just as you need your Agiel because you want nothing more
than to protect us, I need my sword to protect Kahlan. If anything happened to
her because I didn't have my sword...
"Cara,
I care about you, that's why it's important for you to understand. You are no
longer just Mord-Sith, just our protector. You are more than that now. It's
important for you to think, and not simply to react. You must be more than
Mord-Sith if you are to be of true help as our protector.
"I'm
depending on you to continue to be an important person in this struggle, a
person who can make a difference. Now you must go to Aydindril in my
place."
"I
won't follow those orders."
"I'm
not ordering you, Cara. I'm asking you."
"That
is not fair."
"This
isn't a game, Cara. I'm asking for your help. You are the only one I can turn
to."
She
scowled off toward the thunderstorm on the distant horizon as she pulled her
long blond braid over her shoulder. She gripped it in her fist the way she gripped
her Agiel in the heat of anger. The breeze fluttered the wisps of blond hair
along the side of her face.
"If
you wish it, Lord Rahl, I will go."
393
Richard
put a comforting hand on the back of her shoulder. This time she didn't tense,
but welcomed the hand.
"What
do you wish me to do there?"
"I
want you to get there and back as soon as possible. I need my sword."
"I
understand."
When
Kahlan glanced their way, Cara signaled for her and Kahlan returned at a trot.
Cara
stiffened her back as she addressed Kahlan. "Lord Rahl has ordered me to
return to Aydindril."
"Ordered?"
Kahlan asked.
Cara
simply smirked. She lifted the Agiel at Kahlan's chest. "For a woods
guide, he gets himself in a lot of trouble. As a sister of the Agiel, I would
ask you to watch over him in my place, but I know I do not need to say the
words."
"I
won't let him out of my sight."
"You
need to catch up with General Reibisch's army, first," Richard said.
"You can get horses from him and make better time to Aydindril.
"But
I also very much need him to know what we're doing. Tell him the whole story.
Tell Verna and the Sisters, too. They will need to know, and they may have
knowledge that would be of use."
Richard
stared off toward the southwest horizon. "I also need an escort, if we are
to march into Anderith and demand their surrender."
"Don't
worry, Lord Rahl, I intend on ordering Reibisch to send men to guard you. They
will not be as good as having a Mord-Sith near, but they will still protect
you."
"I
need enough for an impressive escort. When we march into Anderith, I think it
would be best if we looked serious, rather than just Kahlan and me and a few
guards going alone. Especially since Kahlan's power could fail at any time. I
want to look to the people there like we mean business."
"Now
you are beginning to make sense," Cara said.
"A
thousand men should do for an impressive escort," Kahlan said.
"Swordsmen, lancers, and archers-their best-
394
and
extra horses, of course. And we'll need messengers. We have important news of
the chimes and Jagang that must be sent out. We need to coordinate our forces
and keep everyone informed. We have armies in various lands we may need to
bring south at once."
Cara
nodded. "I will personally select the soldiers to be sent for your escort.
Reibisch will have elite troops."
"Fine,
but I don't want his fighting ability harmed by taking key men," Richard
said. "Tell the general I also want him to send detachments to watch the
routes north from the Old World he had intended to watch, just in case.
"The
most important thing, though, is that I want his main force to turn around and
head back this way."
"Is
he to be allowed to attack at will?"
"No.
I don't want him risking his army against the Order out on these plains. It
would be too costly. As good as his men are, they wouldn't stand a chance
against a force the size of the Order's until we can get more men down here.
More importantly, I don't want him attacking because his greatest value is if
Jagang doesn't know Reibisch's force is there.
"I
want Reibisch to come west, shadowing Jagang, but staying north and remaining
well away. Tell him to use as few scouts as possible-just enough to keep track
of the Order, no more. Jagang mustn't know Reibisch's force is there. Those
D'Haran men will be all that stands between the Order and the Midlands if
Jagang suddenly turns north. Surprise will be his only ally until we can get
messengers to bring in more troops.
"I
don't want to risk Reibisch's men if it isn't absolutely necessary. But I need
him to be the stopgap, if things go wrong.
"If
Anderith surrenders, we can combine their army with ours. If we can banish the
chimes, have the Anderith army under our command, and get more of our other
forces down here in time, we might even be able to trap Jagang's army with the
ocean at his back. It might even be possible to then use our forces to drive
him into the teeth of the Dominie
395
Dirtch.
That weapon could kill without our men losing their lives to do it."
"And
in Aydindril?" Cara asked.
"You
heard Zedd explain what must be done?"
"Yes.
On the fifth column on the left, inside the First Wizard's enclave, sits a
black bottle with a gold filigree top. It must be broken with the Sword of
Truth. Berdine and I have gone with you to the First Wizard's enclave. I
remember well the place."
"Good.
You can use the sword to break the bottle as well as I." She nodded.
"Just set the bottle on the ground, like Zedd told us, get the sword, and
break the bottle."
"I
can do that," Cara said.
Richard
knew very well how much Cara didn't like to have anything to do with magic. He
remembered well, too, how she and Berdine hadn't liked going into the First
Wizard's enclave. There was also the matter of the Keep's shields of magic.
"If
the magic of the Keep is really down, you won't have any trouble getting
through the shields; they will be down, too."
"I
remember what they feel like. I will know if they are still alive with magic,
or if I can pass."
"Tell
Berdine everything you know about the chimes. She may already have valuable
information. If nothing else, she has Kolo's journal and with what you tell her
she will know what to search for."
Richard
held up a finger for emphasis. With his other hand, he gripped her shoulder.
"But
before Berdine, the sword and the bottle first. Don't let either sit vincible
for one moment longer than necessary.
'The
chimes may try to stop you. Be aware of that. Be alert and on guard. Stay away
from water and fire as best as you can. Don't take anything for granted. They
may know the spell in the bottle can harm them.
"Before
you leave, we will talk to Du Chaillu and see if she can shed light on how they
seduce a person to their
396
death.
If she can remember, that may be valuable in warding the chimes."
Cara
nodded. If she was afraid, she didn't show it.
"Once
I get to General Reibisch, I will ride like the wind. I will go first to the
Keep and get your sword and then break the bottle. After that, I will bring
your sword, Berdine, and the book. Where will I find you?"
"In
Fairfield," Kahlan said. "Most likely with our troops, not far out of
the city, near the Minister of Culture's estate. If we have to depart, we will
leave a message for you, or some of our men. If we can't do that, we will try
to tell General Reibisch."
Richard
hesitated. "Cara... you will need to take the sword from its scabbard to
break the bottle."
"Of
course."
"But
be careful. It's a weapon of magic, and Zedd thinks it will still work-still
have magic."
Cara
sighed with unpleasant thoughts. "What will it do when I draw it?"
"I
don't know for sure," Richard said. "It may react to different people
in different ways, depending on what they bring to the completion of the magic.
I'm still the Seeker, but it may work for anyone holding it. I just don't know
how its magic will affect you.
"But
it's a weapon that uses rage. Just be careful, and realize that it will want to
draw you out, much as you draw it out. It will foment your emotions, especially
your anger."
Cara's
blue eyes gleamed. "It will not have to try hard."
Richard
smiled. "Just be careful. After you break the bottle, don't take the sword
from its scabbard for any reason less than a matter of life or death. If you
kill with it..."
Her
brow drew down when his voice trailed off. "If I kill with it...
what?"
Richard
had to tell her, lest she do something dangerous. "It gives pain."
"Like
an Agiel?"
He
nodded reluctantly. "Maybe worse." His voice low-
397
ered as
the memories flooded back. "Anger is required to counter the pain. If you
are filled with righteous rage, that will protect you, but dear spirits it will
still hurt you."
"I
am Mord-Sith. I will welcome the pain."
Richard
tapped the center of his chest. "It hurts you in here, Cara. You don't
want that kind of pain, believe me. Better your Agiel."
She
gave him a sad smile of understanding. "You need your sword. I will bring
it to you."
"Thank
you, Cara."
"But
I will not forgive you for making me leave you without protection."
"He
will not be without protection."
They
all turned. It was Du Chaillu. She was pale, her hair a mess, but wrapped in a
blanket she no longer shivered. Her face was a picture of grim determination.
Richard
shook his head. "You need to go back to your people."
"We
go with my husband. We protect the Caharin."
Richard
decided not to argue the husband part. "We'll have troops with us before
we can get to Anderith."
"They
are not blade masters. We will take Cara's place protecting you."
Cara
bowed her head to Du Chaillu. "This is good. I will rest better knowing
you and your blade masters do this."
Richard
shot Cara an annoyed glance before turning his attention to the Baka Tau Mana
spirit woman.
"Du
Chaillu, now that you're safe, I'll not have you risking your lives needlessly.
You've already had a brush with death. You must get back to your people. They
need you."
"We
are the walking dead. It does not matter."
"What
are you talking about?"
Du
Chaillu clasped her hands. The blade masters were spread out behind her, her
royal escort. Beyond them, the Mud People hunters watched. As sick as she still
looked, Du Chaillu was once again looking noble.
"Before
we left," she said, "we told our people we were dead. We told them we
were lost to the world of life, and
398
we
would not be returned to them unless we reached the Caharin to warn him and
made sure he was safe. Our people wept and mourned us before we departed,
because we are dead to them. Only if we do as we said will we be able to
return.
"Not
long ago, I heard the chimes of death. Cara, the Caharin's protector, pulled me
back from the spirit world. The spirits, in their wisdom, allowed me to return
so I might fulfill my duty. When Cara returns with your sword, and you are
safe, only then can we have our lives returned to us so that we might return
home. Until then, we are the walking dead.
"I
am not asking if we may be allowed to travel with you. I am telling you that we
are going to travel with you. I am the Baka Tau Mana spirit woman. I have
spoken."
Clenching
his teeth, Richard lifted his hand to shake an angry finger at her. Kahlan
caught his wrist.
"Du
Chaillu," Kahlan said, "I, too, have taken such an oath. When I went
to the walled city of Ebinissia and saw the people butchered by the Imperial
Order, I vowed vengeance. Chandalen and I came across a small army of young
recruits who also had seen the dead of their home city. They were determined to
punish the men responsible.
"I
swore a covenant that I was dead, and could only be returned to life when the
men who committed those crimes were punished. The men with me gave up their
lives too, to live again only if we succeeded. One in five of those young men
returned to the living with Chandalen and me. But before we did, every one of
the men who murdered the people of Ebinissia died.
"I
understand such an oath as you have given, Du Chaillu. Such a thing is sacred
and not to be ignored. You and the blade masters may come with us."'
Du
Chaillu bowed to Kahlan. "Thank you for honoring my people's ways. You are
a wise woman, and worthy of being wife to my husband, too." \x95 Richard
rolled his eyes. "Kahlan-"
"The
Mud People need Chandalen and his men. Cara is
399
doing
as you ask of her, and going to General Reibisch and then on to Aydindril.
Until the general can send men to join with us, we will be alone and
vulnerable. Du Chaillu and her men will be valuable and welcome protection.
"With
so much at stake, Richard, our pride is the last thing we need to be
considering. They are coming."
Richard
took in Cara's blue eyes, icy cold with resolve. She wanted this. Du Chaillu's
dark eyes were iron hard. Her mind was made up. Kahlan's green eyes ... well,
he didn't want to even think about what was in her green eyes.
"All
right," he said. "Until the soldiers can reach us, you may come
along."
Du
Chaillu directed a puzzled look at Kahlan. "Does he always tell you, too,
things you already know?"
CHAPTER-
36
FITCH,
HIS HEAD BOWED, could see Master Spink's legs and feet as he walked among the
benches, his boots making a slow thunk, thunk, thunk against the plank floor.
Around the room, a few people, mainly the older women, sniffled as they wept
quietly to themselves.
Fitch
couldn't blame them. He, too, was occasionally reduced to weeping at penance
assembly. The lessons they learned were necessary if they were to fight their
evil Haken
400
ways-he
understood that-but that didn't make listening any easier.
When
Master Spink lectured, Fitch preferred to look at the floor rather than by
chance meet the man's gaze. To meet the gaze of an Ander as he taught the
horrors of what was done to his ancestors by Fitch's was shaming.
"And
so it was," Master Spink went on, "that the Haken horde came by
chance upon that poor farming village. The menfolk, with frantic concern for
their families, had gathered together with those other simple Ander men from
farms and other villages around. Together, they prayed to the Creator that
their effort to repulse the bloodthirsty invaders might succeed.
"In
desperation, they had already left nearly all their foodstuffs and livestock as
a peaceful offering for the Hakens. They had sent messengers to explain the
offerings, and that they wished no war, but none of those brave messengers ever
returned.
"So
it was a simple plan these men had, to go to the crest of a hill and wave their
weapons overhead to make a show of strength, not to invite a fight, of course,
but in an urgent effort to convince the Hakens to pass their villages by. These
men were farmers, not warriors, and the weapons they waved were simple farm
tools. They didn't want a fight; they wanted peace.
"So,
there they were, those men I've taught you about- Shelby, Willan, Camden,
Edgar, Newton, Kenway, and all the rest-all those good and kind men who you
have come to know over these last few weeks as I've told you their stories,
their loves, their lives, their hopes, their simple and decent dreams. There
they were, up there on that hill, hoping for no more than to convince the Haken
brutes to pass them by. There they were, waving their tools-their axes, their
hoes, their sickles, their forks, their flails-waving them in the air, hoping
to keep those wives and children you've also come to know safe from harm."
Thump,
thump, thump went Master Spink's boots as he came closer to Fitch.
401
"The
Haken army did not choose to pass those simple men by. The Hakens instead,
laughing and hooting, turned their Dominie Dirtch on those gentle Ander
men."
Some of
the girls gasped. Others wailed aloud. Fitch himself felt a twist of fear in
his gut, and a lump in his throat. He had to sniffle himself as he imagined
their gruesome death. He had come to know those men on the hill. He knew their
wives' names, their parents' names, and their children.
"And
while those murderous Haken bastards in their fine, fancy uniforms"-Fitch
could see the boots halt right beside him where he sat on the end of the bench
near the center aisle-"stood laughing, stood cheering, the Dominie Dirtch
rang out with its terrible violence, tearing the flesh from those men's
bones."
Fitch
could feel Master Spink's dark-eyed glare on the back of his neck as the women
and many of the men sobbed their grief aloud.
"The
wails of those poor Ander farmboys rose into the Ander sky. It was their last
scream in this life, as their bodies were torn apart by the excellently
dressed, laughing, jeering Haken horde with their weapon of heartless
slaughter, the Dominie Dirtch."
One of
the older women cried out with the horror of it. Master Spink still stood over
Fitch. Right at that moment, Fitch wasn't as proud of his messenger garb as he
had been earlier, when the other people had whispered to each other in
astonishment as he took his seat.
"I
see you have yourself a fine new uniform, Fitch," Master Spink said in a
voice that made Fitch's blood go cold.
Fitch
knew he was expected to say something.
"Yes,
sir. Though I was a lowly Haken scullion, Master Campbell was kind enough to
give me a job as a messenger. He wants me to wear this uniform so all Hakens
might see that with Ander help we can do better. He also wants the messengers
to reflect well on his office as we help in his work of spreading the word of
the- Minister of Culture's good work for our people."
402
Master
Spink cuffed Fitch on the side of the head, knocking him from the bench.
"Don't talk back to me! I'm not interested in your Haken excuses!"
"I'm
sorry, sir." He knew better than to get up from his hands and knees.
"Hakens
always have excuses for their crimes of hate. You're wearing a fancy uniform,
just like those murderous Haken overlords enjoyed wearing, and you enjoy it the
same as they, and then you try to make it seem as if you don't.
"To
this day, we Anders suffer grievously under the unceasing scourge of Haken
hate. Without question, every look from a Haken conveys it. We can never be
free of it. There are always Hakens in uniforms they enjoy wearing to remind us
of the Haken overlords.
"You
prove your filthy Haken nature by trying to defend the indefensible-your
self-centered arrogance, your pride in yourself, your pride in a uniform. You
all hunger to be Haken overlords. Everyday, as Anders, we must suffer such
Haken abuse."
"Forgive
me, Master Spink. I was wrong. I wore it out of pride. I was wrong to let my
sinful Haken nature rule me."
Master
Spink grunted his contempt, but then went on with the lesson. Knowing he
deserved more, Fitch sighed, grateful to be let -off so easy.
"With
the menfolk murdered, that left the women and children of the village
defenseless."
The
boots thunk, thunk, thunked as the man started out again, walking among the
Hakens sitting on simple benches. Only after he had started away did Fitch dare
to get up off his hands and knees and once more take his seat on the bench. His
ear chimed something awful, like when Beata had struck him. Master Spink's
words bored through that hollow ringing.
"Being
Hakens, of course, they decided to go through the village and have their wicked
fun."
"No!"
a woman in back cried out. She fell to sobbing.
403
Hands
clasped behind his back, Master Spink walked on, ignoring the interruption.
There were frequently such interruptions.
"The
Hakens, wishing a feast, went to the village. They were of a mind for some
roasted meat."
People
fell to their knees, trembling with fear for the people they had come to know.
Benches all over the room scuffed against the floor as most of the rest of the
people in the room also went down on their knees. Fitch joined them.
"But
it was a small village, as you know. After the Hakens slaughtered the
livestock, they realized there wasn't enough meat. Hakens, being Hakens, didn't
want for a solution for long.
"The
children were seized."
Fitch
wished for nothing so much as he wished for the lesson to be over. He didn't
know if he could bear to hear any more. Apparently, some of the women were of
the same mind. They collapsed to their faces on the floor, hands clasped, as
they wept and prayed to the good spirits to watch over those poor, innocent,
slain Ander people.
"You
all know the names of those children. We will now go around the room and you
will each give me one of the names you have learned, lest we forget those young
lives so painfully taken. You will each give me the name of one of the children
from that village-little girls and little boys-who were roasted alive in front
of their mothers."
Master
Spink started at the last row. Each person in turn, as he pointed to them,
spoke the name of one of those children, most beseeching after it that the good
spirits watch over them. Before they were allowed to leave, Master Spink
described the horror of being burned alive, the screams, the pain, and how long
it took for the children to die. How long it took for their bodies to cook.
It was
so grisly and sinister a deed that at one point, for just the briefest moment,
Fitch considered for perhaps the first time whether the story could really be
true. He had trouble imagining anyone, even the brutal Haken overlords, doing
such a horrific thing.
404
But
Master Spink was Ander. He wouldn't lie to them. Not about something as
important as history.
"Since
it's getting late," Master Spink said, after everyone had given a child's
name, "we will leave until next assembly the story of what the Haken
invaders did to those women. The children, perhaps, were lucky not to have to
see their mothers used for such perversions as the Hakens did to them."
Fitch,
along with the rest of the assembly behind him, burst through the doors when
they were dismissed, glad to escape, for the night, the penance lesson. He had
never been so glad for the cool night air. He felt hot and sick as the images
of such a death as those children suffered kept going through his head. The
cool air, at least, felt good on his face. He pulled the cool purging air into
his lungs.
As he
was leaning against a slender maple tree beside the path to the road, waiting
for his legs to steady, Beata came out the door. Fitch straightened. There was
enough light coming from the open door and the windows so she would have no
trouble seeing him-seeing him in his new messenger's outfit. He was hoping
Beata would find it more appealing than did Master Spink,
"Good
evening, Beata."
She
halted. She glanced down the length of him, taking in his clothes.
"Fitch."
"You
look lovely this evening, Beata."
"I
look the same as always." She planted her fists on her hips. "I see
you've fallen in love with yourself in a fancy uniform."
Fitch
suddenly lost his ability to think or speak. He had always liked the way the
messengers looked in their uniforms, and had thought she would, too. He had
been hoping to see her smile, or something. Instead, she glared at him. Now he
wished more than anything he had just gone home straightaway.
"Master
Dalton offered me a position-"
"And
I suppose you'll be looking forward to next penance
405
assembly
so you can hear about what those Haken beasts in their fancy uniforms did to
those helpless women." She leaned toward him. "You'll like that. It
will be almost as much fun for you as if you were there watching."
Fitch
stood with his jaw hanging as she huffed and stormed off into the night.
Other
people walking down the street saw the tongue-lashing she had given him, a
filthy Haken. They smiled in satisfaction, or simply laughed at him. Fitch
stuffed his hands in his pockets as he turned his back to the road and leaned a
shoulder against the tree. He brooded as he waited for everyone to move along
on their own business.
It was
an hour's walk back to the estate. He wanted to be sure those returning there
had gone on so he could walk alone and not have to talk to anyone. He
considered going and buying himself some drink. He still had some money left.
If not, he would go back and find Morley, and they would both get some drink.
Either way, getting drunk sounded good to him.
The
breeze abruptly felt cooler. It ran a shiver up his spine.
He
almost leaped out of his boots when a hand settled on his shoulder. He spun and
saw it was an older Ander woman. Her swept-back, nearly shoulder-length hair
told him she was someone important. Streaks of gray at the temples told him she
was old; there wasn't enough light to see exactly how wrinkled she was, but he
could still tell she was.
Fitch
bowed to the Ander woman. He feared she might want to take up where Beata had
left off, and take him to task for something or other.
"Is
she someone you care about?" the woman asked.
Fitch
was taken off guard by the curious question. "I don't know," he
stammered.
"She
was pretty rough with you."
"I
deserved it, ma'am."
"Why
is that?"
Fitch
shrugged. "I don't know."
406\xA0\xA0 .
He
couldn't figure out what the woman wanted. It gave him gooseflesh the way her
dark eyes studied him, like she was picking out a chicken for dinner.
She
wore a simple dress that in the dim light looked like it might be a dark brown.
It buttoned to her neck, unlike the more revealing fashion most Ander women
wore. Her dress didn't mark her as a noble woman, but that long hair said she
was someone important.
She
seemed somehow different from other Ander women. There was one thing about her
that Fitch did think odd: she wore a wide black band tight around her throat,
up close at the top of her neck.
"Sometimes
girls say mean things when they're afraid to admit they like a boy, fearing he
won't like her."
"And
sometimes they say mean things because they intend them."
"True
enough." She smiled. "Does she live at the estate, or here in
Fair-field?"
"Here
in Fairfield. She works for Inger the butcher."
She
seemed to think that was a little bit funny. "Perhaps she is used to more
meat on the bones. Maybe when you get a little older and fill yourself in more
she will find you more appealing."
Fitch
stuffed his hands back in his pockets. "Maybe."
He
didn't believe it. Besides, he didn't figure he would ever fill in, as she put
it. He figured he was old enough that he was about how he would be.
She
went back to studying his face for a time.
"Do
you want her to like you?" she asked at last.
Fitch
cleared his throat. "Well, sometimes, I guess. At least, I'd like her not
to hate me."
The
woman had one of those smiles like she was well pleased with something, but he
doubted he'd ever understand it.
"It
could be arranged."
"Ma'am?"
"If
you like her, and would like her to like you, it could be arranged."
407
Fitch
blinked in astonishment. "How?"
"A
little something slipped into what she drinks, or eats."
Understanding
came over him all at once. This was a woman of magic. At last he understood why
she seemed so strange. He'd heard people with magic were strange.
"You
mean you could make something up? Some spell or something?"
Her
smile grew. "Or something."
"I
just started working for Master Campbell. I'm sorry, ma'am, but I couldn't
afford it."
"Ah,
I see." Her smile shrank back down. "And if you could afford
it?"
Before
he could answer, she squinted up at the sky in thought. "Or perhaps it
could be ready later on, when you get paid." Her voice turned to little
more than a whisper, like she was talking to herself. "Might give me time
to see if I couldn't figure out the problem and get it to work again."
She
looked him in the eye. "How about it?"
Fitch
swallowed. He surely didn't want to offend an Ander woman, and one with the
gift, besides. He hesitated.
"Well,
ma'am, the truth is, if a girl's ever going to like me, I'd just as soon she
liked me because she liked me- no offense, ma'am. It's kind of you to offer.
But I don't think I'd like it if a girl only liked me because of a spell of
magic. I think that wouldn't make me feel very good about it, like only magic
could make a girl like me."
The
woman laughed as she patted his back. It was a soft, lilting laugh of pleasure,
not a laugh like she was laughing at him. Fitch didn't think he'd ever heard an
Ander who was talking to him laugh in quite that way.
"Good
for you." She gestured her emphasis with a finger. "I had a wizard
tell me as much once, a very long time ago."
"A
wizard! That must have been frightening. To meet a wizard, I mean."
She
shrugged. "Not really. He was a nice man. I was a very little girl at the
time. I was born gifted, you see. He told me to always remember that magic was
no substitute
408
for
people truly caring about you for who you were yourself."
"I
never knew there were wizards around."
"Not
here," she said. She flicked a hand out into the night. "Back in
Aydindril."
His
ears perked up. "Aydindril? To the northeast?"
"My,
but aren't you a bright one. Yes. To the northeast. At the Wizard's Keep."
She held out a hand. "I'm Franca. And you?"
Fitch
took her hand and held it lightly as he dipped to a knee in a deep bow.
"I'm Fitch, ma'am."
"Franca."
"Ma'am?"
"Franca.
That's my name. I told you my name, Fitch, so you could call me by my
name."
"Sorry,
ma'am-I mean Franca."
She let
out her little laugh again. "Well, Fitch, it was nice to meet you. I must
be headed back to the estate. I suppose you will be off to get drunk. That
seems to be what boys your age like to do."
Fitch
had to admit the idea of getting drunk sounded very good to him. The
possibility of hearing about the Wizard's Keep sounded intriguing, though.
"I
think I'd best be getting back to the estate myself. If you wouldn't mind
having a Haken walk with you, I'd be well pleased to go along. Franca," he
added in afterthought.
She
studied his face again in that way that made him fidget.
"I'm
gifted, Fitch. That means I'm different than most people, and so most all
people, Ander and Haken both, think of me the way most Ander people think of
you because you're Haken."
"They
do? But you're Ander."
"Being
Ander is not enough to overcome the stigma of having magic. I know what it
feels like to have people dislike you without them knowing anything about you.
"I'd
be well pleased to have you walk along with me, Fitch."
409
Fitch
smiled, partly in the shock of realizing he was having a conversation with an
Ander woman, a real conversation, and partly in shock that Anders would dislike
her-another Ander-because she had magic.
"But
don't they respect you because you have magic?"
"They
fear me. Fear can be good, and bad. Good, because then even though people don't
like you, they at least treat you well. Bad, because people often try to strike
out at what they fear."
"I
never looked at it that way before."
He
thought about how good it had made him feel when Claudine Winthrop called him
"sir." She only did because she was afraid, he knew, but it still
made him feel good. He didn't understand the other part of what Franca said,
though.
"You're
very wise. Does magic do that? Make a person wise?"
She let
out the breathy laugh again, as if she found him as amusing as a fish with
legs.
"If
it did, then they would call it the Wise Man's Keep, instead of the Wizard's
Keep. Some people would be wiser, perhaps, had they not been born with the
buttress of magic."
He'd
never met anyone who'd been to Aydindril, much less the Wizard's Keep. He could
hardly believe a person with magic would talk to him. To an extent, he was
worried because he didn't know anything about magic and he figured that if she
got angry she might do him harm.
He
thought her fascinating, though, even if she was old.
They
started out down the road toward the estate in silence. Sometimes silence made
him nervous. He wondered if she could tell what he thought with her magic.
Fitch
looked over at her. She didn't look like she was paying any attention to his
thoughts. He pointed at her throat.
"Mind
if I ask what sort of thing that is, Franca? That band you wear at your throat?
I've never seen anyone wear anything like it before. Is it something to do with
magic?"
She
laughed aloud. "Do you know, Fitch, that you are the first person in a
great many years to ask me about this? Even
410
if it
is because you don't know enough to fear asking a sorceress such a personal
question."
"Sorry,
Franca. I didn't mean to say nothing offensive."
He
began to worry he had stupidly said something to make her angry. He surely
didn't want an Ander woman, and one with magic besides, angry with him. She was
silent for a time as they walked on down the road. Fitch stuck his sweating
hands back in his pockets.
At last
she spoke again. "It isn't that, Fitch. Offensive,! mean. It just brings
up bad memories."
"I'm
sorry, Franca. I shouldn't have said it. Sometimes I say stupid things. I'm
sorry."
He was
wishing he had gone to get drunk, instead.
After a
few more strides, she stopped and turned to him. "No, Fitch, it wasn't
stupid. Here."
She hooked
the throat band and pulled it down for him to see. Even though it was dark,
there was a moon and he could see a thick lumpy line, all white and
waxy-looking, ringing her neck. It looked to him to be a nasty scar.
"Some
people tried to kill me, once. Because I have magic." Moonlight glistened
in her moist eyes. "Serin Rajak and his followers."
Fitch
never heard the name. "Followers?"
She
pulled the throat band back up. "Serin Rajak hates magic. He has followers
who think the same as he. They get people all worked up against those with
magic. Gets them in a state of wild hate and blood lust.
'There's
nothing uglier than a mob of men when they have it in their heads to hurt
someone. What one alone wouldn't have the nerve to do, together they can easily
decide is right and then accomplish. A mob takes on a mind of its own-a life of
its own. Just like a pack of dogs chasing down some lone animal.
"Rajak
caught me and put a rope around my neck. They tied my hands behind my back.
They found a tree, threw the other end of the rope over a limb, and hoisted me
up by that rope around my neck."
411
Fitch
was horrified. "Dear spirits-that must have' hurt something awful."
She
didn't seem to hear him as she stared off.
"They
were stacking kindling under me. Going to have a big fire. Before they could
get the fire lit, I managed to get away."
Fitch's
fingers went to his throat, rubbing his neck as he tried to imagine hanging on
a rope around his neck.
"That
man-Serin Rajak. Is he a Haken?"
She
shook her head as they started out again. "You don't have to be Haken to
be bad, Fitch."
They
walked in silence for a time. Fitch got the feeling she was off somewhere in
her memories of hanging by a rope around her throat. He wondered why she didn't
choke to death. Maybe the rope wasn't tight, he decided-tied with a knot so it
would hold its loop. He wondered how she got away. He knew, though, that he'd
asked enough about it, and dared ask no more.
He
listened to the stone chips crunching under their boots. He stole careful
glances, now and again. She no longer looked happy, like she had at first. He
wished he'd kept his question to himself.
Finally,
he thought maybe he'd ask her about something that had made her smile before.
Besides, it was why he had really wanted to walk along with her in the first
place.
"Franca,
what was the Wizard's Keep like?"
He was
right; she did smile. "Huge. You can't even imagine it, and I couldn't
tell you how big it is. It stands up on a mountain overlooking Aydindril,
beyond a stone bridge crossing a chasm thousands of feet deep. Part of the Keep
is cut from the mountain itself. There are notched walls rising up like cliffs.
Broad ramparts, wider than this road, go to various structures. Towers rise up
above the Keep, here and there. It was magnificent."
"Did
you ever see a Seeker of Truth? Did you ever see the Sword of Truth, when you
was there?"
She
frowned over at him. "You know, as a matter of fact, I did. My mother was
a sorceress. She went to Aydindril to
412
see the
First Wizard about something-what, I've no idea. We went across one of those
ramparts to the First Wizard's enclave in the Keep. He has a separate place
where he had wonders of every sort. I remember that bright and shiny sword."
She
seemed well pleased with telling him about it, so he asked, "What was it
like? The First Wizard's enclave? And the Sword of Truth?"
"Well,
let me see...." She put a finger to her chin to think a moment before she
began her story.
CHAPTER
37
WHEN
DALTON CAMPBELL REACHED to dip his pen, he saw the legs of a woman walking
through the doorway into his office. By the thick ankles he knew before his
gaze lifted that it was Hildemara Chanboor. If there was a woman with less
appealing legs, he had yet to meet her.
He set
down the pen and rose with a smile. "Lady Chanboor, please, come in."
In the
outer office, the morning sunlight revealed Rowley on duty, standing ready to
summon the messengers should Dalton have call for them. He didn't at the
moment, but with Hildemara Chanboor paying a visit, that eventuality seemed
more likely.
As she
closed the door, Dalton went around his desk and
413
pulled
out a comfortable chair in invitation. She wore a wool dress the color of
straw. The color of the dress conveyed a sickly pallor to her flesh. The hem
came to midcalf on her puffy, straight, pillar-like legs.
Hildemara
glanced briefly at the chair, but remained standing.
"So
good to see you, Lady Chanboor."
She put
on a smile. "Oh, Dalton, must you always be so proper? We've known each
other long enough for you to call me Hildemara." He opened his mouth to
thank her, but she added, "When we're alone."
"Of
course, Hildemara."
Hildemara
Chanboor never made visits to inquire after anything so mundane as matters of
work. She only arrived like a chill wind before a storm. Dalton decided it best
to let the foul weather build on its own, without his help, like some wizard
summoning it forth. He also thought it better to keep the meeting on a more
formal level, despite her indulgence with her name.
Her
brow bunched, as if her attention were distracted. She reached out to fuss with
a possibly loose thread on his shoulder. Sunlight streaming in the windows
sparkled off the jewels on her fingers, and the bloodred ruby necklace hanging
across the expanse of exposed skin on her upper chest. The dress wasn't nearly
as low-cut as those worn lately at feasts, yet he still found its cut less than
refined.
With a
woman's tidy touch, Hildemara picked and then smoothed. Dalton glanced, but
didn't see anything. Seeming to have satisfied herself, her hand gently pressed
out the fabric of his light coat against his shoulder.
"My,
my, Dalton, but don't you have fine shoulders. So muscular and firm." She
looked into his eyes. "Your wife is a lucky woman to have a man so well
endowed."
"Thank
you, Hildemara." His caution prevented him saying another word.
Her
hand moved to his cheek, her bejeweled fingers gliding over the side of his
face.
414
"Yes,
she is a very lucky woman."
"And
your husband is a lucky man."
Chortling,
she withdrew her hand. "Yes, he is often lucky. But, as is said, what is
commonly thought luck is often merely the result of incessant practice."
"Wise
words, Hildemara."
The
cynical laugh evaporated and she soon returned the hand to his collar, ordering
it, as if it needed ordering. Her hand wandered to the side of his neck, a
finger licking the rim of his ear.
"The
word I hear is that your wife is faithful to you."
"I
am a lucky man, my lady."
"And
that you are equally faithful to her."
"I
care for her deeply, and I also respect the vows we have taken."
"How
quaint." Her smile widened. She pinched his cheek. He thought it more
stern than playful in manner. "Well, someday I hope to convince you to be
a little less ... stuffy, in your attitudes, shall we say."
"If
any woman could open my eyes to a broader attitude, Hildemara, it would be
you."
She
patted his cheek, the cynical laugh returning. "Oh, Dalton, but you are an
exceptional man."
"Thank
you, Hildemara. Coming from you that is quite the compliment."
She
took a breath as if to change the mood. "And you did an exceptional job
with Claudine Winthrop and Director Linscott. Why, I never imagined anyone
could so deftly lance two boils at once."
"I
do my best for the Minister and his lovely wife."
She
regarded him with cold calculation. 'The Minister's wife was quite humiliated
by the woman's loose lips."
"I
don't believe she will be any further-"
"I
want her done away with."
Dalton
cocked his head. "I beg your pardon?"
Hildemara
Chanboor's expression soured.
"Kill
her."
415
Dalton
straightened and clasped his hands behind his back. "Might I inquire as to
the reason you would request such a thing?"
"What
my husband does is his business. The Creator knows he is what he is and nothing
short of castration will change it. But I'll not have women humiliating me
before the household by making me look a fool. Discreet indulgences are one
thing; publicly airing tales to make me the butt of whispering and jokes is
quite another."
"Hildemara,
I don't believe Claudine's loose talk was in any way meant to place you at any
disadvantage, nor should it, but rather to denounce Bertrand for inappropriate
conduct. Nevertheless, I can assure you she has been silenced and has lost her
position of trust among people in authority."
"My,
my, Dalton, but aren't you the gallant one."
"Not
at all, Hildemara. I just hope to show you-"
She
took hold of his collar again, her manner no longer gentle. "She has
become revered by foolish people who actually believe that load of dung about
starving children and putting men to work with her law. They crowd her door
seeking her favor in any number of causes.
"Such
reverence by the people is dangerous, Dalton. It gives her power. Worse,
though, was the nature of the charges she made. She was telling people Bertrand
forced himself on her. That amounts to rape." .
He knew
where she was going, but he preferred she put words to it, and clear excuse to
her orders. Such would later leave him with more arrows should he ever need
them and her less room for denial, or for abandoning him to the wolves, if it
suited her purpose or worse, her mood.
"An
accusation of rape would elicit hardly more than a yawn from the people,"
Dalton said. "I could easily get them to see such a thing as the
prerogative of a man in a position of great power who needed a simple and
harmless release of tension. None would seriously begrudge him such a
victimless act. I could easily prove the Minister to be above such common
law."
Her
fist tightened on his collar.
416
"But
Claudine could be brought into the Office of Cultural Amity and invited to
testify. The Directors fear Bertrand's power, and skill. They are jealous of
me, too. Should they have a mind, they might champion the woman's cause as
offensive to the Creator, even if outside commoners' law.
"Such
a supposed offense against the Creator could disqualify Bertrand from
consideration for Sovereign. The Directors could join forces and take a stand,
leaving us suddenly helpless and at their mercy. We could all be out looking
for new quarters before we knew what happened."
"Hildemara,
I think-"
She
pulled his face closer to her own.
"I
want her killed."
Dalton
had always found that a plain woman's kind and generous nature could make her
tremendously alluring. The other side of that coin was Hildemara; her selfish
despotism and boundless hatred of anyone who stood in the way of her ambition
corrupted any appealing aspect she possessed into irredeemable ugliness.
"Of
course, Hildemara. If that is your wish, then it shall be done." Dalton
gently removed her hand from his collar. "Any particular instructions as
to how you would like it accomplished?"
"Yes,"
she hissed. "No accident, this deed. This is killing and it should look
like a killing. There is no value in the lesson if my husband's other bedmates
fail to grasp it.
"I
want it to be messy. Something that will open women's eyes. None of this
dying-peacefully-in-her-sleep business."
"I
see."
"Our
hands must look entirely clean in this. Under no circumstances can suspicion
point to the Minister's office- but I want it to be an object lesson to those
who might consider wagging their tongues."
Dalton
already had a plan in mind. It would fit the requirements. No one would think
it an accident, it would certainly be messy, and he knew exactly where fingers
would point, should he need fingers to point.
He had
to admit that Hildemara had valid arguments. The
417
Directors
had been shown the glint off the Minister's axe. They might decide in their own
self-interest to swing an axe themselves.
Claudine
could make more trouble. It was unwise to knowingly allow such a potential
danger to remain at large. He regretted what had to be done, but he couldn't
disagree that it needed doing.
"As
you wish, Hildemara."
Her
smile paid another visit to her face.
"You
have been here only a short time, Dalton, but I have come to greatly respect
your ability. And, too, if there is one thing I trust about Bertrand, it's his
ability to find people who can accomplish the job required. He has to be good
at choosing people to properly handle the work, you see, or he might have to
actually take care of matters himself, and that would require him to vacate the
loins of whoever fascinated him at the moment.
"I
trust you didn't get to where you are by being squeamish, Dalton?"
He knew
without doubt she had placed discreet inquiries as to his competence. She would
already know he was up to the task. Further, she would not risk such a demand
had she not been sure he would honor it. There were others to whom she could
have turned.
With
ever so much care, he spun a new line on his cobweb.
"You
requested a favor of me, Hildemara. The favor is well within my capacity."
It was
not a favor, and they both knew it; it was an order. Still, he wanted to fasten
her more closely to the deed, if only in her own mind, and such a seed would
set down roots.
Ordering
a murder was a great deal worse than any accusation of a petty rape. He might
someday have need of something within her sphere of influence.
She
smiled with satisfaction as she cupped his cheek. "I knew you were the
right man for the job. Thank you, Dalton."
418
He
bowed his head.
Like
the sun going behind a cloud, her expression darkened. Her hand moved down his
face until a single finger lifted his chin.
"And
keep in mind that while I may not have the power to castrate Bertrand, I can
you, Dalton. Any time it pleases me."
Dalton
smiled. "Then I shall be sure to give you no cause, my lady."
CHAPTER
38
FITCH
SCRATCHED HIS ARM through his crusty old scullion clothes. He'd never realized
what rags they were until he'd been in his messenger uniform for a while. He
relished the respect he was given as a messenger. It wasn't like he was
important or anything, but most people respected messengers as someone with a responsibility;
no one ever respected scullions.
He
hated putting back on his old clothes. It felt like putting back on his old
life, and he never wanted to go back to that. He liked working for Dalton
Campbell, and would do anything to keep that job.
For
this, though, his old clothes were necessary.
The
sweet melody of a lute rippled in from a faraway inn. Probably the Jolly Man
tavern, over on Wavern Street, he
419
guessed.
They often had a minstrel sing there.
The
piercing warbles from a reed shawm intermittently cut through the night. At
times the shawm went silent, and then the minstrel sang ballads whose words
were unintelligible because of the distance. The tune, though, was quick and
pleasant and made Fitch's heart beat faster.
He
glanced back over his shoulder and in the moonlight saw the grim faces of the
other messengers. They, too, were all back in the clothes of their former
lives. Fitch intended to remain in his new life. He wouldn't let the other men
down. No matter what, he wouldn't let them down.
They
looked a scruffy bunch, they did. Dressed as they were, no one would likely
recognize them. No one would be able to tell them from any of the other young
redheaded Haken men in rags.
There
were always young Haken men around in Fairfield, hoping for someone to hire
them for any task. Often they were chased away from the streets where they
gathered. Some went out to the country to help work farms, some found work in
Fairfield if only for a day, some went behind the buildings to drink, and some
waited in the dark to. rob people. Those, though, didn't live long if they were
caught by the city guards, and they usually were.
Morley's
boots creaked as he shifted his weight as he crouched beside Fitch. Fitch, like
the rest of the men, wore his boots for this, even though they were part of his
uniform; people wouldn't be able to tell anything from boots.
Even
though Morley wasn't yet a messenger, Master Campbell had asked him to join
Fitch and the others who weren't off to distant places with messages. Morley
had been disappointed that he didn't get to be a messenger along with Fitch.
Fitch told him what Master Campbell had said about Morley being useful from
time to time for various work, and how he would someday likely join the
messenger service. For now, that was good enough hope for Morley.
Fitch's
new friends among the messengers were nice enough, but he was glad to have
Morley along. He and Morley had been kitchen scullions together for a long
time.
420
That
meant something. When you'd been getting drunk with someone for years, it was a
strong bond, as Fitch figured it. Morley seemed to feel the same and was glad
to be asked along so he might prove himself.
Despite
his fear, Fitch, too, didn't want to let Dalton Campbell down. More than that,
for this task, he and Morley both had cause. For them, unlike the other men,
this was personal. Still, it had Fitch's palms sweating and he had to wipe them
on his knees every few minutes.
Morley
nudged Fitch. Fitch peered off to the dimly lit road outside the row of two-
and three-story stone buildings. He saw Claudine Winthrop step out onto the
landing attached to the front of one of them. There was a man beside her, just
as Master Campbell had said there would be-a finely dressed Ander wearing a
sword. By the narrow scabbard it looked a light sword. Quick, but deadly, Fitch
imagined as he gave it a few parries in his mind.
Rowley,
in his messenger outfit, stepped up to the tall Ander man as he came down off
the landing and handed him a rolled message. Rowley and the man spoke as he
broke the seal and unfurled the paper, but Fitch was too far away to hear the
words.
Music
rose from an inn in the distance. At the Jolly Man, the minstrel sang and
played his lute and shawm. People, most wearing a light cloak or shawl, talked
and laughed as they passed up and down the street. Men somewhere in a hall all
laughed together now and again. Carriages with folded-down tops carried finely
dressed folks. Horses and wagons went by, jangling and clopping, adding to the
confusion of noise at the edge of Fairfield.
The man
stuffed the paper in the pocket of his dark doublet as he turned to Claudine
Winthrop, gesturing as he spoke words Fitch couldn't hear. She looked up the
street into Fairfield, and then shook her head. She lifted a hand toward the
estate, toward the road where Fitch and the other messengers in their old
clothes waited. She was smiling and seemed in a good mood.
The man
with her then took up her hand, shaking it as
421
he
seemed to bid her a good night. She waved a farewell as he hurried off down the
street and into the city.
Dalton
Campbell had sent the message with Rowley. Now that the message was delivered,
Rowley vanished into the streets. Rowley had instructed them as to exactly how
it was to work. Rowley always instructed them. If Master Campbell wasn't
around, Rowley always knew what to do.
Fitch
liked Rowley. For a Haken, the young man seemed pretty confident in himself.
Dalton Campbell treated him with respect, just like he treated everyone else,
but maybe with a little more. If Fitch were blind he might have thought Rowley
was Ander. Except he treated Fitch kindly, if in a businesslike manner.
Claudine
Winthrop, alone, turned to the road back to the estate. Two of the patrolling
city guard, big Ander men armed with cudgels, ambled up the street and watched
her go. It wasn't a great distance. Just an hour's walk or so.
The
night was pleasant, warm enough to be comfortable, and not so warm that the
walk would work up a sweat. And the moon was out. A pleasant night for a brisk
walk back to the estate. She snugged her cream-colored shawl around her
shoulders, covering her skin, though there wasn't as much flesh showing as
Fitch had seen before.
She
could have sat down on a bench and waited for one of the carriages that
regularly ran back and forth between the estate and the city, but she didn't.
There was really no need. When a carriage caught up with her as she walked
back, she could always take it then, if she tired of walking.
Rowley
was off to insure that the carriage was delayed with an errand.
Fitch
waited with the rest of the men, where Rowley told them to wait, and watched
Claudine Winthrop walking .briskly up the road. The beat of the music strummed
in Fitch's head. The sound felt, connected to the pounding of his heart.
He
watched her coming up the road, his finger tapping against his bent knee as the
shawm played a bouncy tune Fitch knew, called "Round the Well and
Back," about a man
422
chasing
a woman he loved, but who always ignored him. the man finally had enough and
chased her in the song until he caught her. He then held her down and asked her
to wed him. She said yes. Then the man lost his nerve and she was the one who
chased him round the well and back.
As
Claudine strode down the road, she looked to be less comfortable with her
decision to walk. She glanced at the fields of wheat to her right and the
sorghum to her left. She quickened up her pace as the light of the city fell
away behind her. Only moonlight accompanied her down the ribbon of road between
the silent fields to each side.
Fitch,
squatted down on the balls of his feet, could feel himself rocking, his heart
was pounding so hard. He wished he wasn't there, going to do what he was going
to do. He knew nothing would ever be the same again.
He
wondered, too, if he really would be able to do as he had been told to do. He
wondered if he would have the nerve. There were enough other men, after all. He
wouldn't really have to do anything. They could do it.
But
Dalton Campbell wanted him to do it. Wanted him to learn what was necessary
when people didn't do as they promised they would do. Wanted him to be part of
the team of messengers.
He had
to do this to be part of the team. To really be part. They wouldn't be afraid
like he was. He couldn't show his fear.
He was
frozen, staring wide-eyed as she got closer, her shoes crunching against the
road. He felt terror rising up inside at the whole idea. He wished she would
turn around and run. She was still far enough away. It had seemed so simple
when he had nodded to Dalton Campbell's instructions.
It
sounded plain enough when he stood there in Dalton Campbell's office, as he
explained it. In the light. It made sense in the light. Fitch had tried to help
her with a warning. It wasn't his fault she went against orders.
It
seemed altogether different in the dark, out in a field, as he watched her, all
alone, getting closer.
423
He set
his jaw. He couldn't let the others down. They would be proud of him for being
as tough as they. He would show them he could be one of them.
This
was his new life. He didn't want to go back to the kitchen. Back to Gillie
twisting his ear and scolding him for his vile Haken ways. Back to being
"Fetch," like he was before Dalton Campbell gave him a chance to
prove himself.
Fitch
nearly cried out in startled fright when Morley sprang up, lunging for the
woman.
Before
he had time to think, Fitch flew after his friend.
Claudine
gasped. She tried to cry out, but Morley clamped a meaty hand over her mouth as
he and Fitch tackled her. Fitch whacked his elbow painfully against the ground
as they all crashed to the road. The impact drove a deep grunt from her as
Morley landed on her with all his weight.
Her
arms flailed. Her legs kicked. She tried to scream, but couldn't get much out.
They were far enough out that no one was likely to hear even if she did.
She
seemed all elbows and knees. She twisted and fought for her life. Fitch finally
snagged one of her arms and twisted it behind her back. Morley got a good grip
on her other arm and hauled her to her feet. With a cord, Fitch secured her
wrists behind her back as Morley stuffed a rag in her mouth and tied a gag
around her head.
Morley
and Fitch each grabbed her under an arm and started dragging her down the road.
She dug in her heels, twisting and pulling. The other men swarmed all around.
Two of them each grappled a leg and lifted her clear of the ground. Another man
took ahold of her hair.
Together,
the five of them, with the others in a tight knot around them, trotted maybe
another half mile down the road, farther away from the city. Claudine Winthrop,
in the clutch of terror, screamed against the gag. She wrenched and squirmed
violently the whole way.
She had
good cause to be in such panic, after what she'd done.
424
When
they were out of sight of the city and then some, they cut off the road to the
right, through the wheat field. They wanted to be off the road in case someone
came along. They didn't want to have a coach unexpectedly come upon them. They
didn't want to have to drop her and run for it. Dalton Campbell would not like
to hear that they messed up.
When
they'd gone over a gentle swell in the land, to where they figured they were
out of sight and out of earshot, they finally dumped her on the ground. She
cried out with muffled screams against the gag. In the moonlight Fitch could
see her wide eyes, like a hog at butcher.
Fitch
panted, less from exertion than from his dread at what they were doing. His
heart pounded in his ears and thumped against his chest. He could feel his
knees trembling.
Morley
lifted Claudine Winthrop to her feet and held her up from behind.
"I
warned you," Fitch said. "Are you stupid? I warned you not to ever
again tell anyone your treasonous accusations against our Minister of Culture.
It's a lie that the Minister raped you, and you said you'd stop saying it, and
now you've broken your word."
She was
shaking her head vigorously. That she was trying to deny it only made Fitch
more determined.
"I
told you not to say those vile lies about our Minister of Culture! You said you
wouldn't! You told me you wouldn't. Now you've gone flapping your tongue again
with those same hateful lies."
"You
tell her, Fitch," one of the other men said.
"That's
right. Fitch is right," another said.
"You
gave her a chance," still another said.
Several
of the men clapped Fitch on the back. It made him feel good that they were
proud of him. It made him feel important.
She
shook her head. Her brow was bunched to a knot of skin in the middle.
425
"They're
all right," Morley said as he shook her. "I was there. I heard him
tell you. You should have done what you was told. Fitch gave you a chance, he
did."
She
frantically tried to talk against the gag. Fitch yanked it down below her chin.
"No!
I never did! I swear, sir! I never said anything after you told me not to! I
swear! Please! You have to believe me-I wouldn't tell anyone-not after you told
me to keep quiet-I wouldn't-I didn't!"
"You
did!" Fitch's fists balled into tight knots. "Master Campbell told us
you did. Are you now calling Master Campbell a liar?"
She
shook her head. "No! Please, sir, you must believe me!" She started
to sob. "Please sir, I did as you said."
Fitch
was enraged to hear her deny it. He had warned her. He had given her a chance.
Master Campbell had given her a chance, and she had continued with her treason.
Even her
calling him "sir" didn't bring him much delight. But the men behind
urging him on did.
Fitch
didn't want to hear any more of her lies. "I told you to keep your mouth
shut! You didn't!"
"I
did," she said as she wept, hanging in Morley's arms. "I did. Please,
I told no one anything. I never told-"
Hard as
he could, Fitch slammed his fist square into her face. Straight in. All his
might. He felt bone snap.
The
blow stung his fist, but it was only a far-off pain. Great gouts of blood
bloomed across her face in lurid gushes.
"Good
one, Fitch!" Morley called out, staggered a step by the blow. Other men
agreed. "Give it to her again!"
Feeling
pride at the praise, Fitch let the rage go wild. He cocked his arm. She was
trying to harm Dalton Campbell and the Minister-the future Sovereign. He
liberated his anger at this Ander woman.
His
second blow to her face tumbled her out of Morley's grip. She crashed to her
side on the ground. Fitch could see her jaw was unhinged. He couldn't recognize
her face, what with the way her nose was flattened and with all the blood.
426
It was
shocking, in a distant sort of way, like he was watching someone else doing it.
Like a
pack of dogs, the rest of the men were on her. Morley was the strongest, and fierce.
They lifted her. They all seemed to be punching her at once. Her head snapped
one way and then the other. She doubled over from punches in the gut. The men
walloped her in the kidneys. Blow after blow rained down, driving her from the
arms that were holding her up, pummeling her to the ground.
Once
she was down, they all started kicking her. Morley kicked the back of her head.
Another man stomped down on the side of it. Others kicked her body so hard it
lifted her from the ground, or rolled this way and that. The sounds of the
blows, hollow and sharp, almost drowned out the grunts of effort.
Fitch,
landing a kick in her ribs, seemed to be in some quiet place, watching the
whole thing. It disgusted him, but it excited him at the same time. He was part
of something important, with other good men, doing important work for Dalton
Campbell and the Minister of Culture-the future Sovereign.
But a
part of him was sickened by what was happening. A part of him wanted to run
crying from what was happening. A part of him wished they had never found her
coming out of that building.
But -a
part of him was wildly excited by it, excited to be part of it, excited to be
one of the men.
He
didn't know how long it went on. It seemed forever.
The
thick smell of blood filled his nostrils and seemed to coat his tongue. Blood
saturated their clothes. It gloved their fists. It was splattered across their
faces.
The
heady experience filled Fitch with a profound sense of camaraderie. They
laughed with the exhilaration of brotherhood.
When
they heard the sound of the carriage, they all froze. Sharing the same wild
look in their eyes, they stood panting as they listened.
427
The
carriage stopped.
Before
they had a chance to find out why, or anyone came over the hill, they all, as
one, ran for it, ran for a dunk in a distant pond to wash off the blood.
C H
AFTER\xA0\xA0 39
DALTON
GLANCED UP FROM the report when he heard the knock.
"Yes?"
The
door opened and Rowley's head of red hair poked in.
"Master
Campbell, there's someone out here wants to see you. Says his name is Inger.
Says he's a butcher."
Dalton
was busy and wasn't in the mood to handle kitchen troubles. There were already
enough troubles he needed to handle. There were any number of problems, running
the gamut from the trifling to the serious, needing his attention.
The
murder of Claudine Winthrop had created a sensation. She was well known and
widely liked. She was important. The city was in an uproar. But, if a person
knew how to properly handle such things, confusion created opportunity. Dalton
was in his element.
He had
made sure Stein was addressing the Directors of Cultural Amity at the time of
the murder so no one would
428
be able
to raise any suspicion of him. A man with a cape of human scalps, even if they
were taken in war, tended to raise suspicion.
The
city guard had reported seeing Claudine Winthrop leaving Fairfield to walk back
to the estate-commonly done, even at night; it was a heavily traveled road and
previously believed perfectly safe. The guard reported, too, young Haken men
gathered that night drinking before the murder. People naturally surmised she
had been attacked by Hakens and loudly decried the incident as yet more proof
of Haken hatred of Anders.
Guards
now escorted people who walked at night.
There
was a chorus of demands that the Minister do something. Edwin Winthrop, taken
by the shock of his wife's murder, was bedridden. From his bed he, too, sent
demands for justice.
Several
young men had later been arrested, but were released when it was proven they
had been working at a farm the night of the murder. Men in a tavern the next
night, emboldened by rum, went searching for the "Haken killers."
They found several Haken boys they were sure were guilty and beat them to death
in front of cheering onlookers.
Dalton
had written several speeches for the Minister and had issued orders in his name
for a number of crisis measures. The murder gave the Minister an excuse to
allude, in his fiery speeches, to those who opposed him for Sovereign as being
responsible for stirring up contempt for the law and thus violence. He called
for more stringent laws regulating "rancorous language." His
addresses to the Office of Cultural Amity, if not the new laws, weakened the
knees of Directors suspicious of the Minister.
Before
the crowds who gathered to hear his words, the Minister had called for new
measures-unspecified-to deal with violence. Such measures were always
unspecified and only rarely was any real action taken. The mere impassioned
plea was all that was required to convince the people the Minister was decisive
and effective. Perception was the goal and all that really mattered. Perception
was easily accom-
429
plished,
required little effort, and it never had to stand the test of reality.
Of
course, taxes would have to be raised in readiness to fund these measures. It
was a perfect formula: opposition was seen as fostering violence and equated to
the brutality of Haken overlords and murderers. The Minister and Dalton thus
gained control over a larger portion of the economy. Control was power.
Bertrand
relished being at the center of it all, issuing orders, denouncing evil,
convening various groups of concerned citizens, reassuring people. The whole
thing most likely would soon die out as people went on to other things and
forgot about the murder,
Hildemara
was happy; that was all that mattered to Dalton.
Rowley
stood with his head in the door, waiting. "Tell Inger to take his problem
to Mr. Drummond," Dalton said as he picked up another of his messages.
"Drummond is the kitchen master and is responsible for the feast. I gave
him a list of instructions. The man ought to know how to order meat."
"Yes, sir."
The
door closed and the room fell silent except for the gentle sound of spring
rain. Gentle steady rain would be good for the crops. A good harvest would help
annul grievances about the burden of new taxes. Dalton relaxed back in his
chair and resumed his reading.
It seemed
the person writing the message had seen healers going to the Sovereign's
residence. He wasn't able to talk to the healers, but said they were in the
Sovereign's residence -the whole night.
It
could be someone other than the Sovereign needing help. The Sovereign had a
huge household, after all-nearly the size of the Minister's estate, except it
was exclusively for the use of the Sovereign. Business, what there was of it
for the Sovereign, was conducted in a separate building. There, too, he took audiences.
430
It
wasn't uncommon for a healer or two to spend the night with a sick person at
the Minister of Culture's estate, either, but that didn't mean the Minister
himself was in need of healing. The greatest danger to the Minister was from a
jealous husband, and that was highly unlikely; husbands tended to earn favor
through their wives' trysts with high officials. Raising objections was
unhealthy.
Once
Bertrand was Sovereign, the possibility of injured feelings would no longer be
a concern. It was a great honor for a woman to be with the Sovereign-it
approached being a holy experience. Such divine couplings were widely believed
to be blessed by the Creator Himself.
Any
husband would push his wife into the Sovereign's bed, were she solicited. The
prestige of this privilege conveyed along with the holiness a peripheral
effect; the husband was the principal beneficiary of this collateral sanctity.
Where the holy recipient of the Sovereign's carnal notice was young enough, the
blessings embraced her parents.
Dalton
returned to the previous message and read it again. The Sovereign's wife hadn't
been seen in days. She failed to show up for an official visit to an orphanage.
Perhaps she was the one who was sick.
Or, she
might be at her husband's bedside.
Waiting
for the old Sovereign to die was like walking a tightrope. The wait brought
sweat to the brow, and quickened the pulse. The expectation was delicious, all
the more so because the Sovereign's death was the one event Dalton couldn't control.
The man was too heavily guarded to risk helping him to the afterlife,
especially when he only hung to life by a thread anyway.
All he
could do was wait. But everything had to be carefully managed in the meantime.
They had to be ready when the opportunity came.
Dalton
went to the next message, but it concerned nothing more than a man who had a
complaint against a woman for supposedly casting spells to afflict him with
gout. The man had been-publicly-trying to enlist Hildemara Chanboor's
431
help,
since she was universally recognized for her purity and good deeds, by having
sex with him in order to drive out the evil spell.
Dalton
let out a brief chuckle at his mental image of the coupling; the man was
obviously deranged, besides having no taste in women. Dalton wrote down the
man's name to give to the guards and then sighed at the nonsense that took up
his time.
The
knock came again. "Yes?"
Rowley
again stuck in his head. "Master Campbell, I told the butcher, Inger, as
you said. He says it isn't about kitchen matters." Rowley lowered his
voice to a whisper. "Says it's about trouble at the estate, and he wants
to talk to you about it, but if you won't see him, he says, he'll have to go to
the Directors' office, instead."
Dalton
opened a drawer and swept the messages into it. He turned over several reports
that sat on his desk before he rose.
"Send
the man in."
Inger,
a muscular Ander, perhaps a decade older than Dalton, entered with a bob of his
head.
'Thank
you for seeing me, Master Campbell." "Of course. Please come
in."
The man
dry-washed his hands as he bobbed his head again. He looked surprisingly clean,
compared with what Dalton expected of a butcher. He looked more like a
merchant. Dalton realized that to supply the estate the man probably had a
sizable operation, and so would be more like a merchant than a laborer.
Dalton
held out a hand in invitation. "Please, have a seat, Master Inger."
Inger's
eyes darted about the room, taking it all in. He did everything but let out a
low whistle. A small merchant, Dalton amended to himself.
"Thank
you, Master Campbell." The burly man clamped a meaty hand on the chair
back and flicked it closer to the desk. "Just plain Inger is fine. Used to
it being Inger." His
432
lips
twitched with a smile. "Only my old teacher used to call me Master Inger,
and that was just before I'd get my knuckles rapped. Usually when I neglected a
reading lesson. I never got my knuckles rapped for numbers lessons. I liked
numbers. Good thing, as it turns out. Numbers help with my business."
"Yes,
I can see where they would," Dalton said.
Inger
looked off at the battle flags and lances as he went on. "I have a good
business, now. The Minister's estate is my biggest customer. Numbers are
necessary for a business. Got to know numbers. I have a lot of good people
working for me. I make them all learn numbers so I don't get shorted when they
deliver."
"Well,
the estate is quite pleased with your services, I can assure you. The feasts
wouldn't be the success they are without your valuable help. Your pride in your
business is obvious in your fine meats and fowl."
The man
grinned as if he'd just been kissed by a pretty girl in a booth at a fair.
"Thank you, Master Campbell. That's very kind of you. You're right about
me taking pride in my work. Most people aren't as kind as you to notice. You
are as good a man as folks say."
"I
try my best to help people. I am but their humble servant." Dalton smiled
agreeably. "Is there some way I can help you, Inger? Something I could
smooth out at the estate to make your job easier?"
Inger
scooted his chair closer. He placed an elbow on the desk and leaned in. His arm
was as big as a small rum cask. His timid mannerisms seemed to evaporate as his
thick brow drew down.
"The
thing is, Master Campbell, I don't take any guff from the people who work for
me. I spend time teaching them my ways with cutting and preparing meat, and
teaching them numbers and such. I don't put up with people who don't do their
work and take pride in it. Cornerstone of a successful business, I always say,
is the customer being satisfied. Those who work for me who don't toe the line
my
433
way see
the back of my hand or the door. Some say I'm harsh about it, but that's just
the way I am. Can't change at this age."
"Sounds
a fair enough attitude to me."
"But
on the other hand," Inger went on, "I value those who work for me.
They do good by me, and I do good by them. I know how some people treat their
workers, especially their Haken workers, but I don't go in for that. People
treat me right, I treat them right. It's only fair.
"That
being the way things are, you come to be friends with people who live and work
with you. Know what I mean? Over the years they come to be almost like family.
You care about them. It's only natural-if you have any sense."
"I
can see how-"
"Some
of them that work for me are the children of people who went before them and
helped me become the respected butcher I am." The man leaned in some more.
"I got two sons and they're good enough lads, but I sometimes think I care
about some of those who live and work with me more than I care about those two
boys.
"One
of them who works for me is a nice Haken girl named Beata."
Alarm
bells started chiming in Dalton's head. He remembered the Haken girl Bertrand
and Stein had summoned upstairs for their amusement.
"Beata.
Can't say as the name rings a bell, Inger."
"No
reason it should. Her business is with the kitchen. Among other things, she
delivers for me. I trust her like she were a daughter. She's smart with
numbers. She remembers what I tell her. That's important because Hakens can't
read, so I can't give them a list. It's important they remember. I never have
to load for her; after I tell her what's to go she gets it right. I never have
to worry about her getting orders wrong or being short."
"I
can see-"
"So,
all of a sudden, she doesn't want to deliver to the estate." . .
434
Dalton
watched the man's fist tighten.
"We
had a load to bring over today. An important load for a feast. I told her to go
get Brownie hitched to the cart because I had a load for her to take to the
estate.
"She
said no." Inger's fist smacked the desktop. "No!"
The
butcher sat back a little and righted an unlit candle that had taken flight.
"I
don't take well to people I employ telling me no. But Beata, well, she's like a
daughter. So, instead of giving her the back of my hand, I thought to reason
with her. I figured maybe it was some boy she didn't like anymore she didn't
want to see, or something like that. I don't always understand the things a
girl can get in her head to make them go all moody.
"I
sat her down and asked her why she didn't want to take the load to the estate.
She said she just didn't. I said that wasn't good enough. She said she'd do
double loads to somewhere else. She said she'd dress fowl all night as
punishment, but she wouldn't go to the estate.
"I
asked her why she didn't want to go, if it was because someone there did
something to her. She refused to tell me. Refused! She said she wasn't going to
take any more loads there and that was all there was to it.
"I
told her that unless she told me why, so I could understand it, she was going
to take the load out to the estate whether she wanted to or not.
"She
started to cry."
Inger
was making a fist again.
"Now,
I've known Beata since she was sucking her thumb. I don't think that in the
last dozen years I've ever seen that girl cry but once before. I've seen her
slice herself open good when she was butchering, and she never cried, even when
I stitched her. Made some real faces in pain, but she didn't cry. When her
mother died, she cried. But that was the only time.
"Until
I told her today she had to go to the estate.
"So,
I brought the load myself. Now, Master Campbell, I don't know what went on
here, but I can tell you that
435
whatever
it was, it made Beata cry, and that tells me it wasn't nothing good. She always
liked going before. She spoke highly of the Minister as a man she respected for
all he'd done for Anderith. She was proud to deliver to the estate.
"No
longer.
"Knowing
Beata, I'd say someone here had their way with her. Knowing Beata, I'd say she
weren't willing. Not willing at all.
"Like
I said, I almost think of that girl as my daughter."
Dalton
didn't take his eyes off the man. "She's Haken."
"So
she is." Inger didn't take his eyes off Dalton.
"Now,
Master Campbell, I want the young man who hurt Beata. I intend to hang that
young man up on a meat hook. From the way Beata was bawling, I have a feeling
it wasn't just one young man, but maybe more. Maybe a gang of boys hurt her.
"I
know you're a busy man, what with the murder of that Winthrop woman, rest her
soul, but I'd appreciate it if you looked into this for me. I don't intend to
let it go by."
Dalton
leaned forward and folded his hands on the table.
"Inger,
I can assure you I won't tolerate such a thing happening at the estate. I
consider this a very serious matter. The Minister of Culture's office is here
to serve the people of Anderith. It would be the worst possible result if one
or more men here harmed a young woman."
"Not
if," Inger said. "Did."
"Of
course. You have my personal assurance that I, personally, will pursue this to
resolution. I'll not stand for anyone, Ander or Haken, being in any kind of
danger at the estate. Everyone must be entirely safe here. I'll not allow
anyone, Ander or Haken, to escape justice.
"You
must understand, however, that with the murder of an important woman, and the
possible danger to the lives of other people, including Haken women, my first
responsibility lies there. The city is in a tumult over it. People expect such
a grievous act to be punished."
Inger bowed
his head. "I understand. I will accept your
436
personal
assurance that I will have the name of the young man or men responsible."
The chair scraped across the floor as Inger rose. "Or the not-so-young
man."
Dalton
stood. "Young or old, we will put all due effort into finding the culprit.
You have my word."
Inger
reached out and clasped hands with Dalton. The man had a crushing grip.
"I'm
pleased to know I came to the right man, Master Campbell."
"You
did indeed."
"Yes?"
Dalton called out at the knock on the door. He expected he knew who it was and
kept writing instructions for the new guards he was ordering posted at the
estate. Guards at the estate were separate from the army. They were Anders. He
wouldn't trust authentic guard duty to the army.
"Master
Campbell?"
He
looked up. "Come in, Fitch."
The boy
strode in and stood erect before the desk. He seemed to be standing taller
since he had put on the uniform and even more so since the business with
Claudine. Dalton was pleased with the way Fitch and his muscular friend had
followed instructions. Some of the others had given Dalton a confidential
report.
Dalton
set down the glass dipping pen. "Fitch, do you remember the first time we
talked?"
The
question staggered the boy a bit. "Yes... uh, yes, sir," he
stammered. "I remember."
"Up
the hall a ways. Near the landing."
"Yes,
sir, Master Campbell. I surely was grateful for you not-I mean, for the kind
way you treated me."
"For
me not reporting you were somewhere you didn't belong."
"Yes,
sir." He licked his lips. "That was very good of you, Master
Campbell."
437
Dalton
stroked a finger along his temple. "I recall you told me that day how the
Minister was a good man and you wouldn't like to hear anyone say anything
against him."
"Yes,
sir, that's true."
"And
you proved yourself as good as your word-proved you would do whatever needed
doing to protect him." Dalton smiled just a little. "Do you remember
what else I told you that day on the landing?"
Fitch
cleared his throat. "You mean about me someday earning my sir name?"
"That's
right. So far, you are living up to what I expected. Now, do you remember what
else happened that day on the landing?"
Dalton
knew without a doubt the boy remembered. It wouldn't be something he would soon
forget. Fitch fidgeted as he tried to think of a way to say it without saying
it.
"Well,
sir, I... I mean, there was ..."
"Fitch,
you do recall that young lady smacking you?"
Fitch
cleared his throat. "Yes, sir, I remember that."
"And
you know her?"
"Her
name is Beata. She works for the butcher, Inger. She's in my penance
assembly."
"And
you must have seen what she was doing up there? The Minister saw you. Stein saw
you. You must have seen them with her?"
"It
wasn't the Minister's fault, sir. She was getting what she'd asked for. Nothing
more. She was always fawning over him, talking about how handsome he was,
talking about how wonderful he was. She was always sighing aloud whenever she
mentioned his name. Knowing her, she asked for what she got. Sir."
Dalton
smiled to himself. "You liked her, didn't you, Fitch?"
"Well,
sir, I don't know. It's kind of hard to like a person who hates you. Kind of
wears you down, after a time."
Dalton
could plainly see the boy's feelings for the girl. It was written all over his
face, even if he denied it.
"Well
the thing is, Fitch, this girl might of a sudden be
438
interested
in causing trouble. Sometimes girls get that way, later. You will someday come
to learn that. Be careful of doing what they ask, because they will sometimes
later want to make it seem they never asked at all."
The boy
looked bewildered! "I never knew such a thing, sir. Thank you for the
advice."
"Well,
as you said, she got no more than she asked for. There was no force involved.
Now, though, she might be having second thoughts, and be looking to cry rape.
Much the same as Claudine Winthrop. Women who are with important men sometimes
do that, later, to try to get something. They get greedy."
"Master
Campbell, I'm sure she wouldn't-"
"Inger
paid me a visit a little earlier."
Fitch
lost a little color. "She told Inger?"
"No.
She told him only that she refused to deliver here to the estate. But Inger is
a smart man. He figures he knows the reason. He wants what he figures to be
justice. If he forces this girl, Beata, to charge a man, the Minister could be
unjustly subjected to ugly accusations."
Dalton
stood. "You know this girl. It may be necessary for you to handle her in
the same way you dealt with Claudine Winthrop. She knows you. She would let you
get close to her."
Fitch
lost the rest of his color. "Master Campbell... sir, I..."
"You
what, Fitch? You have lost your interest in earning a sir name? You have lost
your interest in your new work as a messenger? You have lost your interest in
your new uniform?"
"No
sir, it's not that."
"Then
what is it, Fitch?"
"Nothing,
sir. I guess ... like I said, anything that happened is no more than what she
asked for. I can see that it wouldn't be right for her to be accusing the
Minister of something wrong when he didn't do nothing wrong."
"No
more than it was right for Claudine to do the same."
Fitch
swallowed. "No, sir. No more right than that."
439
Dalton
returned to his chair. "I'm glad we understand each other. I'll call you
if she becomes a problem. Hopefully, that won't be necessary.
"Who
knows, perhaps she will think better of such hateful accusations. Perhaps
someone will talk some sense into her before it becomes necessary to protect
the Minister from her wrongful charges. Perhaps she will even decide that
butchering work is not for her, and she will go off to work on a farm, or
something."
Dalton
idly sucked on the end of the pen as he watched Fitch pull the door closed
behind himself. He thought it would be interesting to see how the boy handled
it. If he didn't, then Rowley surely would.
But if
Fitch handled it, then all the pieces would fall together into a masterful
mosaic.
CHAPTER
40
MASTER
SPINK'S BOOTS THUNKED on the plank floor as he strode among the benches, hands
clasped behind his back. People were still sobbing about the Ander women.
Sobbing about what was done to them by the Haken army. Fitch thought he'd known
what the lesson was going to be, but he was wrong. It was more horrible than he
could have imagined.
He
could feel his face glowing as red as his hair. Master
440
Spink
had filled in a lot of the sketchy parts of Fitch's understanding of the act of
sex. It had not been the pleasurable learning experience he had always
anticipated. What he had always viewed with longing was now turned to
repugnance by the stories of those Ander women.
It was
made all the worse by the fact that there was a woman to each side of him on
the bench. Knowing what the lesson was going to be, all the women had tried to
sit together to one side of the room and all the men had tried to sit on the
other side. Master Spink never much cared where they sat.
But
when they'd filed in, Master Spink made them sit where he told them. Man,
woman, man, woman. He knew everyone in the penance assembly, and knew where
they lived and worked. He made them sit all mixed up, next to people from
somewhere else, so they wouldn't know the person next to them so well.
He did
that to make it more embarrassing for them when he told the stories of each
woman and what was done to her. He described the acts in detail. There wasn't a
lot of sobbing for most of it. People were too shocked by what they heard to
cry, and too embarrassed to want to call attention to themselves.
Fitch,
for one, had never heard such things about a man and a woman, and he'd heard a
lot of things from some of the other scullions and messengers. Of course, the
men were Haken overlords, and naturally they weren't at all kind or gentle.
They meant to hurt the Ander women. To humiliate them. That was how hateful the
Hakens were.
"No
doubt you all are thinking," Master Spink went on, " 'that was so
long ago. That was ages ago. That was the Haken overlords. We are better than
that, now,' you are thinking."
Master
Spink's boots stopped in front of Fitch. "Is that what you are thinking,
Fitch? Is that what you are thinking in your fine uniform? Are' you thinking
you are better than the Haken overlords? That the Hakens have learned to be
better?"
441
"No,
sir," Fitch said. "We are no better, sir."
Master
Spink grunted and then moved on. "Do any of you think the Hakens nowadays
are outgrowing their hateful ways? Do you think you are better people than in
the past?"
Fitch
stole a glance to each side. About half the people tentatively raised their
hands.
Master
Spink exploded in rage. "So! You think Hakens are nowadays better? You
arrogant people think you are better?"
The
hands all quickly dropped back into laps.
"You
are no better! Your hateful ways continue to this day!"
His
boots started their slow thump, thump, thump as he walked among the silent
assembly.
"You
are no better," he repeated, but this time in a quiet voice. "You are
the same."
Fitch
didn't recall the man's voice ever sounding so defeated. He sounded as if he
was about to cry himself.
"Claudine
Winthrop was a most respected and renowned woman. While she was alive, she
worked for all people, Hakens as well as Anders. One of her last works was to
help change outdated laws so starving people, mostly Hakens, were able to find
work.
"Before
she died, she came to know that you are no different than those Haken
overlords, that you are the same."
His
boots thumped on across the room.
"Claudine
Winthrop shared something with those women of long ago-those women I've taught
you about today. She 'shared the same fate."
Fitch
was frowning to himself. He knew Claudine didn't share the same fate. She died
quick.
"Just
like those women, Claudine Winthrop was raped by a gang of Hakens."
Fitch
looked up, his frown growing. As soon as he realized he was frowning, he
changed the expression on his face. Fortunately, Master Spink was on the other
side of the room, looking into the eyes of Haken boys over there, and didn't
see Fitch's startled reaction.
442
"We
can only guess how many hours poor Claudine Winthrop had to endure the
laughing, taunting, jeering men who raped her. We can only guess at the number
of cruel heartless Hakens who put her through such an ordeal out there, in that
field but, by the way the wheat was trampled, the authorities say it must have
been between thirty and forty men."
The
class gasped in horror. Fitch gasped, too. There hadn't been half that number.
He wanted to stand up and say it was wrong, that they didn't do such vile
things to Claudine, and that she'd deserved killing for wanting to harm the
Minister and future Sovereign and that it was his duty. Fitch wanted to say
they'd done a good thing for .the Minister and for Anderith. Instead, he hung
his head.
"But
it wasn't thirty to forty men," Master Spink said. He pointed his finger
out at the room, sweeping it slowly from one side to the other. "It was
all of you. All you Hakens raped and murdered her. Because of the hate you
still harbor in your hearts, you all took part in that rape and murder."
He
turned his back to the room. "Now, get out of here. I've had all I can
stand of your hate-filled Haken eyes for one day. I can endure your crimes no
longer. Go. Go, until next assembly and think on how you might be better
people."
Fitch
bolted for the door. He didn't want to miss her. He didn't want her to get out
into the street. He lost track of her in the shuffle of others hurrying to get
out, but he did manage to squeeze to near the head of the line.
Once
out in the cool night air, Fitch moved off to the side. He checked those who'd
left before him and rushed out to the street, but he didn't see her. He waited
in the shadows and watched the rest of the' people coming out.
When he
saw her, he called her name in a loud whisper.
Beata
halted and looked over. She peered into the shadows trying to tell who it was
calling her name. People pushed past to get down the path, so she stepped off
it, closer to him.
She no
longer wore the dusky blue dress he liked so well,
443
the
dress she had worn that day she went up to meet the Minister. She now had a
wheat-colored dress with a dark brown bodice above the long flare of skirt.
"Beata,
I have to talk to you."
"Fitch?"
She put her hands on her hips. "Fitch, is that you?"
"Yes,"
he whispered.
She
turned to leave. He snatched her wrist and yanked her into the shadows. The
last of the people hurried off down the path, eager to go home and not
interested in two young people meeting after assembly. Beata tried to wrench
her arm free, but he kept a grip on it as he dragged her farther into the black
shadows of the trees and bushes to the side of the assembly hall.
"Let
go! Let go, Fitch, or I'll scream."
"I
have to talk to you," he whispered urgently. "Come along!"
She
instead fought him. He dragged and pulled until he at last reached a place
deeper in the brush where they wouldn't be seen. If they were quiet, no one
would hear them, either. Moonlight fell across them in the gap of brush and
trees.
"Fitch!
I'll not have your filthy Haken hands on me!"
He
turned to her as he let go of her wrist. Immediately, her other arm came around
to strike him. He'd been expecting it and caught her wrist. She slapped him
hard with her other hand.
He
slapped her right back. He hadn't hit her very hard at all, but the shock of it
stunned her. A Haken man striking anyone was a crime. But he hadn't hit her
hard at all. It wasn't his intent to hurt her, only to surprise her and make
her pay attention.
"You
have to listen to me," he growled. "You're in trouble."
In the
moonlight he could clearly see her glower. "You're the one in trouble. I'm
going to tell Inger you dragged me in the bushes, struck me, and then-"
444
"You've
already told Inger enough!"
She was
silent a moment. "I don't know what are you talking about. I'm leaving.
I'll not stand here and have you strike me again, now that you've proven your
hateful Haken ways with women."
"You're
going to listen to me if I have to throw you on the ground and sit on
you."
"You
just try it, you skinny little eel."
Fitch
pressed his lips tight as he tried to ignore the sting of the insult.
"Beata,
please? Please just listen to me? I have important things I need to tell
you."
"Important?
Important to you, maybe, but not important to me! I don't want to hear anything
you have to say. I know what you're like. I know how you enjoy-"
"Do
you want to see the people working for Inger get hurt? Do you want Inger to get
hurt? This has got nothing to do with me. I don't know why you think so low of
me, but I'll not try to talk you out of it. This is only about you."
Beata
folded her arms with a huff. She considered for a moment. He glanced to the
side and checked through a gap in the brush to make sure no one on the street
was watching. Beata smoothed her hair back above an ear.
"As
long as you don't try to tell me what a fine young man you are in your fancy
uniform, like those overlord beasts, then talk. But be quick about it. Inger
has work for me."
Fitch
wet his lips. "Inger went to the estate with the load today. He went
because you refused to deliver to the estate anymore-"
"How
do you know that?"
"I
hear things."
"And
how did-"
"You
going to listen? You're in a lot of trouble and a lot of danger."
She put
her fists on her hips but remained silent, so he went on. "Inger figures
you got taken advantage of at the
445
estate.
He came and demanded something be done. He's demanding the name of the ones
responsible for hurting you."
She
appraised him in the moonlight.
"How
do you know this?"
"I
told you, I hear things."
"I
didn't tell Inger any of that."
"Don't
matter. He figured it out on his own or something-I don't know-but the
important thing is he cares about you and he's hot for something to be done.
He's got this idea in his heat! that he wants justice done. He's not going to
let it go. He's set on causing trouble over it."
She
sighed irritably. "I should never have refused to go. I should just have
done it-no matter what might have happened again to me."
"I
don't blame you, Beata. If I was you, I might've of done the same."
She
eyed him suspiciously. "I want to know who told you all this."
"I'm
a messenger, now, and I'm around important people. Important people talk about
what's going on around the estate. I hear what they say, that's all, and I
heard about this. The thing is, if you were to say what happened, people would
see it as you were trying to hurt the Minister."
"Oh,
come on, Fitch, I'm just a Haken girl. How could I hurt the Minister?"
"You
told me yourself that people are saying he'll be the Sovereign. Have you ever
heard anyone say anything against the Sovereign? Well, the Minister is almost
to be named Sovereign.
"How
do you think people will take it if you had your say about what happened? Do
you think they'd believe you're a good girl telling the truth and the Minister
was lying if he denies it? Anders don't lie, that's what we're taught. If you
say anything against the Minister, you'll be the one marked a liar. Worse, a
liar trying to do harm to the Minister of Culture."
446
She
seemed to consider what he said as if it were an unsolvable riddle.
"Well...
I'm not going to, but if I did say anything, the Minister would admit what I
said was the truth-because it would be. Anders don't lie. Only Hakens are
corrupt of nature. If he said anything about it, he would admit the
truth."
Fitch
sighed in frustration. He knew Anders were better than them, and that Hakens
had the taint of an evil nature, but he was beginning to believe the Anders
weren't all pure and perfect.
"Look,
Beata, I know what we've learned, but it isn't always exactly true. Some of the
things they teach don't make sense. It isn't all true."
"It's
all true," she said flatly.
"You
may think so, but it isn't."
"Really?
I think you just don't want to admit to yourself how disgusting Haken men are.
You just wish you didn't have such a depraved soul. You wish it wasn't true
what Haken men did to those women long ago, and what Haken men did to Claudine
Winthrop."
Fitch
swiped his hair back from his forehead. "Beata, think about it. How could
Master Spink know what was done to each of those women?"
"From
books, you dolt. In case you've forgotten, Anders can read. The estate is full
of books that-"
"And
you think those men who were raping all those women stopped to keep records?
You think they asked the women their names and all and then wrote it all down
just right so there would be books listing everything they did?"
"Yes.
That's exactly what they did. Just like all Haken men, they liked what they did
to those women. They wrote it down. It's known. It's in books."
"And
what about Claudine Winthrop? You tell me where the book is what tells about
her being raped by the men who killed her."
"Well,
she was. It's obvious. Hakens did it, and that's what Haken men do. You ought
to know what Haken men are like, you little-"
447
"Claudine
Winthrop made an accusation against the Minister. She was always yearning over
him and acting interested in him. Then, after she caught his eye and she
willingly gave herself to him, she decided to change her mind. She started
saying he forced himself on her against her will. Just like what really
happened to you. Then, after she started telling people such vicious lies that
he raped her, she ended up dead."
Beata
fell silent. Fitch knew Claudine was only trying to make trouble for the
Minister-Dalton Campbell told him so. What happened to Beata, on the other
hand, wasn't willing, but even so, Beata wasn't trying to make trouble over it.
Crickets
chirred on as she stood in the darkness staring at him. Fitch glanced around
again to make sure no one was close. He could see through the brush that people
were strolling along the street. No one was paying any attention to the dark
bushes where the two of them were.
Finally
she spoke, but her voice didn't have the heat in it anymore. "Inger
doesn't know anything, and I've no intention of telling him."
"It's
too late for that. He already went to the estate and got people stirred up that
you was raped there. Got important people stirred up. He made demands. He wants
justice. Inger is going to make you tell who hurt you." "He
can't."
"He's
Ander. You're Haken. He can. Even if he changed his mind and didn't, because of
the hornets' nest he swatted, the people at the estate might decide to haul you
before the Magistrate and have him put an order on you to name the
person."
"I'll
just deny it all." She hesitated. "They couldn't make me tell."
"No?
Well it would sure make you a criminal, if you refused to tell them what
happened. They think it's Haken men who did it and so they want the names.
Inger is an Ander and he said it happened. If you didn't tell them what they
ask they'd likely put you in chains until you changed
448
your
mind. Even if they didn't, at the least, you'd lose your work. You'd be an
outcast.
"You
said you wanted to join the army, someday-that it's your dream. Criminals can't
join the army. That dream would be gone. You'd be a beggar."
"I'd
find work. I work hard."
"You're
Haken. Refusing to cooperate with a Magistrate would get you named a criminal.
No one would hire you. You'd end up a prostitute."
"I
would not!"
"Yes
you would. When you got hungry and cold enough, you would. You'd have to sell
yourself to men. Old men. Master Campbell told me the prostitutes get horrible
diseases and die. You'd die like that, from being with old men who-"
"I
would not! Fitch, I wouldn't. I wouldn't."
"Then
how you going to live? If you get named a Haken criminal for refusing to answer
a magistrate's questions, how you going to live?
"And
if you did tell, who would believe you? You'd be called a liar and that would
make you a criminal for lying about an Ander official. That's a crime, too, you
know- lying about Ander officials by making false accusations."
She
searched his eyes for a moment. "But it's not false. You could vouch for
the truth of what I say.
"You
said you wanted to be the Seeker of Truth, remember? That's your dream. My
dream is joining the army, and yours is being a Seeker of Truth. As someone who
wants to be a Seeker, you'd have to stand up and say it was true."
"See?
You said you'd never tell, and now you're already talking about telling."
"But
you could stand up with me and tell the truth of it."
"I'm
a Haken. You think they're going to believe two Hakens against the Minister of
Culture himself? Are you crazy?
"Beata,
no one believed Claudine Winthrop, and she was Ander and she was important
besides. She made the accusation to try to hurt the Minister, and now she's dead."
"But,
if it's the truth-"
449
"And,
what's the truth, Beata? That you told me about what a great man the Minister
was? That you told me how handsome you thought he is? That you looked up at his
window and sighed and called him Bertrand? That you was all twinkly-eyed as you
was invited up to meet the Minister? That Dalton Campbell had to hold your
elbow to keep you from floating away with delight at the invitation to meet the
Minister just so he could tell you to relay his message that he liked Inger's
meats?
"I
only know you and he ... Maybe you got demanding, after. Women sometimes later
get that way, from what I hear: demanding. After they act willing, then they
sometimes make accusations in order to get something for themselves. That's what
people say.
"For
all I know, maybe you was so thrilled to meet him you hiked up your skirts to
show him you was willing, and asked him if he'd like to have you. You never
said anything to me. All I got from you was a slap-maybe for seeing you was having
yourself a good time with the Minister when you was supposed to be working. For
as much as I know about it, that could be the truth."
Beata's
chin trembled as she tried to blink the tears from her eyes. She dropped to the
ground, sat back on her heels, and started crying into her hands.
Fitch
stood for a minute dumbly wondering what he should do. He finally knelt down in
front of her. He was frightfully worried at seeing her cry. He'd known her a
long time, and he'd never even heard stories of her crying, like other girls.
Now she was bawling like a baby.
Fitch
reached out to put a comforting hand on her shoulder. She shrugged the hand
away.
Since
she wasn't interested in being comforted, he just sat there, on his own heels,
and didn't say anything. He thought briefly about going off and leaving her
alone to her crying, but he figured maybe he should at least be there if she
wanted something.
"Fitch,"
she said between sobs, tears streaming down her cheeks, "what am I going
to do? I'm so ashamed. I've made
450
such a
mess of it. It was all my fault-I tempted a good Ander man with my vile, wanton
Haken nature. I didn't mean to, I didn't think I was, but that's what I did.
What he did is all my fault.
"But
I can't lie and say I was willing when I wasn't- not even a little. I tried to
fight them off, but they were too strong. I'm so ashamed. What am I going to
do?"
Fitch
swallowed at the lump in his throat. He didn't want to say it, but for her sake
he had to tell her. If he didn't, she was liable to end up like Claudine
Winthrop-and he might be the one who would be called on to do it. Then
everything would be ruined because he knew he couldn't do that. He'd be back in
the kitchen, scrubbing pots-at best. But he'd do that before he'd hurt Beata.
Fitch
took her hand and gently opened it. He reached in his coat pocket. In her palm
he placed the pin with a spiral end. The pin Beata used to close the collar of
her dress. The pin she had lost up on the third floor that day.
"Well,
as I figure it, you're in a pack of trouble, Beata. I don't see as there's any
way out of it but one."
CHAPTER
41
TERESA
SMILED. "YES, PLEASE."
Dalton
lifted two dilled veal balls from the platter held out by the squire. The Haken
boy genuflected, spun with a light step, and glided past. Dalton set the meat
on the
451
charger
he shared with Teresa as she nibbled on her favorite of suckling rabbit.
Dalton
was tired and bored with the lengthy feast. He had work of importance that
needed tending. Certainly his first responsibility was tending the Minister,
but that goal would be better served handling matters behind the curtain of
governance than on stage nodding and laughing at the Minister's witticisms.
Bertrand
was waving a sausage as he told a joke to several wealthy merchants at the far
end of the head table. By the merchants' guttural laughter, and the way
Bertrand wielded the sausage, Dalton knew what sort of joke it was. Stein
particularly enjoyed the bawdy story.
As soon
as the laughter died down, Bertrand graciously apologized to his wife and asked
that she forgive his joke. She let out a titter and dismissed it with an airy
wave of a hand, adding that he was incorrigible. The merchants chuckled at her
good-natured indulgence of her husband.
Teresa
gently elbowed Dalton and whispered, "What was that joke the Minister
told? I couldn't hear it."
"You
should thank the Creator he didn't bless you with better hearing. It was one of
Bertrand's jokes, if you follow."
"Well,"
she said with a grin, "will you tell me when we get home?"
Dalton
smiled. "When we get home, Tess, I'll demonstrate it."
She let
out a throaty laugh. Dalton picked up one of the veal balls and dragged it
through a wine-and-ginger sauce. He let her have a bite and lick some of the
sauce off his finger before putting the rest in his mouth.
As he
chewed, he turned his attention to three of the Directors across the room
engaged in what looked to be a serious conversation. They gestured expansively
while leaning in, frowning, shaking their heads, and holding up fingers to make
their point. Dalton knew what the conversation concerned. Nearly every
conversation around the room involved
452
a
similar topic: the murder of Claudine Winthrop.
The
Minister, wearing a purple-and-rust-striped close-fitting sleeveless jerkin
over a golden-wheat-patterned sleeved doublet, draped his arm over Dalton's
shoulders as he leaned close. The white raffs at the Minister's wrist were
stained with red wine, making him look as if he were bleeding from under the
tight sleeve.
"Everyone
is still quite upset over Claudine's murder," said Bertrand.
"And
rightly so." Dalton dipped a mutton cube in mint jelly. "It was a
terrible tragedy."
"Yes,
it has made us all realize how frail is the grip we have on the ideals of
civilized behavior we so cherish. It has shown us how much work yet lies before
us in order to bring Hakens and Anders together in a peaceful society."
"With
your wise leadership," Teresa said with genuine enthusiasm as Dalton ate
the mutton cube, "we will succeed."
"Thank
you for your support, my dear." Bertrand leaned just a little closer to
Dalton, lowering his voice a bit, too. "I hear the Sovereign might be
ill."
"Really?"
Dalton sucked the mint jelly off his finger. "Is it serious?"
Bertrand
shook his head in mock sorrow. "We've had no word."
"We
will pray for him," Teresa put in as she selected a slender slice of
peppered beef. "And for poor Edwin Winthrop."
Bertrand
smiled. "You are a most thoughtful and kind-hearted woman, Teresa."
He stared at her bodice, as if to see her kind heart beating there, behind her
exposed cleavage. "If I am ever stricken ill, I could ask for no more
noble a woman than you to pray to the Creator on my behalf. Surely, His own
heart would melt at your tender beseeching words."
Teresa
beamed. Hildemara, nibbling on a slice of pear, asked her husband a question
and he turned back to her.
453
Stein
leaned in to converse with them about something. They all pulled back when a
squire brought a platter of crisped beef.
As
Stein took a handful of the crisped beef, Dalton glanced again at the
Directors, still engaged in their discussion. He scanned the table opposite
them and caught the eye of Franca Gowenlock. The woman's face told him that she
was unable to detect any of it. Dalton didn't know what was wrong with her
powers, but it was becoming a serious impediment.
A
squire held a silver platter toward the Minister. He took several slices of
pork. Another came with lamb in lentil, which Hildemara favored. A steward
poured more wine for the head table before moving on. The Minister enfolded a
husband's arm around Hildemara's shoulder and spoke to her in a whisper.
A
server entered carrying a large basket piled high with small loaves of brown
bread. He took it to the serving board to be transferred onto silver trays.
From a distance, Dalton couldn't tell if there was any problem with the bread.
A large quantity of it had been declared unfit for the feast and had been
consigned for donation to the poor. Leftover food from feasts, usually great
quantities of it, was distributed to the poor.
Master
Drummond had had some sort of trouble down in the kitchen earlier in the day
with the baking of the bread. Something to do with the ovens going
"crazy," as the man described it, A woman was badly burned before she
could be doused. Dalton had more important things to worry about than baking
bread, and hadn't inquired further.
"Dalton,"
the Minister said, returning his attention to his aide, "have you managed
to prove out any evidence about the murder of poor Claudine Winthrop?"
On the
other side of the Minister, Hildemara looked keenly interested in hearing
Dalton's answer.
"I've
been looking into several promising areas," Dalton said without committing
himself. "I hope to soon reach a conclusion to the investigation."
454
As
always, they had to be circumspect when they spoke at feasts, lest words they
would not want repeated be carried to listening ears. Gifted listeners other
than Franca might be present and having no trouble with their ability. Dalton,
to say nothing of Bertrand and his wife, didn't doubt that the Directors might
be using the gifted.
"Well,
the thing is," Bertrand said, "Hildemara tells me some people are
getting quite concerned that we aren't taking the matter seriously
enough."
\x95\xA0\xA0 Dalton began to offer evidence to the
contrary, when Bertrand held up a hand and went on.
"Of
course this isn't true at all. I know for a fact how hard you've been working
on apprehending the criminals."
"Day
and night," Teresa said. "I can assure you, Minister Chanboor, Dalton
is hardly getting any sleep of late, what with how hard he has been working
since poor Claudine's murder."
"Oh
I know," Hildemara said as she leaned past her husband to pat Dalton's
wrist in a show for Teresa and any watching eyes. "I know how hard Dalton
has been working. Everyone appreciates all he is doing. We know of the great
number of people he has brought in to be interviewed for information.
"It's
just that some people are beginning to question if all the effort is ever going
to produce the guilty party. People fear the killers still among them and are
eager to settle the matter."
"That's
right," Bertrand said, "and we, more than anyone, want the murder
solved so as to have the peace of mind that our people can rest safely
again."
"Yes,"
Hildemara said, with a cold glint in her eye. "It must be solved."
There
was no mistaking the icy command in her tone. Dalton didn't know if Hildemara
had told Bertrand what she had ordered be done with Claudine, but it wouldn't
really matter to him. He was finished with the woman and had moved on to
others. He wouldn't mind at all if she cleaned up his mess behind him and
silenced any potential trouble.
455
Dalton
had been expecting that the Minister and his wife might grow weary of the
people complaining, before the people grew weary of talking about the murder of
a prominent woman from the estate. As a precaution, he already had laid plans;
it looked as if he was to be forced into them.
His
first choice would be to wait, for he knew the talk would soon die down and the
whole matter would be forgotten, or at most people would occasionally click
their tongues in passing sorrow and perhaps even titillation. But Bertrand
liked to be seen as competent in his office. The toll on others was only a
minor consideration to him. To Hildemara, it was irrelevant. Their impatience,
however, was dangerous.
"I,
as much as anyone, want the killers found," Dalton said. "However, as
a man of the law, I am bound by my oath of office to be sure we find the true
killers, and not simply accuse someone falsely just to see someone punished.
"I
know you have sternly given me this very caution in the past," Dalton lied
for any listening ears.
When he
saw Hildemara about to object to any delay, Dalton added in a low, suddenly
ill-humored tone, "Not only would it be wrong to be so hasty as to falsely
accuse innocent men, but were we to rashly charge men with the crime, and after
the sentence it turned out the Mother Confessor wished to take their
confessions, and she found we had sentenced innocent men, our incompetence
would be rightly denounced not only by the Mother Confessor, but the Sovereign
and the Directors as well."
He
wanted to make sure they fully grasped the risks involved.
"Worse,
though, should we sentence men to death and carry out the executions before the
Mother Confessor was allowed to review the case, she might interject herself in
a way that could not only topple the government, but see top officials touched
by her power as punishment."
Bertrand
and Hildemara sat wide-eyed and silent after Dalton's quiet but sobering
lecture.
456
"Of
course, Dalton. Of course you're right." Bertrand's fingers fanned the air
in a motion like a fish wriggling its fins to swim backward. "I didn't
mean to give the impression I meant any such thing, of course.
"As
Minister I cannot allow a person to be falsely accused. I wouldn't have such a
thing happen. Not only would it be a terrible injustice to the ones falsely
accused, but in so doing it would allow the real killers to thus escape to kill
again."
"But
that said"-a tone of threat returned to Hildemara's voice-"I think
you must be close to naming the killers? I've heard such good things about your
abilities that I suspect you are merely being thorough. Surely the Minister's
chief aide will soon see justice done? The people will want to know the
Minister of Culture is competent. He must be seen as effective in seeing this
through to resolution."
"That's
right," Bertrand said, eyeing his wife until she eased back into her seat.
"We wish a just resolution."
"Added
onto that," Hildemara said, "there is talk of a poor Haken girl
recently being raped. Rumors are spreading rapidly about the rape. People think
the two crimes are connected."
"I
heard whispers of that, too," Teresa said. "It's just terrible."
Dalton
might have guessed Hildemara would have found out about that and want it
cleaned up, too. He had been prepared for that eventuality, as well, but hoped
to skirt the issue if he could.
"A
Haken girl? And who is to say she's telling the truth? Perhaps she is
attempting to cover a pregnancy out of wedlock and is claiming rape so as to
gain sympathy in a time of heightened passions."
Bertrand
dragged a slice of pork through a small bowl of mustard. "No one has yet
come forward with her name, but from what I've heard, it is believed to be
genuine. People are still trying to discover her name so as to bring her before
a magistrate."
Bertrand
frowned with a meaningful look until he was
457
sure
Dalton understood that they were talking about the butcher's girl. "It is
feared not only to be true, but to be the same ones who attacked Claudine.
People fear the same criminals have now struck twice, and fear they will be
striking again."
Bertrand
tilted his head back and dropped the pork in his mouth. Stein, on the other
side of Hildemara, watched the conversation with growing disdain as he ate
crisped beef. He, of course, would solve the matter quickly with his blade.
Dalton would, too, were it that simple.
"That
is why," Hildemara said as she leaned in once more, "the crime must
be solved. The people must know who is responsible." Having delivered the
order, she straightened in her chair.
Bertrand
squeezed Dalton's shoulder. "I know you, Dalton. I know you don't want to
come out and say it until you have the whole crop sheafed, because you are too modest,
but I know you have the crime solved and will soon announce the killers. And
before people go to the trouble of hauling a poor Haken girl before a
magistrate. After she has obviously already suffered in this, it would be a
shame for her to suffer further humiliation."
They
wouldn't know, but Dalton had already talked to Fitch to start the rock down
the hill. He could see, though, that he was going to have to give it a push
himself in a new direction.
Stein,
over on the other side of Hildemara, tossed his bread on the table with
disgust.
"This
bread is burned!"
Dalton
sighed. The man enjoyed his foolish outbursts. He was treacherous to ignore,
lest, like a child, he do something to get attention. They had been leaving him
out of the conversation.
"We
had trouble of some sort with the ovens down in the kitchen," Dalton said.
"If you don't like dark bread, cut off the burned crust."
"You
have trouble with witches!" Stein roared. "And you
458
talk
about cutting off the crust? That is your solution?"
"We
have trouble with ovens," Dalton said through gritted teeth as he cast a
wary glance to the room to see if anyone was paying attention to the man. A few
women, too far away to hear, were batting their lashes at him. "Probably a
plugged flue run. We'll have it fixed tomorrow."
"Witches!"
Stein repeated. "Witches have been casting spells to burn the bread here.
Everyone knows that when there's a witch in the neighborhood she can't resist
casting spells to burn bread."
"Dalton,"
Teresa whispered, "he knows about magic. Maybe he knows something we
don't."
"He's
a superstitious person, that's all." Dalton smiled at her. "Knowing
Stein, he's playing a joke on us."
"I
could help you find them." Stein tipped his chair back and began picking
his nails with his knife. "I know about witches. It's probably witches
that killed that woman, and raped the other. I'll find them for you, since you
can't. I could use another scalp for my cape."
Dalton
tossed his napkin on the table as he excused himself from Teresa. He rose,
strode around the Minister and his wife, and leaned close to Stein's ear. The
man stank.
"I
have specific reasons for doing things the way I have them planned,"
Dalton whispered. "By doing it my way, we will get this horse to plow the
field for us, pull our cart, and carry our water. If I simply wanted horse
meat, I wouldn't need you; I'd butcher it myself.
"Since
I have already warned you before to watch your words and you seem not to have
understood, let me explain it again in a way you will understand."
Stein's
grin showed his yellow teeth. Dalton leaned closer.
"This
is a problem partly created by you and your inability to make gracious use of
what is offered you freely. Instead, you saw fit to force a girl who wasn't
offering or willing. I can't change what's done, but if you ever again speak
out of turn in such a way as to cause a sensation, I
459
will
personally slit your throat and send you back to the emperor in a basket. I
will ask him to send us someone with more brains than a rutting pig."
Dalton
pressed his boot knife, hidden in the palm of his hand with only the very tip
exposed, to the underside of Stein's chin.
"You
are in the presence of your superiors. Now, clarify to the good people at the
table that you were only making a crude joke. And Stein-it had better be
convincing or I swear you will not survive the night."
Stein
chuckled agreeably. "I like you, Campbell. You and I are much alike. I
know we're going to be able to do business; you and the Minister are going to
like the Order. Despite your fancy dancing at dinner, we are the same."
Dalton
turned to Hildemara and Bertrand. "Stein has something to say. As soon as
he finishes, I must go see to some new information. I think I may have
uncovered the names of the killers."
CHAPTER
42
FITCH
HURRIED ALONG THE dimly lit corridor. Rowley had told him it 'was important.
Morley's bare feet thumped against the wood floor. It sounded odd to Fitch,
now. Having never worn boots, it had taken Fitch time to get used to the way
they sounded. Now bare feet sounded odd to him. Be-
460
yond
odd, it was a sound that reminded him of being a shoeless scullion, and he
didn't like to be reminded of that part of his life.
Being a
messenger was like a dream come true.
Through
the open windows the sounds of the music at the feast drifted in. The woman
with the harp was playing and singing. Fitch loved the pure sound of her voice
as she sang along with her harp.
"Got
any idea what this is about?"
"No,"
Fitch said. "But I wouldn't think we would have messages to take this time
of night. Especially when there's a feast going on."
"I
hope it doesn't take long."
Fitch
knew what Morley meant. They'd only just settled down to get drunk. Morley had
found a nearly full bottle of rum and they were looking forward to getting
drunk out of their minds. Not only that, but Morley had a washgirl he knew who
said she'd like to get drunk with them. Morley told Fitch that they should let
her get drunk first. Fitch was panting at the implications.
Besides
that, and just plain liking to get drunk, he wanted to forget his talk with
Beata.
The
outer office was empty and had a hollow quiet to it. Rowley hadn't returned
with them, so there was just the two of them. Dalton Campbell, pacing slowly
with his hands clasped behind his back, saw them and waved them in.
"There
you both are. Good."
"What
can we do for you, Master Campbell?" Fitch asked.
The
inner office was lit by lamps, giving it a warm feeling. The window was open
and the light drapes glided to and fro in a light breeze. The battle flags
rustled a little in the breeze.
Dalton
Campbell let out a sigh. "We have trouble. Trouble about the murder of
Claudine Winthrop."
"What
sort of trouble?" Fitch asked. "Is there anything we can do to fix
it?"
The
Minister's aide wiped a hand across his chin.
461
"You
were seen."
Fitch
felt an icy wave of dread tingle up his back. "Seen? What do you
mean?"
"Well,
you remember you told me you heard a coach stop, and then you all ran off to
that pond to dunk yourselves."
Fitch
gulped air. "Yes, sir?"
Dalton
Campbell sighed again. He tapped a finger against the desk as he seemed to
consider how to put it into words.
"Well,
the coach driver was the one who found the body. He turned back to get the city
guard."
"You
told us that already, Master Campbell," Morley said.
"Yes,
well, I have only just learned that before he left, he had his assistant remain
behind. The man followed your trail through the wheat. He followed you to the
pond."
"Dear
spirits," Fitch breathed. "You mean he saw all of us swimming and
washing ourselves clean?"
"He
saw you two. He's just now named your names. Fitch and Morley, he said-from the
kitchen at the estate."
Fitch's
heart was hammering out of control. He tried to think, but panic was welling up
around his ears faster than he could tread it.
Good
reason or not, they would still put him to death.
"But
why didn't this man say something before, if he saw us?"
"What?
Oh. I guess he was in shock over the sight of the body, and all, so he-"
Dalton Campbell waggled a hand. "Look, there's no time to discuss what's
already happened. We can't do anything about that, now."
The
tall Ander pulled open a drawer. "I feel terrible about this. I know you
two have done good work for me-for Anderith. But the fact remains, you were
seen."
He took
a heavy leather pouch from the drawer and plunked it down on the desk.
"What's
going to happen to us?" Morley asked. His eyes were the size of gold
sovereigns. Fitch knew how his friend felt. His own knees were trembling as he
tried to imagine how they would execute him.
462
A new
terror rose up inside his throat, almost pushing out a scream. He recalled
Franca telling him how that mob put a rope around her neck and pulled her up to
build a fire under her while she was strangling and her feet were kicking in
the air. Except Fitch didn't have any magic to help him get away. He reached up
and felt the coarse rope around his neck.
Dalton
Campbell slid the leather pouch across the desk. "I want you two to take
this."
Fitch
had to concentrate to understand what Dalton Campbell had said. "What is
it?"
"It's
mostly silver. There is some gold in there, too. Like I said, I feel terrible
about this. You two have been a big help and have shown me you are to be
trusted. Now, though, with someone having seen you and able to identify you as
being the ones ... you would be put to death for killing Claudine
Winthrop."
"But
you could tell them-"
"I
can tell them nothing. My first responsibility is to Bertrand Chanboor and the
future of Anderith. The Sovereign is ill. Bertrand Chanboor could be called
upon to become the new Sovereign any day. I can't throw the whole land into
chaos over Claudine Winthrop. You two are like soldiers in war. In war, good
people are lost.
"Besides,
with emotions over this running so strong, no one would listen to me. An angry
mob would drag you away and..."
Fitch
thought he might faint. He was breathing so fast he was near to passing out.
"You mean we're to be put to death?"
Dalton
Campbell looked up from his thoughts. "What? No." He pushed at the
leather pouch again. "I told you, this is a lot of money. Take it. Get
away. Don't you understand? You must get away or you will be put to death
before the sun sets again."
"But
where will we go?" Morley asked.
Dalton
Campbell waved a hand toward the window.
463
"Away.
Far away. Far enough away that they well never find you."
"But
if it could be cleared up, somehow, so that people knew we was only doing what
had to be done-"
"And
raping Beata? You didn't have to rape Beata."
"What?"
Fitch said with a long breath. "I would never-I swear, I would never do
that. Please, Master Campbell, I wouldn't."
"It
doesn't matter what you would never do. As far as the people after you are
concerned, you did it. They're not going to stop so that I can reason with
them. They won't listen. They think the same people who raped and killed
Claudine raped Beata, too. They won't believe you, not when a man can identify
you as the ones who killed Claudine Winthrop. Whether you raped Beata or not
doesn't matter. The man who saw you is an Ander."
"The
people after us?" Morley wiped a trembling hand over his pallid face.
"You mean to say there's people already after us?"
Dalton
Campbell nodded. "If you stay here you will be put to death for both
crimes. Your only chance is to get away-and fast.
"Because
you've both been such dependable men for me, and served so well in the cause of
Anderith culture, I wanted to warn you so you could have a chance to escape, at
least. I'm giving you my life savings to help you escape."
"Your
savings?" Fitch shook his head. "No, sir, Master Campbell, we'll not
take your savings. You have a wife and-"
"I
insist. If necessary, I will order it. The only way I'll be able to sleep at
night is knowing I could at least help you in this small way. I do whatever I
can to take care of my men. This is the least I can do for you two brave
men."
He
pointed at the leather pouch. "Take it. Split it between you. Use it to
get far away. Start a new life."
"A
new life?"
"That's
right," Master Campbell said. "You could even buy yourselves swords."
464
Morley
blinked in astonishment. "Swords?"
"Of
course. There is enough there to buy you each a dozen swords. If you went to a
new land, you wouldn't be thought of as Hakens, as you are here. In many places
you would be free men and you could buy yourselves swords. Get yourselves a new
life. New work, new everything. With money like that, you could meet nice women
and court them properly."
"But
we've never even been out of Fairfield," Morley said, near tears.
Dalton
Campbell put his hands on his desk and leaned toward them. "If you stay
here, you will be put to death. Guards have your names, and are no doubt
searching for you as we speak. They are probably right on your heels. I pray to
the Creator they didn't see you coming up here. If you want to live, take the
money and run. Find yourselves a new life."
Fitch
snatched a quick look over his shoulder. He didn't see anyone or hear anyone,
but they could be on them at any moment. He didn't know what to do, but he did
know they had to do as Dalton Campbell said and get away.
Fitch
swept the leather pouch off the desk. "Master Campbell, you are the best
man I've ever known. I wish I could have worked for you for the rest of my
life. Thank you for telling us they're after us and giving us a start."
Dalton
Campbell reached out with a hand. Fitch had never clasped hands with an Ander
before, but it felt good. It made him feel like a man. Dalton Campbell gripped
Morley's hand, too.
"Good
fortune to you both. I would suggest you get some horses. Buy them-don't steal
them, or that will give them your trail. I know it will be difficult, but try
to act normal or you will make people suspicious.
"Take
care with the money, don't waste it on prostitutes and rum or it will be gone
before you know it. If that happens, you will be caught and you won't live long
enough to die from the diseases the whores give you.
"If
you use your heads with the money, spend it frugally,
465
it will
keep you in good stead for a few years, give you time to establish new lives
wherever you find you like it."
Fitch
reached out and shook hands again. "Thank you for all the advice, Master
Campbell. We'll do as you say. We'll buy horses and then get away.
"Don't
you worry about us. Both Morley and I have lived on the streets before. We know
how not to get caught by Anders wishing us harm."
Dalton
Campbell smiled. "I suppose you do. May the Creator watch over you,
then."
When
Dalton returned to the feast, he found Teresa, sitting in his chair, engaged in
an intense conversation with the Minister. Her lilting laugh chimed above,
while Bertrand's chuckle rumbled below, the middling drone of the feast.
Hildemara, Stein, and the merchants at the other end of the table were
engrossed in their own whispered discussion.
Smiling,
Teresa reached out and took Dalton's hand. "There you are, darling. Can
you stay now, please? Bertrand, tell Dalton he works too hard. He has to
eat."
"Why,
yes, Dalton, you do work harder than any man I've known. Your wife is
frightfully lonely without you. I've been trying to keep her entertained, but
she isn't interested in my stories. She is quite polite about it, even though
she only wishes to tell me what a good man you are when I already know
it."
Bertrand
and Teresa encouraged him to return to his seat as she moved back to hers.
Dalton held a finger up to his wife, imploring patience for just a moment
longer. He moved around and put one hand on the Minister's shoulder and the
other on Hildemara's as he leaned down between them. They both tipped their
heads in.
"I
have just now received new information that confirms my suspicions. As it turns
out, the first reports of the crime
466
were
sensationalized. Claudine Winthrop was in reality murdered by just two men."
He handed the Minister a folded piece of paper secured with a wax seal.
"Here are their names."
Bertrand
took the paper as a smile spread on his wife's face.
"Now,
please listen carefully," Dalton added. "I was on to them, but before
I was able to arrest them they stole a great deal of money from the kitchen
account and escaped. An intensive search is already under way."
He
lifted a questioning eyebrow as he looked to each face to make sure they
understood he was fabricating a story for a reason. Their own expressions told
him they grasped the unspoken meaning between his words.
"Tomorrow,
when it pleases you, announce the names of the men on that piece of paper. They
worked in the kitchen. They raped and killed Claudine Winthrop. They raped a Haken
girl who works for the butcher, Inger. And now they have robbed the kitchen
account and run."
"But
won't the Haken girl have something to say?" Bertrand asked, worried she
might deny they were the ones and turn the finger to him, if forced to talk.
"Unfortunately,
the ordeal was too much for her, and she ran off. We don't know where she went,
probably to live with distant family, but she won't be back. The city guard has
her name; should she ever try to return, I will know about it first and personally
see to her interrogation."
"Then
she isn't here to contradict the conviction of the murderers." A scowl
returned to Hildemara's face. "Why should we give them the night to
escape? That's foolish. The people will want an execution. A public execution.
We could give them quite the show of it. Nothing like a good public execution
to satisfy people."
Dalton
took a patient breath. "The people want to know who did it. Bertrand is
going to give them the names. That will show everyone the Minister's office
discovered the killers. That they ran before the names were even announced
proves them guilty."
467
Dalton
drew down his own brow. "Anything more than that could bring trouble in
the form of the Mother Confessor. That is trouble beyond our ability to
control.
"An
execution would serve no purpose and bring great risk. The people will be
satisfied with knowing we have solved the crime and the killers are no longer
among them. To do more would risk everything as we stand in the doorway to the
Sovereign's chamber."
Hildemara
began to object.
"The
man is right," Bertrand said with authority.
She
relented. "1 suppose."
"I
will make an announcement tomorrow, with Edwin Winthrop at my side, if he is
well enough," Bertrand said. "Very good, Dalton. Very good indeed.
You've earned yourself a reward for this one."
Dalton
smiled at last. "Oh, I have that all planned out, too, Minister."
Bertrand's
sly chuckle returned. "No doubt, Dalton. No doubt." The laugh turned
to a belly laugh that even infected his wife.
Fitch
had to wipe tears from his eyes as he and Morley rushed down the halls of the
estate. They went as fast as they could without running, remembering what
Dalton Campbell told them about trying to act normal. When they saw guards,
they quickly changed their route to avoid being seen up close. From a distance,
Fitch was just a messenger and Morley an estate worker.
But if
they saw any guards, and the guards tried to stop them, then they would have to
bolt. Fortunately, the ruckus of the feast covered the sound of their feet on
the wood floors.
Fitch
had an idea that might help them escape. Without explaining, he pulled Morley's
sleeve, urging him to follow.
468
Fitch
turned them to the stairwell. They took the steps two at a time down to the
lower floor.
Fitch
made two turns and in short order found the room he wanted. It was deserted.
Carrying a lamp, they both slipped inside and shut the door.
"Fitch,
are you crazy, shutting us in here? We could be halfway to Fairfield by
now."
Fitch
licked his lips. "Who are they looking for, Morley?"
"Us!"\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0 '
"No,
I mean, from the way they're thinking, who are they looking for. A messenger,
and a kitchen scullion, right?"
Morley
scratched his head as he kept looking at the door. "I guess."
"Well,
this is the estate supply room-where they keep some of the livery. Before a
seamstress fitted me up with my uniform, I got one from down here to wear till
she was done with mine."
"Well,
if you got your uniform, then what are we doing-"
"Take
off your clothes."
"Why?"
Fitch
growled in frustration. "Morley, they're looking for a messenger and a
scullion. If you put on a messenger's outfit, then we'll be two
messengers."
Morley's
eyebrows went up. "Oh. That's a good idea."
In a
rush Morley stripped out of his filthy scullion clothes. Fitch held out the
lamp as he searched the shelves for outfits of messengers for the Minister's
aide. He- tossed Morley some dark brown trousers.
"Do
these fit?"
Morley
stepped into the legs and pulled them up. "Good enough."
Fitch
pulled out a white shirt with ruffled collar. "How about this?"
Fitch
watched as Morley tried to button it. It was too small to fit over Morley's
broad shoulders.
"Fold
it back up," Fitch said as he searched for another.
469
Morley
tossed the shirt aside. "Why bother?"
"Pick
it up and fold it back up. You want us to get caught? I don't want it to look
like we was down here. If they don't know someone took clothes, then we can get
away better."
"Oh,"
Morley said. He plucked up the shirt and started folding with his big hands.
Fitch
handed him another that was only just a little too big. In short order Fitch
found a sleeved doublet quilted with an interlocking cornucopia design. The
edges were trimmed with the distinctive brown and black braided-wheat banding
of Dalton Campbell's messengers.
Morley
poked his arms through the sleeves. It fit fine.
"How
do I look?"
Fitch
held up the lamp. He let out a low whistle. His friend was built a lot stouter
than Fitch. In the messenger uniform Morley looked almost noble. Fitch never
thought of his friend as good-looking, but now he was a sight.
"Morley,
you look better than Rowley does." 'Morley grinned. "Really?"
The grin vanished. "Let's get out of here."
Fitch
pointed. "Boots. You need boots, or you'll look foolish. Here, put on
these stockings or you'll get blisters."
Morley
hauled up the stockings and then sat on the floor while he matched up boot
soles with the bottom of his foot until he found a pair that fit. Fitch told
him to pick up all his old clothes so no one would know they had been there and
taken an outfit, if they even discovered it missing- there was a lot of livery
stored in the room and it wasn't orderly enough to tell if one outfit was gone.
When
they heard boots in the hall, Fitch blew out the lamp. He and Morley stood
frozen in the dark. They were too terrified to breathe. The boots came closer.
Fitch wanted to run, but if they did they would have to run out the door, and
that was where the men were.
Men. He
realized it was boots from two men. Guards. Guards making their rounds.
Once
again, Fitch felt panic at the idea of being put to
470
death
before a jeering crowd. Sweat trickled down his back.
The
door opened.
Fitch
could see the man, standing with his hand on the doorknob, outlined in the dim
light from the hall. He could see the sword at the man's hip.
Fitch
and Morley were back a ways in the room, in an aisle between shelves. The long
rectangle of light from the doorway fell across the floor and came almost right
up to Fitch's boots. He held his breath. He dared not move a muscle.
Maybe,
he thought, the guard, his eyes accustomed to the light, didn't see the two of
them standing there in the dark.
The
guard closed the door and walked on with his fellow, who was opening other
doors in the hall. The sound of footsteps receded into the distance.
"Fitch,"
Morley said in a shaky whisper, "I'd be needing to relieve myself
something awful. Can we get out of here? Please?"
Fitch
had to force his voice to return. "Sure."
He made
for where he remembered seeing the door in the pitch blackness. The light of
the empty hall was a -welcoming sight. The two of them hurried on to the
nearest way out, the service entrance not far from the brewer's room. Along
their way they dumped Morley's old clothes in the rag bin near the service
dock.
They
heard the old brewer singing a drunken song. Morley wanted to stop and lift
something to drink. Fitch licked his lips as he considered Morley's idea. It
sounded good to him, too. He surely would like a drink right then.
"No,"
he finally whispered. "I'd not like to be put to death for a drink. We
have plenty of money. We can buy a drink later. I don't want to be here a
second longer than necessary."
Morley
nodded reluctantly. They rushed out the service doors and out onto the dock.
Fitch leading, they hurried on down the steps-the steps Claudine had come up
the first time he and Morley had their talk with her. If only she'd listened to
them, and done as Fitch warned her.
471
"Aren't
we going to get any of our things?" Morley asked.
Fitch
stopped and looked at his friend standing in the light coming from the estate
windows.
"You
got anything worth dying for?"
Morley
scratched his ear. "Well, no, I guess not. Just a nice carved stick game
my pa gave me. I guess I don't have much else but some of my other clothes, and
they're just rags, really. This outfit is better than any of them-even my
assembly clothes."
Penance
assembly. Fitch realized with a sense of joy they would never have to go to
penance assembly again.
"Well,
I don't have anything worth taking, either. I got a few coppers left in my
trunk, but that's nothing compared to what we're carrying now. I say we get to
Fairfield and buy some horses."
Morley
made a face. "You know how to ride a horse?"
Fitch
looked around to make sure there weren't any guards about. He gave Morley a
gentle shove to get them moving.
"No,
but I reckon we'll learn fast enough."
"I
reckon," Morley said. "But let's buy gentle horses."
As they
made the road, they both looked back over their shoulders at the estate for the
last time.
"I'm
glad to be away from there," Morley said. "Especially after what
happened in there today. I'll be glad not to have to go into that kitchen
again."
Fitch
frowned over at his friend. "What are you talking about?"
"You
didn't hear?"
"Hear
what? I was off in Fairfield delivering messages."
Morley
grasped Fitch's arm and brought them to a panting halt. "About the fire?
You didn't hear about the fire?"
"Fire?"
Fitch was baffled. "What are you talking about?"
"Down
in the kitchen. Earlier today. Something went crazy wrong with the ovens and
the hearth-the whole thing."
472
"Wrong?
Like what?"
Morley
lifted his arms up as he made a roaring sound with the spit in his throat. His
arms spread, apparently to imitate flames expanding outward. "It just
flared up something awful. Burned the bread. Got so hot it split a
cauldron."
"No,"
Fitch said in astonishment. "Did anyone get hurt?"
A
fiendish grin spread on Morley's face. "Gillie got burned real bad."
With an elbow he jabbed Fitch in the ribs. "She was making a sauce when
the fire went crazy. She got her ugly prune face burned up. Her hair was afire
and everything."
Morley
laughed with the satisfaction of one who had waited years for recompense.
"She probably won't live, they say. But at least as long as she lives, she'll
be in a horrible pain."
Fitch
had mixed feelings. He felt no sympathy for Gillie, but still...
"Morley,
you shouldn't be glad an Ander got hurt. That just shows our hateful Haken
ways."
Morley
made a scornful face and they started out again. They ran the entire way,
diving into the fields whenever a carriage came along the road. They hid in the
wheat, or the sorghum, depending on which side offered the most cover. There
they lay and caught their breath until the carriage passed.
In a
way, Fitch found the experience of running away more a liberation than a
frightful flight. Away from the estate he felt less fear of getting caught. At
night, anyway.
"I
think we should hide in the day," he said to Morley. "In the
beginning at least. Hide in the day somewhere safe as we go along, and where we
can see if anyone is coming. We can travel at night so people won't see us, or
if they do, won't be able to see who we are."
"But
what if someone finds us in the day when we're sleeping?"
"We'll
have to stand watches. Just like soldiers do. One
473
of us
stands watch while the other gets sleep."
Morley
seemed to find Fitch's logic a marvelous thing; "I never thought of
that."
They
slowed to a walk as they neared the streets of Fairfield. There, they knew how
to disappear as effectively as they did in the fields when a carriage came
along the road.
"We
can get some horses," Fitch said, "and still make some distance
tonight."
Morley
thought a minute. "How we going to get out of Anderith? Master Campbell
said there are places where it don't matter that we're Haken. But how we going
to get past the army at the border with the Dominie Dirtch?"
Fitch
gave the shoulder of Morley's doublet a tug. "We're messengers.
Remember?"
"So?"
"So,
we say we have official business."
"Messengers
have official business outside of Anderith?"
Fitch
gave that some thought. "Well, who's to say we don't? If we say we have
urgent business they can't keep us until they send word back. That would take
too long."
"They
might ask to see the message."
"We
can't be showing secret messages to them, now can we? We'll just say it's a
secret mission to another land we can't name with an important message they
aren't allowed to see."
Morley
grinned. "I think this is going to work. I think we're going to get
away."
"You
bet we are."
Morley
pulled Fitch to a halt. "Fitch, where are we going to go? Do you got any
idea about that part of it?"
This
time it was Fitch who grinned.
CHAPTER
43
474
BEATA
SQUINTED IN THE bright sun as she set down her bag. She wiped her windblown
hair back from her eyes. Since she couldn't read she couldn't tell what the
sign above the towering gate said, but there was a number before it:
twenty-three. She knew numbers, so she knew she'd found the place.
She
stared at the word after the number, trying to remember it so she might someday
recognize it for the word it was, but trying to make sense of it was
impossible. It just seemed incomprehensible marks carved in a piece of wood.
Chicken scratchings made no less sense. She couldn't remember a chicken
scratching; she couldn't understand how people remembered the seeming
indecipherable marks that made up words, but they did.
Once
again, she hoisted the cloth bag holding all her belongings. It had been an
awkward load to lug along, what with it bouncing against her thigh, but it
wasn't unbearably heavy and she often switched hands when her arm got tired.
She
didn't really have all that much to carry with her: some clothes; her pair of
cobbler-made shoes, which had belonged to her mother, and which Beata only wore
for something special so she wouldn't wear them out; a comb carved out of horn;
soap; some keepsakes a few friends had
475
given
her; some water; a gift of some lace; and sewing supplies.
Inger
had given her a lot of food. She had a variety of sausages made from different
meats, some as thick as her arm, some long and thin, some in coils. They were
the heaviest things in her bag. Even though she had given several away to
people she'd met who were hungry and one to a farmer and his wife who gave her
a ride in their wagon for two days, she still had enough sausages to last a
year, it seemed.
Inger
had given her a letter, too. It was written on a fine piece of vellum and
folded over twice. She couldn't read it, but he read it to her before she left
so she'd know what it said.
Every
time she stopped for a rest along the way, she'd taken out the letter,
carefully unfolded it in her lap, and pretended to read it. She'd tried to
remember just the way Inger told her the words so she could try to tell which
word was which. She couldn't. Hen scratching was all it was to her.
Fitch
made marks in the dust one time, and told her it meant "Truth." Fitch.
She shook her head.
Inger
hadn't wanted her to leave. He said he needed her. She said there were plenty
of other people he could hire. He could hire a man with a back stronger than
hers. He didn't need her.
Inger
said she was good at the work he needed. He said he cared about her almost as
if she were his daughter. He told her about when her mother and father first
came to work for him, and she was still a toddler. Inger's eyes were red when
he asked her to stay.
Beata
almost cried again, but she held it in. She told him she loved him like a
favorite uncle, and that was why she had to go-if she stayed, there would be
trouble and he would only be hurt because of it. He said he could handle it.
She said if she stayed she would be hurt or even killed, and she was afraid. He
had no answer for that.
476
Inger
had always made her work hard, but he was fair. He always made sure she was
fed. He never beat her. Sometimes he'd backhand one of the boys if they talked
back to him, but never the girls. But then, the girls didn't talk back to him
in the first place.
Once or
twice he'd gotten angry at her, but he never hit her. If she did something
foolish enough to get him angry, he'd make her gut and debone pullets till well
into the night. She didn't have to do that very often, though. She always tried
her best to do right and not cause trouble.
If
there was one thing Beata thought was important, it was doing as she was told
and not causing trouble. She knew she'd been born with a vile Haken nature, just
like all Hakens, and she wanted to try to act better than her nature.
Every
once in a great while Inger would wink at her and tell her she'd done a good
job. Beata would have done anything for those winks.
Before
she left, he hugged her for a long time, and then sat her down while he wrote
out the letter for her. When he read it to her, she thought he had tears in his
eyes. It was all she could do to keep hers from erupting again.
Beata's
mother and father had taught her not to cry in front of others, or they would
think her weak and foolish. Beata was careful to only cry at night, when no
one. would hear her. She could always hold it back until night, in the dark,
alone.
Inger
was a good man, and she would greatly miss him- even if he did work her fingers
to the bone. She wasn't afraid of work.
Beata
wiped her nose and then sidestepped to make way for a wagon foiling toward the
gateway. It looked a big place. At the same time, it looked lonely, all by
itself out in the windswept middle of nowhere, sitting up on its own low hill.
The gate through the bulwark appeared the only way in, except straight up the
steep earthwork ramparts.
As soon
as the wagon went by, Beata followed it through the tall gates and into the
bailey. People were bustling about
477
everywhere.
It was like a town inside the gates. It surprised her to see so many buildings,
with streets and alleyways between them.
A guard
just inside finished talking to the wagon driver and waved him on. He turned
his attention to Beata. He gave her a quick glance up and down, not showing
anything of what he might be thinking.
"Good
day."
He used
the same tone as he used with the wagon driver-polite but businesslike. There
were more wagons coming up behind her and he was busy. She returned the
greeting in kind.
The
dark Ander hair at his neck was damp from sweat. It was probably hot in his
heavy uniform. He lifted a hand and pointed.
"Over
there. Second building on the right." He gave her a wink. "Good
luck."
She nodded
her thanks and hurried between horses, before they closed up and she'd have to
go all the way around. She narrowly missed stepping in fresh manure with her
bare feet. Crowds of people were going in every direction. Horses and wagons
made their way up and down the streets. It smelled of sweat, horses, leather,
dust, dung, and the new wheat growing all around.
Beata
had never been anyplace but Fairfield before. It was intimidating, but it was
also exciting.
She
found the second building on the right easy enough. Inside an Ander woman was
sitting behind a desk writing on a rumpled, well-used piece of paper. She had a
whole stack of papers to one side of her desk, some well worn and some
fresh-looking. When the woman looked up, Beata curtsied.
"Afternoon,
dear." She gave Beata a look up and down, as the guard had done.
"Long walk?"
"From
Fairfield, ma'am."
The
woman set down her dipping pen. "Fairfield! Then it was a long walk. No
wonder you're covered in dust."
478
Beata
nodded. "Six days, ma'am." A frown crept onto the woman's face. She
looked to be a woman who frowned a lot. "Why did you come here, then, if
you're from Fairfield? There were any number of closer stations."
Beata
knew that. She didn't want a closer station. She wanted to be far away from
Fairfield. Far away from trouble. Inger had told her to come here, to the
twenty-third.
"I
worked for a man named Inger, ma'am. He's a butcher. When I told him what I
wanted, he said he'd been here and knew there to be good people here. It was
upon his counsel I came here, ma'am."
She
smiled with one side of her mouth. "Don't recall a butcher named Inger,
but he must have been here, because he's right about our people here."
Beata
set down her bag and pulled out the letter. "Like I said, he counseled I
come here, ma'am."
He
counseled her to get far away from Fairfield, and this place was. She feared
stepping closer to the desk, so she leaned forward and stretched to hand her
precious letter to the woman.
"He
sent this letter of introduction."
The
woman unfolded the letter and leaned back to read it. Watching her eyes going
along each line, Beata tried to remember Inger's words. She "was sorry to
find the exact words fading. It wouldn't be long before she recalled only the
main thrust of Inger's words.
The
woman set down the letter. "Well, Master Inger seems to think a great deal
of you, young lady. Why would you want to leave a job where you got along so
well?"
Beata
hadn't been expecting to have anyone ask her why she wanted to do this. She
thought briefly, and quickly decided to be honest, but not too honest.
"This
has always been my dream, ma'am. I guess that a person has to try out their
dream sometime. No use in living your life and never trying your dream."
"And
why is it your dream?"
479
"Because
I want to do good. And because the Mi... the Minister made it so, women would
be respected here. So they'd be equal."
"The
Minister is a great man."
Beata
swallowed her pride. Pride did a person no good; it only held them back.
"Yes,
ma'am. He is. Everyone respects the Minister. He passed the law allowing Haken
women to serve along with the Ander men and women. That law also says all must
show respect to those Haken women who serve our land. Haken women owe him a
great debt. Minister Chanboor is a hero to all Haken women."
The
woman regarded her without emotion. "And you had man trouble. Am I right?
Some man wouldn't keep his 'hands off you, and you finally had enough and
finally got up the courage to leave."
Beata
cleared her throat. "Yes, ma'am. That's true. But what I told you about
this always being my dream is true, too. The man just decided it for me sooner,
that's all. It's still my dream, if you'll have me."
The
woman smiled. "Very good. What's your name, then?"
"Beata,
ma'am."
"Very
good, Beata. We try to follow Minister Chanboor's example here, and do
good."
"That's
why I came, ma'am; so I could do good."
"I'm
Lieutenant Yarrow. You call me Lieutenant."
"Yes,
ma-Lieutenant. So ... may I join?"
Lieutenant
Yarrow pointed with her pen. "Pick up that sack over there."
Beata
hoisted the burlap sack. It felt like it was loosely filled with firewood. She
curled a wrist under it and held it against a hip with one arm.
"Yes,
Lieutenant? What would you like done with it?"
"Put
it up on your shoulder."
Beata
hoisted it up and curved her arm around and forward over the sack so it would
bulge up the muscle and the wood wouldn't rest on her shoulder bone. She stood
waiting.
480
"All
right," Lieutenant Yarrow said. "You can put it down."
Beata
set it back where it had been.
"You
pass," the lieutenant said. "Congratulations. Your dream just came
true. You're in the Anderith army. Hakens can never be completely cleansed of
their nature, but here you will be valued and be able to do good."
Beata
felt a sudden swell of pride. She couldn't help it.
"Thank
you, Lieutenant."
The
lieutenant waggled her pen, pointing it back over her shoulder. "Out back,
down the alleyway to the end, just below the rampart, you will find a midden
heap. Take your bag out there and throw it on with the rest of the offal."
Beata
stood in mute shock. Her mother's shoes were in there. They were expensive. Her
mother and father had saved for years to buy those shoes. There were keepsakes
in her bag, given by her friends. Beata held back tears.
"Am
I to throw out the food Inger sent, too, Lieutenant?"
"The
food, too."
Beata
knew that if an Ander woman told her to do it, then it was right and she had to
do it.
"Yes,
Lieutenant. May I be excused, then, to see to it?"
The
woman appraised her for a moment. Her tone softened a little. "It's for
your own good, Beata. Those things are from your old life. It won't do you any
good to be reminded of your old life. The sooner you forget it, food included,
the better."
"Yes,
Lieutenant, I understand." Beata forced herself to be bold. "The
letter, ma'am? May I keep the letter Inger sent with me?"
Lieutenant
Yarrow looked down at the letter on her desk. She finally folded it twice and
handed it back.
"Since
it's a letter of recommendation and not a memento of your old life, you may
keep it. You earned it with your years of service to the man."
Beata
touched the pin that held closed her collar at her throat-the one with the
spiral end, the one Pitch had returned to her. Her father had given it to her
when she was
481
young,
before he had died from a fever. She had lost it when the Minister and that
beast, Stein, pulled it out and tossed it away into the hall so they could open
her dress and have a look at her.
'The
pin, Lieutenant Yarrow? Should I throw it away, too?"
As she
had watched her father making the simple pin, he had told -her it represented
how everything was all connected, even if you couldn't see it from where you
stood, and how if you could follow everything round and round, someday it would
all come to a point. He told her to always keep her dreams, and if she did
good, the dreams would come round to her, even if it was in the afterlife and
it was the good spirits themselves answered the wishes. She knew it was a silly
children's story, but she liked it.
The
lieutenant squinted as she peered at the pin. "Yes. From now on, the
people of Anderith will provide everything you require."
"Yes,
Lieutenant. I look forward to serving them well to repay them for the
opportunity only they could provide."
A smile
softened the woman's face. "You're smarter than most who come in here,
Beata. Men and women, both. You catch on quick, and you accept what's required
of you. That's a good quality."
The
lieutenant stood up behind her desk. "I think, with training, you could be
a good leader-maybe a sergeant. It's tougher than plain soldier training, but
if you can measure up, in a week or two you'll be in charge of your own
squad."
"In
charge of a squad? In only a week or two?"
The
lieutenant shrugged. "It's not difficult, being in the army. I'm sure it's
a lot less difficult than learning to butcher."
"Won't
we have to learn to fight?"
"Yes,
but while important at a basic level, fighting is for the most part a trivial
and outmoded function of the army. The army was once a refuge for extremists.
The fanaticism
482
of
warriors suffocates the society they are charged with protecting."
She
smiled again. "Brains are the major requirement and women are more than
equal there. With the Dominie Dirtch, brawn is unnecessary. The weapon itself
is the brawn and, as such, invincible.
"Women
have the natural compassion required to be officers-for instance the way I
explained why you must discard your old things; men don't bother with
explaining to their troops why something is necessary. Leadership is a
nurturing of those under your command. Women bring wholesomeness to what used
to be nothing but a savage fellowship of destruction.
"Women
who defend Anderith are given the recognition to which they are entitled, the
recognition they earn. We help the army contribute to our culture, instead of
simply menace it, as before."
Beata
glanced down at the sword at Lieutenant Yarrow's hip. "Will I get to carry
a sword and everything?"
"And
everything, Beata. Swords are made to wound in order to discourage an opponent,
and you will be taught how. You will be a valued member of the Twenty-third
Regiment. We are all proud to serve under Bertrand Chan-boor, the Minister of
Culture."
The
Twenty-third Regiment. That was where Inger told her he thought she should go
to join: the Twenty-third Regiment. That was what the sign over the gate had
said.
The
Twenty-third Regiment was the one that tended the Dominie Dirtch. Inger said
soldiers who tend the Dominie Dirtch had the best job in the army, and were the
most respected. He called them "the elite."
Beata thought
back to Inger. It already seemed another life.
As she
had been leaving his place, Inger gently took ahold of her arm and turned her
back. He said he believed some man at the estate had hurt her and asked her to
tell him if that was true. She nodded. He asked her to tell him who it was,.
483
Beata
told him the truth.
He had
cleared his throat and told her he finally understood why she had to leave.
Inger was probably the only Ander who would have believed her. Or cared.
Inger
had wished her a good life.
"Again,"
the captain ordered.
Beata,
being first in line, lifted the sword and ran forward. She stabbed with her
weapon at the straw man swinging by a rope. This time, she ran her sword right
through his leg.
"Beautiful,
Beata!" Captain Tolbert said. He always praised them when he approved of
what they did. Being Haken, Beata found such praise an odd experience.
She
almost fell trying to pull the sword back out of the straw man's leg as she ran
past. She at least managed it, if not with grace. Sometimes the others didn't.
Fortunately
for Beata, she had years of experience with blades. Although the blades had
been smaller, she knew something about wielding blades and stabbing them where
you intended.
Despite
being Haken and supposedly not allowed to use knives because they were weapons,
Beata had worked for a butcher and so it was overlooked, since butchers were
Ander and they kept a tight rein on their Haken workers. Butchers only let the
Haken girls and women cut up meat, along with the Anders. The Haken boys and
men working for them did the lifting and lugging, mostly-the things not
requiring them to handle blades.
Three
of the other girls, Carine, Emmeline, and Annette, were Haken, too, and had
never held anything more than a dull bread knife before. The four Ander boys,
Turner, Norris, Karl, and Bryce, were not from wealthy families and had never
handled a sword before, either, but as boys they had played with sticks as
swords.
Beata
knew that Anders were better than Hakens in every
484
way,
but she was having a difficult time making sure she didn't wrongly show up
Turner, Norris, Karl, and Bryce. They were best suited to grinning moronically.
That was about it, as far as she could tell. Most of the time they pranced
around bragging about themselves to each other.
The two
Ander girl recruits, Estelle Ruffin and Marie Fauvel, didn't have any
experience with swords, either. They did like swinging their new swords about,
though, as did the rest of them. They were better at it, too, than the four
Ander boys. For that matter, even the Haken girls, Carine, Emmeline, and
Annette, were better than the four boys at soldiering.
The
boys could swing harder, but the girls were better at hitting the target.
Captain Tolbert pointed that out so the boys would understand they weren't any
better than the girls. He said to the boys that it didn't matter how hard you
could swing a sword, if you couldn't hit anything.
Karl
had gashed his leg the first day, and it had to be sewn closed. He hobbled
around, still grinning, a soldier with a scar in the works.
Emmeline
poked at the straw man's leg as she ran by. She missed the swinging leg and her
sword's tip caught in the rope around the straw waist. She fell flat on her
Haken face.
The
four Ander boys erupted in laughter. The girls, Ander and Haken both, didn't.
The boys called Emmeline a clumsy ox and a few other rude things under their
breath.
Captain
Tolbert growled in anger as he snatched the collar of the nearest: Bryce.
"I've told you before, you may have laughed at others in your old life,
but not here! You don't laugh at your fellow soldiers, even if that soldier is
a Haken. Here you are all equal!"
He
shoved Bryce -away. "Such a violation of respect to fellow soldiers
requires punishment. I want each of you to name for me what you think a fair
punishment."
Captain
Tolbert pointed at Annette and asked her to name a fair punishment. She thought
a moment and then said she thought the boys should apologize. Carine and
Emmeline,
485
the
other two Haken girls, spoke up that they agreed. He asked Estelle. She pushed
back her dark Ander hair and said the boys should be kicked out of the army.
Marie Fauvel agreed, but added they could be let back in the next year. The
four boys, when asked their idea of fair punishment, said just to be told not
to do it again.
Captain
Tolbert turned to Beata. "You hope to be a sergeant. What would you say
was a good punishment, if you were a sergeant?"
Beata
had her answer ready. "If we're all equal, then we should all be treated
equal. Since the four of them think it's so funny, the whole squad should have
to dig a new latrine instead of having dinner." She folded her arms.
"If any of us gets hungry as we're digging, well, we have these four boys
to thank."
Captain
Tolbert smiled with satisfaction. "Beata has named a fair punishment. That
will be it, then. If anyone objects, they can head home for their mothers'
skirts because they don't have the courage it takes to be a soldier and stick
up for their fellow soldiers."
Estelle
and Marie, Anders both, cast dark glares at the Ander boys. The boys hung their
heads and stared at the ground. The Haken girls weren't any happier about it,
but the boys were more worried about the glares from the Ander girls.
"Now,"
Captain Tolbert said, "let's finish the drill so you can all get to
digging when the dinner bell is rung."
No one
groaned. They had learned better than to complain.
Sweat
ran down Beata's neck as they marched two abreast along the narrow road. It was
a path, really-just two ruts from the supply wagons. Captain Tolbert led them,
Beata was at the head of the five soldiers in the left rut, and Marie
486
Fauvel
marched to her right, at the head of the five soldiers behind her.
Beata
felt pride marching in front of her squad of soldiers. She had worked hard the
two weeks of training, and had been named sergeant, just as Lieutenant Yarrow
said she might. Beata had the stripes of the rank sewn on each shoulder. Marie,
an Ander, was named corporal-second-in-command of the squad. The other eight
had earned the rank of soldier.
Beata
guessed the only real earning to it was that if you got kicked out before you
finished the training, then you didn't get to be a soldier. None of them that
started got kicked out, though.
The
uniform was uncomfortable in the afternoon heat, although she was getting used
to it. They all wore green trousers. Over that they wore long padded and
quilted tan tunics cinched at the waist with a light belt. Over the tunic they
wore chain mail.
Because
the mail was heavy, the women had to wear only vested chain mail, without
sleeves. The men had to wear mail with arms of mail, too, and it was longer.
They also had to wear hoods of mail that covered their head and necks. When
they were marching, they swathed it down around their necks. When they had to
wear it, they wore a leather helmet over top. They all had leather helmets.
Beata
was thankful the women didn't have to wear all the rest of it, though. Being
the sergeant, she had to sometimes pick up the men's mail to inspect it. She
couldn't imagine marching all day with that much weight. What she had was
enough. The fun of marching with a heavy sword had worn off; now it was a chore.
They
each had a long cloak, but with it being as warm as it was, the cloaks were
only buttoned to their right shoulders, letting them hang to the side. Over the
mail they wore their sword belts. Additionally, they each carried a pack and,
of course, their two spears each and a knife worn opposite their sword on the
same belt.
487
Beata
thought they looked a smart squad. The pikemen she had seen back at the
Twenty-third Regiment had been the best-looking soldiers. They were a sight.
The men were handsome in the pikemen outfits. She had pleasant dreams about
those men. The women somehow looked dull, by comparison, even though they had
the same outfits.
Beata
saw something dark ahead, standing up above the field of grass. As they got
closer, she thought it looked to be ancient stone. Off behind it, closer to
them, were three squat stone buildings. The roofs were shingled, maybe with
slate.
Beata
felt a twinge of dread at seeing the huge, silent, awful thing.
It was
the Dominie Dirtch.
The Dominie
Dirtch were the one thing of the Hakens the Anders kept to use. Beata recalled
the lessons she learned about how the Hakens murdered countless Anders with
these weapons. They were terrible things. It looked as old as it was, its edges
softened over time by the weather, the wind, and the hands that tended it.
At
least now that the Anders governed them, they were only instruments of peace.
Captain
Tolbert halted them among the buildings. Beata could see soldiers up on the
stone base of the enormous, bell-shaped, stone Dominie Dirtch. There were
soldiers in the buildings, too. The squad there had been at station for months,
and was being relieved by Beata's squad.
Captain
Tolbert turned to them. "These are the barracks. One for the women and one
for the men. See it stays that way, Sergeant Beata. The other buildings are
used for kitchen and dining, meetings, repairs, and everything else." He
pointed to the farther building. 'That over there is storage."
He
ordered them to follow as he marched on. They marched behind him in their two
neat rows as he went past the Dominie Dirtch. It towered over them, a dark
menace. The three women and one man up on the base around the bell-shaped part
watched them pass.
488
Out in
front of the Dominie Dirtch a ways, he stopped and told them to be at ease and
to spread out. They formed a loose line, shoulder to shoulder.
"This
is the frontier. The border of Anderith." The captain pointed out at the
seemingly endless grassland. "That, out there, is the wilds. Beyond this
place are the lands of other peoples. We keep those others from coming and
taking our land from us."
Beata
felt her chest swelling with pride. She was the one protecting the Anderith
border. She was doing good.
"Over
the next two days, I and the squad here will teach you what you need to know
about guarding the border and about the Dominie Dirtch."
He
walked down the line and halted in front of Beata, looking her in the eye. He
smiled with pride.
"Then,
you will be under the capable charge of Sergeant Beata. You will follow her
orders without fail, and if she is unavailable, the orders of Corporal Marie
Fauvel." He gestured behind them. "I will take a report from the
squad I lead back to the Twenty-third Regiment, and I will treat very harshly
any soldier who failed to at all times follow the orders of their
sergeant."
He
glared at the entire line. "Keep that in mind. Keep in mind, too, that the
sergeant has a responsibility to live up to her rank. If she fails in that, I
expect you to report it when I come back for you when it's your turn to be
relieved.
"Supply
wagons will be coming once every two weeks. Keep your supplies orderly and mind
how long they must last.
"Your
primary duty is to tend the Dominie Dirtch. In that, you are the defense of our
beloved land of Anderith. From up on the watch station of the Dominie Dirtch,
you will be able to see the next Dominie Dirtch to each side. They extend along
the entire border to guard the frontier. The squads on duty are not changed at
the same time, so experienced soldiers are always to each side.
"Sergeant
Beata, it will be your responsibility, once your squad is trained and we
depart, to see to it your soldiers are
489
on duty
at your Dominie Dirtch, and then to go meet with the squads to each side to
coordinate with them all matters of defense."
Beata
saluted with a hand to her brow. "Yes, Captain."
He
smiled. "I'm proud of you all. You all are good Anderith soldiers, and I
know you will do your duty."
Behind
her towered the terrible Haken weapon of murder. Now, she was to be in charge
of it in order to do good.
Beata
felt a lump in her throat. For the first time in her life, she knew she was
doing good. She was living her dream, and it was good.
CHAPTER
44
THE
BURLY SOLDIER GAVE her the side of his boot on her rump. She had tried to hurry
out of his way as soon as he kicked, but she wasn't fast enough. She pressed
her lips tight against the sting of it.
If only
the power of the gift worked, she would have done him a turn. She considered
using her cane, but, keeping in mind her business, thought better of dispensing
justice just then, no matter how sorely it was needed.
Rattling
her three copper coins in her tin cup, Annalina Aldurren, former Prelate of the
Sisters of the Light, the most powerful women in the Old World for over
three-quarters
490
of a
millennium, moved on to beg from the soldiers gathered round the next fire.
- Like
most soldiers, the next bunch she came upon as she moved through the camp
showed interest when she first approached, thinking she might be a whore, but
their ardor for female companionship quickly faded when she came into the ring
of firelight and gave them a big gap-toothed grin- or the illusion of one, anyway,
with the aid of some greasy soot on a few selected teeth.
It was
quite convincing, actually, along with the rags she had layered over her dress,
the dung-soaked head wrap- lest anyone decide they could overlook the craggy
smile- and the walking cane. The cane was the worst; affecting a bad back was
giving her one.
Twice,
soldiers got it in their heads they could disregard her shortcomings in view of
the scarcity of women.\xA0 While they were
handsome enough, in the savage brute sort of a way, she had to politely decline
their offers. Rejecting such insistent invitations had been messy. Fortunately,
what with all the commotion of camp life, no one noticed a man dying of a
suddenly slit throat. Such a death among men like those of the Imperial Order
would not even be questioned.
Taking
a life was something Ann did only with great reluctance. Given the mission of
these soldiers, and the use to which they would have put her before killing
her, her reluctance was surmountable.
Like
the soldiers gathered around the next fire as they ate and told stories, none
thought anything of her wandering among them. Most gave her a look-see, but
quickly went back to their stew and coarse camp bread washed down with ale and
bawdy stories. A beggar elicited little more than a grunt intended to keep them
moving along.
With an
army this .size, there was an entire culture of camp followers. Tradesmen
traveled with their own wagons, or shared one with others. They followed in the
wake of the army, offering a wide variety of services not provided by the
Imperial Order. Ann had even seen an artist busy at
491
drawing
portraits of proud officers on a historic campaign. Like any artist wishing to
have steady employment and the use of all his fingers, he used his talents to
the customers' best advantage, putting them in triumphant poses, showing them
with knowing eyes and handsome smiles-or all-conquering glowers, depending on
the men's preference.
Peddlers
sold everything from meats and vegetables to rare fruits from back home-Ann
herself hungered for such succulent reminders of the Old World. Business was
brisk in amulets for good luck. If a soldier didn't like the food provided by
the Imperial Order, and he had money, there were people to make him nearly
anything he desired. Like a cloud of gnats, gamblers, hucksters, harlots, and
beggars buzzed around the huge army.
In the
guise of a beggar, Ann was easily able to negotiate the Order's camp, searching
as she would. It cost her only an occasional boot to the behind. Searching an
army the size of this one was quite an undertaking, though. She had been at it
nearly a week. She was bone weary and growing impatient.
In that
week she could have managed to live reasonably well from what she gathered
under her cover of begging-as long as she didn't mind eating maggot-infested,
rotting meat and moldering vegetables. She accepted such offerings graciously,
and then discarded them when out of sight. It was a cruel joke by the soldiers,
giving her the garbage they had intended to throw out. There were some among
the beggars who would salt and pepper it through and then eat it.
Each
day when it got too late to search, she returned to the camp followers and
spent a little of her own money to buy humble but somewhat more wholesome food.
Everyone thought she earned the meager amount begging. The truth be known, she
was not very good at the business of begging, and a business it was. A few of
the beggars, feeling sympathy when they saw her act, tried to help her improve
her technique.
Ann
endured such distractions lest it be discovered she was more than she presented
herself to be. Some of the
492
beggars
made a good living at it. It was a mark of their talent that they could coax a
coin from men such as these.
She knew
that by cruel fate people were occasionally thrust, against their wishes, into
helpless begging. She also knew from hundreds of years of experience trying to
give them help that most beggars clung tenaciously to the life.
Ann
trusted no one in the camp, but of all the people there, she trusted beggars
least. They were more dangerous than the soldiers. Soldiers were what they were
and made no pretense. If they didn't want you around, they would order you away
or give you the boot. Some would simply show her a blade in warning. If they
intended you harm, or murder, they made their intent clear.
Beggars,
on the other hand, lived lives of lies. They lied from the time they opened
their eyes in the morning until they told the Creator a lie in their bedtime
prayers.
Of all
the Creator's miserable creations, Ann most disliked liars-and those who
repeatedly placed their trust and security in the hands of such liars. Liars
were Creation's jackals. Deception to a noble end, though regrettable, was
sometimes necessary for a greater good. Lying for selfish reasons was the
fertile dirt of immorality, from which sprouted the tendrils of evil.
Trusting
men who demonstrated a proclivity to lie proved you a fool, and such fools were
nothing more to the liar than the dust beneath their boots-there to be trod
upon.
Ann
knew liars were the Creator's children, the same as she, and that she was duty
bound to view them with patience and forgiveness, but she couldn't. She simply
couldn't abide liars and that was that. She was resigned to the fact that in
the afterlife she would have to take her lumps for it.
Begging
was proving to be time-consuming, so in order to cover as much ground as
possible, Ann tried to do as little of it as possible. Every night the camp was
jumbled all over again, making it impossible to rely on the merit of previous
searches, so she determined to make as much of each foray as possible.
Fortunately, because the army was so vast, they did tend to stay in roughly the
same order-
493
much
like a string of cargo wagons stopping along a road for the night.
In the
mornings it was well over an hour after the leading edge started out before the
tail began to move. At night the lead was cooking dinner long before the rear
guard halted. They didn't cover a great deal of ground each day, but their
progress was inexorable.
Beyond
their purpose, Ann was disturbed by their direction of travel. The Order had
been gathering for quite some, time down around Grafan Harbor in the Old World.
When they finally began to move, they had streamed up from those shores into
the New World, but they turned with the coast, following it west, to where Ann
had unexpectedly encountered them.
Ann was
no military tactician, but it struck her immediately as an odd thing for them
to do. She had assumed they would attack north into the New World. That they
were heading in such a seemingly fruitless direction told her there must be a
good reason; Jagang did nothing without reason. While he was ruthless,
confident, and bold, he was not rash.
Jagang
was skilled in the fine art of patience.
The
people of the Old World had always been anything but a homogeneous society. Ann
had, after all, been observing them for over nine centuries. She considered it
charitable to merely say they were diverse, fractious, and intractable. There
had been no two areas of the Old World that could agree on up from down.
In the
nearly twenty years she had been watching him, Jagang had methodically
consolidated the seemingly ungovernable into a cohesive society. That it was
brutal, corrupt, and inequitable was another matter; he had made them one and
in so doing forged a force of unprecedented might.
What
the parents might have been--independent and loyal only to their small place in
the world-the children were not. A large percentage of the Imperial Order
troops and command had been babes or young children when the Order seized
power. They had grown up under the rule of Jagang, and as children always did,
believed as they were
494
taught
by those who led them, adopting the same values and morals.
The
Sisters of the Light, however, served a higher purpose than the affairs of
governance. Ann had seen elected governments, kings, and other rulers come and
go. The Palace of the Prophets and the Sisters, existing under the ancient
spell that dramatically slowed their aging, always remained. While she and her
Sisters did work to help bring out mankind's better nature, their calling was
in areas of the gift, not rule.
But she
did keep an eye to rulers, lest they interfere with the Creator's gift. Jagang,
in recently committing himself to the elimination of magic, had overstepped
matters of rule. His reign had become material to her. Now, he was moving into
the New World, in his efforts to extinguish magic.
Ann had
observed over time that whenever Jagang swallowed a new land or kingdom, he
would settle in as he began to infiltrate the next, and the next after that. He
would find willing ears and, with tempting promises of juicy slices of the
graft to come, woo them into weakening their own defenses in the mask of
virtue: peace.
Some
lands' discipline and defenses were so eviscerated from within that they threw
out a welcoming carpet for Jagang rather than dare defy him. The foundations of
some formerly strong lands became so riddled with the termites of diminished
purpose, so decayed with the decadence of smug moderation, and so emaciated
with the vacillating aims of appeasers, that even when they saw the enemy
coming and did resist, they were easily toppled when the Imperial Order finally
pushed.
With
the unexpected direction the Order was taking to the west, Ann was beginning to
worry that Jagang had been doing the unimaginable: sending envoys on covert
missions sailing around the great barrier-years before Richard destroyed the
Towers of Perdition. Such missions would have been incredibly risky. Ann would
know; she had done so herself.
It was
possible Jagang had books of prophecy, or wizards
495
with
the talent, who gave him reason to believe the barrier would come down. After
all, Nathan had told Ann that very thing.
If so,
Jagang was not simply marching off for the purpose of exploration,
exploitation, and conquest. From her experience watching him come to dominate the
entirety of the Old World, she knew Jagang rarely rolled down a road he hadn't
first had widened and smoothed.
Ann
paused in the darkness between groups of men. She squinted off in several
directions. Hard as it was for her to believe, she hadn't even seen Jagang's
tents yet. She wanted to find them because she hoped they might give her a
valuable clue in finding her Sisters of the Light; he likely would keep them
near.
She
sighed in exasperation at not seeing anything but more fires and troops. In the
darkness and confusion of the Order's camp, she knew she could be close and
still not see Jagang's tents.
The
worst of it, though, was not having the gift to aid her. With the gift she
could easily have listened to distant conversations, cast small spells, and
conjured discreet aid. Without the gift, she found the search a frustrating and
fruitless experience.
She
could hardly believe she could be this close to the Sisters of the Light and
not find them. With the gift, she would have been able to sense them were she
close enough.
Beyond
the aid it would have provided, there was more to it. Being unable to use the
gift was like being denied the Creator's love. Her lifetime of devotion to
doing the Creator's work, coupled with the glory of touching her inner
magic-her Han, the force of life-had always been supremely gratifying. Not that
there hadn't been frustrations, fears, and failures, but there always was the
opening of herself to her Han to make up for every trial.
For
over nine centuries her Han had been her constant' companion through life. Her
inability to touch her gift had on more than one occasion driven her to the
verge of tears.
She
felt little different, for the most part-as long as she
496
didn't
think about it. But when her thoughts turned to touching that inner light, and
she couldn't, it felt like a slow suffocation of the mind.
As long
as she didn't try to use her gift, it seemed it was still there, waiting, like
a comforting friend seen out of the corner of her eye. But when she reached for
it, put the weight of thought against it, it felt as if the ground opened and
she plummeted into a terrifying black abyss.
Without
her gift, and no longer living under the protection of the spell that had been
around the Palace of the Prophets, Ann was no different than anyone else. She
was, in reality, little more than a beggar. She was simply an old woman, aging
like anyone else, with no more strength than any other old woman. The insights,
knowledge, and-she hoped- wisdom of having lived as long as she had were her
only advantages.
Until
Zedd banished the chimes, she would be, for the most part, helpless. Until Zedd
banished the chimes. If Zedd banished the chimes ....
Ann
picked the wrong route-between wagons standing close together-and came to an
impasse with someone going the other way. She excused herself and started to
back up out of the way. Beggars were obeisant, even though it was insincere.
"Prelate?"
Ann
froze.
"Prelate,
is that you?"
Ann
looked up into the startled face of Sister Georgia Cifaro. They had known each
other for more than five hundred years. The woman's mouth was working as she
tried to find words.
Ann
reached out and patted the hand holding a pail of steaming porridge. Sister
Georgia flinched.
"Sister
Georgia, thank the Creator I've found one of you, at last."
Sister
Georgia cautiously reached out and touched Ann's face, seemingly testing if it
were real.
"You're
dead," Sister Georgia said. "I was at your funeral
497
ceremony.
I saw ... you and Nathan ... your bodies were sent into the Light on the
funeral pyre. I saw it. We prayed all night as we watched you and Nathan
burn."
"Really?
How sweet of you. You always were such a considerate person, Sister Georgia.
That would be just like you, standing guard through the darkness, praying for
me. I'm so appreciative. "But, it wasn't me."
Sister
Georgia flinched again. "But, but, Verna was named Prelate."
"Yes,
I know. I wrote the orders, remember." The woman nodded. Ann went on.
"I had a reason. Nonetheless, I'm quite alive, as you can well see."
At
last, Sister Georgia set down the bucket and threw her arms around Ann.
"Oh,
Prelate! Oh, Prelate!"
That
was all Sister Georgia could get out before she started bawling like a baby.
Ann managed to get her calmed down in short order with some short words. They
were in no place to risk being seen in such a way. Their lives were at stake,
and Ann couldn't have them lost for no more reason than a woman weeping out of control.
"Prelate,
what's wrong with you? You smell like dung, and you look a mess!"
Ann
chuckled. "I didn't dare allow my beauty to be witnessed by all these men,
or I would have more offers of marriage than I could turn down."
Sister
Georgia laughed, but it dissolved into tears again. "They're beasts. All
of them."
Ann
comforted her. "I know, Sister Georgia. I know." She lifted the
woman's chin. "You are a Sister of the Light. Straighten yourself up, now.
What is done to this body is not what matters. Our eternal souls are what
concerns us. Beasts in this life can do what they will to your body, but they
cannot touch your pure soul.
"Now,
act what you are: a Sister of the Light."
Sister
Georgia smiled through the tears. "Thank you, Prel-
498
ate. I
needed to hear your scolding to remember my calling. Sometimes it's all too
easy to forget."
Ann
went to her purpose. "Where are the others?"
Sister
Georgia lifted a hand to point off to Ann's right and a little behind.
"Over there."
"Are
you all together?"
"No.
Prelate, some of the Sisters have sworn themselves to the Nameless One."
She bit her lower lip and wrung her hands. "There are Sisters of the Dark
in our order."
"Yes,
I know."
"You
do? Well, Jagang keeps them elsewhere. The Sisters of the Light are together,
but I don't know where the Sisters of the Dark are, nor do I care to."
"Praise
the Creator," Ann said with a sigh. "That was what I was hoping-that
there wouldn't be any of them among you." '
Sister
Georgia glanced over her shoulders. "Prelate, you must get out of here or
you will be killed or captured." She started pushing Ann, trying to turn
her around and get her to leave.
Ann
seized Sister Georgia's sleeve in an attempt to get the woman to listen.
"I'm
here to rescue the Sisters. Something has happened to give us the rare
opportunity to help you escape."
"There
is no way-"
"Silence,"
Ann growled in a whisper. "Listen to me. The chimes are loose."
Sister
Georgia gasped. "That's not possible."
"Oh
really? I'm telling you it is so. If you don't believe me, then why do you
think your power is gone?"
Sister
Georgia stood mute as Ann listened to the raucous laughter of men gambling not
far away. The Sister's gaze kept searching the area beyond the wagons, fearing
they would be caught.
"Well?"
Ann asked. "What did you think was the reason for your power being
gone?"
Sister
Georgia's tongue darted out to wet her lips. "We
499
aren't
allowed to open ourselves to our Han. Jagang only allows us to do so if he
wants something. Otherwise, we mustn't. He's in our minds-he's a dream walker,
Prelate. He can tell if we touch our Han without permission. It's something you
don't dare try twice.
"He
can control it. He can make you very sorry for anything you do which he doesn't
like." The woman was dissolving into tears again. "Oh, Prelate
..."
Ann
pulled the woman's head down to her shoulder. "There, there. Hush now.
It's all right now, Georgia. Hush now. I'm here to get you away from this
madness."
Sister
Georgia pulled back. "Away? You can't. The dream walker is in our minds.
He could be watching us right this very minute. He can do that, you know."
Ann
shook her head. "No, he can't. The chimes, remember? Your magic has
failed, his magic has failed. He is no longer in your head. You are free of
him."
Sister
Georgia began objecting. Ann gripped her arm and started her moving.
"Take
me to the other Sisters. I'll have no argument, do you hear? We must get away
while we have a chance."
"But
Prelate, we can't-"
Ann
seized the ring through Sister Georgia's lip. "Do you want to continue to
be a slave of this beast? Do you want to continue to be used by him and his
men?" She gave the ring a tug. "Do you?"
Tears
welled in the woman's eyes. "No, Prelate."
"Then
get me to the tent with the other Sisters of the Light. I intend on getting you
all away from Jagang this very night."
"But
Prelate-"
"Move!
Before we're caught here!"
Sister
Georgia snatched up the pail of porridge and scurried off. Ann followed on her
heels, with Georgia glancing back over her shoulder every few paces. The woman
hurried along at a good clip, skirting every campfire and group of men by as
wide a margin as she could without getting closer to men on the other side.
500
Even as
she did, men still occasionally noticed her and reached out to snatch at her
skirt. Most would laugh when she squeaked and scooted away.
When
another man caught the Sister's wrist, Ann put herself between them. She smiled
at the man. He was so surprised he let go of Sister Georgia. The two of them
made a quick escape.
"You
are going to get us killed," Sister Georgia whispered as she hustled
between wagons.
"Well,
I didn't think you were in the mood for what the fellow had in mind."
"If
a soldier insists, we have to. If we don't... Jagang teaches us lessons if we
don't-"
Ann
shoved her onward. "I know. But I'm going to get you out of here. Hurry
up. We must get the Sisters and escape while we have the chance. By morning,
we'll be long -gone and Jagang won't know where to look."
The
woman opened her mouth to object, but Ann shoved her onward.
"As
the Creator is my witness, Sister Georgia, I've seen more shilly-shallying out
of you in the last ten minutes than your first five hundred years in this
world. Now, get me to the other Sisters, or I'll make you wish for Jagang's
clutches instead of mine."
501
CHAPTER
45
ANN
TOOK A QUICK glance around as Sister Georgia lifted the tent flap. Satisfied that
no one was paying any attention, Ann ducked inside.
A crowd
of women huddled inside the dimly lit tent, some lying down, some sitting on
the ground hugging their knees, some with arms around one another like
frightened children. Not many even bothered to look up. Ann couldn't recall
seeing such a cowed-looking bunch.
She
reproved herself; these women had suffered unspeakable abuse.
"Shoo,"
Sister Rochelle, sitting near the tent opening, said, without meeting Ann's
eyes. "Out with you, beggar."
"Good
for you, child," Ann said. "Good for you, Sister Rochelle, for
keeping beggars from your humble home."
Half
the women looked up at the sound of Ann's voice. Wide eyes stared in the dim
candlelight. Some of the women pushed at others who weren't paying attention,
or swatted an arm, or pulled on a sleeve.
Some
were dressed in outfits Ann could scarcely believe. The clothes covered them
from neck to ankle, but were so sheer as to leave the women, for all practical
purposes, naked. Others had on their own dresses, but they were in a
502
state
of wretched disrepair. A few had on little more than rags.
Ann
smiled. "Fionola, you look well, considering your ordeal. Sister Kerena.
Sister Aubrey. Sister Cherna, you look to be getting some gray hair. It happens
to us all, but you wear it well."
Women
all round blinked with disbelieving eyes.
"It's
really her," Sister Georgia said. "She's really alive. She didn't
die, like we thought. Prelate Annalina Aldurren lives."
"Well,"
Ann said, "Verna is the Prelate, now, but..."
Women
were rushing to their feet. It rather reminded Ann of sheep watching a wolf
coming down the hill. They all looked like they might bolt for the countryside.
Sisters
of the Light were women of strength, women of fortitude, women of decisive
intelligence. Ann feared to consider what it would have taken to reduce all
these women to such a sorry looking state.
She ran
a gentle hand down a head beside her. "Sister Lucy. You are a sight for my
tired eyes." Ann smiled with genuine joy. "You all are." She
felt a tear roll down her own cheek. "My dear, dear Sisters, you are all a
blessed sight to my eyes. I thank the Creator He has led me to you."
And
then they were all falling to knees to bow to her, to whisper their prayers to
the Creator for her safety, to weep with disbelief.
"There,
there. None of that," she said, wiping her fingers across the cheek of
Sister Lucy, clearing away the, tears. "None of that. We have important
business, and we've no time for a good cry, not that I'm saying you aren't all
entitled. But later would be an excellent time for it, while right now is
not."
Sisters
kissed the hem of her dress. More came forward on their knees to do the same.
They were the lost, who were now found. It nearly broke Ann's heart.
She
smiled her best Prelate smile and indulged them, touching each head, blessing
each of them by name and
503
thanking
the Creator aloud for sparing each life and guarding each soul. It was an
informal, formal audience with the Prelate of the Sisters of the Light.
She
didn't think it the proper time to insist on reminding them she was no longer
the Prelate, that she'd given the office to Verna for safekeeping. At that
moment of joy, it just wasn't important.
Ann
allowed the reunion to go on for only a few minutes before forcing it to an
end.
"Listen
now, all of you. Hush. We will have more than enough time later to share our
joy at being together. Now I must tell you why I have come.
"Something
terrible has happened. But as you know more than most, there must be balance in
all things. The balance is that the terrible event will, in the Creator's
balance, allow you to escape."
"The
Prelate says the chimes are loose," Sister Georgia put in. Everyone
gasped. "She believes it."
The
clear implication was that Sister Georgia didn't believe it, that it was
impossible, and anyone would have to be a fool to think it was so.
"Now,
listen to me, all of you." Ann let her brow draw down in a look every
woman in the room knew well enough to bring sweat to their brows. "You all
remember Richard?" There were nods all around. "Well, it's a long
story, but Jagang loosed a plague that killed thousands of people. It was a
horrifying death for countless people. Untold numbers of children perished.
Untold numbers of children were left orphans.
"Sister
Amelia-"
"She's
sworn to the Keeper!" several Sisters in the back gasped aloud.
"I
know," Ann said. "She is the one who went to the underworld. She
brought back the plague for Jagang. She murdered so many innocent people....
"Richard
was able to use his power to stop the plague."
There
were astonished looks all around, accompanied by whispering. Ann imagined she
was probably telling them
504
too
much all at once, but she had to explain enough so they would understand what
was at stake.
"Richard
contracted the plague, and in order to save his life, the Mother Confessor used
magic." Ann held up a finger to silence them. "Nathan escaped."
Again, gasps filled the tent. Ann hushed them lest they fall to wailing.
"Nathan told the Mother Confessor the names of the chimes in order to save
Richard's life. It was a terrible choice to make, but I believe he only did it
to save Richard. The Mother Confessor spoke the names of those three chimes
aloud to complete the spell to save Richard.
"The
chimes are here. She called them into this world. I have personal knowledge of
this. I have seen them, and I have seen them kill."
This
time, there were no protests. Even Sister Georgia seemed convinced. Ann felt
vindicated in her decision to tell them this much of it.
"As
you all know, the chimes being loose has the potential to bring about an
unprecedented cataclysm. It has begun. Magic is failing. All our magic is
diminished to the point where it is useless. However, in the meantime Jagang's
magic is useless, too.
"While
this is so, we can get you all out of here."
"But
what difference do the chimes make?" someone asked.
Ann
drew a patient breath. "With the chimes here, magic is failing. That means
Jagang's magic as a dream walker has failed just as our gift has failed. Your
minds are all free of the dream walker."
Sister
Georgia stared in disbelief for a moment. "But what if the chimes go back
to the underworld? That could happen unexpectedly at any time. Jagang would be
back in our heads. You can't tell he's there, Prelate. You can't tell.
"The
chimes could already have fled back to the world of the dead. They may not have
succeeded in gaining a soul. They may have fled to the protection of the
Nameless One. The dream walker could be back in my head, watching me, as we
speak."
505
Ann
grasped the woman's arms. "No, he's not. Now, listen to me. My magic has
failed. Yours is gone, too. All of us are without the gift. I will be able to
tell when it returns- any of us can. For now, it's gone, and so is the dream
walker."
"But
we aren't allowed to use our gift without permission," a Sister to the
right said. "We couldn't tell when our power returned to know the chimes
had fled this world."
"I
will know immediately," Ann said. "Jagang doesn't prevent me from
touching my Han, if I can."
Sister
Kerena stepped forward. "But if the chimes do go back, then His Excellency
will return to-"
"No.
Listen. There is a way to prevent the dream walker from ever again entering
your mind."
"That's
not possible." Sister Cherna's eyes darted about, as if Jagang might be
hiding in the shadows, watching them. "Prelate, you must get out of here.
You're going to be caught. Someone might have seen you. They could be telling
Jagang as we speak."
"Please,
get away," Sister Fionola said. "We are lost. Forget about us and get
away. It can come to no good end, you being here."
Ann
growled again. "Listen to me! It is possible to be safe from the dream
walker entering your mind. We can all get away from his evil grip."
Sister
Georgia was back to disbelieving. "But I don't see how-"
"How
do you think he doesn't enter my mind? Don't you think he would want me? The
Prelate herself? Wouldn't he get me if he could?"
They
were all silent as they considered.
"Well,
I guess he would." Sister Aubrey's brow drew down. "How is it he
isn't able to take you, too?"
"I'm
protected. That's what I'm trying to tell you. Richard is a war wizard. You all
know what that means: he has both sides of the gift."
The
Sisters blinked in astonishment, and then they all fell to whispering to one
another.
506
"Furthermore,"
Ann went on, bringing the cramped tent full of women to silence, "he is a
Rahl."
"What
difference does that make?" Sister Fionola asked.
"The
dream walkers are from the time of the great war. A wizard of that time, a war
wizard named Rahl, an ancestor of Richard's, conjured a bond to protect his
people from them. Gifted descendants of the House of Rahl are born with this
bond with his people that protects them from dream walkers.
"The
people of Richard's land are all bonded to him as their Lord Rahl. Because of
that, and because of the magic of it passed down to him, they are all protected
from the dream walker. That keeps Jagang from their minds. A dream walker can't
enter the mind of anyone bonded to the Lord Rahl."
"But
we are not his people," women all around were saying.
Ann
held up a hand. "It doesn't matter. You only have to swear your loyalty to
Richard-swear it meaningfully in your heart-and you are safe from the dream
walker."
She
passed a finger before their eyes. "I have long been sworn to Richard. He
leads us in our fight against this monster, Jagang, who would end magic in this
world. My faith in Richard, my bond to him, my being sworn to him in my heart,
protects me from Jagang entering my mind."
"But
if what you say about the chimes being here in this world is true," a
Sister in the back said in a whine, "then the magic of the bond will fail,
too, so we would have no protection."
Ann
sighed and tried to remain patient with these frightened and intimidated women.
She reminded herself to keep in mind these women had been in the savage hands
of the enemy for a long time.
"But
the two cancel each other, don't you see."
Ann
turned up her palms, like scales, moving them up and down in opposition.
"As long as the chimes are here, Jagang's magic doesn't work, and he can't
enter your minds." She moved her hands in the opposite direction.
507
"When
the chimes are banished, and if you are Sworn to Richard, then his bond keeps
Jagang from your mind. Either one or the other protects you.
"Do
you all see? You must only swear to Richard, who leads the fight against
Jagang, fights for our cause-the cause of the Light-and you never again need
fear the dream walker being able to reach you.
"Sisters,
we can get away. Tonight. Right now. Do you at last see? You can be free."
They
all stared dumbly. Finally, Sister Rochelle spoke up. "But, we aren't all
here."
Ann
looked around. "Where are the rest? We will collect them and leave. Where
are they?"
Again,
the women retreated into frightened silence. Ann snapped her fingers at Sister
Rochelle for her to answer. Finally the woman spoke again. "The
tents."
Every
woman in the room cast her eyes down. The gold rings through their lower lips
shone in the candlelight. "What do you mean, the tents?"
Sister
Rochelle cleared her throat, trying to keep the tears struggling to break
through from doing so.
"Jagang,
when one of us displeases him, or he is angry with us, or he wants to punish
us, or teach us a lesson, or simply wishes to be cruel, sends us to the tents.
The soldiers use us. They pass us around."
Sister
Cherna fell to the ground weeping. "We must be whores for his men."
Ann
gathered her resolve. "Listen to me, all of you. That ends right now.
Right now, you are free. You are again Sisters of the Light. Do you hear me?
You are no longer his slaves!"
"But
what about the others?" Sister Rochelle asked. "Can you get
them?"
Sister
Georgia drew up tall and stiff. "You wait here, Prelate. Sister Rochelle,
Aubrey, and Kerena will go with me to see what we can do." She gave the
three a look. "Won't we? We know what we must do."
508
The
three nodded. Sister Kerena put a hand under Ann's arm.
"You
wait here. Will you? Wait here until we return."
"Yes,
all right," Ann said. "But you must hurry. We need to get out of here
before it gets too late in the night, or we will raise suspicions traipsing
through the camp when everyone else is sleeping. We can't wait for-"
"Just
wait," Sister Rochelle said in a calm voice. "We will see to it.
Everything will be all right."
Sister
Georgia turned to the tent full of Sisters. "See to it she waits, will
you? She must wait here."
The
Sisters nodded. Ann put her fists on her hips.
"If
you take too long, we will have to leave without you. Do you understand? We
can't-"
Sister
Rochelle put a hand against Ann's shoulder. "We will be back in plenty of
time. Wait."
Ann
sighed. "The Creator be -with you."
Ann sat
among Sisters, who seemed to recede back into the prison of their private
thoughts. Their joy, so evident when they had first seen her, had faded. They
were once again distant and unresponsive.
They
stared off without listening as Ann tried telling them some of the lighter
stories of her adventures. She chuckled as she recounted incommodious moments,
hoping someone would become interested and perhaps smile, at least. No one did.
None of
them asked anything, or even seemed to be listening. They would no longer even
meet her gaze. Like trapped animals, they wanted only to escape the terror.
Ann was
growing more uncomfortable by the moment. By the moment, sitting among these
women she knew so well, her hackles were beginning to rise at the thought that
maybe she didn't know them as well as she had believed.
509
Sometimes,
trapped animals didn't know enough to run for an open gate.
When
the tent flap opened, they scooted away from her. Ann rose.
Four
huge men, layered in leather plates, belts, straps, hides over their shoulders,
and weapons jangling from their belts, ducked into the tent, followed by
Sisters Georgia, Rochelle, Aubrey, and Kerena. The men's stringy, greasy hair
whipped from side to side as they checked to each side. By the way they carried
themselves they looked to Ann to be men of more authority than mere soldiers.
Sister
Rochelle pointed. "That's her. The Prelate of the Sisters of the
Light."
"Rochelle,"
Ann growled, "what's this about? What do you think-"
The man
seeming to be in charge seized her jaw, turning her head left, then right, as
he appraised her. "You sure?" His dark glower moved to Sister
Rochelle. "She looks like the rest of the beggars to me."
Sister
Georgia pointed at Ann. "I'm telling you, that's her." The man's eyes
turned to Sister Georgia as she went on. "She's just fixed herself up like
that to get in here."
The man
gestured the other soldiers forward. They brought manacles and. chains. Ann
tried to fight them off, to twist away, but the soldier who seized her,
unconcerned, gripped her fists and pulled them out for another man to clamp on
the manacles.
Two of
them forced her to the ground as another man set down an anvil. They held the
manacles' ears on the anvil as they hammered pins through the holes and then
mushroomed the heads of the pins, locking the manacles on permanently. They
made them too tight, so they dug into her flesh, but the men were indifferent
to her unintended cry of pain.
Ann
knew better than to struggle when it could do no good, so she made herself
become still. Without her Han, she was as helpless as a child against these big
men. The
510
Sisters
mostly cowered as far away as they could get. None watched.
The men
hammered closed the open links at the end of the chains. Ann let out a grunt as
she was slammed face down in the dirt. More manacles were affixed to her ankles.
More chains were attached. Big hands lifted her. A chain around her waist
webbed all the rest together.
Ann was
not even going to be able to feed herself.
One of
the men scratched his thick beard. "And she has no one with her?"
Sisters
Georgia and Rochelle shook their heads.
He
chuckled. "How'd she get to be the Prelate, if she's that dumb?"
Sister
Georgia curtsied without meeting his eyes. "We don't know, sir. But she
is."
He
shrugged and started to leave, but then halted and cast his gaze over the
shivering women on the floor. He pointed a thick finger at a Sister in one of
the absurd transparent outfits.
"You."
Sister
Theola flinched. She closed her eyes. Ann could see her lips moving in a futile
prayer to the Creator.
"Come
along," the man commanded.
Trembling,
Sister Theola stood. The other three men grinned their approval of their
leader's choice as they shoved her out ahead of them.
"You
said you wouldn't," Sister Georgia spoke up, if meekly.
"Did
I?" the man asked. He showed her a wicked grin. "Changed my
mind."
"Let
me go in her place," Sister Georgia called out as the man turned to leave.
He
turned back. "Well, well. Aren't you the noble one." He seized Sister
Georgia's wrist and pulled her after as he went out through the flap.
"Since you're so eager, you can come along with her."
After
the men left with the two women, the tent fell to
511
terrible
silence. None of the Sisters would look at Ann as she sat hobbled in the
chains.
"Why?"
Ann had spoken the word softly, but it rang though the tent like the huge bell
atop the Palace of the Prophets. Several Sisters quailed at the single word.
Others wept.
"We
know better than to try to escape," Sister Rochelle said at last. "We
all tried at first. We truly did, Prelate. Some of us died trying. It was
prolonged and horrible.
"His
Excellency taught us the futility of trying to escape. Aiding anyone in an
attempt to escape is a grave offense. None of us wishes that lesson visited
upon us again."
"But
you could have been free!"
"We
know better," Sister Rochelle said. "We can't be free. We belong to
His Excellency."
"As
victims at first," Ann said, "but now by choice. I willingly risked
my life that you might be free. You were given the option, and you chose to
remain slaves rather than reach for freedom.
"Worse,
though, you all lied to me. You lied in the cause of evil." The women hid
their faces as Ann delivered a withering glare. "And each of you knows
what I think of liars-what the Creator thinks of those who lie in the cause of
opposing his work."
"But
Prelate-" Sister Cherna whined.
"Silence!
I've no use for your words. You no longer have any right to have me hear them.
"If
I ever get out of these chains, it will be by the aid of those who sincerely
serve the Light. You are no better than the Sisters of the Dark. At least they
have the honesty to admit their vile master."
Ann
fell silent when a man stepped through the opening into the tent.
He was
average in height and powerfully built, with massive arms and chest. His fur
vest was open, revealing dozens of jewel-studded gold chains hanging from his
bull neck. Each thick finger held a ring worthy of a king.
His
smooth shaved head reflected points of light from the
512
candles.
A fine gold chain ran from a gold ring in his left nostril to another in his
left ear. The long braided ends of his mustache hung past his jaw, matching the
braid in the center under his lower lip.
His
eyes, though, marked the nightmare of the dream walker.
They
had no whites to them at all. The murky orbs were clouded over with sullen
dusky shapes shifting in a field of inky obscurity, yet Ann had no doubt
whatsoever that he was looking right at her.
She
couldn't imagine the gaze of the Keeper himself being any worse.
"A
visitor, I see." His voice matched his muscle.
"The
pig can speak," Ann said. "How fascinating."
Jagang
laughed. It was not an agreeable sound.
"Oh,
darlin, but aren't you the brash sort. Georgia tells me you'd be the Prelate
herself. That true, darlin?"
She
noticed out of the corner of her eye that every woman in the tent was on her
knees with her face to the dirt in a deep bow. Ann couldn't say she didn't
understand their not wanting to meet the man's disturbing gaze.
She
gave him a pleasant smile. "Annalina Aldurren, former Prelate of the
Sisters of the light, at your service."
The
cleft between his prodigious chest muscles deepened as he pressed his hands
together in the pose of prayer and bowed toward her with mock respect of her
rank.
"Emperor
Jagang, at yours."
Ann
sighed irritably. "Well, what's it to be, Jagang? Torture? Rape? Hanging,
beheading, burning?"
The
grisly grin visited him again. "My, my, darlin, but don't you know how to
tempt a man."
He
grabbed a fistful of hair and lifted Sister Cherna.
"See,
the thing is, I got plenty of these regular Sisters, and I got plenty of the
other kind, too, the ones sworn to the Keeper. I confess to liking them
better." He arched an eyebrow over a forbidding eye. "They can still
use some of their magic."
513
Sister
Cherna's eyes watered in pain as he gripped her throat. "But I've only got
one Prelate."
Sister
Cherna's feet were clear of the ground by several inches. She couldn't breathe,
but made no effort to fight. His terrible massive muscles rippled and glistened
in the candlelight.
The
cords in his arm strained. Cherna's eyes widened as his grip tightened. Her
mouth gaped in silent fright.
"So,"
Jagang said to the others, "she confirmed everything about the chimes?
Told you everything about them?"
"Yes!"
several offered at once, clearly hoping he would release Sister Cherna.
Not
everything, Ann thought. If Zedd was ever going to succeed at anything, she
hoped the chimes would be it.
"Good."
Jagang dropped the woman.
Sister
Cherna crumpled in a heap, her hands tearing at her throat as she struggled to
get air. She couldn't get her breath. Jagang had crushed her windpipe. Her
fingers clawed at the air. As she lay at his feet, she began turning blue.
With
desperate effort, she struggled her way into Ann's lap. Ann stroked the poor
ruined woman's head with an outpouring of helpless compassion..
Ann
whispered her love and forgiveness to Sister Cherna, and then silently prayed
to the Creator and to the good spirits.
Sister
Cherna's arms, twitching in agony, circled Ann's waist in gratitude. Ann could
do nothing but-pray that the Creator would forgive his child as she died a
burbling death in Ann's lap. At last, she stilled with the merciful release of
death.
Jagang
kicked Sister Cherna aside. He seized the chain around Ann's throat and with
one hand easily hauled her to her feet. Cloudy shapes in his inky eyes shifted
in a way that unsettled her stomach.
"I
think you may be of some use. Maybe I can pull off your arms and send them to
Richard Rahl, just to give him nightmares. Maybe I can trade you for something
of value.
514
But
fear not, I will think of a use for you, Prelate, You are now my property."
"You
can. have my existence in this world," Ann said with grim commitment,
"but you cannot touch my soul. That gift of the Creator is mine, and mine
alone."
He
laughed. "A fine speech." He jerked her face closer. "One I've
heard before." His eyebrows arched with delight. "Why, I think every
woman in this room has said the same to me. But you know what, Prelate? They
put the lie to it today, didn't they?
"They
all gave you over, when they could have escaped. At the least, they could have
saved your life at no risk to themselves. But they chose to remain slaves when
you offered them freedom.
"I'd
say, Prelate, that I have their souls, too."
"Sister
Cherna sought me at death, not you, Jagang.' She sought goodness and love, even
though she had betrayed me. That, Emperor, is the mark of a soul's true
intent."
"A
difference of opinion, then." He shrugged. "What say we kill the
rest, one at a time, and see each vote of devotion, then tally the votes at the
end? To be fair, though, we'll take turns killing them. I killed mine. Your
turn."
Ann
could do no more than glare at the beast.
He let
out a belly laugh. "No? See, you aren't so confident in winning the votes
of your Sisters' souls."
He
turned to the Sisters, still on their knees. "Fortune for you today,
darlins. The Prelate seems to have ceded your souls."
His
dark gaze returned to Ann. "By the way, you are probably hoping the chimes
will be banished. We share the hope. I have use for magic, but if I have to, I
can certainly win this way, too,
"But
if the chimes are banished, it will do you no good. You see, those manacles and
chains are invested with a spell spun by my other Sisters. You know the ones.
The Sisters of the Dark. As you know, they have use of Subtractive Magic, and
that, my dear Prelate, still works.
515
"I
just didn't want you to suffer with false hope."
"How
considerate of you."
"Don't
fret, though. I will think of some creative use for you."
He
cocked his arm. His bare shoulders bulged from the fur vest. His biceps were
bigger than the waist of many women in the room.
"For
now, though, I think I'd like you unconscious."
She
tried to pull power forth. Her gift did not respond.
Ann
watched the fist coming, but could do nothing to stop it.
CHAPTER
46
ZEDD
SCRATCHED HIS CHIN as he looked around. He didn't see anyone. It was a peculiar
alleyway, narrow and dark. He peered down to the little place at the end. The
gloomy residence looked deserted.
That
was a good sign.
Zedd
stroked Spider's nose. "You wait here. Understand? Wait here for me."
The
horse tossed her head and nickered agreeably. Smiling, Zedd scratched her ear.
In response, she pressed her forehead against his chest, holding it there to
let him know she would be well pleased if he were to want to continue
scratching the ear for the rest of the afternoon.
516
Named
after the unsettling leggy black splotch on her creamy rump, Spider had proven
an excellent purchase, despite the high price. Being young, strong, and
brimming with equine enthusiasm, the horse enjoyed trotting and occasional
spirited runs. She had gotten him to Toscla in remarkably good time.
Since
he had arrived, he had learned that Toscla was now called Anderith. In fact, he
had almost been hauled off his horse by a man who accused Zedd of using the old
name as an affront. Fortunately, Spider knew nothing of the peculiar human
sensitivity to mere words; she was happy to leap into a gallop.
Zedd,
without use of the gift and being vulnerable, besides feeling his age, had been
resigned to a long and arduous journey afoot across the wilds. But by the magic
of luck, on his third day out of the Mud People's village, he ran across a man
who turned out to be an agent in trade agreements. Since he frequently went
back and forth between clients, the man traveled with several horses. He could
afford to be without his extra until he reached his destination, especially at
the price Zedd offered, and so had parted with Spider.
The
formidable journey Zedd anticipated ended up being remarkably short and not at
all unpleasant, as long as he didn't dwell on his reasons for traveling to
Anderith.
Mingling
into line at the frontier, Zedd had been allowed through the checkpoint along
with wagons, merchants, and traders of every sort. Dressed as he was in his
fine maroon and black robes with silver brocade cuffs and gold brocade around
the neck and down the front along with a gold buckle on a red satin belt, he
was easily able to pass himself off as a merchant. He told the officers at the
border that he had fruit orchards to the north and was on his way to Fairfield
in order to negotiate trade agreements.
By the
look of the soldiers he saw at the border, the people of Anderith placed too
much faith in the Dominie Dirtch. It had been a long time since he had been to
the land formerly called Toscla, but back then the border had been de-
517
fended
by as formidable and well trained an army as there was. The army had
deteriorated until now it was nothing more than the hollow deterrent of
ignorant confidence.
Zedd
noticed Spider's ears turn toward the empty-looking home down at the end of the
alleyway. Every muscle in the horse was at full attention. Zedd guessed that
perhaps a horse was as good at certain things as some of his magic might have
been. He found the thought disagreeable. He wanted his magic back.
After
giving Spider a pat of reassurance, and once again asking her to wait there,
Zedd made his way down the narrow alleyway. Tall clapboard walls to each side
kept out most of the light. Nevertheless, a wide variety of herbs grew beside
the narrow footpath. Many of the herbs Zedd saw growing there didn't enjoy the
light at all. Some of them were exceedingly rare; they ordinarily hissed at
light, but now they looked sickly.
Zedd
made sure to step on each of the three steps going up to the door, rather than
skip any. Such perfunctory attempts at stealth would be a mistake, if this was
the place he hoped it was. Glancing, in the gap of .the curtains, he could see
it was dark inside. He didn't see any eyes evaluating him, but he strongly
suspected, if not with the aid of magic then with common sense, that they were
there.
He took
one last look over his shoulder at Spider standing attentively, her ears
pricked toward him. She lifted her head, opened her mouth, and neighed. Zedd
reached up and knocked.
The
door creaked as it opened. No one was behind it.
"Enter,"
came a voice from the shadows beyond, "and state your request."
Zedd
stepped into the gloom of the narrow room. Little light came in the gap between
the heavy curtains, and the light from the door died out before daring to
trespass very far. He could see no furniture, only the floorboards stretching
off into the dim distance where she remained.
He
turned and peered up at the top of the door. He pointed a bony finger at it.
518
"Nice
touch, the rope used to open the door while you stay over there. Very
effective."
"Who
are you to tempt my anger?"
"Tempt
your anger? Oh, dear no. You have it all wrong. I'm here looking for a
sorceress."
"Take
care, stranger, with what you wish. Wishes have an unpleasant manner of
sometimes coming to be. State your name."
Zedd
bowed dramatically. "Zeddicus Zu'l Zorander." He cocked his head to
regard with one eye the woman in the shadows. "That would be Zeddicus Zu'l
Zorander, as in, First Wizard Zeddicus Zu'l Zorander."
The
woman staggered into the light, her fair features set in astonishment.
"First Wizard ..."
Zedd
put on a disarming smile. "Franca Gowenlock, I'm hoping?"
Slack-jawed
and wide-eyed, she seemed only able to nod.
"My,
my, but haven't you .grown." Zedd held his hand out below his beltline.
"You couldn't have been any bigger than this when I last saw you." He
smiled with sincere admiration. "You look to have grown into a very lovely
woman."
She
blushed as she reached up to plump her hair. "Why, I have gray hair."
"The
bloom of it becomes you. It truly does."
He
meant it. She really was an attractive woman. Her nearly shoulder-length hair
swept back to display proud features in a most appealing manner. The kiss of
gray at her temples only enhanced her mature beauty.
"And
you ..."
"Yes,"
he. said with a sigh, "I know. I'm not exactly sure when it was that it
happened, but I've grown into an old man."
A grin
growing on her face, she stepped up and curtsied, holding out the skirts of her
simple brown dress as she dipped.
"I
am honored to have you in my humble home, First Wizard."
519
Zedd
waggled a hand. "None of that, now. We're old acquaintances. Just Zedd
would do fine by me."
She
rose. "Zedd, then. I can hardly believe the Creator has answered my prayer
in so direct a manner. Oh, but how' I wish my mother were still alive to see
you again."
"She,
too, was a lovely woman. May the good spirits watch over her kind soul."
Beaming,
Franca took his face in both hands. "And you are as handsome as I
remember."
"Really?"
Zedd straightened his shoulders. "Why, thank you, Franca. I try to take
care of myself. Wash regularly, and such-with a few herbs and special oils I
occasionally add in the water. I think that accounts for my skin still being so
supple."
"Oh,
Zedd, you can't imagine how happy I am to see you. Thank the Creator." She
was still holding his face in her hands. Her eyes welled with tears. "I
need help. Oh, First Wizard, I so desperately need your help."
He took
her hands in his. "Odd you should mention that." "Zedd, you
helped my mother, once. Now you must help me. Please. My power has failed. I've
tried everything I can think of. I've consulted books of charms, spells, and
bewitching. None of them have been any help. I've had to tie that rope atop the
door to fool people and keep them wary. "I've been worried sick. I've hardly
slept. I've tried-" "The chimes are loose."
Her
lashes fluttered as she stared dumbly at him. Her silent home seemed to stretch
with her, to turn an ear toward him with her, to hold its breath with her.
"What did you say?" "The chimes are loose."
"No,"
she said, appearing to be in a state of confused shock, "I don't think
that's it. I think it may be a heating of my blood. Possibly caused by a hex
placed on me by women of lesser talent but greater ambition. Jealousy, I
believe it to be, along with a vengeful nature. I try not to step on people's
toes, as it were, but there have been times-" Zedd grasped her shoulders.
"Franca, I came here because
520
I'm
hoping you can help me. The Mother... my granddaughter-in-law ....
unintentionally set the chimes free while urgently summoning the aid of
powerful magic in a final recourse to save the life of my grandson.
"I
need your help. That's why I've come. My gift, too, has failed. All magic is
failing. The world of life is in terrible danger. I don't need to explain to, a
woman of your talents the consequences of such an event. We need to see if
there is anything we can do to banish the chimes. As First Wizard, I've come to
call upon you for help."
"Your
grandson? Is he ... did he survive the ordeal? Did he recover?"
"Yes.
Fortunately, with the aid of the woman then to be his wife, he survived and is
now well."
She put
a fingernail between her teeth for a moment, her dark-eyed gaze shifting about
as she considered his words. "There is that much good in it, then, that he
survived. But then in return for their help, that would mean the chimes could
cross the veil...."
Her
brow puckered. "Your grandson, you say. Has he the gift?" .\xA0\xA0 .
A
thousand things at once flashed through Zedd's mind. He answered with a simple
"Yes."
Franca
smiled briefly and politely, to show she was pleased for Zedd, and then moved
into action. She threw back the drapes, took hold of his arm, and steered him
to a table at the rear. She opened a heavy drape over a little window in the
back to let light flood across the table. The dark mahogany tabletop had a
Grace inlaid in silver.
Franca
graciously gestured for him to sit. While he did, she retrieved two cups. After
pouring tea from a pot hung over the glowing embers in the hearth, she set one
before him and then sank into a chair across from him.
She
dithered before saying, "I suspect there must be more to it."
Zedd
sighed. "There is a great deal more, but time is running short."
"Mind
hitting a few of the high spots for me?"
521
"Well,
all right, then." Zedd took a sip of tea first. "Do you recall
D'Hara?"
Her
hand with the teacup paused on its way to her lips. "And how could one not
recall D'Hara?"
"Yes,
well, the thing is, my daughter was Richard's- that's my grandson, Richard-my
daughter was Richard's mother. He was fathered through a cruel act of
rape."
"I'm
so sorry," she said with sincere sympathy. "But what does that have
to do with D'Hara?'
"The
man who fathered him was Darken Rahl, of D'Hara."
Her
hands took on a decided tremble. She had not yet managed to get the tea to her
mouth. With care, Franca set down her full cup lest she spill her tea before
ever tasting it.
"Do
you mean to tell me that this grandson of yours is the progeny of two lines of
wizards-and is the very same Lord Rahl demanding the surrender of all lands of
the Midlands?"
"Ah,
well, yes, that would be him."
"And
that this grandson of yours, the Lord Rahl himself, is the same one who is
going to be wedded to the Mother Confessor herself?"
"It
was a lovely ceremony," Zedd said. "Quite lovely. Rather exclusive,
it was, but still stylish."
Franca
put her forehead in her hand. "Dear spirits, that is a lump to
swallow."
"Oh,
yes. He's also a war wizard. I forgot-sorry. He was born with both sides of the
gift."
Her
head came up. "What?"
"You
know, both sides. Subtractive Magic, as well as the usual Additive. Both
sides."
"I
know what 'both sides' means."
"Oh."
Franca
swallowed. "Wait just a minute. The chimes ... you mean it was the Mother
Confessor who called them?"
"Well,
she-"
The
woman rose in a rush, her chair scraping against the
522
floor.
"It's Lord Rahl who-dear spirits, the Mother Confessor herself pledged the
soul of Lord Rahl-a war wizard with both sides of the gift-to the chimes?"
"It's
not as bad as all that. She had no knowledge of the spell; she didn't do it
intentionally. She's a good person and would never deliberately do such a
thing."
"Deliberate
or not, if the chimes get ahold of him-"
"I've
sent them both off to a safe place-to where the chimes can't get to him. We
have no need to fear that part of it."
She
sighed with relief. "Thank the Creator for that much."
Zedd
took another sip. "But that still leaves us without our power, and the
world without magic, and possibly on the brink of ruin. Like I said, I need
some help."
Franca
finally sank back into her chair when Zedd nodded toward her. He smiled and
told her the tea was excellent, and that she should have some herself.
"Zedd,
I think you need the Creator Himself to come help you. What do you think I can
possibly do? I'm just an obscure, middling, unremarkable sorceress in a
far-flung land. Why would you come to me?"
Zedd
squinted. He pointed. "What are you hiding with that neck band?"
Her
fingers' brushed her throat. "A scar. You remember the Blood of the
Fold?" Zedd nodded that he did. "Well, most every place has men like
that, men who hate magic, men who think those with magic are responsible for
every miserable thing that happens in their lives."
"Yes,
every place has its zealots."
"Here,
zealotry went by the name Serin Rajak. He's the usual type: vicious and
vengeful. He's talented at expressing his delusions in a way that whips up the
emotions of others and pulls them into his wicked ways."
"So
his idea of ridding the world of evil was killing you?"
"Me
and those like me."
She
briefly pulled down the neck band to reveal a scar.
"He
hanged me by my neck while he and his followers started to build a fire under
me. He's rather fond of burning.
523
Thinks
it purges the world of the person's magic-keeps it from lingering after
death."
Zedd
sighed. "It never ends. So, apparently you convinced him to leave you
be."
She
smiled. "Cost him an eye, what he did to me."
"Can't
say I blame you."
"It
was a long time ago."
Zedd
sought to change the subject. "I presume you've heard about the war with
the Old World?"
"Of
course. We've had representatives from the Imperial Order here to discuss the
matter with our people."
Zedd
sat up straighter. "What? The Order has people here?"
"That's
what I'm telling you. Certain people in the government listen closely to what
the Imperial Order has to say. I fear the Order is making offers to high
officials. And has been doing so for quite some time."
She
watched him over the rim of her cup as she took a sip. She seemed to decide to
tell him more.
"Some
people have been considering sending a secret message to the Mother Confessor,
to ask that she come and investigate."
"With
the chimes loose, she will be without her power, the same as you and I. Until
the chimes are banished, she can be no help with anything like that."
Franca
sighed. "Yes, I see what you mean. It would be best if we could see the
chimes banished."
"In
the meantime, perhaps people here should investigate the matter."
She set
down her cup. "Who is going to question the Minister of Culture's
office?"
"The
Directors," Zedd offered.
She
turned her cup around and around on the tabletop. "Maybe" was all she
said.
When
Zedd didn't say anything, she sought to fill the silence. "In Anderith,
you do what you must to get along."
"There
are always those who will." Zedd slouched back in his chair. "It will
end up being irrelevant anyway. An-
524
derith
is going to have to surrender to Richard and the new D'Haran empire he is
gathering to resist the invasion of the Imperial Order."
Zedd
took another sip. "Did I mention he is also the Seeker of Truth?"
Franca
looked up. "No, you neglected to mention it."
"Richard
won't allow Anderith to carry on in the manner they seem to be doing-to have
corrupt officials colluding with the Order. He and the Mother Confessor will
put an end to such dangerous clandestine scheming. That's one of the reasons
he's been forced to seize power. He means to consolidate rule under fair and
open law."
"Fair
law," she mused, as if it were a child's wish. "We are a prosperous
land, Zedd. Anders have a good life. If it were the Hakens listening to the
Imperial Order, I could understand it, they could be said to have cause, but
Anders are the ones listening, and they are the ones already with power."
Zedd
contemplated his tea. "Nothing nettles some people more than other people
being free. In much the same way that Serin Rajak fellow hates those who have
magic, the ruling elite-or those who would be-despise freedom. They find joy
only in perpetuating misery."
Zedd
sought to take the frost off the chill subject. "So, Franca, do you have a
husband, or do the handsome men of the world still have a chance to court
you?"
Franca
smiled to herself for a time before she spoke. "My heart belongs to
someone...."
Zedd
reached across the table and patted her hand. "Good for you."
She
shook her head as her smile ghosted away. "No. He's married. I can't allow
my feelings to be known. I would forever hate myself if I gave him any reason
to decide to leave his beautiful bride and take up instead an aging spinster
like me. I dare not let him even guess my feelings."
"I'm
sorry, Franca," he said in gentle sympathy. "Life- or should I say
love-sometimes seems so unfair. At least it may seem so now, but someday
..."
525
Franca
dismissed the matter with a gesture-more for herself than for him, he thought.
She met his gaze again.
"Zedd,
I'm flattered you would come to me-for that matter that you would even remember
my name-but why would you think I can help you? You have more power than I. Or
at least you did."
"To
be quite honest, I didn't come for the purpose of seeking your help in the way
you might think. I came here because as a young wizard I learned this to be the
place where the chimes were entombed-in Toscla, or Anderith, as it's now called."
"Really?
I never knew that. Where in Anderith are they entombed?"
Zedd
spread his hands. "I was hoping you might know. You were the only name I
knew from here, so I came seeking you out. I need help."
"I'm
sorry, Zedd, but I had no idea the chimes were entombed here." She again
took up her cup and sipped in thought. "However, if, as you say, the
chimes can't get the soul of your grandson, they might eventually be pulled
back into the world of the dead. We might need do nothing to bring it about.
The whole problem might just vanish."
"Yes,
there is that hope, but you must keep in mind the nature of the
underworld."'
"Meaning?"
Zedd
tapped the outer circle of the Grace inlaid on the tabletop. "Here begins
the underworld, where life crosses over." He glided his hand past the
table's edge. "Beyond is eternity.
"Because
the underworld is eternal, time has no meaning. There may be beginning when we
cross over, but there is no end, so the concept of time unravels there. It is
only here in the world of life where time is defined by beginning and end
giving it some reference points, that it has significance.
"The
chimes were conjured from that timeless place beyond, and derive their power
from there, so time is meaningless to them.
"Perhaps
it's true that without obtaining the soul they
526
crossed
over to help, they will be pulled back to the underworld. However, to timeless
beings, their time here may be viewed by them as but an instant as they wait to
see if they, will succeed, or as they enjoy a bit of frolic at bringing death
and destruction, except that instant to them could be a millennium to this
world. It could be ten millennia and still be but a meaningless twinkle in time
to them--especially since they have no souls and can't really experience
life."
She had
been hanging on every word, seeming to be starved for conversation of things
few but the gifted could comprehend.
"Yes,
I see your point." She raised a finger. "But by the same token, they
could be gone today-vanish as we speak-feeling endless frustration in a world
with time, once they begin to find they must function within the alien confines
of time and a schedule. The soul they seek, after all, has only so much time in
this world. They must pursue and capture his soul while he lives."
"Well
put and a worthy consideration, but how long shall we wait? At some point it
will be too late for things of magic to recover. Some surely now lie ailing
with the fading of magic. How long until they die out forever?
"I
see your stargazers wilting out on the path to your home." Zedd lifted an
eyebrow. "But much worse, how long until magic such as that of the gambit
moth fails? What if the crops now growing are soon tainted?"
Her
face, creased with concern, turned away.
Not
knowing her well, Zedd didn't bring it up, but without magic, Jagang and the
Imperial Order were only that much more powerful. Without magic to aid them,
many more would die fighting him, and it very well could be blood spilled to no
good end.
"Franca,
as guardians of the veil, protectors of helpless creatures of magic, and as
stewards of magic's promise to mankind, we must act with all due haste. We know
not where the line lies that makes meaningful aid too late."
She
nodded thoughtfully. "Yes. Yes, you are right, of course. Why do you need
to know where the chimes are
527
entombed?
What will that help you accomplish?"
"Their
ancient banishment, in order to nullify the original conjuring that brought
them here, would have by necessity had to again breach the veil. Such a
counterspell would itself have had to be balanced with an ancillary spell to
allow their return to the world of life. Such a return spell could have been
exceedingly narrow in terms-invocation of threes and all that-but it wouldn't
matter; the mere existence of a return mechanism was all the balance the
banishment spell would have required."
Zedd
slowly ran his finger around the rim of his teacup. "From what I know of
the matter, I believe the nature of their existence dictates that the chimes
can only return to the world of life, once the narrow requirements of the
balancing mechanism are met, through the gateway of their banishment. That's
why I've had to come here."
She
stared off in reflection. "Yes, that makes sense. The gateway, wherever it
is, would be open."
"Being
as you don't know where the chimes are entombed, perhaps you can be my
guide."
Her
gaze came back to him. "Where could we look? Do you have in mind a place
to start?"
After
another sip, Zedd set down his cup.
"My
idea was you might be able to help me get into the library."
"The
Library of Culture? At the Minister of Culture's estate?"
"That's
the one. They have ancient texts there. At least they used to. Since the chimes
were banished here in Anderith, the library might contain records or other
information so I could find where it took place, and thus the gateway. They
might even have other information of use."
"What
are the names of the books you seek? Perhaps I know them."
"I
don't know what books might be of help, if such books even exist, or if they
do, that they are here. I will just have to start looking through those volumes
in the library and see what we can find."
528
She
leaned forward. "Zedd, there are thousands of books there."
"I
know. I've seen them before."
"And
if you find a book that names this place, then what?"
Zedd
shrugged in a deliberately vague manner. "First step first."
If he
could find no information on the mechanism of their banishment, he had an idea
of what he might have to do should he be able to find the location of the
entombment. Even if he did find such information and it was a simple matter,
without the use of his magic he would be helpless to reverse the problem.
He
might be forced to take desperate measures.
"So,
what about the Library of Culture? Can I get in there?"
"I
think I could help with that much of it. As an Ander, and one known at the
Minister's estate, I'm trusted with access. Not everyone is. Those in authority
have been altering history to such an extent that those of us who have lived a
bit of it don't even recognize our own past, much less trust the rest of what
we're told."
She
emerged from her private thoughts and straightened with a brave smile. "When
do you wish to go there?"
"The
sooner the better-."
"Do
you think you could pretend to be a visiting scholar?"
"I
think I could manage to look like I have difficulty recalling my own
name."
529
CHAPTER
47
"OH,
HOW KIND!" ZEDD exclaimed in mock delight as the woman set down the heavy
volume in the glow from the tall lamp. "I'm sure of it now. I've no doubt.
You can be nothing other than a good spirit come to assist me, Mistress
Firkin."
The
woman abruptly turned as shy as a teenage girl. Her cheeks reddened as she
smiled.
"It's
my job, Master Rybnik."
He
leaned closer to her and lowered his voice to a playful whisper. "I prefer
beautiful women call me Ruben."
Zedd,
when circumstances required the use of an assumed name, favored the name Ruben
Rybnik. He thought it a dashing name. Leading a simple life fostered the urge
for occasional flamboyance. Zedd considered lighthearted diversion essential to
balance. Something as simple as using the name Ruben Rybnik satisfied that need.
The
woman blinked, not catching on to the flirtation- surprising, he thought,
considering she was nice enough looking that she would have to have had ardent
suitors throughout her long life. Zedd was forced to clarify himself.
"Therefore,
Mistress Firkin, I prefer you call me Ruben."
She
stared blankly, and then, as he saw in her dark brown eyes realizations making
connections, a sudden giggle burst
530
forth
to echo through the long room. A few people down at other tables glanced up. He
noticed the eyes of one of the guards turn their way. Mistress Firkin put the
back of her hand to her grin as her face went scarlet.
"Ruben."
She giggled again with the mischievousness of using his first name. She glanced
around before leaning toward him. "Vedetta."
"Ah,"
Zedd cooed. ."Vedetta. What a lovely name."
She
tittered as she scurried off, her shuffling steps echoing softly through the
huge room-the lower of two floors of the elegant Anderith Library. From his
place at a table, Zedd had long since watched through the windows as the sun
set. The array of lamps lit with a warm glow the honey-colored oak of the room
and provided illumination for those still more interested in devouring words
than dinner.
Zedd
dragged in front of himself the heavy volume Vedetta Firkin had found. A quick
glance told him it was of no value. He opened it anyway so as to appear he was
reading it with earnest interest.
He was
not. The book he was really reading was to the upper right, but even with his
head lowered, he could still turn his eyes up to the right and read the other,
and any nosy person wandering past would be fooled. There were a few such
people about.
He had
already created a sensation with his grand entrance when he stood at the head
of the library and made sweeping proclamations of having a hypothesis of law
involving the accountability of secondary suppliers of goods to the signatories
in trade agreements nullified by clauses involving acts of Creation not
specifically specified in the subtext but implied by common law of ancient
trading principles, and he knew he would be able to prove them out with the
fine examples of rational law set forth in the examples found in the history of
Anderith law.
No one
had been bold enough to dispute his claims. Everyone in the library was
perfectly happy to let him do his research. It helped to have Franca escorting
him, since she was known in the library.
531
It was
late, and the people running the library wanted to go home, but they feared
incurring the wrath of anyone having such extraordinary command of law. Because
he lingered, a few others did, too. Zedd didn't know if it was to take
advantage of the extra time the library was open, or to keep him under
observation.
Franca
sat across the table but down a ways to provide room for all the books spread,
out in front of the two of them. She pored through books and occasionally
brought to his attention items she thought he might need to see. Franca was
smart, and pointed out things few others would grasp, things that could
conceivably be significant, but so far he had seen nothing of any practical
use. He wasn't sure exactly what it was he was searching for, but he was sure
he hadn't seen it yet.
Deep in
concentration, Zedd started when someone touched his shoulder.
"Sorry,"
Vedetta whispered.
Zedd
smiled at the shy lady. "Quite all right, my dear Vedetta." He lifted
his eyebrows in question.
"Oh."
She reached into the pocket of her apron. She turned red again as her hand
fished around.
The
hand paused. "Found it."
"Found
what?" Zedd whispered.
She
leaned closer, lowered her voice yet more. Zedd noticed Franca watching from
across the table as her head was bowed to a book.
"We
aren't supposed to let just anyone see this. It's very precious and rare."
Her face flushed red again. "But you are a special man, Ruben, so
brilliant and all, that I brought it out of the vault for you to see for just a
minute."
"Really,
Vedetta? How extraordinarily kind of you. What is it, then?"
"I
don't rightly know. Exactly. But it belonged to Joseph Ander himself."
"Realllly,"
Zedd drawled.
She
nodded in earnest. "The Mountain."
"What?"
532
"The
Mountain. That's what some of that time called him. When I don't have anything
to do, I sometimes read the ancient texts of the time-to learn more about our
revered ancestor, Joseph Ander. Back then, as I gather, some called him the
Mountain."
Zedd
was at full attention as he watched her draw the hand from her apron. She had
something small. His heart sank because he thought it too small to be a book.
But
then his heart felt as if it skipped a beat when he saw it was indeed a small
black book.
A
journey book.
It even
had the stylus still in the spine.
Zedd
wet his lips as she held it out in both hands before him. Zedd put a finger to
his lower lip. She had no intention of letting such a valuable piece out of her
possession, even if he was a fancy scholar. Over near the vault door two armed
.guards scanned the patrons, but paid Zedd no particular attention.
"May
I see inside, Vedetta?" he asked in a strained whisper.
"Well...
well, I guess it can't hurt."
The
woman carefully opened the cover. The journey book was in pristine condition,
but then, the one Ann had carried was just as old, and in just such good
condition. Journey books were things possessed of magic, so that probably
explained their being nearly as good as new despite their thousands of years of
use. That, and the care with which the Sisters handled the valuable books. The
people here used no less care. Zedd froze in midbreath.
Mountain.
He
understood. Mountain's Twin was the mate to this journey book. It all fell into
place in his head. Mountain's Twin had been destroyed, and, along with it,
possibly the disposition of the chimes.
But
this book, Joseph Ander's journey book, would have the same words-if they
hadn't been wiped away with the stylus.
533
He
watched, spellbound, as Vedetta Firkin turned the first blank page over. A
three-thousand-year-dead wizard was about to speak to him.
Zedd
stared at the words there on the next page. He stared as hard as he could. They
made no sense. A spell, he feared, to keep anyone from reading it.
No,
that wasn't it. Besides, magic had failed; such a spell wouldn't still work. As
he studied the writing, he realized it was a language he didn't know.
Then it
came to him. It was in High D'Haran.
Zedd's
heart sank. Virtually no one knew High D'Haran anymore. Richard had told him
he'd learned it. Zedd didn't doubt him, but Richard was off on his way to
Aydindril. Zedd would never be able to find, much less catch, him.
Besides,
the people in the library were not going to let him take this book, and Zedd
had no magic to do anything about it.
"What
a glorious thing to see," Zedd whispered as he watched the woman slowly
turn the pages before his eyes.
"Yes,
isn't it," she said with deep reverence. "I sometimes go in the vault
and just sit and look at the things written by Joseph Ander, and imagine his fingers
turning the pages. It gives me shivers," she confided.
"Me,
too," Zedd said.
She
seemed pleased to hear it. "It's too bad no one has ever been able to
translate it. We don't even know what language it might be. Some of our
scholars here suspect it to be an ancient code used by wizards.
"Joseph
Ander was a wizard," she confided in a hushed tone. "Not everyone
knows it, but he was. He was such a great man."
Zedd
wondered how they could possibly know he was great if they had no idea what he
said. But then he realized that was precisely why they thought he was so great.
"A
wizard," Zedd repeated. "One would think a wizard would want his
words known."
Vedetta
giggled. "Oh, you don't know anything about wizards, Ruben. They're like
that. Mysterious and all."
534
"I
suppose," he said absently as he tried to pick out a word he might
possibly make sense of as they flipped past his eyes.
None
did.
"Except,"
Vedetta confided in a very low whisper as her eyes shifted to each side for a
quick look, "this here." She tapped a page very near the end.
"These words here I managed, by an accident of coincidence, to decipher.
Just these two."
"You
did?" Zedd squinted at the words. " 'Fuer Owbens.' " He looked
up into her excited eyes. "Vedetta, do you really know what 'Fuer Owbens'
means, or do you just think you might?"
She
frowned with seriousness. "I really know. I quite by chance came across a
place in another book, called Tinder Dominion, where it mentions the same words
and uses both versions. It was about some-"
"So,
you deciphered the words. What do they mean?"
She put
her mouth close to his ear. "The Ovens."
Zedd
turned his head and looked into her dark eyes. "The Ovens?"
She
nodded. "The Ovens."
He
frowned. "Any idea what that means?"
Vedetta
snapped closed the little black journey book.
"Sorry,
but I don't." She straightened. "It's getting late, Ruben. The guards
said that after I showed you this, they want to close the library."
Zedd
didn't try to hide his disappointment. "Of course. Everyone will want to
go home and get some dinner and sleep."
"But
you can come back tomorrow, Ruben. I'd love to help you some more
tomorrow."
Zedd
was stroking his lip as his mind raced, going over every scrap of information
he had learned and trying to think if any of it would be of any use at all. It
didn't seem so.
"What?"
He looked up at her. "What was that?"
"I
said I hope you will come back tomorrow. I'd love to help you again." She
smiled in her shy way. "You're more
535
of a
challenge than most who come in here. Few people care to research such ancient
books as do you. I think that's a shame. People nowadays don't respect the
knowledge of the past."
"No,
they don't," he said in all seriousness. "I'd love to return
tomorrow, Vedetta."
Her
face went red again. "Perhaps ... if you'd like, you could come back to my
apartment and I could fix you something to eat?"
Zedd
smiled. "I would love that, Vedetta, and you truly are a kind lady, but it
wouldn't be possible. I'm with Franca. She's my hostess, and we must get back
to Fairfield and discuss all our research. My project, you know. The law."
Her
wrinkles sagged. "I understand. Well, I hope to see you tomorrow."
Zedd
caught her sleeve as she started to turn away. "Vedetta, perhaps tomorrow
I could take you up on your offer? If it would be open for tomorrow, that
is."
Her
beaming smile reappeared. "Why, yes, tomorrow would be better, actually. I
would have a chance to-well, tomorrow would be fine. My daughter will be gone
tomorrow evening, I'm sure, and we could have a lovely dinner, just the two of
us.
"My
husband died six years ago," she added as she fussed with her collar.
"A fine man."
"I'm
sure he was." Zedd stood and bowed deeply. "Tomorrow it is,
then." He held up a finger. "And thank you for showing me the special
book from the vault. I was most honored."
She
turned and started off, taking a big smile with her'. "Good night,
Ruben."
He
waggled his fingers in a wave while giving her a wide grin. As soon as he saw
her vanish into the vault, Zedd turned and gestured to Franca.
"Let's
go."
Franca
closed her books and came around the table. Zedd offered his arm as they
ascended the grand staircase together. The oak railing, nearly a foot across
and sculpted in
536
an
exquisite profile, reflected the points of lamplight from the lamps flanking
the stairwell.
"Any
luck?" she whispered when they were out of earshot of the others.
Zedd
checked over his shoulder to make sure none of the people who had shown
interest in the two of them were closing in behind. There were at least three
people Zedd found suspicious, but they were too far back cleaning up their
papers and putting away books to hear-unless they were gifted.
Since
magic didn't work, he didn't need fear that. A small convenience of magic's
failure.
"No,"
Zedd said with resignation. "I didn't see anything of any use at
all."
"What
was that little book she brought out of the vaults? The one she wouldn't let
you hold?"
Zedd
waved a hand. "Nothing of any use. It was in High D'Haran." He looked
over out of the corner of his eye. "Unless you know High D'Haran?"
"No.
I've only seen it a couple of times in my life."
Zedd
sighed. "The woman knew the meaning of only two words out of the entire
book: 'The Ovens.' "
Franca
halted on the stairs. They were near the top.
"The
Ovens?"
Zedd
frowned. "Do you know what that means?"
Franca
nodded. "It's a place. Not many people but the gifted would know it. My
mother took me there once."
"What
is it? What kind of place?"
Franca
squinted off into her memories. "Well... it's an abnormally hot place. A
cave. You can feel the power-the magic-in that hot cave, but there's nothing
there."
"I
don't understand."
Franca
shrugged. "Neither do I. There's nothing there, but it's a strange place
that only the gifted would appreciate. It just gives you a kind of... I don't
know. Kind of a thrill of power running through you just to stand in there, in
the Ovens. But those without the gift can't feel anything."
She
checked the others, to make sure they weren't listen-
537
ing.
"It's a place we don't tell people about. A secret place-just for the
gifted. Since we don't know what's in there, we keep it secret."
"I
need to 'go see this place. Can we go now?"
"It's
way up in the mountains-several days away. If you want, we can leave in the
morning."
Zedd
thought it over. "No, I think I would prefer to go alone."
Franca
seemed hurt, but if it was what he thought it might be, he didn't want her
anywhere near it. Besides, he didn't really know this woman, and he wasn't sure
he could trust her.
"Look,
Franca, it could be dangerous, and I'd never forgive myself if anything
happened to you. You've already given me selflessly of your time and
trouble-and risked enough."
That
seemed to make her feel better. "I guess someone will have to tell Vedetta
you won't be able to make dinner tomorrow. She will be disappointed."
Franca smiled. "I know I would be, were I her."
CHAPTER
48
ZEDD
GRUNTED WITH THE weight as he slid the saddle off Spider. He was getting too
old for this sort of thing, he decided. He smiled at the irony. He flopped the
saddle down over a log to keep it off the
538
ground.
Spider happily surrendered the rest of the tack, which Zedd laid over the top
of the saddle. He covered it all with the saddle blanket.
The log
with the gear lay against the trunk of an old spruce, so it was out of the
weather, to an extent, anyway. He stacked pine boughs over the tack, leaning
them, up against the spruce's trunk, interlocking them, to keep the gear dry as
best he could. The drizzle would soon turn to rain, he had no doubt.
Spider,
free of duty, cropped grass nearby, but kept an eye and an ear to him. It had
been a hard four-day ride across the Drun River and up into the mountains.
Harder on him than on the horse; the horse wasn't old. Zedd, seeing that Spider
was happily engaged, turned to his own business.
A small
stand of a half-dozen spruce screened the view of his destination. He walked
quickly along the quiet shore to skirt the trees. Once beyond them, he stepped
onto a thumb of rock jutting out, almost as if it were set there as a podium.
Hands
on hips, Zedd looked out over the lake.
It was
a beguiling spot. Behind him, the thick forest stopped well short of the lake,
as if afraid to approach too close, leaving the lone level and gentle access,
but for the few brave spruce, empty of trees. The peninsula was covered here and
there with brush but mostly it held thick tufts of grasses. Small blue and pink
wildflowers cavorted among the grass.
Sheer
rock walls rose up around the rest of the deep mountain lake. If the isolated
and remote stretch of water had a name, he didn't know it. There was no
practical way to reach it but this one shore.
Across
and to the left, the jagged mountains, with a sloping field in their lap, rose
up ever higher into the distance, providing little opportunity for much more
than scraggly trees, here and there, to set down tenacious roots. To the right,
dark stone cliffs obscured the view beyond, but he knew that past them were
more mountains yet.
On the'
other side of the lake, a waterfall cascaded over
539
the
edge of a prominent jutting wall of rock. Before him, the calm lake reflected
the tranquil scene.
The icy
waters tumbling into the lake came from the highlands, from the vast lake
higher up in the bleak wasteland, where the warier birds alone watched. These
were part of the headwaters of the Dammar River, which in turn flowed into the
Drun. This cold water, coming from a place of death, would meander down into
the Nareef Valley below, and give life.
Behind
the waterfall were the Ovens.
In the
rock wall behind that tumbling water, three thousand years before, through a
gateway to the underworld, the chimes had once been entombed.
And now
they were free.
There
they awaited their soul.
At the
very thought, Zedd could feel gooseflesh, like a thousand spiders, on his legs.
He
tried again, as he had countless times, to call his gift of magic. He tried his
best to convince himself that this time it would come. He spread his arms,
lifting them, palms up, toward the sky, as he labored to cajole forth magic.
The
placid lake saw no magic from him. The mountains waited, and were silent in his
failure.
Zedd,
feeling very alone, very old, let out a chesty sigh. He had imagined it a
thousand different ways.
But he
had never imagined this would be how he died.
This was
why he couldn't let Richard know it was the chimes themselves that were loose.
Richard would not have accepted what Zedd intended, what Zedd knew he must do.
Turning
his mind away from the smothering melancholy, he surveyed the lake. He had to
keep his mind on what he was doing, or he could easily fail and his sacrifice
would be for naught. If he was going to do this, he intended to do it right.
There was satisfaction to be derived in a job well done, even a job such as
this one.
As he
studied the scene with an experienced eye, what at first looked to be peaceful
waters now revealed more. The
540
water
was alive with things unseen, moving in lurking currents, seething with dark
intent.
The
water was alive with the chimes of death.
Zedd looked
back to the waterfall. He could make out, just beyond it, the dark maw of the
cave.-He had to get there, across the water, across the water churning with
chimes.
"Sentrosi!"
Zedd opened his arms. "I have come to freely offer the soul you seek! My soul!
What is mine, I surrender to you!"
Flames
boiled out around the column of water, swallowing it in great gouts of fire
that roared forth, rolling and tumbling out of the place called the Ovens. The
fire turned the surface of the lake orange with reflections of its heat. For a
moment, the waterfall was rendered steam. Inky black smoke billowed up with the
white steam tangling together in a sinister pillar that marked the maw of
death.
A clear
chime rang out, reverberating through the mountains.
Sentrosi
had answered.
The
answer was yes.
"Reechani!"
he called to the water before him. "Vasi!" he called to the air about
him. "Let me pass, for I have come to surrender my soul to you all."
The
water swirled and turned, as if schooling fish gathered at the shore before
him. More, though, the water itself seemed alive, eager, hungry. Zedd guessed
it was.
The air
felt thick around him, pressing in, urging him forward.
The
water rose up and curled in a gesturing motion toward the Ovens. The air buzzed
with chimes, countless separate bells that together created one crystalline
sound. The air smelled as if it were burnt.
Since
it had already started to rain, Zedd didn't see that it really mattered if he
got any wetter. He stepped out into the water.
Rather
than having the swim he expected, he found the
541
surface
solid enough to hold him, almost like ice, except it moved. Ripples radiated
out from his footstep, touching and retreating, as if it were no more than a
mere puddle he splashed through. Each step he took found support.
It was
the support of the chimes, of Reechani, bearing him to his doom, to their
queen. Vasi, the chimes of the air, escorted him, a robe of death all around.
Zedd
could feel the touch of the underworld in the air. He could feel the damp death
at his feet. He knew each step might be his last.
He
remembered Juni, the Mud People hunter, who had drowned. Zedd wondered if Juni
had felt the peace he sought, the peace he had been offered, before he died.
Knowing
the purpose of the chimes, Zedd strongly suspected that, after tempting with
tantalizing tranquility and before they extracted the life, they delivered
their terror.
Before
he reached the waterfall, something unseen pierced the watery column. Intangible
hands split the waterfall in two, leaving an opening in the middle where he
might pass into the cave beyond. Sentrosi, the fire, preferred him reasonably
dry, he supposed.
Stepping
onto the opening in the rock, before going through into the cave, he heard
Spider let out a snort of censure. Zedd turned.
The
horse stood at the bank, feet spread, muscles tense. Her ears were pinned back,
her eyes aglare. Her tail whipped from side to side, slapping her flanks.
"It's
all right, Spider," Zedd called back to the agitated animal. "I give
you your freedom." Zedd smiled. "If I don't come back ... enjoy your
life, my friend. Enjoy your life."
Spider
released a drawn-out angry squeal. Zedd gave her a last wave, and the squeal
became a deep bellow.
Zedd
turned and stepped beyond the tumbling water, into the darkness. The curtain of
the waterfall closed behind him.
He
didn't hesitate. He intended to give the chimes what they wanted: a soul. If he
could do it in a way that would preserve his life in the process, he would, but
without his magic he had little hope of accomplishing such a thing as
542
he
intended and at the same time remaining whole.
Being
First Wizard, he had some knowledge of the problem at hand. The chimes needed a
soul to stay in the world of life-that was the manner in which they had been
conjured forth. More than that, they needed a specific soul: the one promised.
Beings
from the underworld, and soulless beings at that, would have limitations to
their understanding of the concept of what it would be to have a soul, or the
nature of the soul they were promised. Naturally, there were certain intrinsic
precepts that applied, but beyond that, the chimes were in what was to them an
alien world. His only hope was that ignorance.'
Since
Zedd was so closely related to Richard, and Richard's life had been passed down
through Zedd, their souls shared ethereal bonds and connections; just as in
body, their souls were related. In much the way they shared some things, the
shape of their mouth, for instance, their souls shared characteristics.
Even
so, each of them was a unique individual, and therein lay the danger.
His
hope was that the chimes would mistake his as the soul they needed, take his as
the soul they needed, and, it ultimately being the wrong one, choke on it. So
to speak.
It was
Zedd's only hope. He knew no other way to stop the chimes. With each passing
day the threat to the world of life grew more grave. Every day people died.
Every day magic grew weaker.
As much
as he wished to live, he could think of no other way but to forfeit his life to
stop the chimes, now, before it was too late.
When
they opened themselves to the soul they were pledged, and they were thus
vulnerable, he hoped his soul would ruin the flow of the spell through which
they entered this world.
Given
that he was a wizard, it was no wild hope; it was, in fact, a reasoned
approach. Dubious, but reasoned.
Zedd
knew that at the least, such a thing as he planned
543
would
disrupt the spell to some extent-rather like shooting an arrow at an animal,
meant to kill, but if off target, wounding at least.
What he
didn't know was what it would do to him. Zedd had no delusions, though. He
reasonably expected that what he did, if it didn't strip his soul from him and
in so doing kill him, would anger the chimes and they would extract their
vengeance.
Zedd
smiled. The balance to it was that he would at last again see his beloved
Erilyn, in the spirit world, where he knew her soul waited for him.
Inside,
the heat was oppressive.
The
walls were slowly rolling, tumbling, turning, twisting, liquid fire.
He was
in the beast.
In the
center of the pulsing cave, Sentrosi, the queen of fire, turned her lethal gaze
on him. Tongues of flame tasted the air around him. She smiled-a whorl of
yellow flame.
One
last lime, Zedd made a futile attempt to call his magic.
Sentrosi
rushed toward him with frightening speed, frightening need.
Zedd
felt searing pain through every nerve as unimaginable agony seized his very
soul.
The
world ignited. His scream exploded as a deafening chime.
Richard
cried out. The pain of the ripping, ringing chime felt as if it splintered his
skull.
He was
only dimly aware of things around him as he tumbled back over the flanks of his
horse. The pain of crashing to the ground was a pleasant diversion from the
overpowering toll overwhelming his control and driving his scream.
544
He held
his head as he curled into a ball in the road, crying uncontrollably with the
hurt.
The
world was fiery agony.
All
around, people leaped from horses, shrieking orders. Richard could only
perceive them as blurry shapes darting about. He couldn't comprehend the words.
He couldn't recognize anyone.
He couldn't
understand anything but the pain. .\xA0\xA0\xA0
He could do nothing more than maintain his thread of connection to
consciousness, to life, as he struggled against the merciless torrent of agony.
That he
had passed the test of pain, lived through it, as must all who would be
wizards, was the only thing that kept him alive. Without the lessons learned,
he would already be dead.
He was
alone in a private inferno.
He
didn't know how long he could maintain his hold on life.
Everything
seemed to have gone crazy at once. Beata tore across the grassy ground, running
for all she was worth.' Terror rampaged through her.
Turner's
scream had stopped. It had been horrifying while it lasted, but it had only
lasted seconds.
"Stop!"
Beata shrieked with all the power in her lungs. "Stop! Are you crazy?
Stop!"
The air
still reverberated with the sound of the Dominie Dirtch. The low-pitched knell
lifted dust from the grass, so that it looked like the ground all around was
smoking. It trembled and rolled dirt into little balls. It toppled a little
lone tree the last squad had planted.
It made
the whole world vibrate with a ghastly drone.
Tears
streamed down Beata's cheeks as she raced across the field, shrieking for them
to stop ringing the bell.
545
Turner
had been out front, scouting on regular patrol to make sure the area before the
Dominie Dirtch was clear.
His
scream had ended mere seconds after the Dominie Dirtch had been rung, but its
pain and horror still echoed inside her head. It was a cry she knew she would
never be able to forget as long as she lived.
"Stop!"
she yelled as she snatched the railing to spin herself around onto the stairs.
"Stop!" she cried again as she raced up the steps.
Beata
burst onto the platform, fists raised, ready to pummel the fool who'd rung the
Dominie Dirtch.
Beata
halted, panting madly, looking about. Emmeline stood frozen in wide-eyed shock.
Bryce, too, seemed out of his senses. He just stared at her in frozen panic.
The
long striker, used to ring the Dominie Dirtch, still stood in its holder.
Neither of the two up on the platform was even near it. Neither had used the
wooden striker to unleash the deadly weapon.
"What
did you do!" she screamed at them. "What did you do to ring it! Have
you gone mad!" She glanced over her shoulder to the bony pile of gore that
had moments before been Turner.
Beata
thrust out her arm, pointing. "You killed him! Why would you do it? What's
wrong with you?"
Emmeline
slowly shook her head. "I've not moved a step from this spot."
Bryce
was beginning to tremble. "Me neither. Sergeant, we never rang the thing.
I swear. We weren't even near it. Neither of us was near it. We didn't do
it."
In the
silence as she stared at them, Beata realized she heard distant screams. She
looked off across the plains, to the next Dominie Dutch. She could just make
out people over there running around as if the world had gone insane.
She
spun and peered hi the opposite direction. It was the same: people screaming,
running around. Beata shielded her eyes from the sun and squinted into the
distance. There were the remains of two soldiers out in front of their weapon.
546
Estelle
Ruffin and Corporal Marie Fauvel reached what was left of Turner. Estelle,
holding fistfuls of her hair, started screaming. Marie turned and started
retching.
It was
the way she was trained. It was the way things were done. They said it had been
done that way for millennia.
Each
squad, from each Dominie Dirtch, sent a patrol out at the same time to scout
the area. That way, if there was anything or anyone sneaking around out there,
it couldn't simply evade one soldier and hide elsewhere.
It
wasn't just hers. Every Dominie Dirtch down the line had rung, seemingly of its
own accord.
Kahlan
clutched at Richard's shut. He was still out of his senses with pain. She
couldn't get him out of the ball he had rolled into. She didn't know what
exactly was going on, but she feared she knew.
He was
obviously in mortal danger of some sort.
She'd
heard him cry out. She saw him tumble off his horse and hit the ground. She
just didn't know why.
Her
first thought was that it was an arrow. She had been terrified it was an arrow
from an assassin and it had killed him. But she could see no blood. Her emotions
walled off, she had searched for blood, but on her rapid initial inspection had
found none.
Kahlan
glanced up as a thousand D'Haran soldiers spread out around them. The first
instant, when Richard screamed and fell from his horse, without orders from
her, they had gone into action. Swords cleared scabbards in a blink. Axes came
off belt hangers into ready fists. Lances were leveled.
In the
perimeter around them, men had flipped a leg over their horses' necks and
leaped to the ground, ready to fight, weapons already to hand. Other men,
closing ranks, forming the next circle of protection, turned their horses
outward,
547
ready
to charge. Still more, the outer fringe of crack troops, had rushed off to find
the assailants and clear the area of any enemy.
Kahlan
had been around armies her entire life, and knew about fighting troops. She
knew by the way they reacted that these men were as good as they came. She
hadn't needed to issue any orders; they executed every defensive maneuver she
would have expected, and did them faster than she could have shouted the
commands.
Above
her and Richard, the Baka Tau Mana blade masters formed a tight circle, swords
out and at the ready. Whatever the attack was, arrow or dart or something else,
Kahlan couldn't imagine the people protecting them allowing another chance at
their Lord Rahl. If nothing else, there were now too many men suddenly layered
around them for an arrow to make it through.
Kahlan,
somewhat stunned by the sudden confusion, felt a flutter of worry that Cara
would be angry they let harm come to Richard. Kahlan, after all, had promised
to let no harm come to him-as if a promise to Cara were required.
Du
Chaillu pushed her way between her blade masters to squat down on the other
side of Richard. She had a water-skin and cloth to dress a wound.
"Have
you found the injury?"
"No,"
Kahlan said as she picked around on him.
She
pressed a hand to the side of Richard's face. It reminded her of when he'd had
the plague, out of his mind with fever and not knowing where he was. He
couldn't have been stricken with sickness, not the way he cried out and fell
from his horse, but he did feel as if he was burning up with fever.
Du
Chaillu dabbed a wet cloth against Richard's face. Kahlan saw that Du Chaillu's
own face was creased in worry.
Kahlan
continued her examination of Richard, trying to see if he had been hit by some
sort of dart, or perhaps a bolt from a crossbow. He was trembling, almost in
convul-
548
sions.
She searched frantically, pulling him onto his side to check his-back, trying
to find what was hurting him. She concentrated on her job, and tried not to
think of how worried she was, lest shock take her.
Du
Chaillu stroked Richard's face when Kahlan eased him onto his back, seeming to
discount the need to look for a wound. The spirit woman bent forward, cooing
softly in a chant with words Kahlan didn't understand.
"I
can't find anything," Kahlan said at last in exasperation.
"You
won't," Du Chaillu answered, distantly.
"Why's
that?"
The
Baka Tau Mana spirit woman murmured fond words to Richard. Even if Kahlan
couldn't understand their literal meaning, she understood the emotion behind
them.
"It
is not a wound of this world," Du Chaillu said.
Kahlan
glanced about at the soldiers ringing them. She put her hands protectively on
Richard's chest.
"What
does that mean?"
Du
Chaillu pushed Kahlan's hands gently away.
"It
is a wound of the spirit. The soul. Let me tend to him."
Kahlan
pressed her own hand tenderly to Richard's face. "How do you know that?
You don't know that. How could you know?"
"I
am a spirit woman. I recognize such things."
"Just
because-"
"Did
you find a wound?"
Kahlan
remained silent for a moment, reconsidering her own feelings. "Do you know
what we can do to help him?"
"This
is something beyond your ability to help." Du Chaillu bowed her head of
dark hair as she pressed her hands to Richard's chest.
"Leave
me to it," Du Chaillu murmured, "or our husband will die."
Kahlan
sat back on her heels and watched as the Baka Tau Mana spirit woman, head bowed
and hands on Richard,
549
closed
her eyes as if going into a trance of some sort. Words whispered forth, meant
for herself perhaps, but not for others. She trembled. Her arms shook.
Du
Chaillu's face contorted in pain.
Suddenly,
she fell back, breaking the connection. Kahlan caught her arm, lest she topple.
- "Are you all right?"
Du
Chaillu nodded. "My power. It worked. It was back."
Kahlan
looked from the woman to Richard. He seemed calmer.
"What
did you do? What happened?"
"Something
was trying to take his spirit. I used my ability to annul such power and kept
the hands of death from him."
"Your
power is back?" Kahlan was dubious. "But how could that be?"
Du
Chaillu shook her head. "I don't know. It returned when the Caharin cried
out and fell from his horse. I knew because I could again feel my bond to
him."
"Maybe
the chimes have fled back to the underworld."
Again
Du Chaillu shook her head. "Whatever it was, it is passing. My power fades
again." She stared off a moment. "It is again gone. It was only there
long enough to help him."
Du
Chaillu issued quiet orders for her men to stand down, that it was over.
Kahlan
wasn't convinced. She glanced again to Richard. It did look like he was
calming. His breathing was evening out.
His
eyes abruptly opened. He squinted at the light.
Du
Chaillu leaned over him and pressed the wet cloth to his forehead, dabbing off
the sweat.
"You
are all right, now, my husband," she said.
"Du
Chaillu," he muttered, "how many times do I have to tell you, I'm not
your husband. You are misinterpreting old laws."
Du
Chaillu smiled up at Kahlan. "See? He is better."
"Thank
the good spirits you were here, Du Chaillu," Kahlan whispered.
550
'Tell
him that when he again complains I should leave him."
Kahlan
couldn't help smiling at Richard's frustration with Du Chaillu and with her
blessed relief that he was indeed better. Tears now suddenly tried to burst
forth, but she banished them.
"Richard,
are you all right? What happened? What made you fall from your horse?"
Richard
tried to sit up but Kahlan and Du Chaillu both pushed him back down.
"Both
your wives say to rest for a time," Du Chaillu said.
Richard
stopped trying to get up. His gray eyes turned to Kahlan. She clutched his arm,
again silently thanking the good spirits.
"I'm
not sure what happened," he finally said. "It was like this
sound-like a deafening bell-exploded in my head. The pain was like..." His
face lost some of its color. "I don't know how to explain it. I've never
felt anything like it before."
He sat
up, this time brushing their restraining hands aside. "I'm all right, now.
Whatever it was, it's gone. It has passed."
"I'm
not so sure," Kahlan said.
"I
am," he said. He looked haunted. "It was like something tearing at my
very soul."
"It
didn't get it," Du Chaillu said. "It tried, but it didn't get
it."
She was
dead serious. Kahlan believed her.
Hide
twitching, the horse stood motionless, her hooves rooted to the grassy ground.
Her instinct demanded she run. Ripples of panic quivered through her flesh, but
she remained unmoving.
The man
was beyond the falling water, in the dark hole.
She
didn't like holes. No horse did.
551
He had
screamed. The ground had shaken. That had been a long time ago. She hadn't
moved since then. Now it was silent.
The
horse knew, though, that her friend still lived.
She let
out a long, low bellow.
He
still lived, but he didn't come out.
The
horse was alone.
There
was no worse thing for a horse than being alone.
CHAPTER
49
ANN
OPENED HER EYES. She was surprised, in the dun light, to see a face she had not
seen for months, not since she was still the Prelate, back at the Palace of the
Prophets in Tanimura, in the Old World.
The
middle-aged Sister was watching her. Middle-aged, Ann amended, if you
considered five hundred and a few years old to be middle-aged.
"Sister
Alessandra."
Forming
the words aloud hurt. Her lip was not healed. Her jaw still didn't work too
well. Ann didn't know if it was broken. If it was, there was nothing for it. It
would have to heal as it would; there was no magic to do it for her.
"Prelate,"
the woman greeted, in an aloof tone.
She
used to have a long braid, Ann recalled. A long braid
552
she
always looped around and pinned to the back of her head. Now her graying brown
hair was chopped off and hung loose, not quite touching her shoulders. Ann
thought it better balanced her somewhat prominent nose.
"I
brought you something to eat, Prelate, if you feel up to it."
"Why?
Why did you bring me something to eat?"
"His
Excellency wanted you fed."
"Why
you?"
The
woman smiled just a little. "You dislike me, Prelate."
Ann did
her best to glare. The way her face was swollen, she wasn't sure she was doing
a good job of it.
"As
a matter of fact, Sister Alessandra, I love you as I love all the Creator's
children. I simply abhor your actions- that you have sworn your soul to the
Nameless One."
"Keeper
of the underworld." Sister Alessandra's smile grew a little wider.
"So, you can still care about a woman who is a Sister of the Dark?"
Ann
turned her face away, even though the steaming bowl did smell savory. She
didn't want to talk to the fallen Sister.
In her
chains, Ann couldn't feed herself She unconditionally refused to accept food
from the Sisters who had lied to her and betrayed her rather than have their
freedom. Up until now, soldiers fed her. They disliked the duty. Their distaste
for feeding an old woman had apparently resulted in Sister Alessandra's
appearance.
Sister
Alessandra lifted a spoonful of soup to Ann's mouth.
"Here,
have some of this. I made it myself."
"Why?"
"Because
I thought you might like it."
"Getting
bored, Sister, pulling the legs off ants?"
"My,
my, Prelate, but don't you have the memory. I haven't done that since I was a
child, first come to the Palace of the Prophets. As I recall, you were the one
who convinced me to stop doing that, recognizing I was unhappy to leave my
home.
"Here,
now, have a taste. Please?"
553
Ann was
sincerely surprised to hear the woman say "please." She opened her
mouth for the spoon. Eating hurt, but not eating was making her weak. She could
have refused to eat, or done something else to get herself killed, she
supposed, but she did have a mission, and therefore a reason to live.
"Not
bad, Sister Alessandra. Not bad at all." Sister Alessandra smiled with
what looked to be pride. "I told you so. Here, have some more."
Ann ate
slowly, trying to gently chew the soft vegetables so as not to further hurt her
jaw. She simply swallowed the tough chunks of meat, not even bothering to mash
them flat, lest she undo whatever healing her jaw was managing to do.
"Your lip looks like it's going to be scarred." "My lovers will
be disappointed my beauty is marred." Sister Alessandra laughed. Not a
harsh or cynical laugh, but a lilting laugh of true amusement. "You always
could make me laugh, Prelate." "Yes," Ann said with venom,
"that was why I for so long failed to realize you had joined the side of
evil. I thought my little Alessandra, my happy little Alessandra, would not be
drawn to the heart of wickedness. I so believed you loved the Light."
Sister
Alessandra's smile withered. "I did, Prelate." "Bah," Ann
scoffed. "You only loved yourself."-The woman stirred the soup for a
time and finally brought up another spoonful. "Perhaps you are right,
Prelate. You usually were."
Ann
carefully chewed the lumps in the soup as she surveyed the grimy little tent.
She had caused such a ruckus being with the Sisters of the Light that Jagang
apparently had ordered her to be housed in her own small tent. Each night a long
steel pin was driven into the ground and she was chained to it. The tent was
erected around her.
In the
day, when they prepared to move out, she was thrown in a rough wooden box
latched with a hasp held tight with a pin or lock of some sort. She wasn't
sure, since she was always inside the box when they put it on and took
554
it off.
The box, with her in it, was then loaded on an enclosed wagon without windows
or ventilation. She knew because she peeked out the crack where the lid of her
box didn't fit well.
After
they stopped for the night, they eventually took her out and one of the Sisters
escorted her to the latrine before they staked her to the ground and put up her
tent. If need took her in the day, she had little choice as to what to do about
it. It was either wait, or don't.
Occasionally
they didn't bother with the tent, and simply left her chained to the stake,
like a dog.
Ann had
come to like her little tent, and was pleased when it was erected around her.
It was her private sanctuary, where she could stretch her cramped legs and
arms, lie down, and pray.
Ann
swallowed the mouthful of soup. "So, did Jagang say you were to do more to
me than feed me? Perhaps rough me up for his amusement, or yours?"
"No."
Sister Alessandra sighed. "Just feed you. From what I gather, he hasn't
decided what to do with you, but in the meantime he wants you kept alive so you
might be of value to him one day."
Ann
watched the woman stir the bowl of soup. "He can't get in your mind, you
know. Not now."
Sister
Alessandra looked up. "What makes you think that?"
"The
chimes are loose."
The
spoon stilled. "So I've heard." The spoon again started circling.
"Rumors. That's all it is."
Ann
squirmed, trying to get more comfortable on the rough ground. It seemed to her
that with all her natural padding she shouldn't be so troubled by lumps on the
ground.
"I
wish it were only rumors. Why do you think your magic doesn't work?"
"But
it does."
"I
mean your Additive Magic."
The
woman's brown eyes turned down. "Well, I guess
555
I've
not really tried to use it, that's all. If I were to try, it would work, I've
no doubt."
"Try,
then. You'll see I'm right."
She
shook her head. "His Excellency does not permit it, unless he specifically
requests it. It is ... unwise to do other than His Excellency says to do."
Ann
leaned toward the woman. "Alessandra, the chimes are loose. Magic has
failed. For Creation's sake, why do you think I'm in this predicament? If I
could use magic, don't you think I would have caused just a little trouble when
I was captured?
"Use
your head, Alessandra. You're not stupid, don't act it."
If
there was one thing about Alessandra, she wasn't stupid. How a smart woman
could fall prey to the Keeper's promises, Ann didn't know. She guessed lies
could fool even smart people.
Ann
avoided using the appellation "Sister" not only because it was a term
of respect, but because it seemed a way of speaking more directly, more
intimately, to a woman Ann had known and liked for half a millennium. Using the
title "Sister" seemed only to invoke her connection to the Sisters of
the Dark.
"Alessandra,
Jagang can't get into your head. His power as a dream walker has failed, just
the same as my power has failed."
Sister
Alessandra watched without evident emotion.
"Perhaps
his power works in conjunction with, or even through, ours, and he could still
get into the minds of the Sisters of the Dark."
"Bah.
Now you're thinking like a slave. Go away if you're going to think like a
slave-like the Sisters of the Light, I'm ashamed to say."
The
woman seemed reluctant either to leave or to end the discussion. "I don't
believe you. Jagang is all-powerful. He must surely be watching now, through my
eyes, as we speak, and I simply don't know it."
Ann was
forced to take the spoonful of soup when it
556
unexpectedly
swooped toward her mouth. She chewed slowly as she studied the woman's face.
"You
could come back to the Light, Alessandra."
"What!"
The instantaneous flash of anger in the woman's eyes melted to amusement.
"Prelate, you have gone loony."
"Have
I?"
Sister
Alessandra pressed another spoonful to Ann's lips. "Yes. I am sworn to my
master of the underworld. I serve the Keeper. Eat, now."
Before Ann
could swallow, another spoonful came at her. She ate a half dozen more before
she could get a word out.
"Alessandra,
the Creator would forgive you. The Creator is all-loving and all-forgiving. He
would take you back. You could come back to the light. Wouldn't you like to
return to the Creator's loving embrace?"
Unexpectedly,
Sister Alessandra backhanded her. Ann toppled to her side. The woman hovered,
glowering.
'The
Keeper is my master! You will not speak blasphemy! His Excellency is my master
in this world. In the next, I am sworn to the Keeper. I will not listen to you
profane my oath to my master. Do you hear?"
Ann
feared that what healing her jaw had done had now been undone. It hurt
something awful. Her eyes watered. Sister Alessandra finally seized Ann's
filthy dress at the shoulder and hauled her up straight.
"I
will not have you saying such things. Do you hear?"
Ann
kept silent, fearing to elicit another angry outburst Apparently, the subject
was as sore as Ann's jaw.
Sister Alessandra
picked up the bowl of soup. "There isn't much left, but you should finish
it."
Alessandra
stared down at the bowl, as if watching the spoon stirring around hi it. She
cleared her throat. "Sorry I hit you."
Ann
nodded. "I forgive you, Alessandra." The woman's eyes, no longer
filled with anger, turned up. "I do, Alessandra," Ann whispered
sincerely, wondering at the terrible emotions struggling within her former
disciple.
The
eyes turned down again. "There is nothing to forgive.
557
I am
what I am, and nothing will change it. You've no idea of the things I've done
to become a Sister of the Dark." She looked up with a distant expression.
"You've no idea of the power I was granted in return. You can't imagine,
Prelate."
Ann
almost asked her what good it did her, but held her tongue and finished the
soup in silence. She winced in pain with every swallow. The spoon clanked when
Alessandra dropped it in the empty bowl.
"It
was very good, Alessandra. The best meal I've had in ... however long I've been
here. Weeks, I guess."
Sister
Alessandra nodded and rose. "If I'm not busy, I will bring you some
tomorrow, then."
"Alessandra."
The woman turned back. Ann met her gaze. "Could you sit with me for a
bit?"
"Why?"
Ann
chuckled bitterly. "I'm stuffed in a box every day. I'm staked to the
ground every night. It would be nice to have someone I know sit with me for a
bit, that's all."
"I'm
a Sister of the Dark."
Ann
shrugged. "I'm a Sister of the Light. You still brought me soup."
"I
was ordered to."
"Ah.
More honesty than I received from the Sisters of the Light, I'm sorry to
say." Ann squirmed off a loop of chain and then flopped down on her side,
turning away from Sister Alessandra. "Sorry you had to be interrupted to take
care of me. Jagang probably wants you to go back to whoring for his men."
Silence
reigned inside the tent. Outside, soldiers laughed, drank, and gambled. Smells
of meat roasting drifted in. At least Ann's stomach wasn't grumbling with
hunger. The soup had been good.
Ann
heard the sound of a woman's scream in the distance. The scream turned to
chiming laughter. One of the camp followers, no doubt. Sometimes, the screams
were sincere terror. Sometimes the sound of them made Ann sweat, thinking about
what was happening to those poor women.
558
At
last, Sister Alessandra sank back down. "I could sit with you a bit."
Ann
rolled over. "I would like that, Alessandra. I really would."
Sister
Alessandra helped her sit up, and then the two of them sat in awkward silence
while they listened to the camp sounds.
"Jagang's
tent," Ann said at last. "I heard it was something. Quite the fancy
sight."
"Yes,
it is. It's like a palace he sets up each night. I can't say I favor going
there, though."
"No,
after my encounter with the man, I imagine not. Do you know where we're
going?"
The
other shook her head. "Here, there, it makes no difference. We are slaves
serving His Excellency."
It had
the ring of hopelessness to it, and made Ann think to gently turn that feeling
to hope. "You know, Alessandra, he can't get into my mind."
Sister
Alessandra looked up with a frown, and Ann told her how the bond to the Lord
Rahl protected anyone sworn to him. Ann was careful to frame it in terms of
what it meant to her, and to the others sworn to Richard, on a personal level,
rather than to make it sound like an offer. The woman listened without
objection.
"Now,"
Ann said in conclusion, "the magic of Richard's bond as the Lord Rahl
doesn't work, but then, Jagang's magic doesn't work either, so I'm still safe
from the dream walker." She chuckled. "Unless he walks in the tent,
that is."
Sister
Alessandra laughed with her.
Ann
rearranged her manacled hands in her lap, hauling the chains closer so she could
have enough slack to cross her legs.
"When
the chimes eventually go back to your master in the underworld, then Richard's
bond will work again, and I will once again be protected from Jagang's magic,
when it returns, too. In all this, that is the one comfort I have-
559
knowing
I'm safe from Jagang's power entering my mind."
Sister
Alessandra sat mute.
"Of
course," Ann added, "it must be a relief for you to be without Jagang
in your mind for the time being, at least."
"You
don't know when he's there. You feel no different. Except... if he wants you to
know."
She
smoothed the lap of her dress when Ann didn't say anything. "But I think
you don't know what you're talking about, Prelate. The dream walker is in my
mind, right now, watching us."
She
looked up, waiting for Ann to argue. Instead, Ann said, "You just think on
it, Alessandra. You just think on it."
Sister
Alessandra gathered up the bowl. "I'd best be going back."
"Thank
you for coming, Alessandra. Thank you for the soup. And thank you for sitting
with me. It was nice to be with you, again."
Sister
Alessandra nodded and ducked out of the tent.
CHAPTER
50
ALTHOUGH
IT WAS HARDLY noticeable, the grassy ground stretching to the horizon before
Beata's Dominie Dirtch was slightly higher than the ground to each side of the
enormous stone weapon, and so provided firmer footing, especially for
560
horses.
After the recent rains the gentle swale to the right was muddy. To the left it
wasn't any better. Because of the unique lay of the land, especially after
rain, people tended to approach Beata's post, her Dominie Dirtch, more often
than others.
There
weren't many, but those in the area traveling into Anderith from the grasslands
of the wilds were inclined to come to her station first. Beata enjoyed being
able to be in charge for a change, to pass judgment on people and say if they
could enter. If she thought they looked like people who should not be let in,
she sent them, on to a border station, where they could apply for entry with
the station guards.
It felt
good to be the one in control of important matters, instead of being helpless.
Now, she decided things.
It was
exciting, too, when travelers came through-something different, a chance to
talk to people from afar, or to see their strange dress. There were rarely more
than two or three people traveling together. But they looked up to her; she was
in charge.
This
bright sunny morning, though, Beata's heart hammered against her ribs. This
time, those who approached were different. This time, there were considerably
more than a few. This time, it looked like a true threat.
"Carine,"
Beata ordered, "stand ready at the striker."
The
Haken woman squinted over at her. "You sure, Sergeant?" Carine had
terrible eyesight; she rarely saw anything beyond thirty paces, and these
people were off at the horizon.
It was
something Beata had never done before, ordering out the striker. At least, not
when people approached. They practiced taking it out, of course, but she'd
never ordered it out. If she wasn't there, the ones on duty were supposed to
take it out if they judged a threat approached, but with Beata there, it was up
to her to order it readied. She was in charge. They depended on her.
Since
the terrible accident, they'd added an extra bar across the rack where the
striker stood, even though they knew it wasn't the striker that had rung the
weapon. No one
561
told
them to do it; Beata just felt better with another restraint on the striker. It
made them feel like they were doing something about the accident, even if they
weren't, really.
No one
knew why all the Dominie Dirtch had rung.
Beata
wiped her sweaty palms on her hips. "I'm sure. Do it."
Other
times, when people approached, it was easy enough to tell they were harmless.
Traders with a cart, some of the nomadic people of the wilds wanting to trade
with the soldiers stationed at the border-Beata never let them through-
merchants taking an unusual route for one reason or another, even some special
Ander guard troops returning from far patrols.
Those
Ander guard troops weren't regular army soldiers. They were special. They were
men only, and they looked to Beata like they were used to dealing with trouble
of one sort or another. They paid no heed to regular Anderith soldiers, like
Beata.
She'd
ordered them to stop, once, as they approached. Beata knew who they were,
because Captain Tolbert had instructed her and her squad about the special
Ander guard troops, and told them to let the men pass at will if they came by.
She'd only wanted to ask them, being fellow soldiers and all, if they needed
anything.
They
didn't stop when she ordered it. The man leading simply smirked as he rode past
with his column of big men.
These
people who approached, though, were not guard troops. Beata didn't know what to
make of them, except they had .the look of a serious threat. She could make out
hundreds of mounted soldiers in dark uniforms spreading out as they halted.
Even
from a distance, it was a formidable sight.
Beata
glanced to her side, and saw Carine drawing back the striker. Annette seized
the shaft to help strike the Dominie Dirtch.
Beata
sprang toward them and caught the shaft of the striker before they could swing
it.
562
"No
order was given! What's the matter with you? Stand down."
"But
Sergeant," Annette complained, "they're soldiers- a lot of
soldiers-and they aren't ours. I can tell that much."
Beata
shoved the woman back. "They're giving the signal. Can't you see?"
"But,
Sergeant Beata," Annette whined, "they aren't our people. They've no
business-"
"You
don't even know their business yet!" Beata was frightened and angry that
Carine and Annette had almost rung the weapon on their own. "Are you
crazy? You don't even know who they are. You could be killing innocent people.
"You're
both going to stand an extra duty tonight and for .the next week for not
following orders. Do you understand?"
Annette
hung her head. Carine saluted, not knowing how she was supposed to react to
such discipline. Beata would have been angry at any of her squad trying to
wrongly ring the Dominie Dirtch, but deep down inside, she was glad it was the
two Haken women, and not one of the Anders.
On the
horizon, a person on horseback waved a white flag on the end of a pole, or
lance. Beata didn't know the distance the Dominie Dutch could kill. Maybe if
Carine and Annette had rung it, it wouldn't have harmed the people out there,
but after what happened to Turner, she hoped never to see the weapon rung while
people were in front of it- unless they clearly were attacking.
Beata
watched as the strange troops waited where they were while only a few people
approached. Those were the rules, the way Beata and her squad were taught.
People had to wave a flag of some sort, and if there were many, only a few were
supposed to approach to state their business and ask permission to pass.
It
wasn't a risk to have a few people approach. The Dominie Dirtch could kill an
enemy even if they were only one step away, out in front of it. They would
still die. How close people came was really irrelevant-so was the number, for
that matter.
563
Four
people, two on foot and two on horseback, came forward, leaving the rest
behind. As they got closer, she could see it was two men and two women. One man
and woman rode, another pair walked. There was something about the woman on
horseback...
When
Beata realized who the woman had to be, her heart felt as if it had leaped up
into her throat.
"You
see?" Beata said to Carine and Annette. "Can you imagine if you'd
rung that thing? Can you imagine?"
The
two, jaws agape, stared out at the approaching people. Beata's knees trembled
at the thought of what had almost happened.
Beata
turned and shook a fist at the two. "Put that thing away. And don't you
dare go near the Dominie Dirtch! Do you understand?"
Both
saluted. Beata turned and raced down the steps two at a time. In her whole
life, she never imagined anything like this.
She
never imagined she would actually meet the Mother Confessor herself.
She
gaped, along with the rest of her squad who came out to see, as the woman in
the long white dress rode forward. One man rode to her right. A man and woman
were on foot. The woman was pregnant. The man on foot, on the Mother
Confessor's left, was dressed in loose clothes of no particular style. He had a
sword, but kept it sheathed.
The man
riding on the Mother Confessor's right was something else entirely. Beata had
never seen such a man, all dressed in black, with a golden cape billowing out
behind. The sight took her breath.
Beata
wondered if it could be the man she'd heard was to marry the Mother Confessor:
Lord Rahl. He certainly looked a lord. He was just about the most
imposing-looking man Beata had ever seen.
Beata
shouted to the two up on the platform. "Get down here!"
The two
women dashed down the steps and Beata lined them up with the rest of her squad.
Corporal Marie Fauvel,
564
Estelle
Ruffin, and Emmeline stood to Beata's right. The two from up on the platform
joined the three Ander men, Morris, Karl, and Bryce, on her left. They all
formed up in a straight line, watching as the four people carne right up to
them.
As the
Mother Confessor dismounted, without anyone needing to issue orders, Beata and
her whole squad fell to their knees and bowed their heads. On her way to her
knees, Beata had seen the Mother Confessor's beautiful white dress and long
fall of gorgeous brown hair. Beata had never seen hair such as that, so long
and elegant-looking. She was used to seeing dark Ander hair, or red Haken hair,
so hair that shone honey brown in the sunlight was such an extraordinarily rare
sight that it made the woman look almost other than human.
Beata
was glad to have her head bowed, so afraid was she to meet the Mother
Confessor's gaze. Only profound fear had prevented Beata from staring in awe.
All her
life she had heard stories about the power of the Mother Confessor, about the
feats of magic she could do, about how she could turn people to stone with a
look if she didn't like them, or other things far worse.
Beata
gulped air, panting, on the verge of panic. She was just a Haken girl, suddenly
feeling very out of place. She never expected to find herself before the Mother
Confessor.
"Rise,
my children," said a voice from above.
Just
the sound of it, how gentle, how clear, how seemingly kind it was, greatly
eased Beata's fear. She never thought the Mother Confessor would have a voice
so ... so womanly. Beata had always thought it might be a voice like a spirit,
screeching out from the world of the dead.
With
the rest of her squad, Beata rose to her feet, but she kept her head bowed,
still fearing to look up directly into the Mother Confessor's eyes. Beata had
never been instructed how to behave when she met the Mother Confessor herself,
it being an event no one ever thought could possibly happen to her, a Haken
girl. But here it was, happening.
"Who
is in charge here?" It was the Mother Confessor's
565
voice,
still sounding nice enough, but it had a clear ring of authority that was
unmistakable. At least she didn't sound like she intended to call lightning
down on anyone.
Beata
took a step forward, but kept her eyes aimed at the ground. "I am, Mother
Confessor."
"And
you are?"
Beata's
racing heart refused to slow. She couldn't make herself stop trembling.
"Your humble servant, Mother Confessor. I am Sergeant Beata."
Beata
nearly jumped out of her skin when fingers lifted her chin. And then she was
looking right into the green eyes of the Mother Confessor herself. It was like
looking on a tall, beautiful, smiling, good spirit.
Good
spirit or not, Beata stood frozen in renewed terror.
"Glad
to meet you, Sergeant Beata." The Mother Confessor gestured to her left.
"This is Du Chaillu, a friend, and Jiaan, another friend." She laid
her hand on the shoulder of the big man beside her. "This is Lord
Rahl," she said, as her smile widened, "my husband."
Beata's
gaze moved at last to the Lord Rahl. He, too, smiled pleasantly. Beata had
never had such important people smile at her in such a way. It was all because
she had joined the Anderith army, to become an evil Haken doing good, at last.
"Mind
if I go up and have a look at the Dominie Dirtch, Sergeant Beata?" Lord
Rahl asked.
Beata
cleared her throat. "Uh-well-no, sir. No sir. Please, I would be happy to
show you the Dominie Dirtch. Honored, I mean. I mean I would be honored to show
you."
"And
our men," the Mother Confessor asked, bringing Beata's babbling to a
merciful end, "may they approach, now, Sergeant?"
Beata
bowed. "Forgive me. I'm sorry. Of course they may, Mother Confessor. Of
course. I'm sorry. If you will permit me, I will see to it."
After
the Mother Confessor gave a nod, Beata raced up the steps ahead of the Lord
Rahl, feeling a fool for not at once telling the Mother Confessor she was
welcome hi An-
566
derith.
Beata snatched up the horn and blew the all-clear to the squad at the Dominie
Dirtch on each side. She turned to the waiting distant soldiers and blew a long
note, to let them know they were granted permission to approach the Dominie
Dutch in safety.
The
Lord Rahl was coming up the stairs. Beata pulled the horn from her lips and
backed against the railing. There was something about him, just his presence,
that took her breath. Not even the Minister of Culture himself, before he did
what he did, struck her with such a feeling of awe as did this man, the Lord
Rahl.
It
wasn't just his size, his broad shoulders, his penetrating gray eyes, or his
black and gold outfit with the broad belt holding gold-worked leather pouches
and strange symbols. It was his presence.
He
didn't look proper and fancy like the Ander officials, like Dalton Campbell or
the Minister of Culture, but rather, he looked noble, purposeful, and at the
same time ... dangerous.
Deadly.
He was
kind enough looking, and handsome, but she just knew that if he ever turned
those gray eyes on her in anger, she might be struck dead just by their
intensity.
If ever
there was a man who looked as if he could be the husband of the Mother
Confessor, this was the man.
The
pregnant woman came up the stairs, her eyes taking everything in. There was
something about this dark-haired woman as well that seemed noble. She and the
other man, both with dark hair, almost looked Ander. She had on the oddest
dress Beata had ever seen; there were little different-colored strips of cloth
tied on all up the arms and over the shoulders.
Beata
held out a hand. "This, Lord Rahl, is the Dominie Dirtch." Beata
wanted to say the woman's name, too, but it had flown out of her head, and she
couldn't remember it.
Lord
Rahl's eyes roamed over the huge bell-shaped stone weapon.
"It
was created thousands of years ago by the Hakens,"
567
Beata
said, "as a weapon of murder against the Anders, but it now serves instead
as a means for peace."
Clasping
his hands loosely behind his back, Lord Rahl surveyed the uncountable tons of
stone that made up the Dominie Dutch. His gaze glided over every nuance of it
in a way she had never seen anyone else look at it. Beata almost expected him
to speak to it, and the Dominie Dirtch to answer.
"And
how would that be, sergeant?" he asked without looking at her.
"Sir?"
When he
turned to her at last, his gray eyes arrested her breath.
"Well,
the Hakens invaded Anderith, right?"
Under
the scrutiny of those eyes, she had to struggle to make her voice work.
"Yes, sir." It came out as little more than a squeak.
He lifted
a thumb, pointing back at the stone bell. "And do you suppose the invaders
rode in with these Dominie Dirtch slung over their backs, then, Sergeant?"
Beata's
knees started trembling. She wished he wouldn't ask her questions. She wished
he would just leave them be and go on to Fairfield and talk to the important
people who knew how to answer questions.
"Sir?"
Lord
Rahl turned and gestured to the stone rising up before him. "It's obvious
these weapons were not brought in, Sergeant. They're too big. There are too
many of them. They had to be constructed here, where they stand, with the aid
of magic, no doubt."
"But
the Haken murderers, when they invaded-"
"They're
pointed out there, Sergeant, toward any invaders, not in, toward the people of
Anderith. It's clear they were built as weapons of defense."
Beata
swallowed. "But we were taught-"
"You
were taught a lie." He looked decidedly unhappy about what he was seeing.
"This is plainly a defensive weapon." He peered off to the Dominie
Dirtch to each side,
568
surveying
them with a critical eye. "They work together. They were placed here as a
line of defense, they weren't the tools of invasion."
The way
he said it, with almost a tone of regret, didn't seem at all to Beata like he meant
any offense. He seemed to have spoken what came into his mind as he realized it
himself.
"But
the Hakens..." Beata said in hardly more than a whisper.
Lord
Rahl stood politely, waiting for her to offer an argument. Her mind was
spinning with confused thoughts.
"I'm
not an educated person, Lord Rahl. I'm only a Haken, evil by nature. Forgive me
for not being taught good enough to be able to better answer your
questions."
He
heaved a sigh. "It doesn't require an education, Sergeant Beata, to see
what's right before your eyes. Use your head."
Beata
stood mute, unable to reconcile the conversation. This was an important man.
She'd heard things about the Lord Rahl, about what a powerful man he was, about
how he was a magician with the power to make day into night, up into down. He
wasn't a man who ruled just one land, like the Minister of Culture and the
Sovereign, but a man who ruled the mysterious empire of D'Hara, and now was
capturing all of the Midlands.
But he
was a man, too, who was married to the Mother Confessor. Beata had seen the
look in the Mother Confessor's eyes when she looked at the Lord Rahl. Beata
knew from that look that the woman loved and respected this man. It was as
plain as day that she did.
"You
should listen to what he says," the pregnant woman said. "He is also
the Seeker of Truth."
Beata's
jaw dropped. She spoke before her fear could muzzle her. "You mean that's
the Sword of Truth you carry, sir?"
It
looked an ordinary weapon to her, little different from hers. It was just a
black leather scabbard, nothing special, and a leather-wrapped handle.
569
He
looked down and lifted the weapon clear of the scabbard and then let it drop
back. His face lost its spirit.
"This?
No ... it's not the Sword of Truth. I don't have it with me ... right at the
moment."
Beata
didn't have the nerve to ask why not. She wished she could have seen the real
sword. It had magic. That would have been something-for her to see the Sword of
Truth Fitch thought so much about, instead of him seeing it. Being in the army,
and in charge of a Dominie Dirtch, she was doing more than he ever would.
Lord
Rahl had turned to the towering weapon. He seemed to have forgotten that anyone
else existed, as he focused on the lichen-covered stone before him. He stood as
still as the stone. He seemed almost one with it.
His
hand reached out to touch the Dominie Dirtch.
The
woman snatched his wrist, holding his hand back.
"No,
my husband. Do not touch this thing. It is ..."
Lord
Rahl turned to look into her eyes, finishing what she'd left unsaid.
"Evil."
"You
can feel it, then?"
He
nodded.
Of
course it was evil, Beata wanted to say; it was made by Hakens.
Beata's
brow bunched in puzzlement. The woman had called him "husband," but
the Mother Confessor had said the Lord Rahl was her husband.
Lord
Rahl, seeing his troops drawing close, started down the stairs two at a time.
The woman took in the Dominie Dirtch one last time and then moved to follow
him.
"Husband?"
Beata was unable to resist asking the pregnant woman.
She
lifted her chin as she turned to Beata. "Yes. I am the wife of the Lord
Rahl, the Seeker, the Caharin, Richard."
"But,
but the Mother Confessor said ..."
The
woman shrugged. "Yes, we are the both of us his wives."
"Both?
Two ... ?"
The
woman started down the stairs. "He is an important
570
man. He
can have more than one wife." The woman stopped and looked back. "I
once had five husbands."
Beata's
eyes widened as she watched the woman disappear down the stairs. The morning
air rumbled with the approach of the mounted soldiers. Beata had never even
imagined such ferocious-looking men. She was glad for her training; Captain
Tolbert had told her that with her training, she could defend Anderith against
anyone, even men like these.
"Sergeant
Beata," Lord Rahl called up to her.
Beata
went to the rail in front of the bell. He had stopped on his way to his horse
out front and turned back. The Mother Confessor was taking up the reins. She
put a foot in a stirrup.
"Yes,
sir?"
"I
don't suppose you rang that thing about a week ago?"
"No,
sir, we didn't."
He
turned to his horse. 'Thank you, Sergeant."
"But
it chimed by itself back then."
The
Lord Rahl stiffened in place. The pregnant woman spun back around. The Mother
Confessor, halfway up onto her horse, dropped back to the ground.
Beata
raced down the steps so she wouldn't have to shout the awful details down at
him. The rest of her squad had pulled way back behind the Dominie Dirtch,
fearing to be in the way of such important people; fearing, Beata supposed,
that the Mother Confessor might set them afire with a look. Beata still feared
the woman, but the edge of her fear had been dulled.
Lord
Rahl whistled to the soldiers and wheeled his arm, ordering them to hurry
through, past the Dominie Dirtch, out of the way of harm, should the Dominie
Dirtch again ring of its own accord. As hundreds of mounted men galloped around
both sides, he hurried to usher the Mother Confessor and the pregnant woman,
along with the other man, around to the rear of the stone base.
Once
the women were safely past, he seized the shoulder of Beata's uniform and
hauled her back, protectively, away
571
from
the front of Dominie Dirtch. She stiffened to attention-mostly in fear-before
him.
His
brow had drawn down in a way that made Beata's knees tremble. "What
happened?" he asked in a quiet voice that seemed as if it could have
caused the Dominie Dirtch to ring again.
The
Mother Confessor had come to stand beside him. His pregnant wife stood on his
other side.
"Well,
we don't know, sir." Beata licked her lips. "One of my men ...
Turner, he was ..." She gestured out behind Lord Rahl. "He was out on
patrol when the thing rang. It was an awful sound. Just awful. And Turner
..."
Beata
could feel a tear roll down her cheek. As much as she didn't want this man and
the Mother Confessor to see her showing weakness, she couldn't keep that tear
back.
"In
the late afternoon?" Lord Rahl asked.
Beata
nodded. "How did you know?"
He
ignored the question. "All of them rang? Not just this one, but all of
them up and down the line rang, didn't they?"
"Yes,
sir. No one knows the reason. Some officers came down the line, checking them,
but they couldn't tell us anything."
"Were
a lot of people killed?"
Beata
abandoned his gaze. "Yes, sir. One of my men, and a lot of others, from
what I was told. Wagons with merchants at the border, people returning to pass
through the border... anyone out front of the Dominie Dirtch when they rang....
It was just awful. To die in such a fashion ..."
"We
understand," the Mother Confessor said in a compassionate tone.
"We're sorry for your loss."
"So
no one has any idea why they rang?" Lord Rahl pressed.
"No,
sir, at least no one told us the reason. I've talked to the squads to each
side, at the next Dominie Dirtch to each side, and it was the same with them;
theirs, too, chimed on their own, but no one knows why. The officers who came
572
past
must not have known the reason either, because they was asking us what
happened."
Lord
Rahl nodded, seeming in deep thought. The wind lifted his golden cloak. The
Mother Confessor pulled some hair back from her face, as did Lord Rahl's
pregnant wife.
Lord
Rahl gestured off at the rest of her squad. "And these people, they are
all you have here, guarding the border? Just you few ... soldiers?"
Beata
glanced up at the weapon towering over them. "Well, sir, it only takes one
person to ring the Dominie Dirtch."
His
gaze again appraised the rest of her squad. "I suppose. Thank you for your
help, Sergeant."
He and
the Mother Confessor swiftly mounted up. She and the people on foot moved out
with the rest of their soldiers. Lord Rahl turned back to her.
"Tell
me, Sergeant Beata, do you think I-and the Mother Confessor-are not as good as
the Ander people? Do you think us evil of nature, too?"
"Oh
no, sir. Only Hakens are born tainted with vile souls. We can never be as good
as Anders. Our souls are corrupt and unable to be pure; their souls are pure,
and unable to be corrupt. We cannot ever be completely cleansed; we can only
hope to control our vile nature."
He
smiled sadly down at her. His voice softened. "Beata, the Creator does not
create evil. He would not create and bestow upon you souls of evil. You have as
much potential for good as anyone else, and Anders have a potential for evil
equal to anyone."
'That's
not what we're taught, sir."
His
horse tossed her head and danced sideways, eager to be off after the others.
With a pat on his horse's glossy brown neck, as if speaking to her through that
gentle hand, he settled her.
"As
I said, you were taught wrong. You are as good as anyone else Beata-Haken, or
Ander, or anyone. That's our purpose in this struggle: to make sure that all
people have an equal chance.
573
"You
be careful with that thing, Sergeant, that Dominie Dirtch."
Beata
saluted with her hand to her brow. "Yes, sir, I surely intend to."
His
gaze connected solidly with hers and he tapped his fist to his heart to return
the salute. Then, his horse leaped into a gallop to catch the others.
As
Beata watched him go, she realized that this had probably been the most
exciting thing that would happen in all the rest of her entire life-speaking
with the Mother Confessor and the Lord Rahl.
CHAPTER
51
BERTRAND
CHANBOOR LOOKED UP when Dalton came into the room. Bertrand's wife was there,
too, standing before his ornate desk. Dalton met her eyes briefly. He was a bit
surprised to see her there, but guessed this was important enough for her to
meet with her husband.
"Well?"
Bertrand asked.
"They
confirmed what we were told," Dalton said. "They saw it with their
own eyes."
"And
they have soldiers?" Hildemara asked. "That part is true, also?"
"Yes.
The best guess is near a thousand men."
Cursing
under her breath, she tapped a finger against Ber-
574
trand's
desk as she considered. "And the fools at the border just let them through
without a care."
"We
cultivate such an army, you will recall," Bertrand reminded her as he
stood. "They also let through our 'special Ander guard troops,' after
all."
"The
people at the border can't be blamed," Dalton put in. "They couldn't
very well refuse the Mother Confessor entry. The man could be none other than
the Lord Rahl himself."
Erupting
in rage, the Minister heaved his glass dipping pen. It clattered across the
floor before shattering against the far wall. He went to the window and leaned
against the sill as he gazed out.
"For
Creation's sake, Bertrand, get a grip on yourself," Lady Chanboor growled.
He
turned in red-faced anger and shook a finger at his wife.
"This
could ruin everything! We've worked years at this, carefully cultivated the relationship,
sown the seeds, pulled the weeds that have sprung up, and just when we're about
to finally reap the harvest of our lives, she comes riding in with
that-that-that D'Haran bastard Lord Rahl!"
Hildemara
folded her arms. "Well that really solves the problem, throwing a fit. I
swear, Bertrand, sometimes you have less sense than a drunken fisherman."
"And
the sort of pompous wife who drives him to it!"
He
ground his teeth and pulled aside his chair, no doubt preparing to launch into
an extended tirade. Dalton could almost see her back arch, fur lift, and claws
lengthen.
Dalton
was usually ignored, like a piece of furniture, when they started in on each
other. This time, he had better things to do than wait for it to broaden into a
worse argument that would only waste valuable time. He had to issue orders,
depending on what was decided. He had to get people in place.
He
thought about Franca, wondering if she might have recovered her power. He
hadn't seen much of her lately, and when he had, she seemed distracted. She had
been
575
spending
a lot of time in the library. It would be valuable at a time like this to have
Franca's assistance. Her true assistance.
"The
Mother Confessor and the Lord Rahl are riding hard, and my men only just made
it ahead of them," Dalton said, before Bertrand could lay into his wife,
or she could throw something at him. "They should be here within the hour-
two at most. We should be prepared."
Bertrand
glared a moment before pulling his chair close and sitting. He folded his hands
on the table. "Yes, you're right, Dalton. Quite right. First thing is to
get Stein and his men out of sight. It wouldn't do to have-"
"I've
already taken the liberty of seeing to it, Minister. I've sent some of them on
an inspection of grain storage facilities, and others wanted to look over the
strategic routes into Anderith."
Bertrand
looked up. "Good."
"We've
worked too many years to lose it all, now, when we're this close,"
Hildemara said. "However, if we just keep our heads, I don't see any
reason we can't proceed with everything as planned."
Her
husband nodded, having cooled considerably, as he did when he put his mind to
difficult matters. He had the odd ability to be in a fit of rage one moment,
and smiling the next.
"Possibly."
He turned to Dalton. "How close is the Order?"
"Still
quite a distance, Minister. Stein's 'special Ander guard troops' who arrived
the day before yesterday told me four weeks at least. Probably a bit
more."
Bertrand
shrugged and arched an eyebrow, a sly smile coming to his lips. "Then we
will simply have to stall the Mother Confessor and the Lord Rahl."
Hildemara
put her fists on his desk and leaned toward her husband.
'The
two of them, the Lord Rahl and the Mother Confessor, will be expecting our
answer. They've long since explained to our representatives in Aydindril the
choice we
576
have,
and sent them back with the offer of joining the D'Haran Empire, or facing the
probability of conquest and the resulting loss of standing in our own
land."
Dalton
agreed with her. "Ours would be a land they would turn their forces to if
we don't agree to the terms of surrender. Were we some small, unimportant land,
they would no doubt ignore us as we stall, but we will be an immediate prime
target should we refuse to join them."
"And
they have forces somewhere down in the South, from what I've heard,"
Hildemara put in. "The Lord Rahl is not a man to be denied, or played for
a fool. Some of the other lands-Jara, Galea, Herjborgue, Grennidon, and Kelton,
among others-have already fallen or joined willingly. Lord Rahl has
considerable forces of his own from D'Hara, but with those lands his army is
formidable."
"But
they aren't all down here," Bertrand said, for some reason suddenly quite
calm. "The Order will be able to crush them. The Dominie Dirtch can hold
off any force from the D'Haran Empire."
Dalton
thought the confidence unfounded. "From what my sources tell me, this Lord
Rahl is a wizard of formidable talent. He is also the Seeker of Truth. I fear
such a man may have ways of defeating the Dominie Dirtch."
Hildemara
scowled. "Besides, the Mother Confessor, the Lord Rahl, and perhaps a
thousand troops are already inside the line of Dominie Dirtch. They will demand
our surrender. We 'would be stripped of power if that happens. The Order won't
be here for weeks-by then too late."
She
shook her finger at her husband. "We've worked too many years to lose it
all now."
Bertrand
tapped his thumbs as he smiled. "Then we will just, as I said before, have
to stall them, won't we, my dear?"
577
The
D'Haran troops were a dark ribbon on the road behind them as Richard and Kahlan
led them toward the Minister of Culture's estate. A dark ribbon bristling
steel. The sun was not an hour from setting behind scattered clouds, but at
least they had arrived.
Richard
pulled his damp D'Haran shirt away from his chest as he watched a curious raven
circling overhead. With raucous calls, it let its lordly presence be known, as
was the way with ravens.
It had
been a warm and humid day. He and Kahlan both wore extra clothes the soldiers
brought so their own would be clean and fit for the meeting they both knew
would soon come.
Richard
glanced back over his shoulder and received a murderous look from Du Chaillu.
He had made her ride a horse so they could make the distance and not take
another day. Their journey had taken far too long as it was.
The
Baka Tau Mana did not like riding horses. As often as not, Du Chaillu would simply
have ignored him when he told her to ride. This time, she knew if she ignored
his request she would be left behind.
It had
apparently taken Cara some time to locate General Reibisch's forces and send an
escort of troops. Richard, Kahlan, and the Baka Tau Mana had been on foot,
slogging through late-spring deluges, for far too long. They hadn't made a lot
of distance on foot before the D'Haran troops finally arrived with horses.
Du
Chaillu had also slowed their journey, although not purposely. She endlessly
protested that riding would harm her baby before it was born-the baby Richard
had suggested she bear. Because of her unborn child, Richard was reluctant to
force her to ride.
He
hadn't wanted her along in the first place. After the D'Haran troops had
arrived with supplies and extra horses she refused to return home, as she had
previously promised she would.
To her
credit, she never complained about the difficulty
578
of the
journey. But when Richard made her ride, it put her in a vile mood.
Kahlan,
at first cool about having the Baka Tau Mana's spirit woman along, had warmed
to the situation ever since the day Richard fell from his horse. Kahlan
credited Du Chaillu with saving his life. Richard appreciated Du Chaillu's
eagerness to help, but didn't believe it was her doing that kept him alive.\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0 ,
He
wasn't at all sure what had happened. Since seeing the Dominie Dirtch, and
hearing how they had chimed on their own at the same time he felt the crippling
pain, he knew the whole thing had to be tied together somehow, and he didn't
believe Du Chaillu held much sway over it. This was something much bigger than
she realized, -and more complex than Richard could understand.
Richard
hadn't slowed for anything since he saw the Dominie Dutch, even her pregnant
condition. Since being close to those stone bells and feeling some of what he
felt, she had been more cooperative about his hurry.
Richard
lifted a hand when he spotted the rider trailing a plume of dust. He could hear
orders being relayed back through the ranks in response to his signal, bringing
the entire column to a jangling halt. Only when it had stopped, in the sudden
silence, did he realize how much noise it made when they were on the move.
"This
will be our greeting," Kahlan said.
"How
far to the Minister's estate?" Richard asked.
"Not
far. We're more than halfway from Fairfield. Maybe a mile."
Richard
and Kahlan dismounted to meet the approaching rider. A soldier took the reins
to Kahlan's horse. Richard handed his back to the man, too, and then stepped
away from the others. Kahlan alone walked with him. He had to signal with a
hand to keep the soldiers from forming a defensive ring around them.
The
young man leaped from his horse before it had skidded to a stop. Holding the
reins in one hand, he went to a
579
knee in
a bow. Kahlan greeted him in the way of the Mother Confessor and he rose. He
wore livery of black boots, dark trousers, white shirt with a fancy collar and
cuffs, and tan quilted doublet with black and brown braiding around the edges.
The man bowed a head of red hair to Richard. "Lord Rahl?"
"Yes,
that's right."
He
straightened. "I'm Rowley. The Minister of Culture sent me to greet you
and extend his joy to have you and the Mother Confessor grace the people of
Anderith with your presence."
"I'm
sure," Richard said.
Kahlan
elbowed his ribs. "Thank you, Rowley. We will need a place for our men to
set up camp."
"Yes,
Mother Confessor. The Minister wanted me to tell you that you're welcome to
choose any ground in our land. If it would be acceptable, you may have the
grounds at the estate for your use."
Richard
didn't like that idea at all. He didn't want the men confined in such a way. He
wanted them to be close, but able to set up a proper defensive position.
Despite what anyone else thought, he had to treat this as being potentially
hostile territory.
He
gestured to the wheat field. "What about here? We will of course reimburse
the landowner for the crops we ruin."
Rowley
bowed. "If it pleases you, Lord Rahl. The Minister wished the choice to be
yours. The land is Anderith common ground, and the crops excess, of no real
value or concern.
"After
you see to your escort, at your convenience, the Minister wishes to invite you
to dinner. He asked me to relay his eagerness to meet you, and to see the
Mother Confessor again."
"We
don't-"
Kahlan
elbowed him again. "We would be happy to join Minister Chanboor for
dinner. Please ask him, though, to
580
understand
that we have been riding hard, and are tired. We would appreciate it if he kept
the dinner small, no more than three courses."
Rowley
was clearly not prepared for this request, but promised to relay it at once.
Once
the man was riding back, Du Chaillu stepped up.
"You
need a bath," she announced to Richard. "Jiaan says there is a pond
not far over this hill. Come, we will bathe."
Kahlan's
brow tightened. Du Chaillu smiled sweetly.
"I
usually must suggest it," she said. "He is shy when we bathe together.
His face turns red"-she pointed at Richard's face-"just like that,
when we undress to bathe. His face turns red like that whenever he tells me to
take off my clothes."
Kahlan
folded her arms. "Really."
Du
Chaillu nodded. "Do you enjoy bathing with him, too? He seems to enjoy
it-bathing with women."
Now
Richard knew how displeased Du Chaillu was with her horseback ride, and how she
intended to even the score.
Kahlan's
green eyes turned to him. "What is it with you and women and water?"
Richard
shrugged, not about to play the game. "You want to join us? It might be
fun." He winked at her and then turned and seized Du Chaillu's arm.
"Come along, then, wife. We'll go first, maybe Kahlan will join us
later."
Du
Chaillu yanked her arm away. The joke had gone too far for her. "No. I do
not wish to go near the water."
Her
eyes betrayed obvious fear. She didn't wish to give the chimes a chance to
drown her again.
581
CHAPTER
52
RICHARD
SIGHED IMPATIENTLY AS he surveyed the people enjoying the dinner. An intimate
dinner, Bertrand Chanboor had called it. Kahlan had whispered to Richard that,
for Anderith, fifty or sixty people was considered an intimate dinner.
When
Richard looked out at the people, many of them, especially the men, glanced
away. Many of the women did not. It was fortunate, the way they were batting
their lashes at him, that Kahlan was not jealous. She hadn't really been
jealous of Du Chaillu; she knew the woman was simply trying to nettle him. He
knew, though, he was going to have to explain how innocent his single bath with
Du Chaillu had been.
It was
hard explaining anything to Kahlan, what with having so many people around all
the time. Even when they slept, they had blade masters, and now troops,
standing over them every minute. It wasn't very intimate, much less romantic.
He was beginning to forget they were married, for all the time they had alone
together.
Their
purpose, though, made such considerations pale into insignificance. The
awareness of people dying because of the chimes being loose was not conducive
to intimacy.
Sitting
close to her, sharing food from the trencher, seeing
582
the
lamplight reflect in her green eyes, off her hair, seeing the way her thick
tresses nestled in the curve of her neck, he was beginning to think about weeks
before, in the spirit house-the last time he had made love to her...
remembering her lush naked body. It was an impossible mental image to forget.
Kahlan
cleared her throat. "He asked you a question, Richard," she
whispered. Richard blinked. "What?" "Minister Chanboor asked you
a question." Richard turned to the other side. "I'm sorry, my mind
was elsewhere. On an important action."
"Yes,
of course," Minister Chanboor said, smiling. "I was just curious as-
to where you grew up."
A
long-forgotten memory of youth surfaced in Richard's mind, a memory of
wrestling with his older brother-his stepbrother, Michael. He had so enjoyed
the playful tumbles they had. It had been a time of laughter. '"Oh, you
know-wherever there was a good fight." The Minister stumbled around for
words. "I, I suppose you had a good teacher."
His
stepbrother had later, when they were grown, betrayed him to Darken Rahl.
Michael had betrayed many people. Because of Michael's betrayal, many innocent
people had died.
"Yes,"
Richard said, the memory standing in stark relief between him and the
Minister's expectant face. "I did have a good teacher. Last winter I had
him beheaded." The Minister paled.
Richard
turned back to Kahlan. She hid her smile. "Good answer," she
whispered to him from behind a napkin so she couldn't be heard over the music
coming from the harp set before and below their table.
The
Lady Chanboor, on Kahlan's other side, if she was appalled, didn't show it.
Dalton Campbell, on the far side of the Minister, raised an eyebrow. Beyond
him, his wife, Teresa, a nice woman, Richard thought, hadn't heard his words.
When Dalton turned and whispered them to her, her
583
eyes
went wide, more in titillation than horror.
Kahlan
had warned him these people responded to power, and suggested he show them more
intimation of force than offers of accommodation if they were to gain the
Anders' cooperation.
The
Minister, a piece of rolled beef dripping a red sauce in his fingers, gestured
and sought to change the subject to something less bloody.
"Lord
Rahl, don't you wish any meat?"
The
meat course seemed to Richard to have gone on for an hour. He decided to tell
the man the flat truth. '
"I'm
a war wizard, Minister Chanboor. Like my father, Darken Rahl, I don't eat
meat." Richard paused to be certain he had the attention of everyone at
the table. "Wizards, "you see, must maintain balance in their lives.
Not eating meat is balance for all the killing I do."
The harpist
missed a note. Everyone else held their breath.
Richard
filled the dragging silence. "I'm certain that by now you have heard the
proposal I've made for the lands of the Midlands to join with us. The terms are
fair and equitable to all. Your representatives would have brought our terms to
you. If you join willingly, your people will be welcomed. If you oppose us ...
well, if you oppose us, then we will have to conquer you and the terms will be
harsh."
"So
I've been told," the Minister said.
Kahlan
leaned in. "And you have been informed my word backs Lord Rahl's? You know
my advice is for all lands to join us?"
The
Minister tipped his head in a slight bow. "Yes, Mother Confessor, and
please be assured we value greatly your sound advice."
"Then
is it your intention to join with us, Minister, in our struggle for
freedom?"
"Well...
you see, Mother Confessor, it is not quite that simple."
"Fine,"
Richard said, beginning to rise. "I will see the Sovereign, then."
584
"You
can't," Dalton Campbell said.
Richard,
a scowl growing, sank back down. "And why would that be?"
The
Minister licked his lips. "The Sovereign, the Creator watch over his
blessed soul, is very ill. He is bedridden. Not even I have been able to see
him. He is in no condition to talk, from what the healers and his wife tell me.
Speaking with him would be hopeless, since he is rarely conscious."
"I'm
so sorry," Kahlan said. "We had no idea."
"We
would take you to see him, Mother Confessor, Lord Rahl," Dalton Campbell
said in a sincere-sounding voice, "but the man is so ill he would be
unable to offer his advice."
The
harpist went into a louder, more complex and dramatic piece, using every
string, it seemed.
"Then
you will have to decide without his advice," Richard said. "The
Imperial Order is already invading the New World. We need everyone we can get
to resist their tyranny, lest their dark shadow cover us all."
"Well,"
the Minister said as he intently picked at invisible things on the tablecloth,
"I want the land of Anderith to join with you and your noble cause. I
really do. As do most of the people of Anderith, I'm sure-"
"Good.
Then that's settled."
"Well,
no, it's not." Minister Chanboor looked up. "Though I might wish it,
as would my wife, and as Dalton has so forcefully advised we do, we cannot
decide something this important on our own."
"The
Directors?" Kahlan asked. "We will speak with them
straightaway."
"They
are part of it," the Minister said, "but not all. There are others
who must be part of such a momentous decision."
Richard
sat puzzled. "Who else is there?"
The
Minister leaned back in his chair and gazed out at the room for a time before
his dark eyes turned back to Richard.
"The
people of Anderith."
585
"You
are the Minister of Culture," Kahlan said heatedly as she leaned in.
"You speak for them. You have but to say it will be so and it will."
The man
spread his hands. "Mother Confessor, Lord Rahl, you are asking us to
surrender our sovereignty. I can't callously do that on my own."
"That
is why it is called 'surrender,' " Richard growled.
"But
you are asking our people to cease to be who they are, and become one with you
and your people. I don't think you realize what that means. You are asking us
to surrender not only our sovereignty, but our very culture.
"Don't
you see? We would cease to be who we are. We have a culture stretching back
thousands of years. Now you come in, one man, and ask the people to throw away
all that history? How can you think it so simple a matter to forget our
heritage, our forebears, our culture?"
Richard
drummed his fingers on the table. He gazed out at the people enjoying the
dinner, who had no idea how important were the words being spoken at the head
table.
"You
misstate it, Minister Chanboor. We have no desire to destroy your
culture"-Richard leaned toward the man- "although from what I've
heard of it, there are unfair aspects of it that will not be allowed. Under our
law, everyone is treated equally.
"As
long as you follow the common laws, you may retain your culture."
"Yes,
but-"
"In
the first place, it is a matter of necessity to the very freedom of hundreds of
thousands of people of the New World. We will not tolerate a risk to so many.
If you don't join us, we will conquer you. When that happens, you will lose
your say in the common laws we set down, and, you will pay penalties that will
cripple your land for a generation."
The
heat in Richard's eyes moved the Minister back a few inches. "Worse, though,
would be if the Imperial Order gets to you first. They will not impose
financial penalties, they will crush you. They will murder and enslave
you."
586
"The
Imperial Order demanded the surrender of Ebinissia,-" Kahlan said in a
distant voice. "I was there. I saw what the Order did to those people when
they refused to surrender and become slaves. The men of Imperial Order tortured
and butchered every man, woman, and child in the city. Every last one. Not one
person was left alive."
"Well,
any men who would-"
"Over
fifty thousand men of the Order participated in slaughtering the innocent
people of Ebinissia," Kahlan said in a coldly powerful voice. "I led
the troops who hunted them down. We killed every last man who had been in on
the butchery in Ebinissia."
Kahlan
leaned toward the Minister. "Many wept for mercy. I have declared, as
Mother Confessor, no mercy for the Order. That includes any who side with them.
We killed every last one of those men, Minister Chanboor. Every last one."
The
frightful chill of her words stunned everyone at the table into silence. Dalton
Campbell's wife, Teresa, looked as though she might run from the table.
"Your
only salvation," Richard finally said, "is to join with us. Together,
we are forming a formidable force capable of turning back the Imperial Order
and preserving peace and freedom in the New World."
Minister
Chanboor finally spoke. "As I said, if it were my choice, I would agree to
join you, as would my wife, as would Dalton. The problem is, Emperor Jagang has
made generous offers to people here, offers of peace and-"
Kahlan
shot to her feet. "What! You have been talking to those murderers!"
Some of
the people around the room paused in their conversations to glance up at the
head table. Some, Richard had noticed, had never taken their eyes off the
Minister and his guests.
The
Minister, for the first time, seemed undaunted. "When your land is
threatened with extinction by opposing forces, neither of which were invited to
demand our surrender, it is our duty as leaders and advisors to listen to what
587
each
side has to say. We wish no war, but war is being thrust upon us. It is
incumbent on us to hear what our choices might be. You cannot fault us for
listening to our options."
"Freedom
or slavery," Richard said, standing beside his wife.
The
Minister stood up, too. "Listening to what people have to say is not
considered an offense, here in Anderith. We don't attack people before they
make threats. The Imperial Order implored us not to listen to what you have to
say, but here you are. We offer people the opportunity to speak."
Richard's
hand tightened on the hilt of his sword. He expected to feel the raised letters
made of gold wire, the letters spelling out the word "Truth." He was
momentarily surprised to find them missing.
"And
what lies did the Order tell you, Minister?"
Minister
Chanboor shrugged. "As I said, we like your offer better."
He held
his hand out in invitation. Reluctantly, Richard and Kahlan returned to their
seats.
"I
must tell you right up front, Minister," Richard said, "whatever it
is you want, we'll not give it to you. Don't even bother listing to us your
conditions. As we've explained to your representatives back in Aydindril, we
have made the same offer to all the lands. In order to be fair to all, there
can be no exceptions, and no special accommodations for some."
"We
ask for none," Minister Chanboor said.
When
Kahlan touched Richard's back, he recognized it as a signal to take a breath
and keep hold of his temper. He took the deep breath and reminded himself of
their purpose. Kahlan was right. He had to think, and not just react.
"All
right, Minister, what is the problem keeping you from accepting our terms of
surrender?"
"Well,
as I said, if it were up to me and-"
"What
is the problem?" Richard's tone was deadly, deep breath or not.
588
He was
already considering his troops, less than a mile away. The guards at the estate
would present little opposition for such elite D'Haran soldiers. It was not an
option he wished to fall back on, but he might be forced to it. They couldn't
let the Minister-inadvertently or otherwise- interfere with stopping Jagang.
The
Minister cleared his throat. Everyone else at the table was rigid, almost
afraid to move, as if they could read Richard's thoughts in his eyes.
"This
affects everyone in our land. You are asking us to forsake our culture, as is
the Imperial Order-although with you it would be less of a change and we would
be able to retain some of our ways.
"This
is not something I can impose on our people. It must be up to them."
Richard's
brow twitched. "What? What do you mean?"
"I
can't dictate such a thing to our people. They will have to decide for
themselves what to do."
Richard
lifted a hand. He let it fall back to the table. "But, how can they do
that?"
The
Minister wet his lips. 'They will all decide what shall be the fate of all by
their vote."
"Their
what?" Kahlan asked.
"Their
vote. They must each be given the opportunity to state their wishes in
this."
"No,"
Kahlan said flatly.
The
Minister spread his hands. "But, Mother Confessor, you say this is about
the freedom of our people. How can you insist I impose such a thing on them
without their say?"
"No,"
Kahlan repeated.
Everyone
else at the table seemed in shock. Lady Chanboor's eyes looked as if they might
pop from her head at her husband's suggestion. Dalton Campbell sat stiffly, his
mouth hanging open a bit. Teresa's brows were arched in shock. Clearly, none of
them had known Minister Chanboor's intention, nor did they look to believe it
wise, but they remained silent, nonetheless.
"No,"
Kahlan said again.
589
"And
how can you expect our people to believe your sincerity in the cause of
freedom, if you refuse to allow them to choose their own fate? If what you
offer is truly freedom, then why would you fear the people exercising freedom
in choosing it? If what you offer is so fair and good, and the Imperial Order
so brutal and unfair, then why would you not allow our people to freely choose
to join with you? Is there something in it so vile you would not allow them to
see their fate and choose it willingly?"
Richard
glanced back at Kahlan. "He has a point-"
"No,"
Kahlan snapped.
Still
no one else moved, so intent were they on the future of their land, hanging in
the balance.
Richard
took Kahlan's arm. He turned briefly to the Minister. "If you will excuse
us for a moment, there are a few matters we must discuss."
Richard
pulled Kahlan away from the table, back near the curtains behind the service
table. He glanced out the window to make sure no one was nearby, listening.
People at the head table, rather than watching, sat back in silence and looked
out at the dining room full of people eating, talking, and laughing, not
realizing the drama taking place at the head table.
"Kahlan,
I don't see why-"
"No.
No, Richard, no. What part of 'no' don't you understand?"
"The
part that has your reason in it."
She
heaved an impatient sigh. "Look, Richard, I just don't think it's a good
idea. No, that isn't correct. I think it's a terrible idea."
"All
right. Kahlan, you know I depend on your opinion in things like this-"
"Then
take it. No."
In
frustration, Richard raked his fingers back through his hair. He glanced around
again. They were being ignored.
"What
I was about to say is, I'd like to know your reason. The man has a point. If
we're offering people a chance to join us in our fight for the freedom of
everyone, then why
590
would
we deny them a chance to freely choose to join our side? Freedom shouldn't be
something imposed on unwilling people."
Kahlan
squeezed his arm. "I can't give you a reason, Richard. Yes, it sounds
right. Yes, I understand the reasoning behind it. Yes, it would only be
fair."
Her
hand on his arm tightened. "But my gut instinct is screaming 'no.' I must
trust my instinct in this, Richard, and so must you. It's strong and it's
insistent. Don't you do this."
Richard
wiped a hand across his face. He tried to come up with a reason they should
oppose such a thing. He was only beginning to come up with more reasons it
would make sense-and for more than the simple need of Anderith siding against
the Order.
"Kahlan,
I trust you, I really do. You're the Mother Confessor, and have had a lifetime
of learning and experience in ruling people. I'm just a woods guide. But I'd
like a little more reason than, 'Your gut says "no." ' "
"I
can't give you more. I know these people, and I know they are arrogant and
devious. I don't believe Bertrand Chanboor cares at all about what the people
want. He and his wife care only about themselves, from what I know of them.
Something about this just isn't right."
Richard
ran a finger down her temple. "Kahlan, I love you. I trust you. But this
is these people's lives. Bertrand Chanboor will not be the one deciding-that's
the whole point. If what we have to offer is right, then why shouldn't the
Anderith people be able to say yes to it themselves? Don't you think they would
then have more invested in the cause than if their leaders choose for them?
"Do
you think it fair we demand their culture be so altered, and tell them it's the
right thing to do, and yet refuse to offer them the freedom to join willingly?
Why can only the leader choose for all his people? What if the Minister wished
to join with Jagang? Would you not then want the people to have the chance to
overthrow the leader and choose freedom instead?"
591
She ran
her fingers back into her hair, seeming unable to express her reservations and
frustrations. "Richard, you're making it sound ... right, but I just... I
don't know, I just feel it's a mistake. What if they cheat? What if they
intimidate people-threaten them. How would we know? Who is to watch people say
what they want? Who is to watch the fairness of the count?"
Richard
ran a thumb along the silken sleeve of her white Mother Confessor's dress.
"Well then, what if we put conditions on it? Conditions to make sure we
are in control, and not they."
"Such
as?"
"We
have a thousand men here. We could use them to go to all the cities and towns
in Anderith and watch the people vote. Everyone could put a mark on a piece of
paper ... say, either a circle to join us, or an X not to. Then our men could
guard the papers and watch them counted. They would make sure it was
fair."
"And
how would people really know what it means, either way?"
"We
would have to tell them. Anderith isn't that big. We could go to each place and
explain to the people there why they must join us-why it's so important to them
and how they would suffer if the Imperial Order instead takes them. If truth
really is on our side, it won't be that difficult to make most people see
it."
She
chewed her lip as she considered. "How long? The scouts report the Order
will be within striking distance in less than six weeks."
"Then
we say four. Four weeks and the people vote. That would give us more than
enough time to go around and talk to people, tell them how important this is.
Then, after they vote to join us, we would have plenty of time to bring our
army down and use the Dominie Dirtch to stop Jagang."
Kahlan
pressed a hand to her stomach. "I don't like it, Richard."
He
shrugged. "All right, then. General Reibisch's army is on the way. They'll
be here before Jagang can reach An-
592
derith.
We told him to stay north, out of sight, but we could take our men, capture the
Dominie Dirtch, and overthrow the government here.
"From
what I've seen of their army, it wouldn't take long."
"I
know," Kahlan said, frowning in thought. "I don't understand it. I've
been here before. Their army was a formidable force. The people we've seen look
little more than '.. children."
Richard
gazed out the window. With all the lights coming from so many windows, the
grounds were well enough lit to see how beautiful they were. It looked a
peaceful place to live.
"Poorly
trained children," he said. "I can't understand it, either. Except,
as the soldier at the border, Beata, said: It only takes one person to ring the
Dominie Dirtch.
"Maybe
they have no need to expend their assets to support a big army when all they
need do is have a few soldiers at the border, manning the Dominie Dirtch. After
all, you would know as well as anyone the vast resources required to maintain a
sizable force. Every day they must be fed. That's why Jagang is headed this
way. Maybe Anderith just doesn't need to deplete their resources."
Kahlan
nodded. "Maybe. I know the Minister of Culture has a long tradition of
private backers-moneylenders, merchants, and such-to help champion their goals.
Supporting an army is hugely expensive, even for a wealthy land. But I think
there's more to it for an army to deteriorate in such a fashion."
"So,
what do you think? Vote, or conquest?"
She
looked into his eyes. "I still say no vote."
"You
know people will be hurt. Killed. It isn't going to be bloodless. We may have
to kill their soldiers-like Sergeant Beata, back at the Dominie Dirtch. They may
be little more than children, but they will resist us taking them, and they
will probably be killed.
"We
can't let them keep control of the Dominie Dirtch. We have to seize those
weapons, if we are to let our army
593
in. We
can't risk our men being slaughtered by those things."
"But
the magic is failing."
"They
rang just over a week ago. People out in front of them were killed. They still
work. We can't count on them failing.
"It's
either attack, or let them do as the Minister suggested: let the people decide
their own fate. But even if something goes wrong, we could possibly still use
the option of our troops. With what's at stake, I wouldn't hesitate to resort
to attacking them if need be. Too many other lives are at risk."
"That's
true. We always have that to fall back on."
"But
there's one more thing we must consider. Perhaps the most important
element."
"What's
that?" she asked.
"The
chimes. That's why we're here, remember? This business with letting the people
decide may work to our advantage with the chimes."
She
didn't look at all convinced. "How?"
"We
need to search the library. If we can find what we need to know to stop the
chimes-like what Joseph Ander once did-then we can do it before it's too late
for magic. You haven't forgotten, have you, about the gambit moth, and all the
rest?"
"No,
of course not."
"And
your Confessor's power, and Du Chaillu's magic, and the bond and all the rest.
Jagang can easily win without magic; the danger from the Order would only grow
stronger. We are just two people, like any others, without magic to protect
us-to help us. There is no place so dangerous as a world without magic.
"While
we stall for four weeks, we may be able to find the information we need about
the chimes. And with traveling around to talk to people about voting to join
us, that would be the perfect cover to keep anyone from being suspicious as to
what we're doing. I think it risky to let these
594
people
know magic has failed. Best to keep them on edge."
Richard
leaned close. "Kahlan, the chimes may be the most important part in this.
This would buy us time to search. I think we should agree to let the people of
Anderith vote."
"I
still say no, but if you want to try it"-she pressed finger and thumb to
the bridge of her nose-"I can't believe I'm agreeing to this-then I will
trust your judgment, Richard. You are, after all, the Lord Rahl."
"But
I depend on you for advice."
"You
are also the Seeker."
He
smiled. "But I don't have my sword."
Kahlan
smiled back. "You've gotten us this far. If you say we should try this,
then I'll go along, but I don't like it. Still, you are right about the chimes.
That's our first responsibility. This will help us search for the solution to
the chimes."
Richard
was relieved that she had finally agreed, but worried about her reasons for
being reluctant. With her hand on his arm, they returned to the head table. The
Minister, his wife, and Dalton Campbell rose.
"There
are conditions," Richard said.
"Such
as?" the Minister asked.
"Our
men will watch everything, to insure no one cheats. Everyone will have to vote
at the same time, so people can't go to more than one place and vote more than
once. They will gather in cities and towns, and each will mark a piece of
paper, either with a circle to join into one whole with us, or an X to leave
their fate to the cruel fangs of fate. Our men will watch the counting and
reporting so that we know everything has been fair."
The
Minister smiled. "Excellent suggestions. I concur with every one of
them."
Richard
leaned toward the man. "One more thing."
"That
being?"
"All
the people will vote. Not just Anders, but the Hakens, too. They are part of
the land, just as are the Anders.
595
Their
fate will be altered by this, too. If there is to be a vote, all people of
Anderith will vote."
Lady
Chanboor and Dalton Campbell shared a look. The Minister spread his hands, his
smile growing.
"But
of course. All people will vote. It is settled, then."
CHAPTER
53
HILDEMARA
WAS LIVID. "BERTRAND, you're going to be skinned alive by Jagang's men,
and I will delight in watching, my only regret being that you have sealed me to
a similar fate!"
Bertrand
lifted a hand dismissively. "Nonsense, my dear. Rather, I've managed to
stall the Mother Confessor and the Lord Rahl while Jagang draws ever
closer."
Dalton,
for once, tended to agree with Hildemara. Despite everything else, she was a
brilliant strategist. On the face of it, it seemed that if given the choice,
the people, the Hakens for sure, would go with the freedoms of Lord Rahl's
empire rather than willingly submit to the tyranny of the Imperial Order.
But
Dalton knew, too, that there had to be something behind Bertrand's
self-satisfied smile. The man had the uncanny knack of tactical calculation
coldly bereft of emotional bias toward his desired outcome, which would corrupt
the validity of the equation. Bertrand only jumped if he
596
knew he
could span the chasm; he didn't leap simply because he wished to span it.
From
his vast knowledge of law, Dalton knew there were few weapons as effective in
eviscerating an adversary as the simple tactic of delay. He hoped Bertrand
wasn't wielding a weapon that would gore them, instead of the enemy.
"Minister,
I'm afraid this could be troublesome. To stall Lord Rahl is worthy, but not if
it serves no better end than to allow him to enflame the people against the
Imperial Order and drive them into the arms of his cause, instead. Were that to
happen, we would be unable to fulfill our agreements. We would then be at the
center of the storm of war."
"And
Jagang would make an example of us, to show others what happens to those who
don't deliver as promised," Hildemara added.
Bertrand
took a swig from the goblet he'd brought with him to the private study. He set
down the silver goblet on a small marble tabletop and savored the taste of rum
before swallowing.
"My
dear wife, and my trusted aide, do you both fail to see the simple brilliance
in this? We are going to stall them so the Imperial Order can have time to get
here. Stall them until it's too late for them to do anything effective. On top
of everything else, can you imagine how grateful Jagang will be when we can
hand him his greatest enemy?"
"And
how would we accomplish that?" his wife asked.
"A
month of this voting business will enable the Order to get the rest of their
advance guard in place. They can then take the Dominie Dirtch at their
discretion. Lord Rahl's forces, even if he has them close, will be precluded
from coming to the rescue of the Lord Rahl and the Mother Confessor, once they
lose the people's support. Jagang will be invincible.
"The
emperor gets a land and the people to work it, as promised, and we are
handsomely rewarded for handing it to him. We will have unquestioned authority.
No more Directors to worry about-ever again. We will rule Anderith for life,
the way we choose, without worry of opposition."
597
Life,
for the people of Anderith, would go on, Dalton knew. For the most part, the
lives of many would be much the same, if poorer, serving the greater good of
the Order. There would be the inevitable dislocations and deaths. Some would be
taken away to serve the emperor. Most would be grateful just to live.
Dalton
wondered at his own fate, if he had not become the trusted chief aide to the
Minister, and thus by service and by necessity brought into the arrangement. He
shuddered to think what might have become of Teresa.
"If
he indeed honors his agreements," Hildemara muttered.
"The
emperor, his forces having a safe haven immune from attack, will be only too
happy to honor our agreements," Bertrand said. "What he promised us,
in return for the task of seeing to it the people of Anderith work on as they
do now, is vast beyond our ability to ever spend; to him, however, it is but a
pittance compared to what he will gain. We must simply see to it the Order is
supplied with food while they conquer the Midlands. He will happily pay as
agreed."
Lady
Chanboor huffed irritably. "But it will come to no good end when Lord Rahl
gets the people to vote to join with him."
Bertrand
chortled. "You must be joking. That, my dear, is the simplest part of the
whole thing."
She
folded her arms as if to demand to know how.
Dalton,
too, was worried about that much of it. "So then, you have no intention of
actually allowing the vote to take place?"
Bertrand
looked from one to the other.
"Don't
you see? We will easily win such a vote."
"Perhaps
with the Anders," she said, "but the Hakens? You have placed our fate
in the hands of the Hakens? Who outnumber us many times over? They will choose
freedom."
"Hardly.
The Hakens are kept ignorant. They don't have the capacity to comprehend the
issues. They believe the only way they can attain anything, from work to
food-even to
598
joining
the army-is by our benevolent hand. They believe what freedoms they have, or
hope to have, can only be granted them by Anders. With freedom comes
responsibility-not the easy path they would prefer."
His
wife looked unmoved. "How can you be so sure?"
"We
will have speakers go before the people, wringing their hands, shedding tears,
expressing deep fear for what will become of the people at the mercy of the
cruel D'Haran Empire, in the uncaring hands of a Lord Rahl who doesn't know the
first thing about their needs as Hakens and only cares about his own dark
magic. The Haken people will be so terrified of losing what crumbs we grant
them they will shrink from the loaf before them-if we simply make them believe
the loaf is poison."
Dalton's
mind was already spinning with thoughts of how they might accomplish the
Minister's plan. The true possibilities it presented were only just dawning on
him.
"We
must consider how to frame it properly," Dalton said. "It would be
best if we remained completely out of it."
"My
thought, exactly."
"Yes..."
Hildemara drawled as she imagined, now caught up in the scheme. "We must
appear as if we're looking to the people for direction, rather than the other
way around."
"Others
will speak the words we craft," Bertrand said as he nodded to her.
"We must at all cost remain above it- look as if our hands are bound by a
noble adherence to fairness, with our fate in the hands of the wisdom of the
people, as if we put that principle and their wishes above all else."
"I
have men who would be good at expressing the proper tone." Dalton stroked
a finger beneath his lower lip. "Wherever Lord Rahl goes, those who speak
for us must go behind, and deliver the message we fashion."
"That's
right," Bertrand said. "A message more powerful, more cutting, more
frightening."
Deep in
thought, trying to envision all requisite elements of the strategy, Dalton
waggled a finger.
599
"Lord
Rahl and the Mother Confessor will bring swift and unpleasant action, should
they suspect such a thing. In fact, it would be best if they never even knew of
the things the people are told-at least in the beginning. Our messages must be
delivered only after they have gone on to the next place.
"Let
them offer hope. We will come behind and portray the hope of freedom they offer
as lies-frighten people out of such thoughts."
Dalton
knew how easily the minds of the people could be manipulated with the right words,
especially if people were distracted by other matters and confused with
contradictions.
"If
done well, the people will resoundingly approve of us as we at the same time
betray them." Dalton smiled at last. "When I get through with them,
they will cheer us on to the task."
Bertrand
took another swig of rum. "Now you're thinking like the man I hired."
"But
when the people reject his offer," Hildemara said, "Lord Rahl will no
doubt react badly to losing; he will turn to force."
"Possibly."
Bertrand set down the goblet. "But by then the Order will have captured
the Dominie Dirtch, and it will be too late for Lord Rahl to do anything about
it. He and the Mother Confessor will be isolated, without hope of
reinforcements."
"Lord
Rahl and the Mother Confessor will be trapped in Anderith ..." She smiled
at last, closing her clawed fingers into a fist. "And Jagang will have
them."
Bertrand
grinned. "And reward us." He turned to Dalton. "Where are the
D'Haran troops billeted?"
"Between
here and Fairfield,"
"Good.
Let Lord Rahl and the Mother Confessor have anything they want. Let them do
whatever they wish. We must appear to be most accommodating."
600
Dalton
nodded. "They said they wanted to see the library."
Bertrand
swept up his goblet again. "Fine. Let them have the run of it-see what
they wish. There is nothing in the library that could be of any help to
them."
Richard
turned to the ruckus.
"Shoo!"
Vedetta Firkin yelled. The old woman cast her arms forward, adding physical threat
to the verbal one she had already delivered. "Shoo, you thief!"
The
raven out on the board attached to the windowsill leaped about, flapping its
wings, loudly expressing its displeasure with her. She looked around and then
snatched a stick up from where it leaned against the wall, ready to hand for
propping the next window open. Wielding the stick like a sword, she leaned out
the open window and swiped at the raven. Wings outstretched, neck plumage
ruffed, feathers on its head lifted like horns, it hopped back and screeched at
her.
Again
she slashed at the big black bird. This time the raven made a strategic
withdrawal to a nearby branch. From a position of safety, it delivered a
boisterous lecture. She slammed the window shut.
Vedetta
Firkin turned and, after setting down the stick, triumphantly brushed clean her
hands. She lifted her nose as she returned to people business.
Richard
and Kahlan had spoken with her when they came into the library in order to put
her mind at ease. Richard wanted to insure her cooperation rather than have her
perhaps get the notion that it was somehow her duty to hide books from them.
She had responded brightly to their casual and friendly manner with her.
"Sorry,"
she whispered in low voice, as if to compensate for the yelling. She scurried
closer to Richard and Kahlan.
601
"I
tacked that board to the sill, and I put seeds on it for the birds, but those
vile ravens come and steal the seeds."
"Ravens
are birds, too," Richard said.
The
woman straightened, a little befuddled. "Yes, but... they're ravens.
Nuisance birds, they are. They steal all the seeds and then the lovely little
songbirds don't come by. I so love the song birds."
"I
see," Richard said with a smile before he turned back to his book.
"Anyway,
Lord Rahl, Mother Confessor, sorry for the disturbance. I just didn't want
those noisy ravens bothering you like they're apt to do. Best to just get rid
of them right off. I will try to keep it quiet for you from now on."
Kahlan
smiled up at the woman. "Thank you, Mistress Firkin."
She
paused before turning away. "Excuse me for saying so, Lord Rahl, but you
have a delightful smile. It reminds me very much of the smile of a friend of
mine."
"Really?
Who would that be?" Richard asked, absently.
"Ruben-"
Her face reddened. "He's a gentleman friend."
Richard
showed her the smile she liked. "I'm sure you give him reason to smile,
Mistress Firkin."
"Ruben,"
Kahlan muttered as the woman started to leave. "Reminds me of Zedd. He used
to sometimes use the name Ruben."
Richard
sighed with longing for his missing grandfather. "I wish that old man was
here, now," he whispered to Kahlan.
"If
you need anything," Vedetta Firkin said over her shoulder as she shuffled
away, "please don't hesitate to ask. I'm quite knowledgeable about the
culture of Anderith- about our history."
"Yes,
thank you," Richard called after the woman, using the opportunity while
her back was turned to give Kahlan's leg an intimate squeeze under the table.
"Richard,"
Kahlan said in a rising tone, "keep your mind on your work."
Richard
patted her thigh in acquiescence. It would be eas-
602
ier to
keep his mind on what he was reading without the sweet warmth of her so near.
He flipped the book closed and pulled another close. He opened the old book of
town records and scanned for anything that looked remotely useful.
They
had not found a wealth of information, but he had managed to find enough to
piece together facts that might be useful. Without doubt, the library was
proving worth his time, as he was beginning to get a sense of the place that
had been missing before. It truly was a library of culture. Because of their
attitudes and professed beliefs, Richard doubted that many people had the vaguest
idea of the obscure history right under their noses, hiding in plain sight.
He was
coming to the realization that much of ancient Anderith, before the Hakens, had
benefited from direction that eclipsed the development of the people at the
time. A benevolent hand had protected them.
By the
ancient songs and prayers he had found set down, and the later accounts of the
way homage was paid to this shepherding protector, Richard suspected it to be
the hand of Joseph Ander. Such adoration would suit the man, as Kolo described
him. Richard recognized much of the miraculous guidance as possibly being the
work of a wizard. Without this figure after he was gone, the people were like
orphans, lost without the succor of idols they worshiped but which no longer answered
them. They were bewildered and at the mercy of forces they didn't understand.
Richard
leaned back and stretched as he yawned. The old books infused the library with
a musty aroma. Rather intriguing, in a long-hidden-mystery sort of way, but the
smell was not altogether pleasant, either. He was beginning to long for the
fresh sunny air on the other side of the windows as much as he longed for the
end of the long-hidden mystery.
Du
Chaillu sat nearby, stroking a loving hand over her unborn baby as she studied
a book with intricate illuminations on many of its pages. There were drawings
of small animals: ferrets, weasels, voles, foxes, and such. She
603
couldn't
read, but the book full of drawings had her in a constant grin. She'd never
seen anything like it. Richard had never seen her dark eyes sparkle so. She was
as delighted as a child.
Jiaan
lounged nearby. At least, the blade master did a good imitation of lounging.
Richard knew he was simply making himself unobtrusive so he could watch
everything. A half-dozen D'Haran soldiers strolled the room. There were Ander
guards, too, at the doors.
Some of
the other people had immediately left the library, fearing they might disturb
the Mother Confessor and Lord Rahl. A few remained. Spies, Kahlan had suggested
to him, sent to watch them. He had already formed that opinion.
He
didn't trust the Minister any more than Kahlan did. From the first time the
subject of Anderith had come up, her obvious distaste for the place had colored
his view of it. The Minister of Culture had done nothing to alter his
impression, and had lent weight to Kahlan's warnings about the man.
"Here,"
Richard said, tapping the page. "Here it is again."
Kahlan
leaned close and looked. She made a sound deep in her throat at seeing the
name: Westbrook.
"What
this is saying here confirms what we've found before," Richard said.
"I
know the place. It's a little town. Not much there, from what I recall."
Richard
lifted his arm and signaled for the attention of the old woman. She came
scurrying back at once.
"Yes,
Lord Rahl? May I be of assistance?"
"Mistress
Firkin, you said you know a lot about the history of Anderith."
"Oh,
yes, I do. It's my favorite subject."
"Well,
I've now found several places where it mentions a place called Westbrook. It
says Joseph Ander once lived there."
"Yes,
that's true. It's up in the foothills of the mountains. Up above the Nareef
Valley."
Kahlan
had already told him that much, but it was good
604
to know
the woman wasn't trying to mislead them, or conceal information.
"And
is there anything left there of him? Anything that belonged to him?"
She
smiled her enthusiasm, pleased he wanted to know about Joseph Ander, the
namesake of her land. "Why, yes, there is a small shrine to Joseph Ander
there. People may go and see the chair he once used, and a few other small
items.
'The
house he lived in burned down just recently-r terrible fire it was-but some
things were saved because they had been taken away while the house was
undergoing repairs. Water kept getting in, ruining things. Wind ripped up roof
shingles. Tree branches-must have been-broke the windows and the wind got in
there something fierce, blowing the rain in, getting everything wet. Ruined a
lot of the valuable things of his. Then the fire-from lightning, people
believe-burned the place to the ground.
"But
some of his things were saved, like I said, because they were out of there
while repairs were being made- before the fire. So, now, those things are
displayed so people can see them. See the actual chair he sat in."
She
leaned down. "And, most interesting to me, there are some of his writings
still intact."
Richard
sat up straighter. "Writing?"
She
nodded her gray head of hair. "I've read them all. Nothing really
important. Just his observations about the mountains around where he lived,
about the town, and about some of the people he knew. Nothing important, but it
is still interesting."
"I
see."
"Not
important, anyway, like his things we have here."
Richard
was now at full attention. "What things?"
She
swept a hand out. "We have some of his writings, here, in our vault. His
dealings with others, letters, books on his beliefs. Things like that.
"Would
you like to see them?"
Richard
tried his best not to look too interested. He didn't
605
want
these people to know what he was looking for; that was why he hadn't asked for
anything specific in the first place.
"Yes,
that would be interesting. I've always had an interest in ... in history. I'd
like to see his writings."
He,
along with Vedetta Firkin, noticed someone coming down the stairs. It was a
messenger of some sort-Richard had seen a number of them, all dressed the same.
The redheaded man saw Mistress Firkin talking to Richard and Kahlan, so he
spread his feet and clasped his hands behind his back as he waited at a
distance.
Richard
didn't want to be talking about Joseph Ander's works while a messenger stood
watching, so he gestured. "Why don't you see to him?"
Vedetta
Firkin bowed her appreciation of his indulgence. "Excuse me for just a
moment, then."
Kahlan
shut her book and set it atop the others she had already been through.
"Richard, we need to get going. We have meetings with the Directors and a
few other people. We can come back."
"Right."
He let out a sigh. "At least we don't have to meet with the Minister
again. I couldn't take another of those feasts."
"I'm
sure he will be just as glad we declined his invitation. I don't know why, but the
two of us always seem to somehow spoil festive gatherings."
Richard
agreed and went to collect Du Chaillu. Mistress Firkin returned as Du Chaillu
was getting up.
"I
would be happy to locate the books and bring them out of the vault for you,
Lord Rahl, but I have a quick errand to run first, if you could wait for just a
short time. I won't be long. I'm sure you will find the writings of Joseph
Ander a delight. Not many people get the chance to see them, but for someone as
important as yourself and the Mother Confessor, I would-"
"To
tell you the truth, Mistress Firkin, I would love to see the books. Right now,
though, we must go speak with
606
the
Directors, but I could return afterward, later this afternoon, or this
evening?"
"That
would be perfect," she said, grinning and dry-washing her hands. "It
will give me time to locate them all and pull them out. I will have them ready
for you when you return."
"Thank
you so much. The Mother Confessor and I can't wait to see such rare
books."
Richard
paused and turned back to her. "And Mistress Firkin, I'd suggest you give
that raven some seeds. The poor thing looks frantic."
She
waggled her fingers in a wave. "If you say so, Lord Rahl"
He
stood when the old woman came into the room on the arm of one of his
messengers.
"Mistress
Firkin, thank you for coming."
"Well,
my, my, Master Campbell, but don't you have a fine office." She peered
around as if she was interested in purchasing the place. "Yes, very fine
indeed."
"Thank
you, Mistress Firkin."
He
tilted his head, ordering the messenger out. The man shut the door behind
himself.
"Oh,
and look," she said, pressing her hands prayerfully together under her
chin. "Look at all the fine books. Why, I never knew there were so many
fine volumes up here."
"Law
books, mostly. My interest is in the law."
She
turned her attention his way. "A fine calling, Master Campbell. A fine
calling. Good for you. You keep at it, now."
"Yes,
I intend as much. Mistress Firkin, speaking of the law, that brings me to the
subject of my calling you up here."
She
gave a sidelong glance to the chair. He deliberately didn't offer it, but
instead kept her standing.
607
"I
had a report of a man visiting the library who was also interested in the law.
It seems he made a big to-do." Dalton put his fists on the leather pad
inlaid into his desk and leaned forward on them, fixing her with a glare.
"It was reported that you took a restricted book out of the vault, without
authorization, and showed it to him."
As
quick as that, she went from a chatty old woman to a terrified old woman.
While
what she'd done wasn't altogether uncommon, it was a violation of the rules,
and thus the law. Most such laws were only selectively enforced, with violations
only mildly punished, if at all. But occasionally people did get into trouble
over violating such laws. As a man of the law, Dalton understood the value of
laws widely ignored; they ensnared nearly everyone, thus giving you power over
people. Hers was a serious offense, just one step below theft of cultural
treasures, if he chose to pursue it.
She
fumbled with a button at her throat. "But I never let him touch it, Master
Campbell. I swear. I kept it in my hand every moment. I even turned the pages.
I was only, letting him look at the writing of our glorious founding father. I
didn't intend-"
"Nonetheless,
it is not permitted, and it was reported, therefore I must take action."
"Yes, sir."
Dalton
straightened. "Bring me the book." He tapped his desk. "Bring me
the book at once. At once, do you understand?"
"Yes,
sir. At once."
"You
bring it up here and put it on my desk so I can look it over. If there is no
valuable information that might have been betrayed to a spy, I will not
recommend any disciplinary action-this time. But you had better not be caught
breaking the rules again, Mistress Firkin. Do you understand?"
"Yes,
sir. Thank you, sir." She was nearly in tears. "Master Campbell, the
Mother Confessor and the Lord Rahl have been down in the library."
608
"Yes,
I know."
"Lord
Rahl asked to see Joseph Ander's books and writings. What should I do?"
Dalton
could hardly believe the man was wasting his time looking over such useless
books. He almost felt sorry for the Lord Rahl in his ignorance. Almost.
"The
Mother Confessor and Lord Rahl are honored guests as well as being important
people. They may see any book in our library. There are to be no restrictions
on them. None. You hereby have authorization to show them anything we
have."
He
tapped his desk again. "But that book you showed to that other man, that
Ruben fellow, I want that book on my desk, and I want it now."
The
woman was fidgeting like she was about to wet herself.
"Yes,
sir. Right away, Master Campbell." She scurried from the room, her entire
life now focused on retrieving the book.
Dalton
didn't really care about the book-whatever it was. He simply didn't want the
people in the library to get sloppy and start violating the rules. He couldn't
have people he didn't trust in charge of valuable things.
His
cobweb was humming with matters more important than some useless, dusty old
book by Joseph Ander, but he had to mind everything, regardless of how minor.
He would take a look at the book, but just her bringing it was what mattered to
him.
Every
once in a while it was necessary to throw a bit of fright into people to remind
them who was in charge and who held sway over their life. Word of this would
spread to others in the household. The fear from this one incident would
straighten everyone's back. If it didn't, the next time he would put the
violator out of the household in order to make an impression.
Dalton
sank back into his seat and returned to his stack of messages. Most disturbing
of them was the one saying the Sovereign was improving. He was reported to be
eating
609
again.
Not a good sign, but the man couldn't last forever. Sooner or later, Bertrand
Chanboor would be Sovereign.
There
were a number of messages and reports about other people dying, though. People
out in the country were frightened by strange occurrences-deaths out of the
ordinary. Fires, drownings, falls. Country people, terrified of things in the
night, were coming into the city, seeking safety.
People
in the city, too, were reported to be dying from similar events, and were
similarly frightened. Seeking safety; they were fleeing the city and going into
the countryside.
Dalton
shook his head at the foolishness of people's fears. He gathered the reports
into a stack. Just before he put them to the candle flame, a thought struck
him. His hand paused. He pulled the sheaf of messages back from the flame.
Something
Franca once said had given him an idea.
They
might be of use. He stuffed the reports into a drawer.
"Sweetheart,
are you still working?"
Dalton
looked up at the sound of the familiar voice. Teresa, wearing an alluring
rose-colored dress he didn't recall seeing before, was sweeping into the room.
He
smiled. "Tess, darling. What brings you up here?"
"I
came to catch you with a mistress."
"What?"
She
went past his desk to pause and gaze out the window. A green velvet sash
gathered the waist of the dress, accentuating her curves. He envisioned his
hands where the sash embraced her.
"I
was pretty lonely last night," she said as she watched people out on the
lawns.
"I
know. I'm sorry, but there were messages I had to-"\xA0
"I
thought you were with another woman."
"What?
Tess, I sent you a message, explaining that I had to work."
She
turned to him. "When you sent- word you would be working late, I didn't
think much of it. You've been working late every night. But when I woke up and
it was almost
610
dawn,
and you weren't there beside me ... well, I thought sure you were in the bed of
another woman."
"Tess,
I wouldn't-"
"I
thought of going and throwing myself at Lord Rahl, just to get even, but he has
the Mother Confessor and she's more beautiful than me, so I knew he would just
laugh and turn me away.
"So,
I got dressed and came up here, just to be able to say I knew you weren't
really working, when you later lied and told me you were. Instead of an empty
office, I saw all your messengers scurrying around like they were preparing to
go off to war. I saw you in here handing out papers, issuing orders. You really
were working. I watched for a while."
"Why
didn't you come in?"
She
finally glided over to him and settled herself into his lap. She put her arms
around his neck as she gazed into his eyes.
"I
didn't want to bother you when you were busy."
"But
you aren't a bother, Tess. You're the only thing in my life that isn't a
bother."
She
shrugged. "I was ashamed to have you know I thought you were cheating on
me."
"Then
why now confess it?"
She
kissed him, with a kiss only Tess could give, breathless, hot, wet. She pulled
back to smile as she watched him look down her cleavage.
"Because,"
she whispered, "I love you, and I miss you. I just got my new dress. I
thought it might tempt you to my bed."
"I
think you more beautiful than the Mother Confessor."
She
grinned and gave him a peck on the forehead. "How about coming home for
just a while?"
He
patted her bottom as she stood. "I'll be along shortly."
611
Ann
peeked and saw Alessandra watching her pray. Ann had asked the woman if it
would bother her were Ann to pray before the meal.
Alessandra,
at first taken by surprise, had said, "No, why should it?"
Sitting
on the bare ground inside her grimy tent, Ann, in earnest, devoted herself to
the prayer. She let herself fill with the joy of the Creator, in much the same
way she opened herself to her Han. She let the Light fill her with joy. She Jet
her heart feel the peace of the Creator in her, let herself be thankful for all
she had, when others were so much worse off.
She
prayed that Alessandra would feel just a ray of warm Light, and open her heart
to it.
When
she finished, she reached as far as the chains would allow and kissed toward
her ring finger in fidelity to the Creator, to whom she was symbolically
wedded.
She
knew Alessandra would recall the indescribable satisfaction of praying to the
Creator, of opening your heart in thanks to the one who had given you your
soul. There were times in the life of every Sister when she had quietly,
privately, piously wept with the joy of it.
Ann saw
the twitch of longing as Alessandra almost reflexively brought her own finger
to her lips,
As a
Sister of the Dark, such an act would be a betrayal of the Keeper.
Alessandra
had pledged that soul, given by the Creator, to the Keeper of the underworld-to
evil. Ann couldn't imagine there was anything the Keeper could give in return
that could match the simple joy of a prayer expressing thanks to the One from
which all things emanated.
"Thank
you, Alessandra. That was kind of you to let me say my prayer before I
eat."
"Nothing
kind to it," the woman said. "Simply gets the food down easier so I
can get on with my other business."
Ann
nodded, glad she had felt the Creator in her heart.
612
CHAPTER
54
"WHAT
ARE WE GOING to do?" Morley whispered.
Fitch
scratched his ear. "Hush, I'm planning it out."
Fitch
had no idea what to do, but he didn't want Morley to know that. Morley was
impressed that Fitch had found the place. He had come to depend on Fitch
knowing what to do.
Not
that there was that much to know. Mostly they rode hard. They had all that
money Dalton Campbell had given them, so they didn't have to know much. They
could buy food; they didn't have to hunt it, or gather it. They could buy any
gear they needed; they didn't have to fashion it themselves.
Fitch
had learned that money went a long way toward making up for what a person
didn't know. Having grown up on the streets of Fairfield, he did know how to
guard his money, and how to keep from being cheated, robbed, or tricked out of
it. He was careful with the money, never using it to buy flashy clothes or
anything that would make it look like they were worth knocking over the head,
or worse.
The one
surprise was that no one much cared that they were Hakens, or even seemed to
know. They were treated decent by most folks, who thought them polite young
men.
613
Fitch
didn't let Motley talk him into buying drinks at inns; he knew that would be a
sure way to let unsavory people know they had money, and being drunk only made
it easier to forget to be careful. Instead they bought a bottle, and only when
they'd set up a camp for the night, somewhere people weren't likely to come
across them, did he and Morley get drunk. They did that a lot at first. It
helped Fitch forget that people thought he had raped Beata.
Morley
had wanted to spend some money on whores at one town they went through, but
Fitch didn't want to. He finally gave in and let Morley do it, being as the
money was his, too. Fitch had waited with their horses and other things outside
town. He knew what sometimes happened to travelers coming into Fairfield to
visit prostitutes.
Afterward,
a grinning Morley said he'd watch over their things while Fitch went back and
had his turn at visiting a woman. Fitch had been tempted, but the idea made him
all jittery. Just when he thought he'd worked up the nerve, he'd imagine the
woman laughing at him, and then his knees would get to shaking and his palms to
sweating something fierce. He just knew she'd laugh.
Morley,
he was big and strong, and manly. Women wouldn't laugh at Morley. Beata used to
always laugh at Fitch. He didn't want to have some woman he didn't even know
start laughing at his skinny frame as soon as he got his clothes off.
He
finally decided he didn't want to risk his purpose, or waste any of their money
on it. He didn't know how much it would cost to get to where they were going
and feared running out too soon. Morley called him a fool, and said it was more
than worth it. It was all he talked about for the week after. Fitch had gotten
to wishing he'd done it just to shut Morley up.
As it
turned out, he needn't have worried about money. They hadn't spent much at
all-not compared with what they had. The money had helped make it a swift
journey. With money, they could trade for fresh horses and keep
614
going
without having to care for the animals by slowing their pace.
Morley
shook his head. "All this way, and here we are stuck this close."
"I
said hush. You want to get us caught?"
Morley
fell silent, except for scratching his stubble. Fitch wished he had more than a
few hairs on his chin. Morley had a beard coming in. Fitch sometimes felt like
a kid next to Morley, with his broad shoulders and stubble all over his face.
Fitch
watched as the distant guards patrolled back and forth. There was no way in
except the bridge. Franca had told him that much, and now that he was here he
could see it plain for himself. They had to get across that bridge, or it was
over.
Fitch
felt a strange whispering wind caress the back of his neck. He shivered after
it moved on.
"What
do you suppose he's doing?" Morley whispered.
Fitch
squinted, trying to see better into the distance. It looked like one of the
guards was climbing up onto the stone side of the bridge.
Fitch's
jaw dropped. "Dear spirits! Did you see that!"
Morley
gasped. "What did he do that for?"
Even at
the distance, Fitch could hear the men yelling, running to the edge, looking
over.
"I
can't believe it," Morley breathed. "Why would he jump?"
Fitch
shook his head. He was about to speak when he saw a man on the other side of
the bridge climb up on the stone edge.
Fitch
thrust out his arm. "Look! There goes another one!"
The man
reached out with his arms, embracing the air, as he leaped off the bridge, out
into the chasm.
Then,
as the soldiers ran to that side, a third leaped to his death. It was crazy.
Fitch lay there on his belly, dumbfounded.
In the
distance, the sounds of men screaming as yet more
615
jumped
off the bridge were like chimes ringing. They drew weapons, only to drop them
and climb up on the stone walls themselves.
Something
felt like it pushed at Fitch's back, like his own imagination urging him to
take his chance while he had it. The sensation tickled at the back of his neck.
He scrambled to his feet.
"Come
on, Morley. Let's go."
Morley
followed as Fitch ran back down to the horses, hidden in the trees. Fitch stuffed
his foot in the stirrup and sprang up into the saddle. Morley was right behind
him as Fitch gave his horse his heels, urging her into a gallop up the road.
It was
a climb, up the switchbacks, and he couldn't see through the trees if the
soldiers were getting themselves collected. He didn't know if they would be in
such a state of shock and confusion that the two of them could get through.
Fitch didn't see that they had any other chance but this one. He didn't know
what was happening, but it wasn't likely that guards jumped off the bridge
every day. It was now or never.
As they
came around the last bend, they were racing like the wind. He thought that with
the havoc, he and Morley could charge past the last of the guards and get over
the bridge.
The
bridge was empty. There were no soldiers anywhere. Fitch let their horses slow
to a walk. It ran chills up his spine remembering all the men he had seen only
moments before. Now only the wind guarded the bridge.
"Fitch,
are you sure you want to go up there?"
His
friend's voice had a tremble to it. Fitch followed Morley's gaze then, and saw
it, too. It stuck out of the stone of the mountain, like it was made of the
mountain, like it was part of the mountain. It was dark, and evil-looking. It
was just about the wickedest place he had ever seen, or could imagine. There
were ramparts, and towers, and walls rising up beyond the monumental
crenellated outer wall.
He was
glad to be sitting in a saddle; he didn't know if
616
his
legs would have held him at the sight of the place. He had never seen anything
as big or as sinister-looking as the Wizard's Keep.
"Come
on," Fitch, said. "Before they find out what happened and send more
guards."
Morley
looked around at the empty bridge. "And what happened?"
"It's
a place with magic. Anything could have happened."
Fitch
scooted his bottom forward in the saddle, urging his horse ahead. The horse
didn't like the bridge and was only too happy to run. They didn't stop running
as they barreled through the opening in the outer wall, under the spiked
portcullis.
There
was a fenced yard for the horses inside. Before they turned the horses loose,
Fitch told Morley to leave the saddles on them so they could make a quick
departure. Morley wasn't any more interested in lingering than was Fitch.
Together, they raced up the dozen wide granite steps worn smooth and swayback
over the centuries, surely by the feet of countless wizards.
Inside,
it was just like Franca had told him, only her words of how big it was couldn't
match the truth of the sight. A hundred feet overhead a glassed roof let in the
sunlight. In the center of the tiled floor stood a clover-leaf-shaped fountain.
Water shot fifteen feet into the air above the top bowl, flowing over each
bigger one underneath until it ran into a pool at the bottom surrounded by a
white marble wall that could be a bench.
Red
marble columns were as big as Franca said. They held up arches below a balcony
that ran all the way around the oval-shaped room. Morley whistled. It echoed
back from the distance.
"Come
on," Fitch said, shaking himself out of his awe.
They
ran through the hall Franca had told him about and burst through a door at the
top of several flights of stairs. They followed a walkway round square
buildings without windows and then climbed stairs that followed halfway around
a tower, to a walkway tunneling under what looked
617
to be a
road overhead, before they crossed a stone bridge over a small, green courtyard
far below.
At
last, they came to a massive rampart as broad as a road. Fitch looked out over
the right side, between the gaps in the crenellation big enough for a man to
stand in. He could see the city of Aydindril spread out below. For a boy who
grew up in the flat land of Anderith, it was a dizzying sight Fitch had been
impressed by a lot of things he'd seen along the way, but nothing came close to
this place.
At the
other end of the rampart, a dozen immense columns of variegated red stone held
up a protruding entablature of dark stone. Six of the columns stood to each
side of a gold-clad door. Above were more layers of fancy stonework, some of it
decorated with brass plaques and round metal disks, all of them covered with
strange symbols.
As they
crossed the long rampart, Fitch realized the door had to be at least ten or
twelve feet tall, and a good four feet wide. The gold-clad door was marked with
some of the same symbols as on the plaques and disks.
When
Fitch pushed on the door, it silently swung inward.
"In
here," Fitch whispered. He didn't know why he was whispering, except that
maybe he feared to wake the spirits of the wizards who haunted the place.
He
didn't want the spirits to make him jump from the rampart like the soldiers had
done from the bridge; it looked like the edge dropped off down the mountain for
thousands of feet.
"You
sure?" Morley asked.
"I'm
going in. You can wait here or go with me. It's up to you."
Morley's
eyes were looking all around, not seeming able to decide on where to settle.
"I guess I'll go with you."
Inside,
to each side, glass spheres, about as big as a head, sat on green marble
pedestals, like armless statues waiting to greet visitors to the huge room of
ornate stonework. In the middle, four columns of polished black marble, at
least as big around as a horse was long, from head to tail, formed
618
a
square that supported arches at the outer edges of a central dome.
There
were wrought-iron sconces holding candles all around the room, but up in the
dome a ring of windows let light flood in, so they didn't need to light the
candles. Fitch felt like he was in a place the Creator Himself might have. He
felt like he should drop to his knees and pray in such a place.
A red
carpet led down the wing they were in. In a row down each side of the carpet
were six-foot-tall white marble pedestals. Each had to be bigger around than
Master Drummond's belly. Up on top of each pedestal were different objects.
There were pretty bowls, fancy gold chains, an inky black bottle, and other
objects, carved from burled wood. Some of the things Fitch couldn't make sense
of.
He
didn't pay much attention to the things on the columns; he looked instead
across the huge room, to the other side of the central dome. There, he saw a
table piled with a clutter of things, and there, leaning against the table,
looked to be the thing he'd come for.
Between
each pair of the black columns topped in gold, a wing ran off from the vast
central chamber. To the left it looked like a disorderly library, with books
stacked all over the floor in tall columns. The wing to the right was dark.
Fitch
trotted down the red carpet. At the end, broad steps, near to a dozen, went
down into the sunken floor of cream-colored marble at the center of the First
Wizard's enclave below the dome. He took the steps two at a time up the other
side, up toward the table before a towering round-topped window straight ahead.
A
confusion of things were piled all over the table: bowls, candles, scrolls,
books, jars, spheres, metal squares and triangles-there was even a skull. Other
bigger objects sat cluttered around on the floor.
Morley
reached for the skull. Fitch slapped his hand away.
"Don't
touch nothing." Fitch pointed at the skull staring
619
up at
them. "That could be a wizard's skull, and if you touch it, it might come
back to life. Wizards can do that, you know."
Morley
yanked back his hand.
Fingers
trembling, Fitch finally reached down and picked up the thing he'd come for. It
looked just like he'd imagined it must look. The gold and silver work was as
beautiful as anything Fitch had ever seen, and he'd seen a lot of fine gold and
silver work at the Minister's estate. No Ander had anything to approach the
beauty of this.
"That
it?" Morley asked.
Fitch
ran his fingers over the raised letters in the hilt. It was the one word he
could read.
"This
is it. The Sword of Truth."
Fitch
felt rooted to that spot as he held the magnificent weapon, letting his fingers
glide over the wire-wound hilt, the downswept cross guard, the finely wrought
gold and silver scabbard. Even the leather baldric was beautifully made,
feeling buttery soft between his finger and thumb.
"Well,
if you're taking that," Morley said, "what do you think I can
take?"
"Nothing,"
came a voice from behind them.
They
both flinched and cried, out as one. Together, they spun around.
They
both blinked at what they saw, hardly believing their eyes. It was a gorgeous
blue-eyed blond woman in a red leather outfit that clung like a second skin. It
showed her womanly shape to an extent Fitch had never seen. The low-cut dresses
the Ander women wore showed the tops of their breasts, but this outfit, even
though it covered everything, somehow seemed to show more. He could see her lean,
well-defined muscles flexing as she strode toward them.
"That's
not yours," the woman said. "Give it here before you boys get
hurt."
Morley
didn't like being called a boy anymore, at least not by some lone woman. Fitch
could see his powerful muscles tense.
The
woman put her fists on her hips. For a woman by
620
herself
with the two of them more than her match, she had a lot of nerve. Fitch didn't
think he'd seen many women who could scowl as good as she could, but he wasn't
really afraid. He was a man on his own, now, and he didn't have to answer to no
one.
Fitch
remembered how helpless Claudine Winthrop had been. He remembered how easy it
was to hold her helpless. This was a woman, just like Claudine, no more.
"What
are you two doing in here?" she asked.
"I
guess we could ask you the same," Morley said.
She
glared at him and then held her hand out to Fitch. "That doesn't belong to
you." She waggled her fingers. "Hand it over before I lose my temper
and I end up hurting you."
At the
same instant, Fitch and-Morley bolted in opposite directions. The woman went
for Fitch. Fitch tossed the sword to Morley. Morley, laughing, caught the
sword, waving it at the woman, teasing her with it.
Fitch
cut around her back and headed toward the door. She lunged for Morley. He
tossed the sword over her head and outstretched arms.
The
three of them raced across the sunken floor in the center of the room. She dove
for Fitch and caught his leg, tripping him. As he went down, he heaved the sword
to Morley.
She was
up and running before Fitch could roll to his feet. Morley shouldered one of
the white marble columns, toppling it across the red carpet before her. The
bowl atop the column crashed to the floor, shattering into a thousand shards that
skittered across the marble and carpet with a soft chiming, almost musical,
tinkling sound.
"You
two don't have any idea what you're doing!" she yelled. "Stop it at
once! That isn't yours! This is no child's game! You've no right to touch
anything in this place! You could be causing great harm! Stop it! Lives are at
stake!"
She and
Morley danced around the opposite sides of another column. When she lunged for
him, he shoved the column toward her. She cried out when the heavy gold vase
621
atop
the column tumbled and hit her shoulder. Fitch didn't know if it was pain or
rage that caused her to shout.
The
three of them serpentined around the columns on both sides of the red carpet,
heading ever closer to the door. Fitch and Morley tossed the sword back and
forth between them, keeping her off guard. Fitch pushed over one of the columns
to slow her and was- shocked at how heavy it was. The way Morley shoved them
over Fitch had thought they would be easy to topple; they weren't, so he didn't
try another.
She was
yelling at them to stop destroying the priceless things of magic, but when
Morley toppled the one with the inky black bottle atop it, she screamed. The
column crashed down. The bottle tumbled through the air.
She
dove across the floor, her long blond braid flying out behind as she hit and
slid. The bottle bounced through her hands, flipping up, then hit the carpet
and rolled, but it didn't break.
By the
look on her face, Fitch would have thought it was her own life that was just spared
by the bottle not breaking.
She
scrambled to her feet and charged for them as they went through the door.
Outside, Morley, chuckling, tossed the sword to Fitch as they ran along the
edge of the rampart.
"You
boys have no idea what is at stake. I need that sword. This is important. It
doesn't belong, to you. Give it to me, please, and I will let you go."
Morley
had that look in his eye, the look like he wanted to hurt her. Hurt her bad.
He'd had that look with Claudine Winthrop.
Fitch
just wanted the sword, but he could see they were going to have to do something
serious to stop her, else she was going to cause them no end of trouble. He
wasn't about to give up the sword. Not now, not after everything they'd been
through.
"Hey,
Fitch," Morley called, "I think it's time you had your turn at a
woman. This one's even free. What say I hold her down for you?"
Fitch
surely thought she was a good enough looking
622
woman.
And she was the one causing them trouble. It would be her own fault. She
wouldn't let them be. She wouldn't mind her own business. She had it coming.
Fitch
knew that since he was doing it for the right reasons, for good reasons, he
deserved to be the Seeker of Truth. This woman had no right to interfere with
that.
Out in
the bright sun, her red leather seemed an angrier color. Her face surely was.
She looked like someone had lifted her up by her long blond braid, and dunked
her in blood.
"I
try to do it his way," she muttered to herself. "I try to please
him." Fitch thought she might be crazy, standing there, hands on hips,
talking to the sky. "And what does it get me? This. Enough. I've had
enough of this."
She
forced out an angry breath, then pulled free red leather gloves she had tucked
over her double strap belt cinching the top of her outfit tight at the waist.
The way she drew on the gloves, wiggling her fingers into them, had a
frightening finality to it.
"I'm
not warning you boys again," she said, this time in a growl that lifted
the hair at the back of Fitch's neck. "Give it over, and give it over
now."
While
she was glaring grimly at Fitch, Morley moved on her. He swung his big fist to
punch the side of her head. As hard as he swung, Fitch thought he was going to
kill her with the first blow.
The
woman didn't even look Morley's way. She caught his fist in the flat of her
hand, yanked it around, and in a blink spun under it, twisting his arm around
behind him. Her teeth clenched, and she drove his arm up. Fitch was shocked to
hear Morley's shoulder let out a sickening pop. Morley cried out. The pain
dropped him to his knees.
This
woman was like no woman Fitch had ever seen before. Now, she was coming for
him. She wasn't running, but striding with a determination that caught Fitch's
breath short.
He
stood frozen, not knowing what to do. He didn't want to abandon his friend, but
his feet wanted to run. He didn't
623
want to
give up the sword, either. He blindly groped the crenellated wall behind him as
he started backing along it. Morley was up. He rushed the woman. She just kept
coming for Fitch-for the sword. Fitch decided he might have to take the sword
out and stab her-in the leg, or something, he speculated. He could wound her.
But
then it didn't look like he was going to have to; Morley was closing on her, an
enraged bull at full charge. There would be no stopping the big man this time.
Without
even turning to the onrushing Morley, she smoothly sidestepped-never taking her
glare from Fitch- and brought her arm up, ramming her elbow squarely, into
Morley's face.
His
head snapped back. Blood sprayed out.
Not
even breathing hard, she turned and seized Morley's good left hand. With her
fingers in his palm and her thumb on the back of his hand, she bent it down at
the wrist until Morley's knees were buckling as she backed him toward the wall.
Morley
was whimpering like a child, begging her to stop. His other arm was useless.
His nose had been flattened horribly. Blood gushed from his face. It had to be
all over her, too, but with her red leather, Fitch couldn't tell.
She
backed Morley steadily, mercilessly, to the wall. Without a word, she seized
him by the throat with her other hand, and, calmly, indifferently, shoved him
backward through the notch of a crenellation, out into thin air.
Fitch's
jaw dropped. He never expected her to do that- for it to go that far.
Morley
screamed his lungs out as he dropped backward down the side of the mountain.
Fitch stood frozen, listening to his friend from the flat place of Anderith
plummet down the side of a mountain. Morley's scream abruptly ended.
The
woman wasn't talking anymore, making any more demands. She was simply coming
for Fitch, now. Her blue eyes fixed on him. He knew without doubt that if she
caught him, she'd kill him, too.
624
This
was no Claudine Winthrop. This was no woman who was going to call him
"sir."
Fitch's
feet finally got their way.
If
there was one thing about Fitch that was better than Morley and all his
muscles, it was that Fitch could run like the wind. Now, he ran like a gale.
A quick
glance back shocked him; the woman could run faster. She was tall, and had
longer legs. She was going to catch him. If she did, she'd smash his face, just
as easily as she smashed Morley's. She'd throw him to his death, too. Or take
the sword from him and cut out his heart.
Fitch
could feel tears streaming down his cheeks. He'd never run so fast. She was
running faster.
He flew
down steps, falling more than running. He dove over the side of the landing and
down the next flight. Everything was a blur. Stone walls, windows, railings,
steps-all flashed by in a smear of light and dark.
Fitch,
clutching the Sword of Truth to his chest, sailed through a doorway, caught the
edge of the thick door with his free hand, and slammed it shut. As the door was
still banging closed in its frame, he toppled a big stone pedestal across the
floor behind the door. It was heavier than the white marble columns, but his
terror gave him strength.
Just as
the granite pedestal hit the floor, she crashed into the heavy oak door. The
impact drove the door open a few inches. Dust billowed up. Everything was still
for a moment; then the woman let out a dazed groan and Fitch knew she'd been
hurt.
Not
wasting the chance, he ran on through the Wizard's Keep, closing doors, pushing
things over behind them if there was anything handy. He didn't even know if he
was going the right way. His lungs burned as he ran, crying for his friend.
Fitch could hardly believe it had happened, that Morley was dead. He kept
seeing the image over and over in his mind. He almost expected the big dumb
fool to catch up and grin and say it was a joke.
The
sword in Fitch's arms had cost Morley his life. Fitch,
625
had to
wipe at his eyes so he could see. A look over his shoulder showed a long,
twisting, empty hallway.
But he
could hear doors crashing open. She was coming.
She
wasn't going to quit for nothing. She was an avenging spirit come to take his
life in return for him removing the Sword of Truth from its place in the
Wizard's Keep. He ran on, faster.
Fitch
burst out into the sunlight, disoriented for a moment. He twisted around and
saw the horses. Three. His and Morley's, and the woman's. Saddlebags with her
things hung on the fence.
In
order to free his hands, Fitch ducked his head under the sword's baldric,
setting the leather strap over his right shoulder and diagonally across his
chest to let the weapon hang at his left hip as it was designed. He caught up
the reins of all three horses. He seized the saddle of the one closest and
sprang up.
With a
cry to urge them on, he gave his horse his heels. It was her horse; the
stirrups were adjusted too long and his feet wouldn't reach them, so he hugged
his legs to the horse's belly and hung on for his life as the big animal
galloped through the paddock gate with the other two horses being pulled along
behind.
As the
horses hit the road at full speed, the woman in red stumbled out of the Keep,
blood all over the side of her face. She clutched a black bottle in one hand.
It was the bottle from back in the Keep, the bottle that had fallen but not
broken.
He bent
forward over the horse's neck as it raced down the road. Fitch glimpsed back
over his shoulder. The woman was running down the road after them. He had her
horse. She was on foot, a long way from another horse.
Fitch
tried to push thoughts of Morley from his mind. He had the Sword of Truth. Now
he could go home and use it to help him prove he didn't rape Beata, and that he
did what he did to Claudine Winthrop to protect the Minister from her ruinous
lies.
Fitch
looked over his shoulder again. She was a lot farther
626
back,
but still running. He knew he dare not stop for anything. She was coming. She
was coming after him and she wasn't going to stop for anything or anyone.
She
wasn't going to give up. She wasn't going to rest. She wasn't going to stop. If
she caught him, she'd tear his heart out.
Fitch
thumped his heels against the horse, urging her to run faster.
CHAPTER
55
KAHLAN
BENT OVER RICHARD'S shoulder and rubbed his back as he sat at the little table.
"Anything?"
she asked.
He
swiped his hair back from his forehead. "I'm not sure, yet." He
tapped the vellum scroll. "But there's something about this.... It has
more specific information than most of Ander's writings back at the library at
the Minister's estate."
Kahlan
smiled. "I hope so. I'm going to stretch my legs, check on the
others."
A sound
of assent eased from deep in his throat as he studied the scroll.
They
had spent two days at the library in the estate, going over everything there
about or from Joseph Ander. It was mostly his writings about himself, and what
he believed to be previously undiscovered insights into human behavior.
627
He went
on at great length about how his observations were more relevant to the course
of human events than were those of anyone who had come before him.
A lot
of the reading was accompanied by raised eyebrows. It was almost like listening
to an adolescent who thought he knew everything, and failed to see how
genuinely ignorant he was. One was left to silently read his words, helpless to
correct some of the more grandiose declarations that any adult should have long
before outgrown.
Joseph
Ander believed he had the perfect place where he could shepherd people in the
ideal life, without any exterior forces being able to upset his "balanced
community," as he called it. He explained that he realized he no longer
needed the support or advice of others-meaning the wizards at the Keep in
Aydindril, Richard believed-and that he had even come to realize such outside
contamination was profoundly harmful because it corrupted the people in his
collective community with the evil of self-interest.
Not one
name but his own was ever recorded by Joseph Ander. He referred to people as
"a man," or "a woman," or said that "the people"
built, planted, gathered, or worshiped.
Joseph
Ander seemed to have found the perfect place for himself: a land where his
powers exceeded anyone else's, and where the people all adored him. Richard
believed Joseph Ander was misinterpreting fear as adoration. In any event, the
situation allowed the man to establish himself as an esteemed and celebrated
leader-a virtual king-with unquestioned authority over a society where no one
else was allowed to display individualism or exert superiority.
Joseph
Ander believed he had established a blissful land where suffering, greed, and
envy had been eliminated- where cooperation replaced avarice. Purification of
the culture-public executions-brought this harmonious state of the collective
community into balance. He called it "burning away the chaff."
Joseph
Ander had come to be a tyrant. People professed their belief in him and lived
by his ways, or they died.
Richard
squeezed Kahlan's hand before she turned to go.
628
The
little building wasn't big enough for the others to fit inside. It was only big
enough for the little table and Joseph Ander's chair, which, to the horror of
the old man whose duty it was to watch over the priceless artifacts, Richard
was occupying. The old man didn't have the courage to refuse Richard's request.
Richard
wanted to sit in Joseph Ander's chair to get a feel for the man. Kahlan had enough
of a feel for the totalitarian despot.
Down
the path a ways, people from the town of West-brook were gathered. They stared
in awe as Kahlan lifted her hand in a wave of acknowledgment. Many went to a
knee simply because she had looked their way.
Soldiers
had already brought word of the approaching vote, as they had carried word to
many a place. With Richard and Kahlan here, the people hoped to hear them speak
on the subject of joining with the D'Haran Empire as most of the rest of the
Midlands was. To these people, the Midlands, even though they were part of it,
seemed a strange and distant land. They lived their lives in this one small
place, most hearing little word, other than rumor, of the outside world.
D'Haran
guards gently kept the crowd at a distance while Richard viewed the artifacts
of their luminary founder and namesake to their land. Baka Tau Mana blade
masters backed the guards. Richard had told the soldiers to act friendly and
"be nice."
Walking
down the path, Kahlan spotted Du Chaillu alone, off the path, resting on a
bench made of a split log and set in the shade beneath a spreading cedar.
Kahlan had come to respect the spirit woman's firm resolution. She seemed to
have righteously insisted on coming for no reason other than her determination
to help Richard-her "husband," the Caharin to her people. Kahlan,
after Du Chaillu had helped him that day he fell from his horse, was less
dismayed to have her along.
While
Du Chaillu had several times reminded Richard that as his wife she would be
available should he desire her,
629
she
never made any advances on behalf of herself. In a bizarre way, it seemed
nothing more than her being polite. It appeared that while Du Chaillu would be
perfectly happy to serve and submit in any and every capacity as his wife, she
offered services more out of duty and respect for her people's laws than from
personal desires.
Du
Chaillu worshiped what Richard represented. She did not worship Richard, as
such. While Richard found little comfort in that, Kahlan did.
As long
as it stayed that way, Du Chaillu and Kahlan observed an uneasy truce. Kahlan
still didn't entirely trust the woman, not when Richard was the object of her
attention-duty or otherwise.
For her
part, Du Chaillu viewed Kahlan, in her role as leader of her people, in her
magic, and as wife to Richard, not as a superior, but simply as an equal.
Kahlan was ashamed to admit to herself that in all of it, she was irritated by
that more than anything.
"Mind
if I sit with you?"
Du
Chaillu leaned back, stretching herself, to rest her shoulders against the
tree. She held a hand toward the empty spot beside her, granting the request.
Kahlan smoothed her white Mother Confessor's dress behind her knees and sat
down.
Tucked
in between trees in a little side area of the path, they were invisible to
passersby. It was an intimate spot, more appropriate for two lovers than for
the two wives of the same man.
"Are
you all right, Du Chaillu? You look a bit... frazzled."
Du
Chaillu puzzled at Kahlan's expression of concern. At last she smiled as she
understood its meaning. She took. Kahlan's hand and put it against her firm,
round belly, pressing the hand flat and holding it tight with both of hers. The
woman was getting quite large.
Kahlan
felt the life move in Du Chaillu. Felt the child move.
Du
Chaillu smiled proudly. Kahlan withdrew the hand.
630
Kahlan
nested her hands in her lap. She stared off at the gathering clouds. This was
not the way it was to be. She always thought it would be joyous. "It
displeases you?"
"What?
No ... not at all. It's a marvelous thing." Du Chaillu's fingers hooked
Kahlan's chin, pulling her face back around. "Kahlan, you have
tears?" "No. It's nothing."
"You
are unhappy, because I have a child?" "No, Du Chaillu, no, I'm not
unhappy-"
"You
are unhappy because I have a child, and you do not?"
Kahlan
held her tongue, lest she lose control of herself.
"You
should not be unhappy, Kahlan. You will have a child. Someday. It will happen."
"Du
Chaillu ... I'm pregnant."
Du
Chaillu put a hand against the small of her back and stretched. "Really? I
am surprised. Jiaan has not told me that you and our husband have been together
in that way."
Kahlan
was shocked to know that Du Chaillu would be getting such reports. In a way,
she was relieved that there had been nothing to report, and in a way she wished
.there had been, just to vex her competition as a wife.
"Our
husband must be very happy. He seems to like little ones. He will be a
good-"
"Richard
doesn't know. You must promise me, Du Chaillu, that you will not tell
him."
The
woman frowned. "Why would I make you such a promise?"
Kahlan
leaned a little closer. "Because I'm the one who made Richard let you come
with us. Because I'm the one who said you could stay with us even after our men
came. You had promised Richard you would leave when our men came, but then you
wanted to stay with us, and I made him let you. Remember?"
Du
Chaillu shrugged. "If you wish it, then I will not tell him. Anyway, you
should keep the secret and surprise him
631
in your
own time." She gave Kahlan a smile. "The Caharin's wives must stick
together."
"Thank
you," Kahlan whispered.
"But
when ... ?"
"On
our wedding night. When we were with the Mud People, just before you came
along."
"Ah.
That would be why I did not hear of it."
Kahlan
let it pass.
"But
why do you not wish to have Richard know? He would be happy."
Kahlan
shook her head. "No, he wouldn't. It is going to be big trouble."
Kahlan lifted the necklace with the small stone. "This was given to us by
a witch woman, to keep us from conceiving a child for now. It's a long story,
but for now, we must not have one or we will have trouble."
"So
then why are you with child?"
"Because
of the chimes. Magic has failed. But before we knew it... Well, we didn't know
the necklace wouldn't work on the night we were married. The magic was supposed
to keep us from conceiving a child, but its magic had failed. This wasn't supposed
to happen."
Kahlan
had to bite the inside of her cheek to help keep the tears back.
"Richard
would still be happy," Du Chaillu offered in a consoling whisper.
Kahlan
shook her head. "You don't understand everything involved. His life would
be in great danger if people found out. The witch woman has vowed to kill this
child, but more, I know her; she will decide that to prevent future trouble she
will have to kill me or Richard."
Du
Chaillu thought it over. "Well, soon will be this foolish vote, where
people tell him what he should already know, that he is the Caharin. After
that, everything will be all right. Then you could go into hiding to have the
baby." The spirit woman put a hand on Kahlan's shoulder. "You will
come with me, back to the Baka Tau Mana. We will protect you until you have the
Caharin's child. We will protect you and your child."
632
Kahlan
drew a steady breath to prevent a sob. "Thank you, Du Chaillu. You are a
kind person. But that wouldn't help. I must do something to get- rid of it.
Find an herb woman, or a midwife. I need to shed this child before it's too
late."
Du
Chaillu reached out and took Kahlan's hand again and put it back over the baby.
Kahlan squeezed shut her eyes as she felt the child moving.
"You
cannot do that to the life in you, Kahlan. Not to the life come of your love.
You must not. It would be worse."
Richard
came out of the little building, holding the scroll. "Kahlan?" he
called. She could see him through a gap in the trees, but he didn't see her on
the bench.
Kahlan
turned to Du Chaillu. "You gave your word you will keep this secret."
Du
Chaillu smiled and touched Kahlan's cheek the way a grandmother might
compassionately touch a-grandchild. Kahlan knew she had just been touched not by
Du Chaillu, Richard's first wife, but by Du Chaillu, spirit woman to the Baka
Tau Mana.
Kahlan
rose, at the same time putting on her Confessor's face. Richard spotted her and
hurried over.
He
looked back and forth between her and Du Chaillu. Finally, he disregarded his
puzzlement and showed her the scroll.
"I
knew it had something to do with the word 'school.' "
"What?"
Kahlan asked.
"The
Dominie Dirtch. Look here." He tapped the scroll. "It says he didn't
fear intervention from jealous colleagues since he was"-Richard ran a
finger under the words as he read aloud-" 'protected by the demons.'
"
Kahlan
didn't have the slightest idea what he was talking about. "And this is
important, because ... ?"
Richard
was reading the scroll again. "What? Oh, yes. Well, when you first told me
the name, Dominie Dirtch, I thought it was High D'Haran, but I couldn't figure
out its meaning. It's one of those tricky multidimensional phrases I've told
you about.
633
"Anyway,
'Dominie' is a word having to do with schooling, as in teaching, or training,
or, more Important, controlling. Now that I've seen this other part, it's
jogged my mind to the translation of the thing.
"
'Dominie Dirtch' means 'Schooling the Demons.' "
Kahlan
could only stare for a moment. "But... what does that mean?"
Richard
threw up his arms. "I don't know, but it's all coming together, I'm
sure."
"Well,
all right," Kahlan said.
He
frowned at her. "What's wrong? Your face is, I don't know ...
funny-looking."
"Well,
thank you."
He
turned red. "I didn't mean it looks bad."
Kahlan
waved a hand before herself. "No, it's nothing. I'm just tired. We've been
doing so much hard traveling and endless talking to people."
"Do
you know a place called the Ovens?"
"Ovens."
Kahlan frowned in thought. "Yes, I remember the place. It's not far from
here, in fact. Up a little higher above the Nareef Valley."
"How
far?"
Kahlan
shrugged one shoulder. "We could be there in a couple of hours, by
midafternoon, if it's important for some reason."
"Ander
talks about it in these scrolls. He obliquely mentions it in conjunction with
the demons-the Dominie Dirtch. That was the passage where I put the two
together."
Richard
looked down the path to the group of people gathered, waiting patiently.
"After we talk to these people, I would like to go up there and have a
look around."
Kahlan
took his arm. "It's a pretty place. I wouldn't mind seeing it again. Now,
let's go tell these people why we need them to mark their circle to join
us."
The
expectant faces were mostly Haken. Most worked on farms around the small town
of Westbrook. Like all the people come to see them as they had traveled around
Anderith, these people were concerned and worried. They knew
634
change
was in the wind. To most people, change was dangerous.
Rather
than addressing them coldly, Richard walked among them, asking their names,
smiling at their children, trailing a hand or a thumb along the cheek of the
young ones. Because this was really the way Richard was, because it was sincere
and not an act, within a matter of minutes he had a gaggle of children around
him. Mothers smiled as he touched young heads, dark-haired and redheaded alike.
The worried creases in the foreheads of fathers, too, loosened.
"Good
people of Anderith," Richard began as he stood among them, "the
Mother Confessor and I have come to talk with you, not as rulers, but as your
humble champions. We do not come to dictate, but to help you understand the
choices ahead of us all, and the chance you have to decide for yourselves what
your future will be."
He
beckoned with an arm, and Kahlan gently worked her way through the throng of
smiling children to join him at his side. She had thought they might fear a big
man like Richard, dressed as he was in a black and gold outfit that made him
look all the more imposing, but many pressed up against him as if he was a
favorite uncle.
It was
the white dress of the Mother Confessor they feared, warned as most in the
Midlands were from birth of the Mother Confessor and her power. They made way
for her, doing their best not to come in contact with her white dress as they
tried to remain close to Richard. Kahlan ached to have them crowd around her
the way they crowded around Richard, but she understood. She had a lifetime of
understanding.
"The
Mother Confessor and I were married because we love each other. We also love
the people of the Midlands and D'Hara. Just as we wanted to be joined in
marriage so that we could look forward to life together, we want the people of
Anderith to be joined with us and the other people of the Midlands, to go with
us into a strong and secure future, one which provides you and your children
hope for a better life.
635
"Tyranny
is marching up from the Old World. The Imperial Order would enslave you. They
offer you no choice but to submit or to die. Only if you join with us will you
have a chance to be safe.
"The
Mother Confessor and I believe that if we join the people of the Midlands and
D'Hara together, all standing together as one to uphold our freedom, we can
repel this threat to our homes and security ... and to our children's future.
"If
we timidly submit to tyranny, we will never have the chance to test our wings.
Never again will our spirits lift proudly on the winds of hope. No one will
have the chance to raise a family in peace, or be able to dream their children
will do better, or achieve more.
"If
we do not stand against the Imperial Order, we will live under the shadow of
slavery. Once that happens, we will descend forever into the darkness of
oppression.
"This
is why we have come to speak with you. We need you to stand with us, to stand
with peace-loving people, with those who know the future can be bright and
filled with hope.
"We
need you to join with us and mark a circle to complete our alliance for
freedom."
Kahlan
listened, as she had for weeks, as Richard spoke from his heart about what it
would mean to join with them in the cause of freedom.
At
first, the people were tense and cautious. Before long, Richard's nature had
won most over. He had them laughing, and then brought them to the verge of
tears as he pulled forth their yearning for the freedom to chance greatness by
showing them the simple power they could have if they and their children were
permitted to learn, to read.
At
first, this made people nervous, until Richard put it in terms they could
understand: a letter written to a parent living elsewhere, or to a child gone
in search of a better life. He made them understand the value of knowledge and
how it could make their life better in ways that had meaning to
636
them
with opportunities for better work, or accomplishing more in the work they had.
"But
the Imperial Order will not allow you to learn, because knowledge is dangerous
to oppressors. To those who would dominate you, knowledge must be crushed,
because people who understand are people who will stand against the unfairness
of the elite.
"I
would have everyone learn, so they can decide for themselves what they want.
That is the difference: I trust you to learn, to do better, to strive for your
goals, simple and great. The Imperial Order trusts not, but will dictate
everything.
"Together,
we will have one land, with one set of laws that make it safe for all people,
where no one man-be he magistrate or Minister or emperor-is above the law. Only
when all must bow to the same law is every person free.
"I
came into this not to rule, but to uphold the principle of freedom. My own
father, Darken Rahl, was a dictator who ruled through intimidation, torture,
and murder. Not even he was above the law I hope us all to live by. I took over
his rule so that he could no longer abuse his people. I lead free people-I do
not rule subjects.
"I
don't wish to tell you how to live, I instead wish to have all of you live in
peace and safety the lives you choose for yourselves. I would like nothing more
for myself and the Mother Confessor-my wife-than to raise a family together in
peace and security with little need to devote myself to matters of ruling.
"I
would ask you to mark a circle, and join with us, for your own sake, for the
sake of those to come."
Dalton
leaned a shoulder against the corner of the building and folded his arms as he
listened. Director Prevot, from the Office of Cultural Amity, spoke from a
balcony above a large crowd in one of the city squares. He had been going on
for quite a while.
637
The
crowd, mostly Haken, had gathered to hear of the coming events. Rumors were coursing
through the city. People were frightened. They had come, mostly, not to see how
they might avoid a calamity, but to see if they need bother to worry about the
rumors.
Dalton
viewed the situation with concern. "Shall you suffer while the special few
are rewarded?" Director Prevot called out to the crowd. They answered with
a collective "No."
"Shall
you be worked to death while the chosen ones from D'Hara only grow
richer?"
Again
the crowd shouted, "No!"
"Shall
we let our good works of helping all Hakens rise above their nature be cast
aside by this one man? Shall we allow our people to again be led astray by the
cruel deception of education?"
The
crowd shouted their agreement with Director Prevot, some waving their hats, as
Dalton had instructed them to do. There were perhaps fifty of his Haken
messengers in the crowd, dressed in their old clothes, doing their best to pump
emotion into the responses to Director Prevot's speech.
There
were people caught up in the passion of the words, no doubt, but for the most
part the crowd silently watched, judging if their own lives would be altered by
what they heard. Most people weighed matters on a scale, with their life on one
side, and the events before them on the other side. Most people were satisfied
with the way things were, so only if the events on the other side of the scale
threatened to outweigh or change their lives did they become concerned.
Dalton
was not pleased. These people, while agreeing, did not see the events on the
other side of the scales as much affecting their life. Dalton knew they had a
problem. The message was getting out, but it was falling on little more than
indifferent ears. "He is making a lot of good points," Teresa said.
Dalton hugged her shoulders. "Yes, he is."
638
"I
think the man is right. The poor Hakens will only be hurt if we don't continue
to see to their well-being. They aren't prepared to handle the cruelty of life
on their own."
Dalton's
gaze moved among the people standing like statues as they watched the Director
pour out his passion.
"Yes,
darling, you're right. We must do more to help the people."
Dalton
realized, then, what was missing, and what he 'must do.
CHAPTER
56
"No,"
RICHARD SAID TO Du Chaillu.
She
folded her arms in smoldering anger. The way her big round belly stuck out made
her pose look almost humorous.
Richard
leaned toward her and lowered his voice. "Du Chaillu, can't you understand
I would like to be alone with my-with Kahlan, for just a little while? Please?"
Du
Chaillu's anger faltered. Her frown melted.
"Oh,
I see. You want to be intimate with your other wife. This is good. It has been
a long time."
"That's
not-" Richard put his fists on his hips. "And just how would you
know, anyway?"
She didn't
answer his question, but smiled. "Well, all right then. If you promise not
to take too long."
639
He
wanted to say it would take as long as it took, but he feared what her answer
might be. Richard straightened and said simply, "We promise."
Captain
Meiffert, a big, blond-headed D'Haran officer in charge of the troops sent to
escort Richard and Kahlan to Anderith, didn't like the idea of them being alone
any more than did Du Chaillu, but he was more circumspect in expressing his
objections. General Reibisch had apparently told the man he could speak his
mind to the Lord Rahl, if it was an important matter, without fear of
punishment.
"Lord
Rahl, we would be too far away to respond should you need us.... To help
protect the Mother Confessor," he added as an afterthought, thinking it
might sway Richard's decision.
"Thank
you, Captain. There is only this one trail up there. Since no one knew where we
were headed, no one could be lying in wait. It isn't far and we won't be gone
long. You and your men will patrol down here while Kahlan and I go have a
look."
"Yes,
sir," Captain Meiffert said in resignation. He immediately began issuing
orders to his men, spreading them out at stations and sending some on scout.
Richard
turned to the two messengers who had come from General Reibisch. "Tell the
general I'm pleased with the speed he's making, and I'm pleased to know he
believes he can make it before Jagang's forces arrive. Tell him the same orders
he already has are still in effect; I want him to stand off."
Nearly
every day messengers came and went, entering past different Dominie Dirtch at
the border so as to be less noticed. Richard had given General Reibisch orders
to stay well to the north, well beyond Jagang's screen of scouts, sentries, and
spies. If it came to a fight, surprise was one of the most valuable elements
the D'Haran army could possess. The general agreed with that much of it, but
was loath to leave Richard with only a thousand men in potentially hostile
territory.
Richard
had explained, in the letters he'd written the man,
640
that
while he understood the general's concern, they needed to keep his force hidden
until and unless they were called. Richard had explained in gruesome detail the
horrific and futile death awaiting them at the border if the army tried to
breach the Dominie Dirtch. Until they, won the agreement of the Anderith
people, they dared not approach their border in force.
Moreover,
Richard didn't trust Minister Chanboor. The man's tongue was too smooth. Truth
didn't wear a tongue smooth; lies did.
The
Dominie Dirtch were a spider's web waiting to claim the careless. The look of
easy conquest could be a trap to lure the D'Haran force to their death. More
than anything, Richard feared all those brave young men being slaughtered
before the Dominie Dirtch. Especially when he knew such sacrifice could
accomplish nothing. They would die and the Dominie Dirtch would still stand
untouched.
General
Reibisch had written back, promising Richard that, once they were in place to
the north, they would charge south without pause should Richard call upon them,
but he promised to stay put until called.
"Yes,
Lord Rahl," the taller messenger said as he clapped a fist to his heart,
"I will tell the general your words." They both wheeled their horses
and trotted off down the road.
Richard
checked that his bow and quiver were secure before he climbed into his saddle.
Kahlan flashed him her special smile as they turned their horses up the trail.
She, too, Richard knew, was relieved to be alone at last, if for only a brief
ride up a side trail.
It was
wearing to have people constantly around them. When they held hands, eyes took
it in. If they did so in front of people while speaking to them, Richard could
tell by the looks that it was news that would visit a thousand ears before a
few days passed. He knew by the unblinking stares that it would be spoken of
for years to come. At least it was a favorable thing for people to gossip
about. Better they should talk about the married Lord Rahl and Mother Confessor
holding hands than something awful.
641
Richard
watched Kahlan sway in the saddle, spellbound by the taper of her body down to
her waist, the flare of her hips. He thought she had just about the most alluring
shape he had ever seen. He sometimes found it remarkable to think a woman like
that would love him, a man who had grown up in a little place in Hartland.
Richard
missed his home. He guessed those feelings had surfaced because the forest
trail up the mountain reminded him so much of places he knew. There were hills
and mountains to the west of where he grew up, remote places, that were much
like the forests and mountains in which they found themselves.
He
wished they could return to visit his home in Hartland. He had seen remarkable
things since leaving the autumn before, but he guessed none held your heart
like the place you grew up.
When
the trail passed near a steep decline affording a view, Richard looked off to
the northwest, through gaps in the peaks. They were probably closer to where he
had grown up than they had been since he left. They had come across those same
mountains into the Midlands, through the boundary while it had still been up,
at a place called Kings' Port. It wasn't very far to the northwest.
Despite
how close it might be, because of the weight of his responsibilities, home in
Hartland was now a very distant place.
Besides
the responsibility of being Lord Rahl and having everyone depending on him,
there was Jagang, who, given half a chance, would enslave the New World as he
had the Old. People depended on Richard for everything from the bond that
protected them from the dream walker, to pulling everyone together into one
force to stand against Jagang's huge armies.
Sometimes,
when he thought about it, it seemed he was living someone else's life.
Sometimes he felt like a fraud, as if people were one day going to wake up and
say, "Now, wait a minute, this Lord Rahl fellow is just a woods guide
642
named
Richard. And we're listening to him? We're following him into war?"
And
then there were the chimes. Richard and Kahlan were inextricably involved with
the chimes. They were responsible for the chimes being in the world of life.
Even though it was unintentional, they had brought forth the chimes of death.
In
their travels around Anderith to talk to people, they had heard stories of the
strange deaths. The chimes were greatly enjoying their visit to the world of
life. They were having a marvelous time killing people.
In
response to the danger, people had fallen back to old superstitions. In some
places people gathered together to pay homage to the evil spirits loosed upon
the world. Gifts of food and wine were left in clearings in the woods, or in
fallow fields. Some folks thought mankind had violated moral bounds, had become
too corrupt, and the avenging spirits had been sent by the Creator to punish
the world.
Some
people left gifts of stones in the center of roads, and piled yet more rocks at
crossroads. No one could explain to Richard exactly why, and were annoyed that
he would question the old ways. Some put dead flowers out in front of their
door at midnight. Good-luck charms were in great demand.
The
chimes killed anyway.
The one
thing that made the weight of it all tolerable was Kahlan. She made the effort
of the struggle bearable. For her, he would endure anything.
Kahlan
raised an arm. "Just up there."
Richard
dismounted with her. Most of the trees were spruce or pine. Richard cast about
until he found a young silver-leafed maple and tied the reins of their horses
to a low branch. Tying reins to pine or spruce, or worse, a balsam, resulted
often as not in sticky reins.
Richard
looked up when he heard a snort. Not far off, a horse, its ears perked forward,
watched them. Grass hung from each side of its mouth, but it had stopped
chewing.
643
"Well,
hello girl," Richard called. , Wary,
the horse tossed its head and backed a few steps I to add to its distance. When
Richard tried to get closer, it backed away more yet, so he halted. A creamy
chestnut, color, the horse had an odd leggy splotch of black on its rump. When
Richard called to it again, trying to coax it closer, it turned and ran.
"I
wonder what that's about," he said to Kahlan. Kahlan held out her hand in
invitation. Richard took it. "I don't know. Maybe someone's horse has
gotten away. It seems to be uninterested in having anything to do with us,
though."
"I
suppose," Richard said as he let her lead him by the hand.
"This
is the only way in," she told him as they walked along the lake shore,
around a small clump of spruce.
The
clouds had been building all day, threatening thunderstorms. Now, as they
walked out onto a nub of rock sticking up at the end of the flat spit of land,
the sun emerged between the towering, billowing clouds.
It was
a beautiful sight, a shaft of warm sunlight breaking through amber clouds,
slanting down between the mountains to touch the still lake. Across the way,
water tumbled over a prominence of rock, sending up into the warm air a
drifting mist that sparkled in the sunlight above the golden water. Richard
took a deep breath, savoring the sweet aroma of woods and lake. It was almost
like home.
"This
is the place." She gestured. "Up there, higher up, is the desolate
place where the paka plant grows, and the gambit moth lives. These pure waters
come from that poisoned area."
The air
shimmered in the afternoon light. "It's beautiful. I could stay here
forever. I almost feel like I should be scouting new trails."
They
stood for a while, hand in hand, savoring the view.
"Richard,
I just wanted to tell you that the last couple of weeks as we've talked to
people ... I've really been proud
644
of you.
Proud of the way you've shown people hope for the future.
"Whatever
happens, I just want you to know that. That I'm-proud of the way you've handled
it."
He
frowned. "You sound like you don't think we'll win."
She
shrugged. "It doesn't matter. What will be will be. People don't always do
what's right. Sometimes they don't recognize evil. 'Sometimes people choose
evil because it suits them or because they're afraid, or because they think
they will get something for themselves out of it.
"The
most important thing is that we've done our best, and you've shown people the
truth. You put their well-being, their safety, before all else, so if we do
triumph, it will be for the right reasons. You've given them the chance to
prove their heart."
"We'll
win." Richard gazed out over the still water. "People will see the
truth in it."
"I
hope so."
He put
his arm around her neck and kissed the top of her head. He sighed with the
pleasure of the mountain lake, the quiet.
"There
are places deep in the mountains to the west of where I grew up that I don't
think anyone but me has ever visited. Places where the water falls from the
rocks high overhead, higher than here, and makes rainbows in the afternoon air.
And after you swim in the clear pools, you can curl up on the rocks behind the
waterfall and watch the world through the falling water.
"I've
often dreamed of taking you there."
Kahlan
slipped her arm around his waist. "Someday, Richard, we'll visit your
special places."
As they
stood close, watching the waterfall, Richard was reluctant to break the spell
of the dream, especially to talk about their purpose, but at last he did.
"So,
why is it called the Ovens?"
Kahlan
lifted her chin to point. "Behind the waterfall is a cave that's warm.
Sometimes hot, I'm told."
645
"I
wonder why Joseph Ander mentioned the place?"
Kahlan
rested a hand on his shoulder. "Maybe even Joseph Ander appreciated a
beautiful place."
"Maybe,"
he mumbled as he searched the scene for a sign of why the wizard would have
been interested in this spot. Richard didn't think much of Joseph Ander's
sensibilities or that he had a keen appreciation of such natural beauty. While
the man spoke at length about the beauty of nature, it was always in regard to
the orderly makeup of a society.
Richard
noted that all the rock of the mountains around them was a peculiar greenish
gray, except the rock of the cliff across the lake, where the waterfall was.
That rock was darker. Not a lot, but it was definitely different. It had more
gray than green in it, probably because the grain of the granite had black
flecks, although from the distance, it was hard to tell.
Richard
raised his arm, pointing across the lake to the wall from which the water
cascaded in a majestic downward arc.
"Look
at that rock, and tell me what you think of it."
Kahlan,
her white Mother Confessor's dress glowing in the sunlight, almost looked like
Richard's dream-image of a good spirit. She blinked at him.
"What
do you mean? It's a rock."
"I
know, but look at it. Tell me what strikes you about it."
She
looked at the cliff and back at him. "It's a big rock."
"No,
come on, be serious."
Kahlan
sighed and studied the cliff for a time. She looked around at the mountains,
especially the nearest to the left a little, the one rising up so prominently
from the water's edge.
"Well,"
she said at last, "it's darker than the rock of the mountains around
here."
"Good.
What else strikes you about it?"
She
studied the wall a while longer. "It's an unusual color. I've seen it
before."
She
suddenly looked up at him. "The Dominie Dirtch."
646
Richard
smiled. "That's what I think, too. The Dominie Dirtch have that same shade
of color as that rock over there, but none of the mountains around have
it."
Her
face screwed up in an incredulous frown. "Are you saying that the Dominie
Dirtch were cut from this stone- way up here in the mountains-and hauled all
the way down to where they are today?"
Richard
shrugged. "Could be, I guess, although I don't know much about moving
stonework on such a large scale. I studied the Dominie Dirtch; they looked to
be carved of one piece of rock. They weren't assembled. At least the one we
saw."
"Then...
what?"
"Joseph
Ander was a wizard, and the wizards of his time were able to do things even
Zedd would find astounding. Perhaps Joseph simply used this rock as a starting
place."
"What
do you mean? How?"
"I
don't know. I don't know as much about magic as you-maybe you could tell me.
But what if he simply took a small rock from here for each Dominie Dirtch and
then when he got to where they are today, made them big."
"Made
them big?"
Richard
opened his hands in a helpless gesture. "I don't know. Used magic to make
the rock grow, or even used the structure of the grain in the rock as a sort of
guide to reproduce it with Additive Magic into the Dominie Dirtch."
"I
was thinking you were going to come up with something silly," Kahlan said.
"That actually makes sense, as far as I know about magic."
Richard
was relieved not to have embarrassed himself. "I think I'll take a swim
over to the cave, and see what's there."
"Nothing,
from what I learned. Just a hot cave. It doesn't go in far-maybe twenty
feet."
"Well,
I don't particularly like caves, but I guess it can't hurt to go have a
look."
Richard
pulled off his shirt. He turned to the water.
"Aren't
you going to take off your pants?"
647
Richard
glanced back to see her sly grin.
"I
thought I'd wash the smell of horse off them."
"Oh,"
Kahlan said in exaggerated disappointment.
Smiling,
Richard turned back to the water to jump in. Just before he could, a raven came
screeching down at him. Richard had to leap back lest the big black bird hit
him.
Arm
extended behind him, Richard backed Kahlan off the rock.
The
bird cawed. The loud cry echoed off the mountains. The raven swooped down
before them again, narrowly missing Richard's head. Gaining height, the bird
circled. The air whistled through its feathers as it dove at them, driving them
back from the water.
"Is
that bird crazy?" Kahlan asked. "Maybe it's protecting a nest? Or do
all ravens behave like that?"
Richard
had a grip on her arm, ushering her back to the trees. "Ravens are
intelligent birds, and they will protect their nest, but they can be odd, too.
I fear this one is more than a raven."
"More?
What do you mean?"
The
bird settled on a branch and ruffled its glossy black feathers, looking pleased
with itself, as ravens were wont to do.
Richard
took his shirt when she held it out. "I'd say it's a chime."
Even at
the distance, the bird seemed to hear him. It flapped its wings, hopping back
and forth on the branch, looking quite agitated.
"Remember
at the library? The raven outside the window, making such a fuss?"
"Dear
spirits," she breathed in worry. "Do you think this could be the same
one? You think it followed us all this way?"
Richard
glanced back at her. "What if it's a chime, and heard us, and came up here
to wait for us?"
Kahlan
now looked genuinely frightened. "What should we do?" They reached
their horses. Richard yanked his bow off
648
the
saddle. He pulled a steel-tipped arrow from the quiver.
"I
think I should kill it."
The
instant Richard came out from behind the horse, the bird spotted the bow and
leaped-almost flinched-into the air with a loud squawk, as if it hadn't
expected him to resort to a weapon.
When
Richard nocked the arrow, the bird took wing, fleeing with frantic calls and
screeches.
"Well,"
Richard murmured, "wasn't that weird."
"At
least we now know it was a chime. The one you shot back at the Mud People's
village-the chicken that wasn't a chicken-must have let the other chimes
know."
Perplexed,
Richard shook his head. "I guess."
"Richard,
I don't want you swimming that lake. There could be chimes waiting in it. It
would be foolish to swim when the chimes are loose."
"But
they seem afraid of me."
She put
her hand on the side of his neck to keep his gaze.
"What
if they're just lulling you into overconfidence, and want to get you out into
the middle of deep water? Can you imagine? Zedd told us to stay away from
water."
She
rubbed her arms, looking suddenly chilled.
"Richard,
please, let's get out of here? There's something about this place ..."
Richard
threw on his shirt and then drew her close.
"I
think you're right. There's no need to push our luck, not after a run-in with
that raven-that-isn't-a-raven. Besides, Du Chaillu would be so angry we got
killed she'd have her baby before it was time."
Kahlan
clutched his shirt in her fists. She had a suddenly stricken look.
"Richard ... do you think we could ..."
"Could
what?"
She
released his shirt and patted his chest. "Could get out of here."
"I
think we should."
They
rushed back, both now eager to be away from the lake. He helped her up onto her
horse. "I think we found what we came for, anyway-the rock the Dominie
Dirtch
649
was
made from. I think that we need to change our plans."
"What
do you mean?"
"I
think we better get back to Fairfield and look through all those books again,
in the light of what we now know."
"But
what about the vote? The places we've yet to visit?"
"We
were going to have to divide up the men anyway and send them out to watch over
the voting and counting and then return the results to Fairfield. We can send
them now and have the men speak to the people in each place first. There are
men among them I would trust to speak for us. They've heard what we've had to
say enough times.
"We
might as well divide them up here and get them on their way while we get back
to the estate. Besides, we wouldn't do wrong to see to making sure we convince
all the people in Fairfield to vote to join us."
Kahlan
nodded. "Our first responsibility is the chimes. It won't do us any good
to win the vote if the chimes kill everyone."
Richard's
eye was caught by something. He swung down from his saddle and tossed Kahlan
the reins to his horse. He crossed the grass back to the clump of spruce.
"What
is it?" Kahlan called, eager to be off.
Richard
lifted a drying bough. "A saddle. Someone's left their things here, and
covered them to keep them dry."
"Probably
from that horse we saw," she said.
"Maybe
it belongs to a trapper, or something," Richard said. "But it looks
to have been here for a while."
"Well,
unless you plan on stealing somebody's things, Richard, let's get out of
here."
When
the raven let out a call, Richard hurried back to his horse. "Just seems
strange, that's all."
As they
started down the trail, Richard looked over his shoulder. He saw several ravens
circling far up in the sky. He didn't know which one was the
raven-that-wasn't-a-raven. Maybe they all were.
He took
his bow from its place on the saddle and hooked it over his shoulder instead.
650
CHAPTER
57
DALTON
GAZED our THE window of his office as he listened to Stein reporting the number
and location of Imperial Order soldiers now stationed as special Anderith guard
troops inside Anderith. The Dominie Dirtch were as good as in Jagang's hands.
Should Lord Rahl bring his forces-if he even had any close enough-toward
Anderith, he would quickly be a leader without an army to lead,
"The
emperor also sent word that he wishes me to personally express, on his behalf,
his appreciation for the efficient cooperation he has been receiving. From my
men's reports, the Minister looks to have done a remarkable job of taking the
teeth out of the Anderith army. They will present even less of an obstacle than
we thought."
Dalton
looked back over his shoulder, but saw no smirk on the man's face. He put his
boots up on Dalton's desk and leaned back in his chair to clean his fingernails
with a dagger. Stein looked contented.
Dalton
reached over and picked up the useless but valuable little book the woman had
brought up from the library, the book once belonging to Joseph Ander. He set it
on the other side of his desk so Stein's boots wouldn't damage it.
From
what Teresa reported to him, Dalton thought Stein
651
should
have every reason to be contented, what with the number of women living their
daydreams by tattling to eager ears the raw excitement they had found in the
bed of the foreign savage. The more outrageously he treated them, the more
delighted they were to gossip about it.
With
the number of women offering themselves willingly, Dalton found it remarkable
the man would so frequently still turn his lust on the unwilling. He guessed
Stein found the thrill of vanquishing by force more satisfying.
"Yes,
the Anderith army looks real pretty, standing there behind the Dominie
Dirtch." Stein grinned. "But their false pride will be of little use
to them when they must meet the true face of war."
"We
have kept our part of the bargain."
"Believe
me, Campbell, I know the worth of you and the Minister. Farming may be less
glamorous than conquest, but without food, an army grinds to a halt. None of us
wishes to take up the pastime of tending the land, but we wish to continue
eating. We understand your worth in knowing how to keep the system going. You
will be a valuable asset to our cause.
"And
Emperor Jagang wishes me to assure you he looks forward to rewarding such good
works, once he arrives."
Dalton
kept the problems to himself. "When might we expect his arrival?"
"Soon,"
Stein said, dismissing further detail with a shrug. "But he is concerned
about the situation with Lord Rahl. He is leery as to why you would seem to put
faith in an outcome so fickle as the voice of the common people."
"I
must admit, I share his concern." Dalton heaved a sigh. He still wished
Bertrand had chosen a less risky road, but as Dalton had come to learn,
Bertrand Chanboor relished the risky route, much as Stein preferred unwilling
partners.
"But,
as I've explained," Dalton went on, "by such tactics we will be able
to trap Lord Rahl and the Mother Confessor. Without them to lead the enemy
forces, the war will quickly fall into a rout leaving the Midlands a plum for
Jagang's picking."
652
"And
so the emperor is content to let you play this out."
"But,
there are risks involved."
"Risks?
Anything I can do to help?"
Dalton
took his seat, scooting his chair close to his desk.
"I
believe we must do more to discredit the cause of Lord Rahl, but in that, there
is danger. Mother Confessors, after all, have ruled the Midlands for thousands
of years. They have not held sway because they have nice smiles. They are women
with formidable teeth, as it were.
"The
Lord Rahl, too, is said to be a wizard. We must tread with care, lest we force
them into abandoning this vote in favor of action. If that were to happen, it
could ruin the plans in which we all have so much invested."
"I
told you, we have troops in place. Even if they have an army anywhere close,
they can't get it into Anderith, not past the Dominie Dirtch." Stein
chuckled without humor. "But I would be happy to have them try."
"As
would I. The point is, the Lord Rahl and the Mother Confessor are here, and
they are trouble enough."
"I've
told you before, Campbell, you shouldn't worry about magic. The emperor has
clipped the claws of magic."
Dalton
carefully folded his fingers together before himself on the desk. "You say
that often enough, Stein, and as much as I wish to, I find little comfort in
mere words. I, too, could promise things, but you expect results that can be
seen."
Stein
waved his knife. "I've told you before, the emperor intends to end magic
so men of vision can lead the world into a new era. You will be part of that.
Magic's time has passed. It is dying."
"So
is the Sovereign, but he's not yet dead."
Stein
went back to cleaning his nails, paying exaggerated attention to them. He
seemed undaunted by Dalton's doubts and went on to try to dispel them.
"You
will be pleased to know, then, that unlike your beloved Sovereign, the bear of
magic no longer has fangs-it is toothless. It is no longer a weapon to be
feared."
Stein
lifted the corner of his cape made of human scalps. "Those of magic's
talents will contribute to my collection.
653
I take
the scalps while they are still alive, you know. I enjoy their screams while
I'm cutting it off them."
Dalton
was unimpressed by the man's boasting and his attempts to shock, but wished he
knew what Stein was talking about when he alluded to the end of magic. He knew
from Franca's inability to use her gift that something was going on, but he
didn't know what or, more important, the extent to which it was impaired. He
didn't know if Stein was telling the simple truth, or an ignorant version of wishful
thinking layered over some Old World superstition.
Either
way, the time had come to act. They could ill afford to let it go on as it was.
The measure of how far they dared go in showing their opposition to joining
Lord Rahl was the problem Dalton faced. It was necessary to take a stand in
order to fire people into saying no to Lord Rahl, but a weak stand was as good
as- no stand. On the other hand, it was far too dangerous to reach through the
bars and twist the nose of the bear if it still had its teeth and claws.
Dalton
wondered if he might be able to press Stein into being more forthcoming.
"It sounds then as if we have a serious problem."
Stein
looked up. "How so?"
Dalton
opened his hands in a gesture of befuddlement. "If magic is no longer a
weapon, then the Dominie Dirtch, in which we all have invested so much faith,
is of no use, and all our plans will fail. I would call that a serious
problem."
Stein
took his feet from Dalton's desk and slid the knife back into its sheath. Putting
an elbow on the desk, he leaned forward.
"Not
to worry. You see, the thing is, the emperor still has control of his Sisters
of the Dark; their magic works for him. From what they've told us, something
has happened, though. From what I gather, something of magic has gone awry and
caused the power of those on Lord Rahl's side to fail.
"Jagang
has learned that Lord Rahl no longer has magic
654
backing
him. His magic is going to fail. The man is, or soon will be, naked to our
blades."
Dalton
was now at full attention. If it was true, that would change everything. It
would mean he could implement the full extent of his plans at once. It would
mean he could take the necessary action and not have to worry over the
repercussions or even reprisals from Lord Rahl.
Better
yet, Lord Rahl and the Mother Confessor would have to place even more of their
hope in the vote, while at the same time Dalton, without fear of their actions,
insured their loss.
If,
that was, it was true about magic failing.
Dalton
knew one way he might find out.
But
first, the time had come for Dalton to pay a visit to the ailing Sovereign. The
time had come to act. He would do it that very night, before the feast planned
for the next day.
As
hungry as she was, Ann was not looking forward to being fed.
She had
long since been staked to the ground and the grimy tent erected around her, so
she knew it was getting to be about that time. At any moment she expected a
burly Imperial Order soldier to storm in with her bread and water. She didn't
know what had happened to Sister Alessandra; Ann hadn't seen the woman in well
over a week.
The
soldiers disliked the duty of feeding an old woman. She suspected their
comrades made sport of their domestic duty. They would come in, grab her hair
in their fist, and push the bread in her mouth, packing it in with stubby
filthy fingers, as if they were stuffing a goose for roasting. As Ann tried to
swallow the dry mass before she choked, they would start pouring water down her
throat to wash down-the bread.
It was
an unpleasant experience, one over which Ann had
655
no
control. As much as she enjoyed food, she was coming to fear it would be the
end of her.
Once,
the soldier who came to feed her had simply thrown the bread on the ground and
set a wooden bowl of water beside it, as if she were a dog. He seemed proud of
himself in that he had shown her disrespect and saved himself considerable
trouble all at the same time.
He
didn't realize it, but Ann much preferred that method. After he had his laugh
and left, she could flop on her side, squirm close, and eat the bread at her
own pace, even if she didn't have the luxury of wiping off the dirt.
The
tent flap opened. A dark shape stepping in blocked out the campfires beyond.
Ann wondered what it would be: stuffed goose, or dog-eating-off-the-ground. To
her surprise, it was Sister Alessandra, bringing a bowl giving off the aroma of
sausage soup. She even had a candle with her.
Sister
Alessandra pressed the candle into the dirt to the side. The woman was not
smiling. She said nothing. She didn't meet Ann's gaze.
In the
dim candlelight, Ann could see that Alessandra's face was bruised and scraped.
She had a nasty cut on the cheekbone below her left eye, but it looked to be on
the mend. The relatively minor wounds seemed to be a variety of ages, from old
and near healed to freshly inflicted.
Ann
didn't have to ask how the woman came to be in such a condition. Her cheeks and
both sides of her jaw were red and raw from the stubble of countless unshaven
faces. "Alessandra, I'm relieved to see you ... alive. I feared greatly
for you."
Alessandra
raised one shoulder in a gesture of feigned indifference. She wasted no time in
bringing a steaming spoonful of sausage soup to Ann's mouth.
Ann
swallowed before she had time to savor the taste, such was her hunger. But just
the warm feel of it in her stomach was solace.
"I
feared greatly for myself, too," Ann said. "I dreaded those men were
as likely to kill me as get the food stuffed in me."
656
"I
know the feeling," Alessandra said under her breath.
"Alessandra,
are you ... are you all right?"
"Fine."
She seemed to have retreated to an emotionless place.
"You're
not badly injured, then?"
"I'm
better off than some of the others. If we ... if we get hurt, a bone broken, or
something like that, Jagang allows us to use our magic to heal one
another."
"But
healing is Additive Magic."
Sister
Alessandra brought the spoon to Ann's mouth. "That is why I'm lucky; I've
no broken bones, like some of the others. We've tried to help them, to heal
them, but we were unable to, and so they must suffer." She met Ann's gaze.
"A world without magic is a dangerous place."
Ann
wanted to remind the woman that she had told her as much, that the chimes were
loose, and magic-Additive Magic anyway-wouldn't work.
As
Alessandra fed Ann another spoonful, she said, "But I guess you tried to
tell me that, Prelate."
Ann
gave a shrug of her own. "When people tried to convince me the chimes were
loose, I at first wouldn't believe them, either. We have that in common. I
would say that as exceptionally stubborn as you are, Sister Alessandra, there
is hope you could one day be Prelate."
Alessandra,
seemingly against her will, smiled with Ann.
Ann
watched the spoon, with a chunk of sausage, linger in the bowl. "Prelate,
did you fully expect the Sisters of the Light would believe you that magic had
failed and that they would willingly try to escape with you?"
Ann
looked up into Alessandra's eyes. "Not fully, no. Although I hoped they
would trust my word, having always known me as a woman who values truth, I knew
the possibility existed, so great was their fear, that-whether they believed me
or not-they would refuse to leave.
"Slaves,
slaves to anything or anyone, despite how much they abhor it, will often cling
to that slavery out of fear the alternative would be insufferable. Look at a
drunk, a slave
657
to
liquor, who thinks us cruel for trying to get him to abandon his slavery."
"And
what were you planning in the event the Sisters of the Light refused to abandon
their slavery?"
"Jagang
uses them, uses their magic, the same as he uses yours. When the chimes are
banished magic will return and the Sisters will have their power back. Many
people will die at their hands, no matter how unwilling are those hands. If
they refused to cast off their slavery and leave with me, they were to be
killed."
Sister
Alessandra lifted an eyebrow. "My, my, Prelate. We are not so different
after all. That would have been the reasoning of a Sister of the Dark as
well."
"Just
common sense. The lives of a lot of people are at risk." Ann was famished,
and eyed with longing the spoon holding the sausage as it hovered above the
nearly full bowl.
"So,
why were you caught, then?"
Ann
signed. "Because I didn't think they would lie to me, not about something
so important. Though it would be no reason to execute them, it will make the
onerous but necessary task a little easier."
Alessandra
finally fed Ann the spoonful of sausage. This time, Ann made herself chew it
slowly so as to enjoy its flavor.
"You
could still escape with me, Alessandra," Ann said in a quiet tone after
she had finally swallowed.
Alessandra
picked something from the bowl and cast it aside. She stirred the soup again.
"I
told you before, that would not be possible."
"Why?
Because Jagang told you so? Told you he is still in your mind?"
'That's
one reason."
"Alessandra,
Jagang promised you that if you took care of me, he wouldn't send you out to
the tents to whore for his men. You told me that was what he said."
The
woman paused with the spoon, her eyes brimming with tears. "We belong to
His Excellency." With her other hand, she touched the gold ring through
her bottom lip-
658
the
mark of Jagang's slaves. "He can do with us as he wishes."
"Alessandra,
he lied to you. He said he wouldn't do that if you took care of me. He lied.
You can't trust a liar. Not with your future or your life. That was my mistake,
but I wouldn't give a liar a second chance at harming me. If he lied about that
much of it, how much else is he lying about?"
"What
do you mean?"
"About
how you can never escape because he is still in your mind. He is not,
Alessandra. Just as he can't get into my mind, he can't get into yours for now.
Once the chimes are banished, yes, but not now.
"If
you swear loyalty to Richard, then you will be protected even after the chimes
are banished. You can get away, Alessandra. We could do our grisly duty with
the Sisters who lied and chose to stay with another liar, and then
escape."
Sister
Alessandra's voice was as emotionless as her face. "Prelate, you forget, I
am a Sister of the Dark, sworn to the Keeper."
"In
return for what, Alessandra? What has the Keeper of the underworld offered you?
What has he offered that could be better than eternity in the Light?"
"Immortality."
Ann sat
watching the woman's unflinching gaze. Outside, men, some of whom had abused
this helpless five-hundred-year-old Sister of the Dark, laughed and carried on
their nightly amusements. Smells, both fair and foul, drifted in and out of the
tent: sizzling garlic, dung, roasting meat, burning fur, the sweet smell of a
birch log in a nearby fire, stale sweat.
Ann,
too, did not flinch from the gaze.
"Alessandra,
the Keeper is lying to you."
Emotion
returned to the Sister's eyes.
She
stood and poured the nearly full bowl of soup on the ground outside the tent.
Sister
Alessandra, one foot outside, one inside, turned back.
659
"You
can starve for all I care, old woman. I would rather go back to the tents than
listen to your blasphemy."
In her
forlorn solitary silence, in her pain of body and soul, Ann prayed to the
Creator, asking that He give Sister Alessandra a chance to return to the Light.
She prayed, too, for the Sisters of the Light, as lost now as were the Sisters
of the Dark.
From
her place sitting chained in the dark and lonely tent, it seemed the world had
gone mad.
"Dear
Creator, what have you wrought?" Ann wept. "Is it all lies,
too?"
CHAPTER
58
DALTON
RUSHED UP TO the head table and smiled at Teresa. She looked lonely and
forlorn. She did look relieved to see him, though, even though he was late. He
saw too little of her lately. There was no helping it. She understood.
Dalton
kissed her cheek before taking his seat.
The
Minister only acknowledged him with a brief glance. He was busy sharing a lusty
look with a woman at a table to the right of the dining hall. It looked as if
she could be making suggestive gestures with a piece of rolled beef. The
Minister was smiling.
Rather
than being repelled by Bertrand's sexual indul-
660
gences,
many more women were actually attracted to him because of it, even if they had
no intention of acting on that attraction. It seemed to be a quirk of the
female mind that some women were irresistibly drawn to tangible evidence of
sexual virility, regardless of its impropriety. It was a visceral whiff of
danger, something tantalizing but forbidden. The more some men behaved the
rogue, the heavier many women panted.
"I
hope you've not been too bored," Dalton whispered to Teresa, pausing
momentarily to appreciate the glow of her faithful affection.
Other
than his brief smile to Teresa, he was doing his best to maintain his customary
placid face with the fruition of all his work close at hand. He took a long
drink of wine, not tasting it, but impatient for its effects to settle in.
"I've
missed you, that's all. Bertrand has been telling jokes." Teresa blushed.
"But I can't repeat them. Not here, anyway." Her smile, her
mischievous smile, stole onto her face. "Maybe when we get home, I'll tell
you."
He
mimed a smiled, his mind already racing forward to weighty matters. "If I
get in early enough. I have to get a new batch of messages out yet tonight.
Something"-he forced himself to stop drumming his fingers on the table-
"something important, momentous, has happened."
Tantalized,
Teresa leaned forward. "What?"
"Your
hair is growing out well, Tess." It was as long as her present station
allowed it. He couldn't keep himself from hinting. "But I do believe it
may have considerably longer to grow."
"Dalton
..." Her eyes were widening as she considered what he could possibly mean,
but confusion visited her face, too, for she was unable to imagine how the
fulfillment of his long-held ambition was possible, given present
circumstances. "Dalton, has this anything to do with ... with what you
have always told me ..."
His
sober expression took the rest of her words. "I'm sorry, darling, I
shouldn't get ahead of myself. I may be
661
reading
too much into it, anyway. Be patient, you will hear in a few minutes. Best if
news such as this come from the Minister."
Lady Chanboor
glanced briefly to the woman with the rolled meat. The woman, as if doing
nothing more than minding her table companions, pulled her curls across her
face as she returned her gaze to them. Hildemara gave Bertrand a brief,
private, murderous glare before leaning past him toward Dalton.
"What
have you heard?"
Dalton
dabbed wine from his lips and returned the napkin to his lap. He thought it
best to get the perfunctory information out of the way, first. Besides, it
would help put into perspective the importance of what had to be done.
"Lord
Rahl and the Mother Confessor are working from sunup until sundown, visiting as
many places as they can. They are speaking to crowds eager to hear them.
"The
Mother Confessor draws crowds agog to see her, if nothing else. I'm afraid the
people are responding to her with more warmth than we would wish. That she
recently married has won the hearts and love of many. People cheer the happy,
newly wedded couple wherever they go. Country people come from miles around to
the towns where she and Lord Rahl speak."
Folding
her arms, Lady Chanboor muttered a curse to the newlyweds, expressing it in
remarkably vulgar profanity, even for her. Dalton idly wondered at what obscene
attributes she ascribed to him, when he had unknowingly displeased her and
wasn't about. He knew some of the colorful invectives she used about her
husband.
Although
some of the staff knew all too well the petulant side of her, the people at
large believed her so pure that vituperation could not possibly cross her lips.
Hildemara well understood the value of having the support of the people. When
she, as Lady Chanboor, loving wife of the Minister of Culture, champion of
wives and mothers everywhere, toured the countryside to promote her husband's
good works, to say nothing of cultivating their relation-
662
ship
with wealthy backers, she received fawning receptions not unlike the ones the
Mother Confessor was receiving.
Now,
more than ever, she would need to play that part well, were they to succeed.
Dalton
took another drink of wine before going on. "The Mother Confessor and the
Lord Rahl met with the Directors several times, and I hear the Directors have
expressed to them their pleasure with the fair terms of Lord Rahl's offer, and
with his reasoning, in addition to his stated purpose."
Bertrand's
fist tightened. His jaw muscles flexed.
"At
least," Dalton added, "in the company of the Lord Rahl they express
pleasure. Once Lord Rahl left to tour the countryside, the Directors, after
more reasoned thought, had a change of heart."\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0 \x95
Dalton
met the gaze of both the Minister and his wife to check he had their attention
before he went on.
"This
is very fortunate, with what has just happened."
The
Minister studied Dalton's face before letting his gaze wander back to explore
the young lady. "And what just happened?"
Dalton
took Teresa's hand under the table.
"Minister
Chanboor, Lady Chanboor, I regret to inform you the Sovereign has died."
Recoiling
with the shock of the news, Teresa gasped, before putting her napkin to her
face so people wouldn't see her sudden tears of grief. Teresa was loath to let
people see her cry. .
Bertrand's
intent gaze locked on Dalton's. "I thought he was getting better."
It was
a statement of suspicion-not that he would be at all against the Sovereign's
death. Suspicion because he was unsure Dalton would have the wherewithal to
accomplish such a thing, and more than that, as to why Dalton would take such a
bold step, if indeed he had.
Although
the Minister without doubt privately would be delighted that the old Sovereign
had vacated his position in such a timely fashion, any hint of his demise being
by other
663
than
natural causes could compromise everything they had worked for just as they
stood at the threshold of victory.
Dalton
leaned toward the Minister, not shying from the innuendo. "We have
trouble. Too many people are willing to mark a circle to have us all joined
with Lord Rahl. We need to make this a personal choice, between our loving
benevolent Sovereign and a man who may have evil in his heart for our people.
"As
we have previously discussed, we need to be able to deliver to... our backer,
on commitments already made. We can no longer afford the risk this vote
presents. We must now take a more forceful stand against joining with Lord
Rahl, despite the risk that course holds."
Dalton
lowered his voice even more. "We need you to take such a stand with the
weight of the words of the Sovereign. You must be the Sovereign, and put voice
to those words."
A
satisfied smile spread on Bertrand's face. "Dalton, my loyal and
resourceful aide, you have just earned yourself a very important appointment to
the soon-to-be vacant office of Minister of Culture."
Everything,
at long last, was clicking into place.
Hildemara's
expression was stunned-but pleased- disbelief. She knew the layers of
protection around the Sovereign; she knew because she had tried but failed to
penetrate them.
By the
look on her face, she was no doubt envisioning herself as wife to the
Sovereign, worshiped as near to a good spirit in the world of life as a person
could get, her words profoundly more weighty than those of the mere wife to the
Minister, a station that only moments before had been lofty, but now seemed
paltry and unworthy of her.
Hildemara
leaned past her husband to gently seize Dalton's wrist. "Dalton, my boy,
you are better than I thought you were-and I thought very much of you. I never
would have guessed it possible ..." She left the deed unspoken.
"I
do my duty, Lady Chanboor, no matter the difficulty. I know results are all
that matter."
664
She
gave his wrist another squeeze before releasing him. He had never seen her so
genuinely appreciative of anything he accomplished. Claudine Winthrop's end had
not even brought him a nod of approval.
Dalton
turned to his wife. He had been careful; she hadn't 'heard his whispered words.
In her grief, she wasn't even paying attention. He put a consoling arm around
her shoulders.
'Tess,
are you all right?"
"Oh,
Dalton, the poor man," she sobbed. "Our poor Sovereign. May the
Creator keep his soul safe in the exalted place he has earned in the
afterlife."
Bertrand
leaned around behind Dalton to compassionately touch Teresa's arm. "Well
put, my dear. Well put. You have expressed perfectly the loving sentiments of
everyone."
Bertrand
affected his most somber expression as he rose from his chair. Rather than
lifting a hand as he usually did, he stood in silence, head bowed, hands
clasped before him. Hildemara lifted her finger and the harp fell silent.
Laughter and talking trailed off as people realized something out of the
ordinary was taking place.
"My
good people of Anderith, I have just received the most sorrowful news. As of
tonight, we are a people lost and without a Sovereign."
The
room, rather than breaking into whispering, as Dalton expected, fell into a
stunned, dead silence. Dalton then realized, for the first time, really, that
he had been born and lived his entire life under the reign of the old
Sovereign. An era had ended. Many in the room had to be thinking the same
thing.
Bertrand,
every eye on him, blinked as if to hold back tears. His voice, as he went on,
was mournful and quiet.
"Let
us all now bow our heads and pray the Creator takes the soul of our beloved
Sovereign to the place of honor he has earned with his good works- And then I
must leave you to your dinner as I forgo mine to immediately call the Directors
to their duty.
"Considering
the urgency of the situation with both Lord
665
Rahl
and Emperor Jagang vying for our allegiance; and with the dark cloud of war
hanging over us, I will petition, on the behalf of the people of .Anderith,
that the Directors name a new Sovereign this very night, and, whoever he might
be, urge that on the morrow that mere man be consecrated as our new Sovereign,
linking our people directly once more to the Creator Himself so that we can at
last have the direction our old and faithful Sovereign, because of his age and
ill health, was unable to provide."
Teresa
clutched his sleeve. "Dalton," she whispered as she stared at
Bertrand Chanboor in wide-eyed reverence, "Dalton, do you realize he could
very well be our next Sovereign."
Dalton,
not wanting to spoil the sincerity of her epiphany, laid a hand gently on her
back. "We can hope, Tess."
"We
can pray, too," she whispered, her eyes glistening with tears.
Bertrand
spread his hands before the wet eyes of the frightened crowd.
"Please,
good people, bow your heads with me in prayer."
Dalton,
pacing near the door, took Franca's arm as soon as she stepped into the room.
He shut the door.
"My
dear Franca, so good to see you. And to get a chance to talk with you. It has
been a while. Thank you for coming."
"You
said it was important."
"Yes,
it is." Dalton held out a hand in invitation. "Please, have a
seat."
Franca
smoothed her dress under her as she sat in a padded chair before his desk.
Dalton leaned back against the desk, wanting to be closer to her, to appear
less formal than sitting behind his desk.
He felt
something under his backside. He saw what it was
666
and
pushed the little book of Joseph Ander's back on his desk, out of his way.
Franca
fanned her face. "Could you open a window, please, Dalton? It's
frightfully stuffy in here."
Though
it was just dawn, the sun yet to break the horizon, she was right; it was
already hot and promised to be a stifling day. Smiling, Dalton went behind his
desk and lifted the window all the way. He glanced over his shoulder, and at
her gestured insistence, opened two more windows.
"Thank
you, Dalton. You are kind to indulge me. Now, what's so important?"
He came
back round the desk to once more lean back against it as he gazed down at her.
"Were you able to hear anything at the feast last night? It was an
important evening, what with the tragic announcement. It would be helpful if
you were able to report on what you heard."
Franca,
looking distressed, opened a little purse hung round her waist, hidden under a
layer of brown wool. She withdrew four gold coins and held them out.
"Here.
This is what you've paid me since I've... since I've had the difficulty with my
gift. I've not earned it. I've no right to keep your money. I'm sorry you had
to call me all the way in here because I didn't return your payment
sooner."
Dalton
knew how much she needed the money. With her gift not working, neither did she.
Franca was going broke. With no man in her life, she had to earn a living or
starve. For her to return the money he'd paid her was a serious statement.
Dalton
pushed her hand away. "No, no, Franca, I don't want your money-"
"Not
my money. I've done nothing to earn it. I've no right to it."
She
offered the coins again. Dalton took her hand in both his and held it tenderly.
"Franca,
we're old and dear friends. I'll tell you what. If you don't think you've
earned the money, then I will give you the opportunity to earn it right
now."
667
"I
told you, I can't-"
"It
doesn't involve using your gift. It involves something else you have to
offer."
She
drew back with a gasp. "Dalton! You've a wife! A beautiful young
bride-"
"No,
no," Dalton said, caught off guard. "No, Franca. I'm sorry if I ever
led you to believe I would ... I'm sorry if I wasn't clear."
Dalton
found Franca an intriguing, attractive woman, even if she was a little older,
and quite odd. Though it hadn't been in his mind, and even though he would not
entertain such an offer, he was nevertheless disappointed to find she thought
the idea repulsive.
She
eased back into her seat. "Then what is it you want?"
"The
truth."
"Ah.
Well, Dalton, there's truth, and then there's truth. Some more trouble than
others."
"Wise
words."
"Which
truth is it you seek?"
"What's
wrong with your magic?"
"It
doesn't work."
"I
know that. I want to know why."
"Thinking
of going into the wizard business, Dalton?"
He took
a breath and clasped his hands. "Franca, it's important. I need to know why
your magic doesn't work."
"Why?"
"Because
I need to know if it's just you, or if there is something wrong with magic in
general. Magic is an important element to the life of many in Anderith. If it
doesn't work I need to know about it so this office can be prepared."
Her
scowl eased. "Oh."
"So,
what's wrong with magic, and how universal is the difficulty?"
She
retreated into a gloom. "Can't say."
"Franca,
I really need to know. Please?"
She
peered up at him. "Dalton, don't ask me-"
"I'm
asking."
She sat
for a time, staring off at the floor. At last she took
668
one of
his hands and pressed the four gold coins into it. She stood to look him in the
eye.
"I
will tell you, but I won't take money for it. This is the kind of thing I won't
take money for. I will only tell you because I... because you are a
friend."
Dalton
thought she looked as if he had just sentenced her to death. He motioned to the
chair and she sank back into it.
"I
appreciate it, Franca. I really do."
She
nodded without looking up.
"There's
something wrong with magic. Since you don't know about magic, I'll not confuse
you with the details. The important thing for you to know is that magic is
dying. Just as my magic is gone, so is all magic. Dead and gone."
"But
why? Is there nothing that can be done?"
She
thought it over awhile. "No. I don't think so. I can't be sure, but I can
tell you that I'm pretty sure the First Wizard himself died trying to fix the
problem."
Dalton
was stunned by such a thing. It was unthinkable. Though it was true he didn't
know anything about magic, he knew of many of its benefits to people, such as
Franca's healing-not only the body, but the comfort she brought to troubled
souls.
He
found this more momentous than the mere death of a man who was Sovereign. This
was the death of much more.
"But
will it come back? Will something happen to, to, I don't know ... heal the
problem?"
"I
don't know. Like I said, a man far more knowledgeable . about it than I wasn't able
to reverse the difficulty, so I tend to think it irreversible. It's possible it
could come back, but I fear it is already too late for that to happen."
"And
what do you believe the consequences of an event of this nature will be?"
Franca,
losing her color, said only, "I can't even guess."
"Have
you looked into this? I mean, really looked into it?"
"I've
been secluded, studying everything I could, trying everything I could. Last
night was the first night I've even
669
been
out in public for weeks." She looked up with a frown. "When the
Minister announced the death of the Sovereign, he said something about the Lord
Rahl. What was that about?"
Dalton
realized the woman was so out of touch with the day-to-day business of life in
Anderith that she didn't even know about Lord Rahl and the vote. With this
news, he now had urgent matters he had to attend to.
"Oh,
you know, there are always parties contending for the goods Anderith
produces." He took her hand and helped her up. "Franca, thank you for
coming and for confiding in me with this news. You have been more help than you
could know."
She
seemed flustered to find herself being rushed out, but he couldn't help it. He
had to get to work.
She
paused, her face inches from his, and looked him in the eye. It was an
arresting gaze-power or no power. "Promise me, Dalton, that I won't come
to regret telling you the truth."
"Franca,
you can count-"
Dalton
spun at a sudden racket behind him. Startled, he drew Franca back. A huge black
bird had come in the open window. A raven, he believed it to be, although he
had never seen one this close.
The
thing sprawled across his desk, its wing tips nearly reaching each end of it.
It used its wide-spread wings and its beak to try to help get its footing on
the flat, smooth leather covering. It let out a squawk of angry frustration or
perhaps surprise at its smooth and awkward roost.
Dalton
rushed around the side of the desk, to the silver scroll stand, and drew his
sword.
Franca
tried to stay his arm. "Dalton, don't! It's bad luck to kill a
raven!"
Her
intervention, and the bird unexpectedly ducking, caused him to miss an easy
kill.
The
raven let out a racket of squawking and screeching as it scrambled to the side
of his desk. Dalton gently, but forcefully, pushed Franca aside and drew back
his sword.
670
The
raven, seeing with its big eye what was coming, snatched up the little book in
its beak. Holding tight the book once belonging to Joseph Ander, it sprang to
wing inside the room.
Dalton
slammed shut the window behind his desk, the one the bird had come in through.
The bird came for him. Claws raked his scalp as he slammed shut the second
window, and then the third.
Dalton
took a swing at the fury of flapping feathers, just barely contacting something
with his sword. The bird, cawing loud enough to hurt his ears, shot toward the
window.
Dalton
and Franca both covered their faces with an arm as the window shattered,
sending shards of glass and bits of window mullion everywhere.
When he
looked, he saw the bird glide to the branch of a nearby tree. It grasped the
branch, stumbled, and grasped again, finally getting its footing. It looked to
be injured.
Dalton
tossed his sword on the desk and seized a lance from the display with the Ander
battle flags. With a grunt of effort, he launched the lance through the broken
window at the bird.
The
raven, seeing what he was about, took to wing with the book. The lance just
missed it. The bird vanished into the early-morning sky.
"Good,
you didn't kill it," Franca said. "That would have been bad
luck."
Dalton,
red-faced, pointed at the desk. "It stole the book!"
Franca
shrugged. "Ravens are curious birds. They often steal things to take, to a
mate. They mate for life, ravens."
Dalton
tugged at his clothes, straightening them. "Is that so."
"But
the female will cheat on the male. Sometimes, while he is out collecting twigs
for their nest, she will let another male take her."
"Is
that so?" he said, miffed. "And why should I care?"
Franca
shrugged. "Just thought it an interesting fact you would like to
know." She stepped closer, surveying the damage to the window. "Was
the book valuable?"
671
Dalton
carefully brushed bits of glass from his shoulders. "No. Fortunately it
was just a useless old book, written in a long-dead language no one nowadays
understands."
"Ah,"
she said. "Well, there is that much good in it. Be thankful it was not
valuable."
Dalton
put his hands on his hips. "Look at this mess. Just look at it." He
picked up a few black feathers and tossed them out the broken window. He saw
there was a crimson drop on his desk. "At least it paid with its blood for
its treasure."
CHAPTERS
9
"THE
TIME HAS COME," Bertrand Chanboor, newly installed and consecrated
Sovereign of Anderith, called to the immense crowd spread out below the
balcony, overflowing the square into surrounding streets, "to take a stand
against hatred!"
Since
he knew the cheering would go on for a time, Dalton took the opportunity to
glance down at Teresa. She smiled bravely up at him as she dabbed her eyes. She
had been up most of the night, praying for the soul of the dead Sovereign, and
for strength to the new one.
Dalton
had been up most of the night strategizing with Bertrand and Hildemara,
planning what they would say.
672
Bertrand
was in his element. Hildemara was in her glory. Dalton had the reins.
The
offensive had begun.
"As
your Sovereign, I cannot allow this cruel injustice to be thrust upon the
people of Anderith! The Lord Rahl is from D'Hara. What does he know of our
people's needs? How can he come here, for the first time, and expect we would
turn our lives over to his mercy?"
The
crowd booed and hissed. Bertrand let it go on for a time.
"What
do you think will happen to all you fine Haken people if Lord Rahl has his way?
Do you think he would give a moment's care to you? Do you think he would bother
to wonder if you have clothes, or food, or work? We have labored to see to it
you can find work, with laws like the Winthrop Fair Employment Law designed to
bring the bounty of Anderith to all people."
He
paused to let the people cheer him on.
"We
have been working against hatred. We have struggled against people who don't
care if children starve. We have worked to make life for all the people of
Anderith better. What has Lord Rahl done? Nothing! Where was he when our
children were starving? Where was he when men could not find work?
"Do
we really want all our hard work and advancements to be suddenly wiped away by
this heartless man and his privileged wife, the Mother Confessor? Just when we
are reaching the most critical point in our reforms? When we have so much work
yet to do for the people of Anderith? What does the Mother Confessor know about
starving children? Has she ever cared for a child? No!"
When he
started in again, he pounded his fist against the balcony railing to make each
point. "The plain truth is that Lord Rahl cares only for his magic! His
own greed is the reason he has come here! He has come to use our land for his
own greed!
"He
would poison our waters with his vile conjuring! No
673
more
could we fish, because his magic would make our lakes, our rivers, and. our
ocean into dead waters while his poisonous magic works its way for him to
create his gruesome weapons of war!"
People
were shocked and angered to learn such things. Dalton gauged the reaction to
each word so that he might hone them for the speeches to come, and for the
messages he would send out to blanket the land.
"He
creates evil creatures so that he may press his unjustified war. Perhaps you
have heard of people dying strange, unexplained deaths. Do you think it some
random event? No! It is the magic of Lord Rahl! He creates these vile creatures
of magic and then turns them loose to see how well they kill! These deadly
creatures burn to death pr drown innocent people. Others are dragged helpless
by these marauders of the night up to rooftops and thrown to their
deaths."
Spellbound,
people gasped.
"He
uses our people to hone his dark craft for war!
"His
dark sorcery would fill the air with a vile haze that would seep into every
home! Do you want your children breathing Lord Rahl's magic? Who knows the
agonizing deaths of innocent children, breathing in his careless incantations?
Who knows the deformities they will suffer should they swim in a pond he has
used to steep a spell.
"This
is what we invite should we fail to stand against this rape of our land! He
would let us die a choking death so that he can bring in his powerful friends
to steal our wealth. That is the true reason he comes to us!"
People
were now properly alarmed.
Dalton
leaned toward Bertrand and whispered out of the side of his mouth. "The
air and the water frightened them the most. Reinforce it."
Bertrand
gave him an almost imperceptible nod.
'This
is what it means, my friends, to let this dictator loose among us. The very air
we struggle to breathe will be tainted with his sinister magic, the water befouled
with his
674
witchcraft.
While he and his cohorts laugh at the suffering of honest, hardworking people,
Ander and Haken alike, they grow rich at our expense. He will use our pure air
and clean water to grow his foul things of magic to press a war no one
wants!"
People
were shouting in anger, shaking their fists, to hear their Sovereign reveal
these ugly truths. There was horror, fear, and revulsion, but mostly there was
anger. For some, to their disillusionment with Lord Rahl and the Mother Confessor
was added the indignation of having been taken for fools, while for others
their suspicions about such heartless, powerful people were merely confirmed.
Bertrand
held up a hand. "The Imperial Order has offered to purchase our goods at
prices far above those we now receive." They applauded and whistled.
"Lord
Rahl would steal it from you! That is your choice, good people, to listen to
the lies of this vile magician from the distant D'Hara who would trick you into
giving away your rights, who would use our land to propagate his things of vile
magic to press on with a needless war, who would let your children starve or
die from the harmful effects of his mad spells, or to sell what you grow and
produce to the Imperial Order and enrich your families as never before."
Now the
crowd was truly worked up. People, with fresh goodwill toward their new
Sovereign, were for the first time hearing solid reasons to reject Lord Rahl.
More than that, solid reason to fear him. But best of all, solid reasons to
hate him.
Dalton
was crossing some items from the list in his hand when he saw they weren't as
effective, and circling others that received the biggest reactions. As he and
Bertrand knew it would, the word "children" provoked the biggest
reaction, inciting a near riot at the terrible things about to happen to them.
The mere mention of the word "children" caused reason to evaporate
from people's heads.
War,
too, had the effect they had expected. People were terrified to learn it was
Lord Rahl pressing the war, and that
675
there
was no need for it. People would want peace at any cost. When they discovered
the cost, they would pay. It would be too late for them to do otherwise.
"We
must get past this, my people, put it in the past, and get on with the business
of Anderith. We have much work to do. Now is not the time to give up all we
have accomplished to become a slave state to this magician from afar, a man
obsessed with wealth and power, a man who only wants to drag us all into his
foolish war. There could be peace, if he would only give peace a chance-but he
won't.
"I
know such a man would cast aside our traditions and religion, leaving you
without a Sovereign, but I fear for you, not myself. I have so much yet to do.
I have so much love to give to the people of Anderith. I have been blessed, and
I have so much to give back to the community.
"I
beg of you, I beg of you as proud people of Anderith all, to show your contempt
for this sly demon from D'Hara, show him you see his wicked ways.
"The
Creator Himself, through me, demands you stand up to Lord Rahl when you vote
your conscience by putting an X through his evil! Ex through his tricks! Ex
through his lies! Ex through his tyranny! Ex through him and the Mother
Confessor, too!"
The
square roared. The buildings around shook with it as it went on and on.
Bertrand held his arms up in front of himself, crossing them to make a big X
everyone could see as they cheered him.
Hildemara,
at his side, applauded as she fixed him with her customary public adoring gaze.
When
the crowd finally quieted as he raised a silencing hand, Bertrand held the hand
out to his wife, introducing her to the people. They cheered for her almost as
long as for him.
Hildemara,
pleased beyond measure with her new role, spread her hands for quiet. She got
it almost instantly.
"Good
people of Anderith, I cannot tell you how proud I am to be the wife of this
great man-"
676
She was
drowned out by the roaring cheer. Her outstretched arms finally succeeded in,
again bringing silence.
"I
cannot tell you how I've watched as my husband has worked his heart out for the
people of Anderith. Caring not for recognition, unnoticed, he has labored
tirelessly for the people, without regard even to his own rest or nourishment.
"When
I would ask him to rest, he would say to me, 'Hildemara, as long as there are
hungry children, I cannot rest.' "
As the
crowd again went wild, Dalton had to turn away to take a sip of wine. Teresa
clutched his arm.-
"Dalton,"
she whispered, "the Creator has answered our prayers to deliver us
Bertrand Chanboor to be Sovereign."
He
almost laughed, but saw the awe in her eyes as she looked at the man. Dalton
sighed to himself. It was not the Creator who delivered them Bertrand, but
Dalton himself.
"Tess,
wipe your eyes. The best is yet to come."
Hildemara
went on. "And for the sake of those children, I ask that every one of you
reject the hate and division Lord Rahl would peddle to our people!
"Reject
the Mother Confessor, too, for what does she know of common people? She is a
woman born into advantage, born into wealth. What does she know of hard work?
Show her that her birthright of dominance is at an end! Show her we will not
willingly submit to her hateful treatment of poor working people! Show her we
reject her privileged life! Ex through the Mother Confessor and her pompous
demands of people she doesn't even know!
"I
say the Lord Rahl and the Mother Confessor have enough wealth! Don't give them,
yours, too! They've no right to it!"
Dalton
yawned and rubbed his eyes as the cheering turned to chanting of the name
Chanboor. He couldn't remember sleeping. He'd had to twist the arm of one of
the Directors to make it unanimous. Such unanimity inferred divine intervention
on behalf of the chosen Sovereign, and served to strengthen his mandate.
677
When at
last Bertrand again stepped up and addressed the crowd, Dalton was only half
listening until he heard his name mentioned.
"This
is why, among other reasons too numerous, to mention, I have personally
involved myself in the selection process. It is with special pride I introduce
to you the new Minister of Culture, a man who will protect and serve as well as
any who have gone before him"-Bertrand held out his hand-"Dalton
Campbell."
Beside
him, Teresa fell to her knees, bowing her head to Bertrand.
"Oh,
Sovereign, Your Greatness, thank you for recognizing my husband. Bless you for
what you have done for him."
Rather
than feeling proud of the appointment, Dalton felt a bit let down. Teresa knew
the work he put in to getting where he had gotten, but now she ascribed it all
to the greatness of Bertrand Chanboor.
Such
was the power of the Sovereign's word. As he looked out over the crowd of
cheering people, and thought about the words he would say to back Bertrand and
Hildemara, he guessed it was just as well, for the people, too, would be just
as swayed by the Sovereign's stand on the coming vote.
But
there was yet more to come. Dalton had yet to unleash the final element.
The
smell, like a prisoner rushing to escape, hit him full-on as the door was
dragged open. It was too dark to see. Dalton snapped his fingers, and the big
Ander guards yanked the torches from the rusty brackets and brought them along.
"Are
you sure he's still alive?" Dalton asked. "Do you ever check?"
"He's
alive, Minister."
Dalton
was momentarily confused, and then staggered by
678
the
title. Whenever someone addressed him by the title it took a split second to
realize they meant him. Just the sound of it, Minister of Culture, Dalton
Campbell, left him reeling.
The
guard held out the torch. "Over here, Minister Campbell."
"Dalton
stepped over men so filthy they looked nearly invisible against the
greasy-black floor. Fetid water ran through a depression in the center of the
blackened brick. Where it came into the room it provided drinking water, such
as it was. Where it went out it was a latrine. The walls, the floor, the men,
were alive with vermin.
At the
far side of the room, across the foul water, a small barred window, about head
height and too small for a man to crawl through, opened onto an alley. If
family or friends cared if the prisoners lived, they could come to the alley
and feed them.
Because
the men's arms and feet were secured in wooden blocks to restrain them, they
couldn't fight one another for food. They could do little more than lie on the
floor. They couldn't walk because of-the blocks; at best they could hop a short
distance. If they could straighten enough, they could put their mouth up near
the window and receive food. If no one fed them, they died.
All the
prisoners were naked. The torchlight reflected off greasy-black bodies, and he
saw that one of the-prisoners was a skinny old woman without teeth. Dalton
wasn't even sure some of the men were alive. They showed no reaction to the men
stepping over them.
"I'm
surprised he's alive," Dalton said to the guard.
"He
has those who believe in him, still. They come every day and feed him. He
speaks to them, through the window, after they feed him. They sit and listen to
him ramble on, as if what he had to say were important."
Dalton
had no idea the man still had his followers; it was a bonus. With ready
followers, it would take little time to have the movement under way.
A guard
dipped a torch to point. "There he is, Minister Campbell. That's the
fellow."
679
The
guard kicked the man lying on his side. The head turned their way. Not fast,
not slow, but deliberate. Rather than the cowed look Dalton expected, one fiery
eye glared up.\xA0\xA0\xA0 .
"Serin
Rajak?"
"That's
right," the man growled. "What do you want?"
Dalton
squatted down beside the man. He had to make a second attempt at drawing a
breath. The stench was overpowering.
"I've
just been appointed Minister of Culture, Master Rajak. Only today. As my first
act, I've come to right the injustice done you."
Dalton
saw then that the man was missing an eye. He had a badly healed sunken scar
where it had once been.
"Injustice.
The world is full of injustice. Magic is loose to harm people. Magic has put me
here. But I've not given in to it. No sir, I've not. I'll never give in to the
evil of magic.
"I
gladly gave an eye in the cause. Lost it to a witch. If you expect me to
renounce my holy war against the vile purveyors of magic, you can just leave me
here. Leave me, do you hear? Leave me! I'll never give in to them!"
Dalton
backed away a little as the man floundered wildly on the floor, yanking at
restraints that even someone who was only half crazy could see would never
surrender their grip to his trying. He thrashed until fresh blood colored his
wrists.
"I'll
not renounce the struggle against magic! Do you hear? I'll not give in to those
who inflict magic on those of us who worship the Creator!"
Dalton
put a restraining hand on the man's greasy shoulder.
"You
misunderstand, sir. Magic is doing great damage to our land. People are dying
from fires and drowning. People, for no reason, are leaping off buildings and
bridges-"
"Witches!"
"That
is what we fear-"
680
"Witches
cursing people! If you fools would only listen, I tried to warn you! I tried to
help! I tried to rid the land of them!"
"That's
why I'm here, Serin. I believe you. We need your help. I've come to release
you, and beg you help us."
The
white of the man's one eye as he stared up was a beacon in the inky night of
filth.
"Praise
the Creator," he whispered. "At last. At last I've been called to do
His work."
CHAPTER
60
RICHARD
WAS STUNNED BY the sight. The wide thoroughfare was packed with people, nearly
all carrying candles, a glowing flood of faces washing up Fairfield's broad
main avenue. They flowed around the trees and benches in the center between the
two sides of the road, making them look like treed islands.
It was
just turning dark. The afterglow at the horizon in the western sky, behind the
peaks of distant mountains showing through a thin gap in the gathering clouds,
was a deep purple with a pink blush. Overhead, leaden clouds had been gathering
all afternoon. The deep rumble of sporadic thunder could be heard in the
distance. The humid air smelled damp while at the same time dust churned up by
681
the
hooves of the horses rose to choke the air. Occasionally, there fell an errant
drop of rain, fat and ripe with the promise of more to follow.
D'Haran
soldiers surrounded Richard, Kahlan, and Du Chaillu in a ring, of steel. The
mounted men all around them reminded Richard of a boat, floating in the sea of
faces. The soldiers skillfully refused to give way without looking like they
were forcing people, aside. The people ignored them; their attention seemed to
be on getting where they were going, or maybe it was just too dark for the
people to recognize them, thinking they were part of the Anderith army.
The
Baka Tau Mana blade masters had vanished. They did that, sometimes. Richard
knew they were simply taking up strategic positions in case of trouble. Du
Chaillu yawned. It was the end of a long day of traveling that saw them finally
returning to Fairfield.
Richard
didn't like the looks of what he saw, and led everyone with him off the main
avenue packed with people to a deserted street not far from the main city
square. In the gathering gloom he dismounted. He wanted to get a closer look,
but didn't want people to see him there with all the soldiers. Good as his men
were, they were no match for the tens of thousands of people in the streets. A
colony of tiny ants, after all, could overpower a lone insect many times their
size.
Richard
left most of the men behind to wait and watch the horses while he took Kahlan
and a few men with him to see what was happening. Du Chaillu didn't ask if she
could come along, she simply did. Jiaan, having scouted the area to his
satisfaction and found it reasonably safe, joined them. In the shadows of
two-story buildings to either side of a north-south street opening onto the
square, they watched unnoticed.
A
masonry platform with a squat stone railing across the front sat at the head of
the square. From it, public announcements were made. Before they went away,
Richard had spoken there to interested, earnest people. Richard and Kahlan had
come into Fairfield on their way back, intending
682
to
speak again at the square before they went on to the estate. It was urgent to
start the tedious task of combing through all the books either by or about
Joseph Ander, searching for a key to stopping the chimes, but Richard had
wanted to reinforce the positive things he had told these people before.
In the
last few days the chimes had grown worse. They seemed to be everywhere. Richard
and Kahlan had been able to stop some of their own men, overcome with the
irresistible call of death, just before they leaped into fire, or slipped into
water. They hadn't been in time for others. None of them had been getting much
sleep.
The
gathered multitude started chanting.
"No
more war. No more war. No more war." It was a dull drone, deep and
insistent, like the quaking of the distant thunder.
Richard
thought it a good sentiment, one he wholeheartedly embraced, but he was
disturbed by the anger in people's eyes, and the tone in their voices as they
chanted it. It went on for a time, like thunder booming in from the plains,
building, growing.
A man
near the platform held up his young girl on his shoulders for the people to
see. "She has something to say! Let her speak! Please! Hear my
child!"
The
crowd called out encouragement. The girl, ten or twelve years old, climbed the
steps at the side and, looking determined, marched across the platform to stand
at the rail. The crowd quieted to hear her.
"Please,
dear Creator, hear our prayers. Keep Lord Rahl from making war," she said
in a voice powered by simplistic adolescent zeal. She looked to her father. He
nodded and she went on. "We don't want his war. Please, dear Creator, make
Lord Rahl give peace a chance."
Richard
felt as if an arrow of ice had pierced his heart. He wanted to explain to the
child, explain a thousand things, but he knew she would not understand a one of
them. Kahlan's hand on his back was cold comfort.
Another
girl, maybe a year or two younger, climbed the
683
steps
to join the first. "Please, dear Creator, make Lord Rahl give peace a
chance."
A line
was forming, parents bearing children of all ages to the steps. They all had
similar messages. Most stepped forward and simply said, "Give peace a
chance," some not seeming to even comprehend the words they spoke before
they returned to proud parents.
It was
plain to Richard that the children had been practicing the words all day. The
words were not the language of children. That hardly softened the hurt, knowing
they believed it."
Some of
the children were reluctant, some were nervous, but most seemed proud and happy
to be part of the great event. By the passion in their voices, he could tell
the older ones believed they were speaking profound words that had a chance to
alter history, and avert what was, to them, a pointless loss of life, a disaster
for nothing of any good.
A young
boy asked, "Dear Creator, why does Lord Rahl want to hurt children? Make
him give peace a chance."
The
crowd went wild cheering him. At seeing the reaction, he repeated it, and again
it was cheered. Many in the crowd were weeping.
Richard
and Kahlan shared a look beyond words. It was obvious to them both that this
was no spontaneous .outpouring of sentiment; this was a groomed and rehearsed
message. They had been getting reports of this sort of thing, but to see it
made his blood run cold.
A man
Richard recognized as a Director named Prevot finally stepped up onto the
platform.
"Lord
Rahl, Mother Confessor," the man shouted out over the crowd, "if you
could hear me now, I would ask, why would you bring your vile magic to our
peace-loving people? Why would you try to drag us into your war, a war we don't
want?
"Listen
to the children, for theirs are the words of wisdom!
"There
is no reason to resort to conflict before dialogue. If you cared about the lives
of innocent children, you would
684
sit
down with the Imperial Order and resolve your differences. The Order is
willing, why are you not? Could it be you want this war so you might conquer
what isn't yours? So you may enslave those who reject you?
"Listen
to the wise words of all these children and please, in the name of all that is
good, give peace a chance!"
The
crowd took up the chant, "Give peace a chance. Give peace a chance. Give
peace a chance." The man let it go on for a time, and then started in
again.
"Our
new Sovereign has much work to do for us! We desperately need his guiding hand.
Why must Lord Rahl insist on distracting our Sovereign from the work of the
people? Why would Lord Rahl put our children at such great peril?
"For
his greed!" the man shouted in answer to his own questions. "For his
greed!"
Kahlan
put a comforting hand on Richard's shoulder. He felt little comfort. He was
watching all his work being consumed by the heat from the flame of lies.
"Dear
Creator," Director Prevot called out, lifting his clasped hands to the
sky, "we give thanks for our new Sovereign. A man of peerless talent and
unrivaled devotion, the most ethical Sovereign ever to reign over us. Please,
dear Creator, give him strength against the wicked ways of Lord Rahl."
Director
Prevot spread his arms. "I ask you, good people, to consider this man from
afar. A man who took the Mother Confessor of all the Midlands to be his
wife."
The
crowd grumbled in growing displeasure-the Mother Confessor, after all, was
their Mother Confessor.
"Yet
this man, this man who shouts for all to hear of his moral leadership, of his
desire for what is right, already has another wife! Wherever he goes, he takes
her, too, fat with his child! Yet as this other wife still carries his unborn
child, he marries the Mother Confessor, and drags her with him, too, as his
concubine! How many more women will this sinful man take to sire his wicked
offspring? How many bastard children has he created here, in Anderith? How
685
many of
our women have fallen to his boundless lust?"
The
crowd was genuinely shocked. Besides the moral implications, this was a
disgrace to the Mother Confessor.
"This
other woman proudly admits being Lord Rahl's wife, and further confirms it to
be his child! What kind of man is this?
"Lady
Chanboor was so shocked by this uncivilized conduct she took to her bed,
weeping, to recover her senses! The Sovereign is beside himself with the
scandal of such behavior being brought into Anderith. They both ask that you
reject this rutting, pig from D'Hara!"
Du
Chaillu pulled on Richard's sleeve. "This is not true. I will go explain
it to them, so they may see it is not evil, as this man says. I will explain
it."
Richard
put a restraining hand on her. "You're doing no such thing. These people
wouldn't listen."
Jiaan
spoke in heated words. "Our spirit woman is not a woman who would be
immoral. She must explain that she has acted by the law."
"Jiaan,"
Kahlan said, "Richard and I know the truth. You and Du Chaillu and the
others with you, you all know the truth. That is what matters. These people
have no ears for the truth.
"This
is how tyrants win the will of the people: with lies."
Having
seen enough, Richard was about to turn to go when a bright orange whoosh of
fire erupted out in the crowd. A candle, presumably, ignited a girl's dress.
She let out a piercing scream. Her hair caught fire.
By the
speed of the fire, Richard realized it was no accident.
The
chimes were among them.
Not far
away, a man's clothes caught flame. The crowd went into a terrible fright,
screaming in fear that Lord Rahl was using magic against them.
It was
a frightening, sickening sight, seeing the girl and the man flailing as
crackling flames raced up their clothes, the sizzling fire catching as if they
had been dunked in pitch, as if the fire were a thing alive.
686
The
crowd scattered in panic, knocking both old and young sprawling. Parents tried
to cover the burning girl with a shirt to put out the fire, but it, too,
ignited, adding fuel to the conflagration. The burning man crumbled to the
ground. He was little more than a dark stick figure in the center of an intense
yellow-orange blaze..
As if
the good spirits themselves could no longer stand it, the skies opened up in a
downpour. The roar of the rain drumming the dry ground covered the roar of the
fire and the shouts and cries of the people. Darkness descended as the candles
were extinguished by the rain. In the square, two fires continued to burn: the
girl and the man. The chimes danced over their flesh in liquid light. There was
nothing to be done for the two souls lost.
If
Richard didn't do something, there would be nothing to be done for anyone; the
chimes would consume the world of life.
Kahlan
pulled Richard away. It required little effort. They ran back through the
darkness and rain and gathered up their horses and the rest of the men.
Richard, leading his horse by the reins, guided them to a side route through
Fairfield.
"The
reports were accurate," Richard said as he leaned toward Kahlan.
"It's clear these people have been turned against us."
"Fortunately
the vote is only a few days off," Kahlan answered back through the din of
rain. "We may lose some people here, but at least we have a chance with
the rest of Anderith."
As they
walked their horses through the rain, Richard moved the reins to his other hand
and put an arm around Kahlan's shoulders. "Truth will win out."
Kahlan
didn't answer.
"The
important thing is the chimes," Du Chaillu said. She looked both saddened
and frightened. "Whatever else happens, the chimes must be stopped. I do
not want to die again by them. I do not want our child to die by them.
"Whatever
happens here, this is only one place. The chimes, though, are everywhere. I do
not want to bring my
687
baby
into a world with the chimes. There will be no safe place if they are not
stopped. That is your true job, Caharin."
Richard
put his arm around her shoulders. "I know. I know. Maybe I can find the
thing I need in the library at the estate."
"The
Minister and Sovereign have taken the other side," Kahlan said. "They
may not be interested in allowing us to use the library any longer."
"We're
using it," Richard said, "one way, or another."
He
guided them down a street that paralleled the main avenue, a street that once
out of the city would turn to join into the main road toward the Minister's
estate. It was on that road, closer to the estate, that their troops were
stationed.
Richard
noticed Kahlan staring off at something. He followed her gaze in the rain and
darkness to a small sign visible in the lamplight coming from a window beneath
it.
The
sign offered herbs for sale and the services of a midwife.
Du
Chaillu was huge. Richard supposed that she must be near to having her
baby-whether she wanted it to be born into such a world or not.
688
CHAPTER
61
IT HAD
BEEN A long day, the last hour of it spent slogging through the drenching
downpour to where the remainder of their troops were stationed. Well over half
of them had been sent off around Anderith to oversee the upcoming vote. Feeling
ill, Du Chaillu was in no condition to ride; it was a miserable walk and
exhaustion finally claimed her-not something she would have admitted lightly.
Richard and Jiaan took turns carrying her the remaining distance.
Richard
was thankful for the rain for one reason, though. It had cooled the tempers of
the throng in Fairfield and sent them home.
Ordinarily
Richard would have insisted that Du Chaillu go straight off to her own tents
but after the events in Fairfield, he understood her gloomy mood and realized
she needed their company more than she needed rest. Kahlan must have
understood, too, for rather than chasing the spirit woman from their tent, as
she had had to do on more than one occasion, she gave her a dried tava biscuit
to suck on, saying it would settle her stomach. Kahlan sat Du Chaillu down on
the padded blanket that was the bed and with a towel dried her face and hair
while Jiaan went to get her some dry clothes.
Richard
sat at the small folding table he used to write
689
messages,
orders, and letters, mostly to General Reibisch. After having been to the city,
he desperately wanted to write the general and order him into Anderith.
From
outside the tent, a muffled voice asked permission to enter. When Richard
granted it, Captain Meiffert lifted back the heavy flap, propping it up with a
pole to act as a little roof to keep the rain from their doorway. He shook
himself, as best he could, under the small roof before stepping inside.
"Captain,"
Richard said, "I would like to compliment you and your men on the reports.
They have been dead accurate about what's going on in Fairfield. The spirits
know I wish I could yell at you and dismiss the messengers for getting it
wrong, or embellishing the facts, but I can't. They were only too right."
Captain
Meiffert didn't look pleased to have gotten it right. The situation was nothing
to be pleased about. With a finger, he wiped his wet blond hair across his
forehead.
"Lord
Rahl, I believe we should now bring General Reibisch's army south, into
Anderith. The situation is growing more tenuous by the day. I have a fistful of
reports about special Ander guard troops. They are reported to be not at all
like the regular Anderith army we have seen."
"I
agree with the captain," Kahlan said from the ground beside Du Chaillu.
"We need to be in the library, trying to find something of use against the
chimes. We don't have time to counter the things being said to sway people to
reject us."
"That's
just here," Richard said.
"Are
you so sure? What if it's not? Besides, as I said, we don't have the luxury of
time to devote to it. We have more important things to worry about."
"The
Mother Confessor is right," Captain Meiffert insisted.
"I
have to believe truth will win out. Otherwise, what is there left to do? Lie to
people to get them to join our side?"
"It
seems to be working for those who oppose us," Kahlan pointed out.
690
Richard
wiped his wet hair back from his forehead. "Look, there's nothing I would
like better than to simply call General Reibisch down here. Really, there
isn't. But we can't."
Captain
Meiffert wiped water from his chin. The man seemed to have anticipated the
reason for Richard's reluctance and was ready with a reply.
"Lord
Rahl, we have enough men here. We can send word to the general, and before he
comes into sight, we can take the Dominie Dirtch from the Anderith army and
safely let our men through."
"I've
run that very thought through my mind a thousand times," Richard said.
"One thing keeps ringing a warning in my head."
"What's
that?" Kahlan asked.
Richard
turned sideways on his small folding stool so he might speak to her as well as
the captain.
"We
don't know for sure how the Dominie Dirtch work."
"So,
we ask someone here," Kahlan said.
"It's
not a weapon they use. We can't count on their expertise. Yes, they know that
if they're being attacked they ring the things and the enemy will be
killed."
"Lord
Rahl, we have a thousand men, once they all return from watching the vote. We
can take the Dominie Dirtch in a wide swath and General Reibisch will be able
to safely bring his army through. Then we can use his men to take the rest, all
along the frontier, and the Imperial Order will not be able to get through.
Perhaps they will even approach, thinking they will be able to pass, and then
we will have the opportunity to use the Dominie Dirtch against them."
Richard
turned the candle on the table round and round in his fingers as he listened,
and then in the silence that followed.
"There's
one problem with that," he said at last, "and that is what I've
already said: we aren't sure how they work."
"We
know the basics of the things," Kahlan said, her frustration growing.
"But
the problem is," Richard said, "that we don't know
691
enough.
First of all, we can't take all the Dominie Dirtch all along the frontier.
There are too many-they run along the entire border. We could only take some,
like you suggested, Captain.
"Therein
lies the problem. Remember when we came through? How those people were killed
when the Dominie Dirtch rang?"
"Yes,
but we don't know why they rang," Kahlan said. "Besides, what
difference does that make?"
"What
if we capture a stretch of the Dominie Dirtch," Richard said, looking back
and forth between. Kahlan and Captain Meiffert, "and then tell General
Reibisch it's safe to bring his army in. What if, when all those men are just
about there, Anderith soldiers somewhere else, ones still in control of the
Dominie Dirtch, ring theirs?"
"So
what?" Kahlan asked. "They will be too far away."
"Are
you sure?" Richard leaned toward her for emphasis. "What if that rings
them all? What if they know how to ring the entire line?
"Remember
when we came in, how they said they all rang, and everyone out in front of the
Dominie Dirtch was killed? They all rang together, as one."
"But
they didn't know why they all rang," Kahlan said. "The soldiers
didn't ring them."
"How
do you know that one person somewhere along that entire line didn't ring their
Dominie Dirtch, and caused them all to ring? Maybe accidentally, and they're
too afraid to admit it for fear of their punishment, or perhaps one of those
young people stationed there, out of boredom, just wanted to try it?
"What
if the same thing happens while our army is out there before those murderous
things? Can you imagine? General Reibisch has near to a hundred thousand men-
maybe more by now. Can you imagine his entire force killed in one
instant?"
Richard
looked from Kahlan's calm face to the captain's alarmed expression. "Our
entire army down here in the South, at once, dead. Imagine it."
692
"But
I don't think-" Kahlan began. "And are you willing to risk the lives
of all those young men on what you think? Are you so sure? I don't know that
the Dominie Dirtch work together like that, but what if they do? Maybe one rung
in anger rings them all. Can you say it won't?
"I'm
not willing to put the innocent lives of those brave men to such a deadly
gamble. Are you?" Richard looked back to Captain Meiffert. "Are you?
Are you "a gambler, Captain? Could you so easily wager the lives of all
those men?"
He
shook his head. "If it was my own life, Lord Rahl, I would willingly risk
it, but not for all those lives."
The
roar eased up as the rain slowed a little. Men went by outside the opening of
the tent, taking feed to the horses. For the most part, the camp sat in pitch
blackness; fires were forbidden except where essential.
"I
can't disagree with that." Kahlan lifted her hands and then in frustration
let them drop back into her lap. "But Jagang is coming. If we don't win
the people to our cause so they will stand against him he will take Anderith.
He will be invincible behind the Dominie Dirtch and be able to stab into the
Midlands at will and bleed us to death."
Richard
listened to the rain drumming on the tent roof and splashing outside the open
doorway. It sounded like the kind of steady rain that was going to be with them
for the night.
Richard
spoke softly. "As I see it, we have only one option. We must go back to
the library at the estate and see if we can find anything useful."
"We
haven't yet," Kahlan said.
"And
with the people in charge now taking a stand against us," Captain Meiffert
said, "they might resist that."
Richard
made a fist on the table as he met the man's blue-eyed gaze. Richard once again
wished he had the Sword of Truth with him.
"If
they resist, Captain, then you and your men will be called upon to do what you
constantly train for. If they re-
693
sist,
and if we have to, we'll cut down anyone who lifts a finger to oppose us and
then we'll level the place. We just need to get the books out of there
first."
Relief
eased the expression on the man's face. The D'Harans seemed to harbor a fear
that Richard might be unwilling to act; Captain Meiffert looked assuaged to
hear otherwise.
"Yes,
Lord Rahl. The men will be ready in the morning, when you are."
Kahlan's
point about there possibly being nothing of value at the estate was worrisome.
Richard remembered the books in the library. While he couldn't recall the
details of the information, he remembered the subjects well enough to know that
finding the answer was a long shot. Still, it was the only shot they had.
"Before
I go"-Captain Meiffert pulled a paper from his pocket-"I thought you
should know a number of people have requested an audience when you have time,
Lord Rahl. Most of them were merchants wanting information."
"Thank
you, Captain, but I don't have time now."
"I
understand, Lord Rahl. I took the liberty of telling them as much." He
shuffled his little notes. "There was one woman." He squinted in the
dim candlelight to make out the name. "Franca Gowenlock. She said it was
extremely urgent, but would give no information. She was here most of the day.
She finally said she had to return to her home, but she would be back
tomorrow."
"If
it's important, she'll be back and I'll talk to her."
Richard
looked down at Du Chaillu, to see how she was feeling. She looked comforted by
Kahlan's care.
Behind
him rose a sudden commotion. The captain pitched backward with a cry as if
felled by magic. The candle flame fluttered wildly at the intrusion of a wind,
but stayed lit.
Richard
spun to the sound of a dull thump. The candle wobbled across the top of the
shuddering table, right up to the edge.
A huge
raven had crashed sprawling onto the tabletop.
694
Richard
scooted back in surprise, drawing his sword as he stood, wishing again that it
were the Sword of Truth with its attendant magic. Kahlan and Du Chaillu shot to
their feet.
The
raven had something black in its big beak. With all the confusion-the wind, the
candle nearly toppling, the flame fluttering, the table teetering, and the tent
sides flapping-he didn't immediately recognize the object in the raven's beak.
The
raven set it on the table.
The
inky black bird, water beaded on glossy feathers like the night itself come
into their tent, looked exhausted. The way it lay sprawled on the table with
its wings open, Richard didn't think it was well, or possibly it was injured.
Richard
didn't know if a thing possessed of the chimes could really be injured. He
recalled the chicken-that-wasn't-a-chicken bleeding. He saw a smear of blood on
the table-top.
Whenever
that chime-in-a-chicken had been around, even if he couldn't see it, the hairs
at the back of Richard's neck had stood up, yet, with this
raven-that-wasn't-a-raven right before him on the table, he hadn't reacted that
way.
The
raven cocked its head, looking Richard in the eye. It was as deliberate a look
as he'd ever gotten. With its beak, the bird tapped the center of the thing it
had laid on the table.
Captain
Meiffert sprang up then and swung his sword. At the same time, Richard flung up
his arms, shouting "No!"
The
raven, as, the sword came down, hurled itself off the table onto the ground and
ran between the captain's legs. Once past the man, it took wing and was gone.
"Sorry,"
the captain said. "I thought... I thought it was attacking you with magic,
Lord Rahl. I thought it was a thing of dark magic, come to attack you."
Richard
let out a deep breath as he gestured forgiveness to the man. The man was only
trying to protect him.
"It
was not evil," Du Chaillu said in a soft voice as she and Kahlan came
closer.
Richard
sank back down on his stool. "No, it wasn't."
695
Kahlan
and Du Chaillu stood over his shoulder, looking.
"What
omen did the messenger from the spirits bring you?" the spirit woman
asked.
"I
don't think it was from the spirit world," Richard said.
He
picked up the small, flat object. In the dim light, he suddenly realized what
it was. He stared incredulously.
It was
just like the one Sister Verna used to carry. He had seen her use it countless
times.
"It's
a journey book."
He
opened the cover.
"That
has to be High D'Haran," Kahlan said of the strange script.
"Dear
spirits," Richard breathed, as he read the only two words on the first
page.
"What?"
Kahlan asked. "What is it? What does it say?"
"Fuer
Berglendursch. You're right. It's High D'Haran."
"Do
you know the meaning?"
"It
says, 'The Mountain.' " Richard turned and peered up at her in the
flickering candlelight. "That was Joseph Ander's cognomen. This is Joseph
Ander's journey book. The other, the one that was destroyed, its twin, was
called Mountain's Twin."
696
CHAPTER
62
DALTON
SMILED AS HE stood at an octagonal table of rare black walnut in the reliquary
in the Office of Cultural Amity, where displayed on the walls around the room
were objects belonging to past Directors: robes; small tools; implements of
their profession, such as pens and beautifully carved blotters; and writings.
Dalton was looking over more modern writings: reports he had requested from the
Directors.
Any
ambivalence the Directors might feel, they kept to themselves. Publicly, they
now threw themselves into the task of supporting the new Sovereign. It had been
made plain to them that their very existence now depended not only upon their
fealty, but upon their enthusiasm in that devotion.
As he
read the script of addresses they were to deliver, Dalton was annoyed by shouts
coming in through an open window overlooking the city square. It sounded like
an angry mob of people. Judging by -the boisterous encouragement from the
crowd, he assumed it was someone delivering a diatribe against Lord Rahl and
the Mother Confessor.
Following
the lead of noted people such as the Directors, ordinary people had now taken
to loudly voicing the tailored notions they had been fed. Even though Dalton
had expected
697
it, he
never failed to find it remarkable the way he had but to say a thing enough
times, through enough people, and it became the popular truth, its provenance
lost as it was mimicked by ordinary people who came to believe that it was
their own idea-as if original thought routinely came forth from their witless minds
of clay.
Dalton
let out a bitter snort of contempt. They were asses and deserved the fate they
embraced. They belonged to the Imperial Order, now. Or, at least, they soon
would.
He
glanced out the window to see a throng making its way into the city square. The
heavy rain of the night before had turned to a light drizzle, so people were
coming back out. The steady downpour overnight failed to wash away the
blackened places on the cobble paving in the square where the two people had
burned to death.
The
crowd, of course, blamed the tragedy on the magic of Lord Rahl, venting his
wrath against them. Dalton had instructed his people to bitterly make the
accusation, knowing the seriousness of the charge would outweigh the lack of
evidence, much less the truth.
What
had really happened, Dalton didn't know. He did know this was far from the
first such incident. Whatever it was, it was an appalling misfortune, but, if
misfortune was to happen, it could have hardly picked a better time. It had
punctuated Director Prevot's speech perfectly.
Dalton
wondered if the fires had anything to do with what Franca had told him about
magic failing. He didn't see how, but he didn't think she had told him
everything, either. The woman had been behaving quite oddly of late.
At the
knock, Dalton turned to the door. Rowley bowed.
"What
is it?"
"Minister,"
Rowley said, "the ... woman is here, the one Emperor Jagang sent."
"Where
is she?"
"Down
the hall. She is having tea."
Dalton
shifted his scabbard at his hip. This was not a woman to trifle with; she was
said to have more power than
698
any
ordinary such woman. More power even than Franca. Jagang had assured him,
though, that unlike Franca, this woman still had firm control of her power.
"Take
her to the estate. Give her one of our finest rooms. If she gives you
any-" Dalton recalled Franca's talent for overhearing things. "If she
gives you any complaints, see to resolving them to her satisfaction. She is a
most important guest, and is to be treated as such."
Rowley
bowed. "Yes, Minister."
Dalton
saw Rowley smile with one side of his mouth. He, too, knew why the woman was
there. Rowley was looking forward to it.
Dalton
just wanted it done with. It would require care. They had to wait and pick
their own time. They couldn't force it, or the whole thing could come undone.
If they handled it right, though, it would be a great accomplishment. Jagang
would be more than grateful.
"I
appreciate your generosity."
Dalton
turned at the sound of a woman's voice. She had stepped into the doorway.
Rowley backed out of her way.
She
looked middle-aged, with gray hair mixing in with the black. Her simple, dowdy,
dark blue dress ran from her neck, over her rather thick-boned shape, and all
the way to the floor.
Her
presence was dominated by a smile that only vaguely touched her lips, but was
ever so evident in her brown eyes. It was as nasty a simper as Dalton had ever
seen. It unashamedly proclaimed a mien of superiority. Because of the lines at
the corners of her mouth and eyes, the self-satisfied smirk seemed enduringly
etched on her face.
A gold
ring pierced her lower lip.
"And
you would be?" He asked.
"Sister
Penthea. Here to wield my talent in service to His Excellency, Emperor Jagang."
Her
smooth flow of words was laced with crystalline frost.
Dalton
bowed his head. "Minister of Culture, Dalton
699
Campbell.
Thank you for coming, Sister Penthea. We are most appreciative of your courtesy
in lending your unique assistance." '
She had
been sent to wield her talent in service to Dalton Campbell, but he thought
better of putting too fine a point on it. Dalton didn't need to remind her she
was the one with a ring through her lip; it was obvious to them both.
At the
sound of screams, Dalton again glanced across the room, out the window,
thinking it was the parents or family returned to see the-sight of the grisly
deaths the night before. People had been coming by all morning, leaving flowers
or other offerings at the site of the deaths until they looked like a grotesque
garden midden. Frequent wails of anguish rose up into the gray day.
Sister
Penthea turned his attention to business. "I need to see the ones chosen
for the deed."
Dalton
motioned with a hand. "Rowley, there, he will be one of them."
Without
word or warning, she slapped the palm of her hand to Rowley's forehead, her
fingers splayed into his red hair, grasping his head as if she might pluck it
like a ripe pear. Rowley's eyes rolled back in his head. His entire body began
to tremble.
The
Sister murmured thick words that had no meaning to Dalton. Each, as it oozed
forth, seemed to take root in Rowley. The young man's arms flinched when she
stressed particular words.
With a
last phrase, raising in intonation, she gave Rowley's head a sharp shove.
Letting out a small cry, Rowley crumpled as if his bones had dissolved.
In a
moment, he sat up and shook his head. A smile told Dalton he was fine. He
brushed clean his dark brown trousers as he stood, looking no different,
despite his added lethality.
"The
others?" she asked.
Dalton
gestured dismissively. "Rowley can take you to them."
She
bowed slightly. "Good day, then, Minister. I will see
700
to it
immediately. The emperor also wished me to express his pleasure at being able
to be of assistance. Either way, muscle or magic, the Mother Confessor's fate
is now sealed."
She
wheeled around and stormed away, Rowley following in her wake. Dalton couldn't
say he was sorry to see her go-
Before
he could return to reading his reports in earnest, he again heard the cheering.
The sight when he lifted his head to look out the window was unexpected.
Someone was being dragged into the square, a mob of people following behind as
the people already in the square parted to make way, cheering on those
entering, some of whom carried scraps of crates, tree branches, and sheafs of
straw.
Dalton
went to the window and leaned on the sill with both hands as he peered down at
the sight. It was Serin Rajak, at the head of a few hundred of his followers
all dressed in white robes.
When he
saw who they had, who they were dragging into the square, who was screaming,
Dalton gasped aloud.
His
heart pounding with dread, he stared out the window, wondering what he could
do. He had guards with him, real guards, not Anderith army soldiers, but two
dozen men. He realized it was a futile thought even as he had it; armed though
they were, they stood no chance against the thousands in the square. Dalton
knew better than to stand before a crowd intent on violence-that was only a
good way to have the violence turned your way.
Despite
his feelings, Dalton dared not side against the people in this.
Among
the men with Serin Rajak, in among the man's followers, Dalton saw one in a
dark uniform: Stein.
With
icy dread, Dalton realized the reason Stein was there, and what he wanted.
Dalton
backed away from the window. He was no stranger to violence, but this was an
atrocity.
At
last, he ran back into the corridor that echoed his footfalls, descended the
steps, and raced down the hall. He
701
didn't
know what to do, but if there was anything ...
He
reached the entry set behind fluted stone columns outside the building, at the
top of the cascade of steps. He halted well back in the shadows of the
interior, assessing the situation.
Outside,
on the landing partway down the steps, guards patrolled to keep people from
thoughts of coming up into j the Office of Cultural Amity. It was a symbolic
gesture. This many people would easily sweep aside the guards. Dalton dared not
give people in such a foul mood a reason to turn their anger to him.
A
woman, holding the hand of a young boy, pulled him along as she pushed her way
to the front of the crowd. "I am Nora," she proclaimed to the people.
"This is my son, Brace. He's all I got left, because of witches! My
husband, Julian, was drowned because of a dark curse from a witch! My beautiful
daughter Bethany was burned up alive by a witch's spell!"
The
boy, Brace, wept, mumbling it was true, wept for his father and sister. Serin
Rajak held up the woman's arm.
"Here
is a victim of the Keeper's witchcraft!" He pointed to a wailing woman
near the front. "There is another! Many of you here have been harmed by
curses and hexes from witches! Witches using evil from the Keeper of the
Dead!"
With a
crowd in this ugly a mood, Dalton knew this could come to no good end, but he
could think of nothing to do to stop it.
It was,
after all, the reason he had released Serin Rajak: to rouse anger against
magic. He needed people to be stirred up against those with magic, to see them
as evil. Who better than a zealot to foment such hatred?
"And
here is the witch!" Serin Rajak thrust his arm out to point at the woman
whose hands were bound behind her, the woman Stein held by the hair. "She
is the Keeper's vile tool! She casts evil spells to harm you all!"
The mob
was yelling and screaming for vengeance.\xA0\xA0
..
"What
should we do with this witch?" Rajak shrieked.
702
"Burn
her! Burn her! Burn her!" came the chant.
Serin
Rajak flung his arms toward the sky. "Dear Creator, we commend this woman
to your care in the flames! If she be innocent, spare her harm! If she be
guilty of the crime of witchcraft, burn her!"
As men
threw up a pole, Stein bore his captive facedown to the ground. He pulled her
head up by her hair. With his other hand, he brought up his knife.
Dalton,
his eyes wide, was unable to blink, to breathe, as he watched Stein slice from
one ear to the other, across the top of Franca's forehead. Her scream ripped
Dalton's in-sides, as Stein ripped back her scalp.
Tears
ran down Dalton's cheeks as blood ran down Franca's face. Shrieking in pain and
immeasurable terror, she was lifted and bound to the pole. The whites of her
eyes stood out from a mask of blood.
Franca
didn't argue for her innocence or beg for her life. She just screamed in
paralyzed horror.
Straw
and wood were thrown up around her. The mob pressed in, wanting to be close, to
see it all. Some reached out and stole a swipe at the blood coursing down her
face, eager for a memento of witch's blood on their fingertips, to prove their
power, before they sent her to the Keeper.
Horror
dragging him by his throat, Dalton staggered partway down the steps.
Men
with torches pushed through to the front of the roaring mob. Serin Rajak, wild
with rage, climbed the clutter of wood and straw at her feet to shout in
Franca's face, to call her every sort of vile name, and accuse her of every sort
of evil crime.
Dalton,
standing helpless on the steps, knew all the words to be false. Franca was not
one of those things.
Just
then, a most extraordinary thing happened. A raven swooped down from the gray
sky, fixing its angry claws in Serin Rajak's hair.
Serin
screamed that it was the witch's familiar, come to protect its mistress. The
crowd responded by throwing
703
things
at the bird while at the same time Serin tried to fight it off. The bird
flapped and squawked, but held on to the man's hair.
With
such frightening determination that Dalton began to think that the charges it
was the witch's familiar seemed true, the huge inky black bird used its beak to
stab out Serin's good eye.
The man
screamed in pain and rage as he fell from the tinder around Franca. As he did,
the mob heaved on the torches.
A wail
such as Dalton had never heard rose from poor Franca as the flames exploded
through the dry straw and up the length of her. Even from where he stood,
Dalton could smell the burning flesh.
And
then, in her terror, in her pain, in her burning death, Franca turned her head,
and saw Dalton standing there on the steps.
She
screamed his name. Over the roar of the crowd, he couldn't hear it, but he
could read it on her lips.
She
screamed it again, and screamed she loved him.
When
Dalton read those words on her lips, they crushed his heart.
The
flames blistered her flesh, till the scream pushed from her lungs sounded like
the shriek of the lost souls in the world of the dead.
Dalton
stood numb, watching it, realizing only then that his hands were holding his
head, and he was screaming too.
The
crowd surged forward, eager to smell the roasting flesh, to see the witch's
skin burn. They were wild with excitement, their eyes mad with it. As the mob
pressed in, the ones in front were pushed so close it singed off their
eyebrows, and this, too, they relished, as the witch screamed and burned.
On 'the
ground, the raven was pecking wildly at the blinded, almost forgotten, Serin
Rajak. He swung his arms, unseeing, trying to get the vengeful bird away.
Darting in between his flailing arms, the raven's big beak snatched, twisted,
and tore chunks of flesh from his face.
704
The
crowd began pelting the bird anew with anything handy. The bird, finally
looking as if it was losing strength, flapped helplessly as everything from
shoes to flaming branches arced through the air toward it.
For
reasons he didn't understand, Dalton, weeping, found himself cheering the bird
against all odds, knowing it, too, was about to die.
Just as
it looked as if the end was near for the valiant, avenging raven, a riderless
horse charged into the square. Blocked by the mob, it reared wildly, knocking
people aside. It spun and kicked, injuring people, snapping bones, breaking
heads. People fell back as the golden chestnut-colored horse, ears pinned back,
snorting with an angry scream, charged into the center of the crowd. Frightened
people, trying to fall back, were unable to make way for the press of other
people behind them.
The
horse, seeming to have gone insane with anger, trampled anyone in its way to
get to the center of the square. Dalton had never heard of a horse running
toward a fire.
As it
reached the middle of the melee, the raven, with a last desperate effort,
flapped its great black wings and made it up onto the horse's back. When the
horse wheeled, Dalton thought for a moment that it had another bird on it, as
if there were two black ravens, but then he realized the second was just a
splotch of black color on the horse's rump.
With
the raven's claws clutching the horse's mane just above the withers, the horse
reared up one last time before coming down and charging off in a dead run. The
people who could, leaped out of the way. Those unable to do so were trampled by
the enraged beast.
Alone
on the steps, Franca's screams thankfully ended, Dalton saluted the golden
chestnut mare and avenging raven as they fled at a full gallop from the city
center.
705
CHAPTER
63
BEATA
SQUINTED OUT OVER the plains in the dawn light. It was good to see that the sun
was going to shine, once it reached the horizon. The rain of the last few days
had been wearing. Now there were only a few dark purple clouds, like a child's
charcoal scribbles, across the golden eastern sky. From up on the stone base of
the Dominie Dirtch, beneath that immense sweep of sky overhead, she could see
forever, it seemed, out onto the vast plains of the wilds.
Beata
saw that Estelle Ruffin was right in calling her up top. In the distance a
rider was coming. He was taking the dry ground, right toward them. The rider
was still a goodly distance, but by the way he was running his horse, he didn't
look like he intended to stop. Beata waited until he was a little closer, and
then cupped her hands around her mouth and yelled.
"Halt!
Halt where you are!"
Still
he came on. He was probably still too far away to hear her. The plains were
deceptive; sometimes it took a rider much longer to reach them than it seemed
it should.
"What
should we do?" Estelle asked, having never had a rider approach so fast
before, looking like he didn't intend to stop.
Beata
was finally used to Anders relying on her and ask-
706
ing her
for instructions. She was not only getting used to her authority, she had come
to delight in it.
It was
ironic. Bertrand Chanboor had made the laws that enabled Beata to join the army
and command Anders, and Bertrand Chanboor had caused her to avail herself of
the laws. She hated him, and at the same time he was her unwitting benefactor.
Now that he was Sovereign, she tried, as was her duty and hard as it was, to
feel only love for him.
Just
the night before, Captain Tolbert had come by with some D'Haran soldiers. They
were riding down the line of Dominie Dirtch to take the votes of the squads
stationed at each weapon. They'd all talked about it, and though Beata didn't
see their votes, she knew her squad all marked an X.
Beata
had a strong feeling about Lord Rahl, having met and talked to him, that he was
a good man. The Mother Confessor, too, seemed much kinder than Beata had
expected. Still, Beata and her squad were proud to be in the Anderith army,,
the best army in the world, Captain Tolbert told them, an army undefeated since
the creation of the land, and invincible now.
Beata
had responsibility. She was a soldier who commanded respect, now, just as
Bertrand Chanboor's law said. She didn't want anything to change.
Even
though it was for Bertrand Chanboor, their new Sovereign, and against Lord
Rahl, Beata had proudly marked an X.
Emmeline
had her hand on the striker, and Karl stood close to it, too, anticipating
Beata ordering it out. Beata, instead, motioned the two away from the thing.
"There's
only one rider," Beata said in a calm voice of authority, settling their
nerves.
Estelle
heaved a sigh in frustration. "But Sergeant-"
"We
are trained soldiers. One man is no threat. We know how to fight. We've been
trained in combat."
Karl
shifted his sword on his weapons belt, eager for the responsibility of doing
some real soldiering. Beata snapped her fingers, pointing to the steps.
707
"Go,
Karl. Get Morris and Annette. The three of you meet me down at the front line.
Emmeline, you stay up here with Estelle, but I want both of you to stand away
from the striker. I'll not have you ringing this weapon for no more threat than
a lone rider. We'll handle it. Just stay at your post and keep watch."
Both
women saluted with a hand to their brow. Karl did a quick version before he
raced down the steps, breathless with the possibility of real action. Beata
straightened her sword at her hip and went down the steps in a dignified manner
more befitting her rank.
Beata
stood beside the huge stone weapon at the line, as they called it; beyond, the
Dominie Dirtch would kill. She clasped her hands behind her back as Karl raced
up with Morris and Annette. Annette was still putting on her chain mail.
Beata
finally understood the shouts coming from the rider racing toward them. He was
screaming for them not to ring the Dominie Dirtch.
Beata
thought she recognized the voice.
Karl
had his hand on the hilt of his sword. "Sergeant?"
She
nodded and the two men and one woman drew steel. It was the first time they'd
done so for a potential threat. They were all three beaming with the thrill of
it.
Beata
cupped her hands around her mouth again. "Halt!"
This
time the rider heard her. He hauled back on the reins and drew his lathered
horse to a stumbling, clumsy halt a little distance out.
Beata's
jaw dropped.
"Fitch!"
He
grinned. "Beata! Is that you?"
He
dismounted and walked his horse toward her. The horse looked in sorry shape.
Fitch didn't look much better, but he still managed to swagger.
"Fitch,"
Beata growled, "get over here."
Disappointed
that Beata knew the man and there didn't look like there wasn't going to be any
swordplay, Karl, Norris, and Annette returned their weapons to their scabbards.
708
They
all stared openly, though, at the weapon Fitch was wearing.
It was
held on with a baldric running over the right shoulder opposite the sword and
scabbard at his left hip, thereby helping balance the weight. The leather of
the baldric was finely tooled and looked old; Beata knew leatherwork, and hadn't
seen anything that fine. The scabbard was embellished with simply peerless
silver and gold work.
The
sword itself was remarkable, what she could see, anyway. It had a downswept,
brightwork cross guard. The hilt looked wound in silver wire, with a bit of
gold, too, glinting in the early light.
Fitch,
chest puffed up, smiled at her. "Good to see you, Beata. I'm glad to see
you got the job you were after. I guess both of us got our dream after
all."
Beata
knew she, had earned her dream. Having known Fitch a good long time, she
doubted the same of him.
"Fitch,
what are you doing here, and what are you doing with that weapon?"
His
chin lifted. "It's mine. I told you that someday I'd be Seeker, and now I
am. This here is the Sword of Truth."
Beata
stared down at it. Fitch turned the weapon out a little so she could see the
hilt with writing in gold wire. It was the word Fitch had drawn in the dust
that one day at the Minister's estate. She remembered it: TRUTH.
"The
wizards gave you that?" Beata pointed, incredulous. "The wizards
named you Seeker of Truth?"
"Well..."
Fitch glanced back over his shoulder, out to the wilds. "It's a long
story, Beata."
"Sergeant
Beata," she said, not about to be outdone by\xA0\xA0\xA0 ' the likes of Fitch.
He
shrugged. "Sergeant. That's great, Beata." He glanced over his
shoulder again. "Um, can I talk to you?" He cast a wary eye to those
watching their every word. "Alone?"
"Fitch,
I don't-"
"Please?"
He
looked worried, like she'd never seen him before. Behind the cocky attitude he
was distraught.
709
Beata
took hold of his filthy messenger's jacket at the collar and pulled him along,
away from the others. All their eyes followed. Beata guessed she didn't blame
them; it was the most interesting thing that had happened since the day the
Mother Confessor and Lord Rahl came through.
"What
are you doing' with that sword? It isn't yours."
Fitch's
face took on the familiar pleading expression she knew so well. "Beata, I
had to take it. I had to-"
"You
stole it? You stole the Sword of Truth?"
"I
had to. You don't-"
"Fitch,
you are a thief. I should arrest you and-"
"Well,
that would be fine by me. Then I could prove the charges are false."
She
frowned. "What charges?"
"That
I raped you."
Beata
was thunderstruck. She couldn't even say anything.
"I
got accused of what the Minister and Stein did to you. I need this Sword of
Truth to help me prove the truth-that I didn't do it, that the Minister is the
one who did it and-"
"He's
the Sovereign now."
Fitch
sagged. "Then not even this sword will help me. The Sovereign. Boy, this
is a real mess."
"You've
got that right."
He
seemed to get life back in him. He seized her by her shoulders. "Beata,
you got to help me. There's a crazy woman after me. Use the Dominie Dirtch.
Stop her. You can't let her through."
"Why?
She the one you stole the sword from?"
"Beata,
you don't understand-"
"You
stole that sword, but it's me that don't understand? I understand you're a
liar."
Fitch
sagged. "Beata, she murdered Morley."
Beata's
eyes widened. She knew how big Morley was. "You mean, she has magic, or
something?"
Fitch
looked up. "Magic. Yes. That must be it. She has magic. Beata, she's
crazy. She killed Morley-"
"Imagine
that, someone kills a thief and that makes her a crazy murderer. You are a
worthless Haken, Fitch. That's
710
all you
are-a worthless Haken who stole a sword that doesn't belong to them and they
never could earn."
"Beata,
please, she's going to kill me. Please don't let her through."
"Riders
coming," Estelle called out.
Fitch
nearly jumped out of his skin. Beata- looked up at Estelle, but saw she was
pointing to the rear, not out to the wilds. Beata relaxed a bit.
"Who
are they?" she called up at Estelle.
"Can't
tell, yet, Sergeant."
"Fitch,
you got to give that thing back. When this woman comes, you have to-"
"Rider
coming, Sergeant," Emmeline called, pointing out to the wilds.
"What's
she look like?" Fitch called up, frantic as a cat with its tail afire.
Emmeline
looked out to the plains for a minute. "I don't know. She's too far
away."
"Red."
Fitch called. "Does it look like she's in red?"
Emmeline
peered off another minute. "Blond hair, wearing red."
"Let
her pass!" Beata ordered.
"Yes,
Sergeant."
Fitch
threw up his arms, looking suddenly terrified. "Beata, what are you doing?
You want to get me killed? She's crazy! The woman is a monster, she's-"
"We'll
have a talk with her. Don't worry, we'll not let the little boy get drubbed.
We'll find out what she wants and take care of it."
Fitch
looked hurt. That did not displease Beata, not after all the trouble he was
causing, after he stole something as valuable as the Sword of Truth. A valuable
thing of magic. Now the fool boy had gone and got his friend Morley involved in
thieving and got him killed for it.
And to
think, she once thought she could fall in love with Fitch.
He hung
his head. "Beata, I'm sorry. I just wanted to make you proud-"
711
"Thieving
is not something to be proud of, Fitch."
"You
just don't understand," he muttered, on the verge of tears. "You just
don't understand."
Beata
heard an odd ruckus from the next Dominie Dirtch. Shouts and such, but no
alarm. As she turned to look, she saw the three special Anderith guards, the
ones Estelle had spotted, trotting in on their horses. She wondered what they
would want.
She
turned to the sound of the galloping horse coming in. Beata jabbed a finger
against Fitch's chest.
"Now,
you just keep quiet and let me do the talking."
Rather
than answer, he stared at the ground. Beata turned and saw the horse race past
the stone base. The woman was indeed wearing red. Beata had never seen anything
like it, a red leather outfit from head to toe. Her long blond braid was flying
out behind.
Beata's
guard went up. She had never seen a look of determination such as was on this
woman's face.
She
didn't even bother to halt her horse. She simply dove off it at Fitch. Beata
shoved Fitch out of the way. The woman rolled twice and came up on her feet.
"Hold
on!" Beata cried. "I told him we'd settle this with you, and he'd
give you back what's yours!"
Beata
was baffled to see that the woman held a black bottle by its neck. To dive off
a horse with a bottle... maybe Fitch was right; maybe she was crazy.
She
didn't look crazy. But she did look resolved to carry this matter into the next
world if she had to.
The
woman, her sky-blue eyes fixed on Fitch, ignored Beata. "Give it over now,
and I'll not kill you. I'll only make you regret being born."
Fitch,
instead of giving up, drew the sword.
It made
a ring of steel such as Beata, used to the sound of blades, had never heard.
Fitch
got a strange look on his face. His eyes were going wide, like he might faint,
or something. His eyes had a decidedly strange look in them, a shimmering light
that gave
712
Beata
gooseflesh. It was a look of some kind of awesome inner vision.
The
woman held the bottle out in one hand, like it was a weapon. With her other
hand, she waggled her fingers, taunting Fitch to come closer, to attack her.
Beata
stepped in to restrain the woman until they could talk it over.
Beata
next realized she was sitting on the ground. Her face stung something fierce.
"Stay
out of it," the woman said in a voice like ice. "There is no need for
you to be hurt. Do yourself a favor and stay down."
Her
blue eyes turned to Fitch. "Come on, boy. Either give it up, or do
something about it."
Fitch
did something about it. He swung the sword. Beata could hear the tip whistle
going through the air.
The
woman danced back a step and at the same time thrust with the black bottle. The
sword shattered it into a thousand pieces that filled the air like a storm cloud.
"HA!"
the woman cried in triumph.
She
grinned wickedly.
"Now
I'll take the sword."
She
flicked her wrist. When she did, a red leather rod hanging on a gold chain at
her wrist spun up into her hand. At first she looked expectantly overjoyed, but
the look turned to confusion, and then to bafflement as she stared at the thing
in her hand.
"It
should work," she mumbled to herself. "It should work."
When
she looked up she saw something that brought her back to her senses. Beata
glanced over, but didn't see anything odd.
The
woman seized Beata's outfit at the shoulder and hauled her to her feet.
"Get your people out of here. Get them out now!"
"What?
Fitch is right. You are-"
She
thrust her arm out, pointing. "Look, you fool!"
713
The
special Anderith guards were coming toward them, chatting among themselves.
"Those are our men. They're nothing to worry-"
"Get
your people out of here right now, or you will all die."
Beata
huffed at being ordered about by some crazy woman treating her like a child.
She called over to Corporal Marie Fauvel, not twenty feet away as she was
walking out to see what the commotion was all about.
"Corporal
Fauvel," Beata called out.
"Yes,
Sergeant?" the Ander woman asked.
"Have
those men wait there until we get this settled." Beata put her fists on
her hips as she turned to the woman in red.
"Satisfied?"
The
woman ground her teeth and grabbed Beata's shoulder again. "You little
fool! Get you and your other children moving right now or you will all
die!"
Beata
was getting angry. "I'm an officer in the Anderith army, and those men
..." Beata turned to point.
Marie
Fauvel stepped in front of the men, held up a hand, and told them they would
have to wait.
One of
the three unceremoniously drew his sword and swung it with casual, but
frightening, power. Accompanied by the sickening thwack of blade hitting bone,
it cut Marie clean in half.
Beata
stood stupefied, not really believing what she was seeing.
Working
for a butcher, she'd seen so much slaughtering it hardly ever warranted a
second look. She'd cleaned the guts from so many different animals that seeing
guts seemed to her just a natural thing. Guts didn't appall Beata in the least.
Seeing
Marie there on the ground, with her guts spilling out of her top half, in one
way seemed only a curiosity, a human animal's guts so similar to other
animals', but human.
Marie
Fauvel, separated from her hips and legs, gasped,
714
clutching
at the grass, her eyes wide as her brain tried to comprehend the shock of what
had just happened to her body.
It was
so dauntingly horrifying Beata couldn't move.
Marie
pulled at the grass, trying to drag herself away from the men, toward Beata.
Her lips moved, but no words came out, just low, hoarse grunts. Her fingers
lost their power. She slumped, twitching like a freshly butchered sheep.
Up on
the Dominie Dirtch, both Estelle and Emmeline screamed.
Beata
pulled free her sword, holding it aloft for all to see. "Soldiers! Attack!"
Beata
checked the men. They were still coming.
They
were grinning.
And
then the world turned truly mad.
CHAPTER
64
MORRIS
RUSHED FORWARD, LIKE they'd been trained, going for the legs of one man. The
man kicked Norris in the face. Norris fell back, holding his face, blood
running out through his fingers. The man picked up Morris's fallen sword and
plunged it through his gut, pinning Norris to the ground, leaving him to squirm
in screaming agony, to shred his fingers on the sharp blade.
Karl
and Bryce were rushing in with weapons drawn. Car-
715
ine
charged out of the barracks with a spear. Annette was right behind her with
another.
Beata
felt a surge of conviction. The men were going to be surrounded. Her soldiers
were trained for combat. They could handle three men.
"Sergeant!"
the woman in red called. "Get back!" Beata was terrified, but she
still felt annoyed by the woman, who obviously didn't know the first thing
about soldiering. Beata was also ashamed for the woman's cowardice. Beata and
her soldiers would stand and fight-they would protect the worthless woman in
red, who feared to stand up to a mere three of the enemy.
Fitch,
too, Beata was proud to note, rushed forward with his prize sword, ready to
fight.
As they
all rushed in, only the man who had cut down Marie even had his sword out. The
other two still had their weapons sheathed. She was furious that they would
take Beata's squad so lightly.
Beata,
better accustomed to stabbing meat with a blade than were the rest of her
squad, confidently went for a man. She didn't see how, but he effortlessly
dodged her.
Startled,
she realized that this was not at all like stabbing straw men, or carcasses
hanging from a hook.
As
Beata's blade caught only air, Annette rushed up to stab him in the leg from
behind. He sidestepped Annette; too, but caught her by her red hair. He pulled
a knife and in an easy, slow manner, as he smiled wickedly into Beata's eyes,
slit Annette's throat as if he were butchering a hog.
Another
man caught Carine's spear, snapped it in half with one hand, and rammed the
barbed point in her gut.
Karl
swung his sword low at the man Beata missed, trying to hamstring him, and got
his face kicked, instead. The man swung his sword down at Karl. Beata sprang
forward and blocked his strike.
The
power of the ringing blow of steel against steel hammered her weapon from her
hand. Her hands stung so much she couldn't flex her unfeeling fingers. She
realized she was on her knees.
716
The man
swung down on Karl. Karl held his hands up protectively before his face. The
sword severed his hands at midpalm before it split his face to his chin.
The man
turned back to Beata. His blood-slicked sword was coming for her face, next.
Seeing it coming, Beata could do nothing but scream.
A hand
snatched her hair and violently yanked her back. The sword tip whistled right
past her face, hitting the ground between her legs. It was the woman in red who
had just saved Beata's life.
The
man's attention was caught by something else. He turned to look. Beata looked,
too, and saw riders coming. Maybe as many as a hundred. More special Anderith
guards, just like these three.
The
woman in red pulled Bryce back just before he was killed. As soon as she turned
to something else, he rushed back at the enemy despite her orders to stay back.
Beata saw a sword, the blade red, erupt from the middle of Bryce's back,
lifting him from his feet.
The big
man who had hacked Karl now turned his attention back to Beata. She tried to
scurry back, but his long stride was faster. In her panic, she couldn't get her
feet. Beata knew she was going to die.
As the
sword swung down on her, she couldn't think what to do. She began a prayer she
knew she wouldn't get a chance to finish.
Fitch
leaped in front of her, his sword blocking the killing blow. The enemy's blade
shattered on Fitch's weapon. Beata blinked in surprise. She was still alive.
Fitch
took a fierce swing at the man. He sidestepped, Fitch's blade just missing his
middle as he arched his back.
With
icy efficiency as the blade was going by him, the man casually unhooked a
spiked mace from a hanger on his weapons belt. As Fitch was still whipping
around with the momentum, the man took a swift, powerful, backhanded swing.
The
blow tore off the top of Fitch's skull. Pink chunks
717
of his
brains splattered up Beata's tunic. Fitch crumbled to the ground.
Beata
sat frozen in shock. She could hear her own cries, like a panicked child. She
couldn't make herself stop. It .was like she was watching someone else.
Instead
of killing her, the man turned his consideration to Fitch, or rather, Fitch's
sword. He pulled the gleaming weapon from Fitch's limp hand, and then yanked
the baldric and scabbard free of the dead weight of the body.
More
mounted men were just arriving as the man slid the Sword of Truth back into the
scabbard.
He
smiled and winked at Beata. "I think Commander Stein would like to have
this. What do you think?"
Beata
sat stunned, Fitch's body right in front of her, his brains all over .her, his
blood emptying out on the ground.
"Why?"
was all Beata could say.
. The
man was still grinning. "Now that you all had your chance to vote, Emperor
Jagang is casting the deciding ballot."
"What
you got, here?" another man called as he dismounted.
"Some
decent-looking girls."
"Well,
don't kill 'em all," the man complained good-naturedly. "I like mine
warm and still moving."
The men
all laughed. Beata whimpered as she pushed with her heels, scooting away from
the men.
"This
sword is something I've heard of. I'm taking it to Commander Stein. He'll be
pleased no end to be able to present it to the emperor."
Over
her shoulder, she saw another man up on the Dominie Dirtch casually disarm
Estelle and Emmeline as they tried to defend their post. Emmeline leaped from
the Dominie Dirtch to escape. The fall broke her leg. A man on the ground
grabbed her red hair in his fist and started dragging" her toward the
barracks as if he had caught a chicken.
Estelle
was getting kissed by the man up on the Dominie Dirtch as she beat her fists
against him. The men thought her battling comical. Men in dark leather plates
and belts
718
and
straps covered with spikes and chain mail and fur, and with massive swords,
flails, and axes, were dismounting everywhere. Others, still on their horses,
were racing around and around the Dominie Dirtch, cheering.
When
the men all turned to Emmeline's renewed screams
of pain
and terror, and to her captor's laughing, a hand
snatched
Beata's collar and dragged her back on her bottom.
The
woman in red leather behind her growled under her
breath,
"Move! While you still can!"
Beata,
powered by panic, scrambled up and ran with the woman while the men weren't
looking. The two of them dove into a dip in the ground hidden by the tall
grass.
"Stop
that crying!" the woman ordered. "Stop it or you'll get us
caught."
Beata
forced herself to stop making noise, but she couldn't stop the tears. Her whole
squad had just been killed, except Estelle and Emmeline, and they were
captured.
Fitch,
that fool Fitch, had just gotten himself killed saving her life.
"If
you don't hush, I'll slit your throat myself."
Beata
bit her lip. She had always been able to keep herself from crying. It had never
been this hard.
"I'm
sorry," Beata whispered in a whine.
"I
just saved your fat from the fire. In return you can at least not get us
caught."
The
woman watched as the man with the Sword of Truth galloped away, back toward
Fairfield. She cursed under her breath.
"Why'd
you just drag me away?" Beata asked in bitter anger. "Why didn't you
at least try to get some of them?"
The
woman flicked out a hand. "Who do you think did that? Who do you think was
protecting your back? One of your children soldiers?"
Beata
looked then and saw what she hadn't seen before. Dead enemy soldiers sprawled
here and there. She looked back to the woman's blue eyes.
"Idiot,"
the woman muttered.
719
"You
act like this is my fault, like you hate me."
"Because
you are a fool." She pointed angrily out at the carnage. "Three men
just wiped out your post and they aren't even breathing hard."
"But-they
surprised us."
"You
think this some game? You're not even smart enough to realize you're nothing
more than a dupe. Those in charge puffed you up with false courage and sent you
out to fail. It's plain as day and you can't even see it. A hundred of you
girls and boys couldn't knock down one of those men. Those are Imperial Order
troops."
"But
if they just-"
"You
think the enemy is going to play by your rules? Real life just got those other
young people killed, and the dead girls are going to be better off than the
ones still alive, I can promise you that."
Beata
was so horrified she couldn't speak. The woman's heated voice softened a
little.
"Well,
it's not all your fault. I guess you aren't old enough to know better, to know
some of life's realities. You can't be expected to see what's true and not. You
only think you can."
"Why
do you want that sword so bad?"
"Because
it belongs to Lord Rahl. He sent me to get it."
"Why'd
you save me?"
The
woman stared back at her. Behind those cold, calculating blue eyes, there
didn't seem to be any fear.
"I
guess because I, to, was once a foolish young girl captured by bad men."
"What
did they do to you?"
The
woman smiled a grim smile. "They made me into what I am: Mord-Sith. You
wouldn't be that lucky; these men aren't anywhere near as good at what they
do."
Beata
had never heard of a Mord-Sith before. Their attention was drawn to Estelle's
cries from up on the Dominie Dirtch.
"I
need to go after the sword. I suggest you run."
"Take
me with you."
720
"No.
You cannot be of any use and will only hold me back."
Beata
knew the awful truth of that. "What am I to do?" "You get your
behind out of here before those men get
ahold
of it or you'll be very much more than sorry." "Please," Beata
said, tears welling up again, "help me
save Estelle
and Emmeline?"
The
woman pressed her lips tight as she considered a moment.
"That
one," the woman finally said, with cold reckoning pointing at Estelle.
"As I'm leaving, I'll help you get that one. Then it's up to you two to
get away."
Beata
saw the man laughing, groping Estelle's breasts as she tried to fight him.
Beata knew what that was like.
"But
we have to get Emmeline, too." She gestured off toward the barracks where
they'd dragged her.
"That
one has a broken leg. You can't take her; she'll get you caught."
"But she's-"
"Forget
her. What are you going to do? Carry her? Stop being a fool child. Think. Do
you want to try to get away with that one, or do you want to get yourself
captured for sure going after both? I'm in a hurry. Decide."
Beata
struggled to breathe, wishing she couldn't hear the screams coming from the
barracks. She didn't want to find herself in there with those men. She already
had a taste of one of them.
"The
one, then. Let's go," Beata said with finality. "Good for you,
child."
The
woman was deliberately calling her that, Beata knew, to put her in her place,
hoping it would keep her in line and save her life.
"Now,
listen and do exactly what I say. I'm not sure you'll make it, but it's your
only chance." Desperate to escape the nightmare, Beata nodded. "I'm
going to go up there and take out that man. I'll see to it you have at least
two horses. I'll send the girl down while you grab the horses. Get her up on a
horse with you
721
and
then head out there and don't stop for anything."
The
woman was pointing out past the Dominie Dirtch, out to the wilds. "You
just keep going, away from Anderith, to some other place in the Midlands."
"How
are you going to keep them from getting us?"
"Who
said I was? You just get the horses and then you two run for your lives. All I
can do is try to give you a lead." The woman held a ringer before Beata's
face. "If for any reason she doesn't make it down the steps, or get on the
horse, you leave her and run."
Beata,
numb from terror, nodded. She just wanted to get away. She didn't care about
anything else anymore. She just wanted to escape with her life.
Beata
clutched the red leather sleeve. "I'm Beata."
"Good
for you. Let's go."
The
woman sprang up, running in a crouch. Beata followed after her, imitating her
low run. The woman came up behind a soldier standing in their way and knocked
his feet out from behind. As soon as he crashed to his back, before he could
call out, she dropped on him, crushing his windpipe with a blow from her elbow.
Two more quick blows silenced him.
"How
did you do that?" Beata asked, dumbfounded.
She
pushed Beata down in a thick clump of grass by the man. "Years of training
in how to kill. It's my profession." She checked the Dominie Dirtch again.
"Wait here until the count of ten, then follow. Don't count fast."
Without
waiting for Beata's answer, she sprang into a dead run. Some men watched,
confused by what was going on since she wasn't trying to escape, but heading
right for the center of all the men. The woman dodged between all the horses
racing around the Dominie Dirtch, their riders hooting and hollering.
The man
next to Beata was burbling blood from his crushed nose, maybe drowning in it as
he lay there on his back.
The man
holding Estelle turned. The woman in red yanked the striker from the holder,
tearing it away from the
722
restraints.
The restraints added momentum as they broke. When the striker clouted the man
in the head, Beata could hear it crack his skull from where she stood, as she
finally reached the count of ten. He toppled backward over the rail and fell
beneath the hooves of running horses. In the grip of terror, Beata jumped up
and started running. The woman, with a mighty swing, brought the striker
around, slamming the Dominie Dirtch.
The
world shook with the dull drone of the weapon going off. The sound was
overpowering, like it might shimmy her teeth out of their sockets and vibrate
Beata's skull apart.
The men
on horseback out front screamed. Their horses screamed. The cries ended
abruptly as man and beast alike came apart in a bloody blast. Men still running
round the Dominie Dirtch couldn't stop in time. They skidded or tumbled past
the line to their death.
Beata
ran for all she was worth even as she felt her joints might come apart from the
terrible chime of the Dominie Dirtch.
Wielding
the striker, the woman whacked men off their horses. She seized Estelle by her
arm and practically threw her down the steps as Beata gathered the reins to two
frightened animals.
The men
were in a state of confused panic. They didn't know what would happen with the
weapon, if it would chime again and in turn kill them, too. Beata snatched a
confused, terrified Estelle by the arm.
The
woman in red leaped from the railing onto the back of a man still mounted. The
woman still had the broken neck of the black bottle. She gripped the man around
the middle and ground the broken bottle into his eyes. He fell screaming from
his horse.
She
scooted forward into the saddle and snatched up the reins. She reached the
tired animal she had arrived on, grabbed her saddlebags, and with a cry of fury
urged her horse into a dead run toward Fairfield.
"Up!"
Beata screamed to a dazed and bewildered Estelle.
Thankfully,
the Ander woman understood her chance to
723
escape
and seized it as Beata, too, scrambled atop a horse. Both animals wheeled all
about in the confusion.
Men
went charging off after the woman in red leather. Beata was no horsewoman, but
she knew what she must do. She thumped her heels against the animal's ribs.
Estelle did the same.
The two
of them, one Haken, one Ander, ran for their lives.
"Where
are we going, Sergeant?" Estelle cried out.
Beata
didn't even know what direction she was running, she was just running.
She
wanted the uniform off. It was just another cruel joke played on her by
Bertrand Chanboor.
"I'm
not a sergeant!" Beata yelled back, tears streaming down her face.
"I'm just Beata, a fool, same as you, Estelle."
She
wished she had thanked the woman in red for saving their lives.
CHAPTER
65
DALTON
GLANCED up TO see Hildemara gliding into his new office. She was wearing a
revealing dress of a gold-colored satin with white trim, as if anyone would be
interested in what she had to reveal.
He rose
behind his new, expansive desk, the like of which he had never imagined would
be his.
724
"Hildemara.
What a pleasure to have you stop in for a visit."
She
smiled as she peered at him like a hound eyeing a meal. She ambled around his
desk to stand close beside him, leaning her bottom against the desk's edge so
she could face him intimately.
"Dalton,
you look marvelous in that outfit. New? Must be," she said, running a
finger down the embroidered sleeve. "You look good in this office, too.
Better than my worthless husband ever looked. You bring it some ...
class."
"Thank
you, Hildemara. I must say, you look ravishing yourself."
Her
smile widened-with true pleasure or in mockery, he wasn't sure. She had not
been shy about expressing her admiration for him since the old Sovereign
unexpectedly passed on. On the other hand, he knew her well enough not to be
lulled into turning his back on her, in a manner of speaking. He wasn't able to
decide if she was being warm and friendly, or if she hid an executioner's axe
behind her back. Either way, he was on guard.
"The
vote is counted from the city, and beginning to come in from the returning
soldiers."
Now he
thought he knew the reason for her smile, and the results of the people's say.
Still, one could never be certain of such things.
"And
how are the good people of Anderith responding to Lord Rahl's invitation to
join with him?"
"I'm
afraid Lord Rahl is no match for you, Dalton."
A
tentative smile began to work its way up onto his face. "Really? How
convincing is it? If it isn't a resounding rejection, Lord Rahl may feel he has
cause to press his case."
She
shrugged in a teasing manner. "The people of the city, of course, are
reluctant to believe Lord Rahl. Seven of ten gave him an X."
Dalton
tipped his head up, closed his eyes, and let out a sigh of relief.
'Thank
you Hildemara," he said with a grin. "And the rest?"
725
"Just
starting to come in. It will take the soldiers a time to ride back-"
"But
so far. How goes it so far?"
She
dragged a finger around on the desktop. "Surprising."
That
confused him. "Surprising. How so?"
She
turned a beaming smile up at him. "The worst for us is only three in four
votes our way. Some places have had as many as eight and nine in ten giving
Lord Rahl an X."
Dalton
put a hand to his chest as he let out another sigh of relief. "I thought
as much, but one can never know for sure in such things."
"Simply
amazing, Dalton. You are a wonder." She turned her palms up. "And you
didn't even have to cheat. Imagine that."
Dalton
made two fists of excitement. "Thank you, Hildemara. Thank you for
bringing me the news. If you'll excuse me, I must go straightaway and tell Teresa.
I've been so busy, I've hardly, seen her for weeks. She'll be so glad to hear
the news."
He
started to move, but Hildemara put a restraining finger to his chest. Her smile
had that deadly edge to it again.
'Teresa
already knows, I'm sure,"
Dalton
frowned. "Who would have told her before I was told?"
"Bertrand
told her, I'm sure."
"Bertrand?
What would he be doing telling Teresa news like this?"
Hildemara
made a little simper. "Oh, you know how Bertrand talks when he's between
the legs of a woman he finds thrilling."
Dalton
froze. Alarm bells chimed in his head as he began recalling all the times he
had been absent from Teresa since Bertrand had been named Sovereign, recalling
how taken Teresa was with the figure of Sovereign. He recalled how she had
spent the night up in prayer after meeting the old Sovereign. He recalled her
awe at Bertrand becoming Sovereign. He made himself stop speculating in such a
fashion. Such
726
speculation
was an insidious enemy that could eat you away from inside. Hildemara, knowing
how busy he had been, was probably just hoping to give him a fright, or cause
trouble. That would be like her. "That isn't the least bit amusing,
Hildemara." Propping one hand on the desk, she leaned toward him and ran a
finger of the other hand down his jaw. "Not meant to be."
Dalton
stood silent, carefully trying to keep from making the wrong move before he
knew what was really going on. This could still be a foolish trick of hers,
just to make him angry at Tess, thinking it would somehow drive him into her
own arms, or it could be nothing more than news she misunderstood. He knew,
though, that Hildemara was not likely to get news like this wrong. She had her
own sources and they were as reliable as Dalton's.
"Hildemara,
I don't think you should be repeating slanderous rumors."
"Not
a rumor, my dear Dalton. A fact. I've seen your good wife coming from his
room." "You know Teresa, she likes to pray-" "I've
overheard Bertrand brag to Stein about having her." Dalton nearly
staggered back. "What?" The smirk spread in deadly perfection.
"Apparently, from what Bertrand tells Stein, she is quite the unrestrained
courtesan, and enjoys being a very bad little girl in his bed."
Dalton
felt the blood go to his face in a hot rush. He considered killing Hildemara
where she stood. As his finger touched the hilt of his sword, he considered it
very seriously. Finally, instead, he kept himself under control, although he
could feel his knees trembling.
"I
just thought you should know, Dalton," she added. "I found it quite
sad: my husband is humping your wife and you don't know anything about it. It
could be ... awkward. You could inadvertently embarrass yourself, not
knowing." "Why, Hildemara?" he managed to ask in a whisper.
"Why would you get so much satisfaction from this?"
727
At last
her smile bloomed into true pleasure. "Because I always hated your smug
superiority about your vows of fidelity-the way you looked down your nose,
believing yourself and your wife better than all the rest of us."
By
sheer force of will, Dalton restrained himself. In times of trial or exigency,
he was always able to become analytical in order to apply the best solution to
the situation that confronted him.
With
ruthless resolve, he did that now.
"Thank
you for the information, Hildemara. It could indeed have been
embarrassing."
"Do
me a favor and don't go all gloomy about it, Dalton. You have reason to be
enormously pleased. This is the Sovereign we're talking about. It is, after all,
an honor for any man to provide his wife for as revered and sublime a figure as
the Sovereign of Anderith. You will be loved and respected all the more because
your wife is giving the Sovereign release from the stresses of his high
calling.
"You
should know that, Dalton. After all, you made the man who he is: the Creator's
advisor in this world. Your wife is simply being a loyal subject." She
chuckled. "Very loyal, from what I've overheard. My, but it would take
quite the woman to match her."
She leaned
close and kissed his ear, "But I'd like to try, Dalton, dear." She
looked him in the eye as she straightened. "I've always been fascinated by
you. You are the most devious, dangerous man I've ever met, and I've met some
real pieces of work."
She turned
back from the doorway. "After you come to accept it, you will find it of
no importance, Dalton. You'll see.
"And
then, as you suggested to me before, once your vow was broken, I will be the
first you come to? Don't forget, you promised."
Dalton
stood alone in his office, his mind racing, thinking on what he should do.
728
Kahlan
laid her arms on his shoulders and leaned over, putting her cheek against his
ear. It felt warm and comforting, despite the unneeded distraction. She kissed
his temple.
"How
is it going?"
Richard
stretched with a yawn. Where did one begin?
"This
man was bent seriously out of straight."
"What
do you mean?"
"I
still have a lot to translate, but I'm beginning to get a picture of what
happened." Richard rubbed his eyes'. "The man is sent here to banish
the chimes. He at once scrutinizes the problem, and sees a simple solution. The
wizards at the Keep thought it was inspired genius, and told him so."
"He
must have been proud," she said, clearly meaning the opposite.
He
understood her sardonic tone, and shared the sentiment. "You're right, not
Joseph Ander. He doesn't say it here, but from what we've read before, I know
the way he thinks. Joseph Ander would have felt not pride in himself for
understanding it, but contempt for those who had failed to."
"So,"
she said, "he had the solution. Then what?"
"They
told him to see to it at once. Apparently they were having problems similar to
ours with the chimes, and wanted the threat ended immediately. He complained
that if they had the good sense to send him to see to it, then they should stop
telling him what to do."
"Not
a good way to treat his superiors at the Keep."
"They
implored him to stop the chimes because of the people dying. Apparently, they
knew him well enough to realize they had better not threaten the man, at least
not with the rest of the war to worry about. So, they told him to use his best
judgment, but to please hurry with a solution so people would be safe from the
threat.
729
"He
was much more pleased to get such a message, but used it as a club to start
lecturing the wizards at the Keep."
"About
what?"
Richard
ran his fingers back into his hair. It was frustrating to try to put into words
what Joseph Ander was about.
"There's
a lot left in here to translate. It's slow going. But I don't think this book
is going to tell us how to banish the chimes. Joseph Ander just doesn't think
that way-to write it down."
Kahlan
straightened and turned around with her back to the table so she could stand
facing him.
She
folded her arms. "All right, Richard. I know you better than that. What
aren't you telling me?"
Richard
stood and turned his back to her as he pressed his fingers to his temple.
"Richard,
don't you trust me?"
He
turned to her. He took up her hand. "No, no, it isn't that. It's just...
just that some of the things he says, I don't know where truth leaves off and
Joseph Ander's madness begins. This goes beyond anything I've ever heard about,
been taught, or believed about magic."
Now she
did look concerned. He guessed, in one way, he was raising her fears wrongly.
On the other hand, he couldn't begin to raise them to the levels of his own
fears.
"Joseph
Ander," he began, "thought he was just better than the other
wizards."
"We
already knew that."
"Yes,
but he may have been right."
"What?"\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0 .\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0\xA0
\x95
"Sometimes,
in madness resides genius. Kahlan, I don't know where to draw the line. In one
way not knowing about magic is a liability, but in another it means I'm not
burdened by preconceived notions, the way the wizards at the Keep were, so I
might recognize the truth in his words where they did not.
"You
see, Joseph Ander viewed magic not so much as a set of requirements-you know, a
pinch of this, this word
730
three,
times while turning round on your left foot, and all that kind of thing.
"He
saw magic as an art form-a means of expression."
Kahlan
was frowning. "I don't follow. Either you cast a spell properly to invoke
it, or it doesn't work. Like I call my power with a touch. Like the way we
called the chimes by fulfilling specific requirements of the magic, thereby
releasing it."
He knew
that with her magical ability, her background, and her learning about magic,
she would have the same problem the other wizards did. Richard felt just a
trace of the frustration Joseph Ander must have felt. In that, too, he
understood the man that much better-understood a tiny bit of the frustration of
having people tell you the hard facts of something when you knew better, yet
couldn't get them to see the abstract concept of the greater whole right before
them.
As did
Joseph Ander, Richard thought to try again.
"Yes,
I know, and I'm not saying that doesn't work, but he believed there was more.
That magic could be taken to a higher level-to a plane beyond that which most
people with the gift used."
Now she
really was frowning. "Richard, that's madness."
"No,
I don't think so." He picked up the journey book.
"This
is in answer to something unrelated they asked- but you have to hear this to
understand the way Joseph Ander thinks."
He read
to her the crux of the translation.
"
'A wizard who cannot truly destroy cannot truly create.' " Richard tapped
the book. "He was talking about a wizard like the gifted now, a wizard
with only the Additive-like Zedd. Ander didn't even consider a man to have the
gift, if he didn't have both sides. He thought of such a man as simply an
aberration, and hopelessly disadvantaged."
Richard
went back to the journey book and read on.
"
'A wizard must know himself or he risks working ill magic that harms, his own
free will.' That's him talking
731
about
the creative aspects of magic beyond the structure of it. 'Magic intensifies
and concentrates passions, strengthening not only such things as joy, but
ruinous passions, too, and in this way they may become obsessions, and
unbearable unless released.' "
"Sounds
like he's trying to justify being destructive," she said.
"I
don't think so. I think he's on to something important, a higher balance, as it
were."
Kahlan
shook her head, clearly not catching what he saw, but he could think of no way
to get it across to her, so he read on.
"This
is important. 'Imagination is what makes a great wizard, for with it, he is
able to transcend the limitations of tradition and go beyond the structure of
what now exists into the higher realm of creating the very fabric of magic.'
"
"That's
what you were talking about? About him thinking of it as an ... an art form? A
means of expression? Like he's the Creator Himself-weaving a cloth of magic out
of nothing?"
"Exactly.
But listen to this. This, I believe, may be the most important thing Joseph
Ander has to say. When the chimes ceased being a problem, the other wizards
cautiously asked what he did. You can almost read the anxiety in their words.
This is his terse reply to their question of what he had done to the chimes.
"
'A Grace might rise in obedience to an inventive spell.' "
Kahlan
rubbed her arms, clearly disturbed by the answer. "Dear spirits, what does
that mean?"
Richard
leaned close to her, "I think it means he dreamed up something-a new
magic, outside the parameters of the original conjuring that brought the chimes
into this world. Magic to suit the situation, and himself.
"In
other words, Joseph Ander got creative."
Kahlan's
green eyes cast about. He knew she was considering the depths of aberration
with which they were deal-
732
ing.
This was the madman who had finally inflicted the chimes on them.
'The
world is coming apart," she whispered to herself, "and you're talking
about Joseph Ander using magic as an art form?"
"I'm
just telling you what the man said." Richard turned to the last page.
"I skipped, ahead. I wanted to see the last thing he wrote the
wizards."
Richard
studied the High D'Haran words again to be certain of the translation, and then
read Joseph Ander's words.
"
'In the end, I have concluded I must reject the Creator and the Keeper both. I
instead create my own solution, my own rebirth and death, and in so doing will
always protect my people. And so farewell, for I shall lay my soul on troubled
waters, and thus watch over for all time that which I have so carefully
wrought, and which is now safeguarded and inviolate.' "
Richard
looked up. "See? Do you understand?" He saw she didn't. "Kahlan,
I don't think he banished the chimes as he was supposed to. I think he instead
used them for his own purposes."
Her
nose wrinkled. "Used them? What can you use the chimes for?"
"The
Dominie Dirtch."
"What!"
She squeezed the bridge of her nose between her finger and thumb. "But
then how was it possible for us to follow such a well-defined, prescribed,
strict outline and inadvertently call them forth? That sort of structure is
exactly what you are telling me Joseph Ander thought he was beyond."
Richard
had been waiting for that exact argument. "That's the balance. Don't you
see? Magic must be balanced. In order to do something creative, he had to
balance it with something not creative, a very strict formula. That it is so
strict in its requirements to free the chimes is in itself proof of the
creativity of what he did."
He knew
her well enough to tell she didn't agree, but
733
wasn't
in the mood to argue. She said simply, "So how do we then banish the
chimes?"
Richard
shook his head with defeat in that much of it.
"I
don't know. I fear there is no answer to that question. The wizards of Joseph
Ander's time were equally frustrated by the man. In the end, they simply
considered this place lost to them. I'm beginning to believe Joseph Ander
created an unbreakable magic inside a puzzle without a solution."
Kahlan
took the book from his hands, closed it, and placed it back on the little
table.
"Richard,
I think you're getting a little crazy yourself, reading the rantings of a
lunatic. That's not the way magic works." '
That's
what the wizards at the Keep had told Ander- that he couldn't convert and
control an element that was innately uncontrollable. Richard didn't tell Kahlan
that, though. She wasn't prepared to think of magic in these terms.
Neither
were the other wizards.
Joseph
Ander had not been at all pleased to have his ideas so summarily dismissed,
thus his final farewell.
Kahlan
put her arms around his neck. "I'm sorry. I know you're trying your best.
I'm just getting nervous. The vote should be coming back soon."
Richard
put his hands on her waist. "Kahlan, people will see the truth. They have
to."
She
gazed off. "Richard," she whispered, "make love to me?"
"What?"
She
looked up into his eyes. "It's been so long. Make love to me."
"Here?
Now?"
"We
can tie the tent shut. No one comes in without asking
734
permission
anyway." She smiled. "I promise to be quiet, and not to embarrass
you." With a finger, she lifted his chin. "I promise I won't even
tell your other wife."
That
brought a brief smile, but Richard wasn't able to keep hold of it.
"Kahlan,
we can't."
"Well,
I think I could. I bet I could change your mind, too."
Richard
lifted the small dark stone on her necklace. "Kahlan, magic has failed.
This won't work."
"I
know. That's why I want to." She clutched at his shirt. "Richard, I
don't care. What if we make a baby? So what?"
"You
know 'so what.' "
"Richard,
would it be so bad? Really?" Her green eyes were filling with tears.
"Would it be so bad if we made a child together?"
"No,
no, of course not. It isn't that. You know I want to. But we can't right now.
We can't afford to see Shota in every shadow, waiting to do as she promised. We
can't afford the distraction from our duty."
"Our
duty. What about us. What about what we want?"
Richard
turned away. "Kahlan, do you really want to bring a child into this world?
Do you want to bring a child into the madness of this world? The madness of the
chimes .and a horrific war looming before us?"
"What
if I said yes?"
He
turned back to her and smiled. He could see he was only upsetting her. Du
Chaillu being pregnant was probably making Kahlan think of having her own
child.
"Kahlan,
I want to, if you do. All right? Whenever you want, we will, and I'll deal with
Shota. But in the meantime could we wait until we see if there is even going to
be a world of life-or even a world with freedom-into which we can bring our
child?"
She
finally smiled. "Of course. You're right, Richard. I guess I was just
getting... carried away. We have the chimes to deal with, and the Imperial
Order..."
735
Richard
took her in his arms to comfort her, when Captain Meiffert called from outside
the tent. "See?" he whispered to her. She smiled.
"Yes,
Captain, come on in."
The man
stepped inside reluctantly. He wouldn't meet Richard's gaze.
"What
is it, Captain?"
"Ah,
Lord Rahl, Mother Confessor... the vote in Fair-field is counted. Some of our
men have returned with numbers. But not all of them," he was quick to add.
"There are more yet to come back. It will take a few days yet before they
all travel back."
"So,
Captain, what are the results?"
The man
handed over a slip of paper. Richard read it, but it took a moment for it to
sink in.
"Seven
in ten against us," he whispered.
Kahlan
gently lifted the paper from his fingers and looked at it. Without a word, she
set it on the table.
"All
right," he said, "we know they were telling all those lies in the
city. We just have to realize it will be different out around the land."
"Richard,"
Kahlan whispered, "they will spread the same lies around the land."
"But
we talked to those people. We spent time with them." Richard turned to
Captain Meiffert. "What about the outlying places?'' .
"Well-"
"What
about, about, that place-" Richard snapped his fingers. "Westbrook.
Where we spent time looking at Joseph Ander's things. What about Westbrook? Is
the vote back from there?"
The man
had backed away a step. "Yes, Lord Rahl."
"And
what is it, then?"
Kahlan
put a hand on his arm. "Richard," she whispered, "the captain is
on our side."
Richard
pressed his fingers to his temples as he took a breath. "What is the vote
from Westbrook, Captain?"
The
man, having lost much of his color, cleared his throat.
736
"Nine
of ten marked an X against us, Lord Rahl."
Richard
stood stunned. He had talked to those people. He remembered some of their
names, their beautiful children.
Richard
felt as if the ground had disappeared from beneath his feet, and he was falling
through insanity. He had been up day and night, trying to help these people
have their own way over their lives, have freedom, and they rejected it.
"Richard,"
Kahlan said in soft sympathy, "it was nothing you did. They told those
people lies. They frightened the people."
Richard
lifted a hand in a vague manner. "But... I talked to them, explained to
them that this was for them, for their future, for the freedom of their
children...."
"I
know, Richard."
Captain
Meiffert stood awkwardly. Kahlan signaled with a hand, dismissing him. He bowed
and quietly backed out of the tent.
"I'm
going for a walk," Richard whispered. "I need to be by myself."
He waved toward the blankets. "Just go on to bed without me."
Richard
walked alone into the darkness.
737
CHAPTER
66
HE
QUIETLY DISMISSED FOR the evening the woman dusting all the elaborate woodwork
and, after closing the door behind her, went to the bedroom. Teresa turned when
she heard him come in.
"Dalton."
She smiled. "There you are, sweetheart."
"Tess."
He had
run the entire state of affairs through his mind a thousand times and had
finally come to the place where he could face Tess and know he would be able to
control his response.
He had
to control himself.
He had
retreated into his most trusted method of handling things. Only there could he
be sure of his control. He was going to handle this, just as he handled so many
other things.
"I
didn't expect to see you in so early."
"Tess,
I heard something."
She sat
at the mirror, brushing her beautiful hair.
"Really?
Some interesting news?"
"A
bit. I heard you have been occupying the bed of the Sovereign. Is this
true?"
He knew
now it was. He had pulled every thread of his cobweb.
738
She
stopped brushing and looked at him in the mirror, her face a mix of emotions.
Defiance predominated them.
"Dalton,
it's not like he's another man. It's the Sovereign." She stood and turned
to him, unsure how he was going to react. "He is next to the
Creator."
"May
I ask how this came about?"
"Bertrand
said the Creator spoke to him." She stared off to a distant place.
"The Creator told Bertrand that because I had been faithful to you, and
had never been with another man, and because you had been faithful to me, the
Creator had chosen me to be the one to release Bertrand's worldly
tensions."
Her
eyes focused on him again.
"So,
you see, it's a reward for you, too, Dalton. For your faithfulness to me."
Dalton
made himself answer. "Yes, I can see that."
"Bertrand
says it is my holy duty."
"Holy
duty."
"When
I'm with him, it's like... I don't know. It's so special. To help the Sovereign
in this world is an honor as well as a duty. To think, I help relieve him of
the awful tension that builds up in him from being Sovereign.
"It's
an awesome responsibility, Dalton, being Sovereign."
Dalton
nodded. "You're right."
Seeing
that he wasn't going to get angry and harm her, she stepped closer.
"Dalton,
I still love you just the same."
"I'm
glad to hear it, Tess. That was what I'm most worried about. I fear I've lost
your love."
She
grasped his shoulders. "No, silly. Never. I still love you the same. But
the Sovereign has called upon me. You have to understand that. He needs
me."
Dalton
swallowed. "Of course, darling. But we can ... we can still be ... we can
still be together in bed?"
"Oh,
Dalton, of course we can. Is that what you were worried about? That I'd not
have time for you, too? Dalton, I love you, and will always want you."
739
"Good."
He nodded. "That's good."
"Come
to bed, sweetheart, and I'll show you. You might even find me more exciting,
now.
"And
Dalton, it's a high honor to be with the Sovereign. Everyone will only think
more of you."
"I'm
sure you're right."
"Come
to bed, then." She kissed his cheek. "Let me show you how happy I can
make you?"
Dalton
scratched his forehead. "Ah, I would love nothing better, really I would,
but I have a whole pile of urgent work. The vote just came in...."
"I
know. Bertrand told me."
"Bertrand."
She
nodded. "The Sovereign, silly. He told me. I'm so proud of you, Dalton. I
know you had a part in it. It wasn't all just Bertrand's work. I know you had a
hand in helping him win."
"A
part. It's kind of the Sovereign to take note of my contribution."
"He
speaks very highly of you, Dalton."
"I'm
pleased to hear that." Dalton cleared his throat. "Ah, look, Tess,
I've got to get to ... get to my, my work. I have urgent matters."
"Should
I wait up?"
Dalton
waved a hand. "No. No, darling, I have to make a trip into Fair-field to
see to some matters."
"Tonight?
Yet tonight?"
"Yes."
"Dalton,
you mustn't work so hard. Promise me you will take some time for yourself.
Promise me? I worry for you."
"You
shouldn't. I'm fine."
She
smiled her most intimate smile. "Promise me you will make time to make
love to me?"
Dalton
smiled. "Of course. I promise." He kissed her cheek. "Good
night, darling."
740
The
woman holding out the vial frowned. "Do I know you?"
"No,"
Kahlan said, turning her face down so it would be shadowed by the lamplight.
"I don't see how. I'm from far away. I only came into Fan-field for
this."
Kahlan
wore common clothes she used for traveling, and a head wrap made of a scarf so
her long hair would be hidden. She put on the head wrap after she was away from
their camp. With Richard off somewhere, the soldiers insisted on escorting her
on her walk to get "some air." She had gruffly ordered them to leave
her alone and go back to their posts.
Such
orders would never have worked with Cara. Cara would have ignored them. The
soldiers were not as fearless, \x95 or as reckless, or as smart, as Cara.
The
woman sighed. "Well, I understand, my dear. A number of women have made a
journey for such as this."
She
held out the stoppered vial, clearly expecting payment first. Kahlan passed her
a gold sovereign.
"Keep
it all. I expect your silence in return."
The
woman bowed her head. "I quite understand. Thank you, my dear. Very
generous of you. Thank you."
Kahlan
took the vial, holding it .nestled in her palm, staring through its clouded
glass at the clear liquid inside. She realized her other hand was on her belly.
She let the arm drop to her side.
"Now,"
the woman said, pointing at the poorly made glass vial, "it will remain
good for the night, since I just mixed it for you. You can take it whenever you
please, but if you wait until morning it will likely not still be potent
enough. I'd suggest you do it tonight, before you go to bed."
"Will
it hurt?"
The
woman's face frowned with concern. "Likely not more than a regular cycle,
my dear. Not with it being this early. There will just be the bleeding, so be
prepared for that."
Kahlan
had meant would it hurt the baby. She couldn't bring herself to repeat the
question.
741
"Just
drink it all down," the woman went on. "It isn't so bad to taste, but
you might want some tea with it." 'Thank you." Kahlan turned to the
door.
"Wait,"
said the woman. She came up close and took Kahlan's hand. "I'm sorry, my
dear. You're plenty young, you can have another."
A
thought struck her. "This won't impair my ability-" "No, no,
dear. Not at all. You'll be fine." "Thank you," Kahlan said as
she stepped toward the door, suddenly eager to be out of the little home, out
into the darkness, and alone, in case she had to cry.
The
woman snatched Kahlan's arm and turned her around. "I don't usually
lecture young women, because by the time they come to me the time for lecturing
is long past, but I hope you get yourself married, dear. I help when I'm
needed, but I'd rather help you deliver your baby than shed it, I really
would."
Kahlan
nodded. "I feel the same. Thank you." -\xA0\xA0 The streets of Fairfield were dark, but there were still people
going about their business. Kahlan knew that when the Imperial Order came, the
business of their lives would be soon turned inside out.
At that
moment, though, she had trouble caring. She decided she would do it before she
got back. She feared Richard .finding the vial, and having to explain it to
him. Richard would never let her do this, but since he didn't know about her
condition, she had been able to get his true feelings and wishes.
He was
right. They had the rest of the people to worry about. They couldn't let their
personal problem bring harm to everyone. Shota would keep her word about such a
thing, and then they wouldn't be able to see to their duty. This would be best.
On the
way out of the city, she saw Dalton Campbell coming up the street on horseback,
so she turned down a dark street. He always seemed to be a man of careful
742
thought.
As He rode by, Kahlan thought he looked as if he was in another world. She
wondered what he was doing in a part of the city that had a reputation for ill
repute.
She
waited until he passed before she went on her way.
As she
reached the road back to the Minister's estate, where their men were camped,
she saw the glint of moonlight off the top rail of a carriage in the far
distance. It would, be some time before the plodding carriage reached her, but
she turned off the road just the same. She didn't want to meet anyone along the
road, especially someone who might recognize her.
The
lump in her throat was near to choking her as she walked into the field of
wheat. Silent tears streamed down her cheeks. Off the road a ways, she finally
sank to her knees, giving in to the tears.
As she
stared at the vial resting in her palm, moonlight reflecting off the wavy
glass, she couldn't recall ever feeling much lower in her life. She sobbed back
a cry, stifling her weeping, reminding herself this was for the good of
everyone. It was. She was sure of it.
She
pulled the stopper, letting it fall from her fingers. She held, the vial up,
trying to see it in the watery moonlight. She pressed her other hand over their
child: her child; Richard's child.
Swallowing
back the tears, she put the vial to her lips. She paused, waiting until she
could get control of her breathing. She didn't want to empty it into her mouth,
and then not be able to swallow.
Kahlan
pulled it away from her lips. She stared at it in the moonlight, again, and
thought of everything this meant.
And
then she turned it over, emptying the liquid out on the ground.
Immediately,
she felt a wave of relief, as if her life had been spared and hope had returned
to the world.
When
she stood the tears were a distant memory, already drying on her cheeks. Kahlan
smiled with, relief, with joy. Their child was safe.
743
She
threw the empty vial out into the field. When she did so, Kahlan saw a man
standing out in the wheat, watching her. She froze.
He
started toward her, purposefully, quickly. Kahlan looked to the side and saw
other men coming. Behind, yet more were closing on her. Young men, she saw, all
with red hair.
Not
waiting an instant for the situation to get any worse, she reacted
instinctively and broke into a dead run toward their camp.
Rather
than trying to go between the men, she headed directly toward one. He hunkered
down, feet spread, arms out, waiting.
Kahlan
raced up to him and seized his arm. She looked into his eyes, recognizing him
as a messenger named Rowley. Without effort of thought, and in that instant,
she released her power into him, bracing for the jolt that would take him.
The
same instant nothing happened, she realized it was because the chimes had
caused her magic to fail. She thought she felt it within her as always, but it
was gone.
In that
same instant of realization, recognition, and failure, she suddenly did feel
magic. Kahlan knew the tingling invasion of magic, overpowering in its onrushing
surge, snaking into her like a viper down a hole, and just as deadly. She
jerked her arm back, but too late, she knew. Men closed in from both sides,
less concerned now that they had her. Men behind were still running toward
them.
Only an
instant had passed since she first grabbed Rowley and let him go. In that time
she made the only decision she could. She had only one chance: fight or die.
Kahlan
kicked the man to her right in the sternum. She felt the bone snap under her
boot heel. He went down with an indrawn gasp. She kneed Rowley in the groin.
She gouged at the eyes of the man on her left.
It
bought her an opening. She raced for it, only to be brought up short when a man
behind got her by the hair,
744
jerking
her violently back. She spun, kicking him in the side, using her elbows as men
closed in.
It was
the last strike she landed. They caught her arms. A heavy blow slammed into her
middle. She instantly knew it had done something terrible to her. Another to
her face, and then another, took her senses. She couldn't get her wind. She
didn't know up from down. She couldn't breathe. She tried to cover her face,
but they had her arms. She gasped as more fists hammered her middle. More
snapped her head this way and that. She tried to swallow the blood in her mouth
before it choked her. She heard the men growl, like a pack of dogs, and grunt
with the effort of hitting her as hard as they could. The fierce panic of
helplessness seized her.
The
blows rained down. She hung helpless. The pain was stunning. They pounded her
toward the ground.
Blackness,
like death itself, swallowed her.
And
then the pain ebbed away into nothingness, and the merciful peace of the Light
enveloped her.
In a
daze, Richard walked through the field of moonlit wheat. Everything was such a
mess. He felt as if so much was piled on top of him he couldn't breathe. He
didn't know what to do. The chimes, the Imperial Order, none of it was going
right.
Yet
everyone depended on him, whether or not they knew it. The people of the
Midlands counted on him to repel the Imperial Order. The D'Harans depended on
him for leadership. Everyone was in danger from the chimes, and they were
growing stronger by the day.
On top
of that, to have worked and sacrificed so much for these people of Anderith,
only to have them turn away from him, was crushing.
The
worst of it, though, was that he and Kahlan had to
745
put it
all before a child. Richard was willing to risk Shota, if Kahlan was. He knew
the danger a child could pose, but he was willing to fight for their right to
their own future. But how could they worry about a child now, with the chimes
and the Order both ruthlessly bearing down on the world? Adding Shota into the
mix would be beyond reason. Kahlan saw that, too, but he knew it was hard for
her, putting duty first her whole life.
But if
they didn't do their part, their duty, the world would fall to Jagang's
tyranny, into slavery. If the chimes didn't kill them all first. Before any of
the rest of it, they had to stop the chimes. The chimes were nobody's fault but
his. He was responsible for banishing them.
Still,
even if he could figure out what Joseph Ander had done, they had Jagang to deal
with before they could think about having a child. Kahlan understood that. He
thanked the good spirits for that one thing good in his life: Kahlan.
He
realized he must be close to Fairfield. He should turn back. Kahlan would be
worried. He had been gone a long time. He didn't want to worry her. She had
enough worries. He hoped she "wouldn't be too distraught about not having
a child right now.
As he
turned, he thought he heard something. He straightened and listened. He didn't
know how long the noise had gone on because he hadn't been paying much
attention to anything but trying to think of solutions to their problems. Now
he cocked his head to hear. It sounded oddly like muffled thuds.
Without
stopping to think it over, Richard started running toward the sound. As he got
closer, he realized he heard men grunting in effort, panting, exerting
themselves.
Richard
burst upon them, a gang of men, beating someone on the ground. He seized the
hair of one and yanked him back. Under the man, he saw a bloody body.
They
were beating the poor soul to death.
Richard
recognized the man he had. It was one of the messengers. Rowley, he thought the
man's name was. He had a wild, savage look in his eyes.
746
Rowley,
seeing that it was Richard, immediately went for his throat, crying. "Get
him!"
Richard
whipped his other arm around Rowley's neck, seized his chin, bent him over, and
yanked back, snapping his neck. Rowley went down in a limp heap.
Another
man sprang forward. His onrushing momentum was his worst mistake. Richard
rammed the heel of his hand square into the man's face.
He was
still falling across Rowley as Richard snatched the red hair of another, pulled
him forward, and drove his knee up into the man's jaw. His jaw broken, he
staggered back.
The men
were all up, now, and Richard realized he might soon be joining the body on the
ground. His advantage was that they were already tired from their exertion. His
disadvantage was that they greatly outnumbered him, and they were mad with
blood lust.
Just as
they were about to dive onto Richard, they saw something and scattered. Richard
spun around and saw the Baka Tau Mana blade masters sweeping in out of the
night, their swords whistling through the night air.
Richard
realized they must have been shadowing him as he went for his walk to be alone.
He hadn't even known they were there. As they went after the mob, Richard knelt
down beside the body in the trampled wheat.
Whoever
it was, they were dead.
Richard
stood with a sorrowful sigh. He stared down at the broken form that had once
been a person, probably only a short time before. It looked like it must have
been a terrible end.
If only
he had been closer, sooner, he might have been able to stop it. Suddenly not
having the stomach to look at the bloody body, or others nearby, Richard walked
away.
He
hadn't gone more than a few paces when a thought brought him to a halt. He
turned around and looked. He winced at the notion, but then thought: What if it
had been someone he cared about? Wouldn't he want somebody who was there to do
whatever they could? He was the only one
747
around
to help, if he even could. He guessed it was worth a try-the person was already
dead, there was nothing to lose.
He ran
back and knelt beside the body. He couldn't even tell if it was a man or a
woman, except that there were pants, so he assumed it to be a man. He put a
hand under the neck and wiped some of the mask of blood from the swollen, cut
lips and then put his over them.
He
remembered what Denna had done to him, when he was near death. He recalled Cara
doing it to Du Chaillu.
He blew
a breath of life into the lifeless corpse. He lifted his mouth and listened to
the breath wheeze from the body. He blew another breath, and then another, and
then another.
He
knelt by the body for what seemed like ages but he knew could be only minutes,
blowing in the breath of life, hoping against hope that the poor unfortunate
soul would still be with them. He prayed to the good spirits for help.
He
wanted so much for something good to come of his experience at the hands of
Denna, the Mord-Sith. He knew Denna would want life to be her legacy. Cara had
already brought Du Chaillu back, proving that Mord-Sith could do more than take
life.
He
again prayed fervently to the good spirits to help him, to keep this soul here
with this person, rather than take it now.
With a
gasp, life returned.
Someone
was coming. Richard looked up and saw two of the blade masters trotting back.
Richard didn't need to ask if they were successful. That gang of young men would
murder no more people in the night.
Someone
else was coming, too. It was an older gentleman in dark clothes. He rushed up
with frightened urgency.
The man
was staggered by the sight. "Oh, dear Creator, not another one."
"Another
one?" Richard asked.
The man
fell to his knees, seeming not to hear Richard. He took up a bloody hand,
pressing it to his cheek.
"Thank
the Creator," he whispered. He looked up at Richard. "I have a
carriage." He pointed. "Just there, on the road.
748
Help me,
get this poor wretch to my carriage and we can take him to my home."
"Where?"
Richard asked.
"Fairfield,"
the man said, watching the blade masters carefully, tenderly, lift the
unconscious but breathing person.
"Well,"
Richard said, wiping the blood from his mouth. "I guess it's a lot closer
than the camp with my soldiers."
Richard
thought he might have to help the man, but the man refused the offer of a
helping arm.
"Are
you Lord Rahl, then?"
Richard
nodded. The man stopped then, pulling Richard's hand up to shake it.
"Lord
Rahl, I'm honored to meet you, though not under such circumstances. My name is
Edwin Winthrop."
Richard
pumped the man's hand. "Master Winthrop."
"Edwin,
please." Edwin grasped Richard's shoulders. "Lord Rahl, this is just
terrible. My beloved wife, Claudine-"
Edwin
fell into tears. Richard gently took hold of his arms to be sure the man
wouldn't collapse.
"My
beloved wife Claudine was murdered in just this fashion. Beaten to death out on
this road."
"I'm
so sorry," Richard said, now understanding Edwin's reaction.
"Let
me help this poor wretch. No one was there to help my Claudine as you've helped
this person. Please, Lord Rahl, let me help."
"It's
Richard, Edwin. I would like nothing better than for you to help."
Richard
watched as Jiaan and his blade masters helped to carefully load the person into
the carriage.
"I'd
like three of you to go with Edwin. We can't tell if whoever is responsible for
this will try again."
"There
will be no one to report their failure," Jiaan said.
"They
will realize it sooner or later." Richard turned to Edwin. "You must
not tell anyone of this, or you will be in danger. They might come to finish
the job."
Edwin
was nodding as he climbed into his carriage. "I have a healer, a lifelong
friend, I can trust."
749
Richard
and two of the blade masters walked the lonely road back to camp in silence.
They had previously expressed their absolute faith that he would banish the
chimes that had tried to kill their spirit woman. Richard didn't have the heart
to tell them he was no closer to doing so than he was back then.
When he
got back, most of the camp was asleep. Richard wasn't in the mood to talk with
the officers or sentries. He was thinking about Joseph Ander and the chimes.
Kahlan
wasn't in their tent. She had probably gone to be with Du Chaillu. Du Chaillu
had come to value Kahlan's presence-the comfort of another woman. It was close
to time for the baby to be born.
Richard
took Joseph Ander's journey book and a lamp and went to another tent used by
officers for planning. He wanted to work on translating more of the journey
book, but didn't want to keep Kahlan from sleeping when she got back. Richard
knew that if he worked in their tent, she would want to sit up with him. There
was no need for that.
CHAPTER
67
RICHARD
WAS PUZZLING OVER an involved and confusing translation, trying to work through
the maze of possible meanings, when Jiaan slipped into the tent. The soldiers
would have asked permission to enter; the blade masters just
750
assumed
they had permission to go wherever they wanted. After the constant formality
with the soldiers, Richard found it refreshing.
"Caharin,
you must come with me. Du Chaillu has sent me."
Richard
shot to his feet. "The baby? The baby is coming? I'll get Kahlan. Let's
go."
"No."
Jiaan put a restraining hand against Richard's shoulder. "Not your child.
She sent me to get you, and she said to come alone."
"She
doesn't want me to get Kahlan?"
"No,
Caharin. Please, you must do as our spirit woman, your wife, asks."
Richard
had never seen such a look of concern in Jiaan's dark eyes. The man was always
stone with a sword. Richard held out a hand, inviting Jiaan to lead the way.
To his
surprise, it was near dawn. Richard had been working the entire night. He hoped
Kahlan was asleep; if she wasn't, she would scold him for not getting any rest.
Jiaan
had two horses saddled and waiting. Richard was startled. The man would run
rather than ride unless Du Chaillu told him to ride, and that was just about
never.
"What's
going on?" Richard gestured off toward Du Chaillu's tent. "I thought
Du Chaillu wanted me."
Jiaan
swung into his saddle. "She is in the city."
"What
is she doing in Fairfield? I'm not sure it's safe there for her, not after
they've been turning everyone against us."
"Please,
Caharin. I beg you, come with me, and hurry."
Richard
sprang up onto his horse. "Of course. I'm sorry, Jiaan. Let's go."
Richard
was beginning to worry that Du Chaillu had already come to trouble from people
in Fairfield. They knew she was with Richard and Kahlan. For that matter, they
knew she was Richard's wife.
He
urged his horse into a run. Anxiety twisted in his gut.
751
The door
to a house set back among trees opened. Edwin peered out. Richard, by now in a
state of deep concern, relaxed a bit. The person they saved was probably not
making it, and they wanted him to see them before death came, since he had
breathed the breath of life back into them.
Richard
didn't understand what Du Chaillu was doing there, but he surmised that she had
a common bond with the person, having been brought back to life in the same way
herself.
Edwin,
looking concerned and frightened, led them back through hallways and through
well-kept rooms in the large house. It had an empty, quiet, sad feel to it.
With Edwin's wife murdered, Richard thought it was to be expected.
They
reached a room at the end of a short, dimly lit hall. The door was closed.
Jiaan knocked softly, and then escorted the despondent Edwin away.
Edwin
caught Richard's sleeve. "Anything you need, Richard, I'm here."
Richard
nodded and Edwin let Jiaan take him away. The door eased open. Du Chaillu
peered out. When she saw it was Richard, she came out, putting a hand to his
chest, backing him away. She pulled the door closed behind herself.
She
kept the restraining hand on his chest. "Richard, you must listen to me.
You must listen very carefully, and not become crazy."
"Crazy?
Crazy about what?"
"Richard,
please, this is important. You must listen, and do as I say. Promise me."
Richard
could feel the blood draining out of his face. He nodded. "I promise, Du
Chaillu. What is it?"
She
stepped closer. Keeping the hand on his chest, she added the other to his arm.
"Richard,
the person you found ... it was Kahlan."
752
"That's
not possible. I'd know Kahlan." Du Chaillu's eyes were brimming with
tears. "Richard, please, I don't know if she will live. You brought her
back, but I don't know if... I wanted you to come."
He was
having trouble getting his breath. "But..." He couldn't think.
"But, I would have known. Du Chaillu, you must be wrong. I would have
known if it was Kahlan."
Du
Chaillu squeezed his arm. "I did not know myself until we cleaned some
..."
Richard
made for the door. Du Chaillu pushed him back. "You promised. You promised
to listen."
Richard
was hardly hearing her. He couldn't think. He could only see that bloody broken
body lying there in the field. He couldn't make himself believe it was Kahlan.
Richard
pushed his fingers back into his hair. He struggled to find his voice. "Du
Chaillu, please, don't do this to me. Please don't you do this to me."
She
shook the arm. "You must have strength, or she has no chance. Please, do
not go crazy on me."
"What
do you need? Name it. Name it, Du Chaillu." Tears were running down his
face. "Please, tell me what you need."
"I
need you to listen to me. Are you listening?"
Richard
nodded. He wasn't sure what she was asking, but he nodded as his mind was
racing. He could cure her. He had magic.
Healing
was Additive.
The
chimes took all the Additive Magic.
She
shook him again. "Richard."
"I'm
sorry. What. I'm listening."
Du Chaillu
finally could no longer hold his gaze. "She lost her child."
Richard
blinked. "Then you are wrong. It can't be Kahlan."
Du
Chaillu stared at the floor and took a deep breath.
"Kahlan
was pregnant. She told me when we were at the place where you read the things
of the Ander man."
"Westbrook?"
753
Du
Chaillu nodded. "There, before you went with her
riding
alone up to the mountain lake, she told me. She made
me
promise not to tell you. She said only it was a long
story.
I think now you have the right to my broken promise.
"She
has lost her child."
Richard
sank to the floor. Du Chaillu hugged him as he wept uncontrollably.
"Richard,
I understand your pain, but this will not help her."
Richard,
somehow, forced himself to stop. He leaned back against the wall, numb and
dazed, waiting for Du Chaillu to tell him what he could do. "You must stop
the chimes." He rushed to his feet. "What?" "You could heal
her if you had your magic." It all fell into place. He had to stop the
chimes. That was all. Just stop the chimes, and then heal Kahlan.
"Richard,
when we were at that place where Kahlan told me she was with child..." The
words "with child" jolted him anew, as he realized that Kahlan was
going to have a child, and he never knew, and now it had already died.
"... Westbrook ... Richard, listen to me. When we were there, the people
said there was terrible wind, and rain, and fire that destroyed almost
everything of that man." "Yes, I believe it was the chimes."
"They hated him.. You must have that same hate in your heart for the
chimes so that you may vanquish them. Then you can have your magic back and
heal Kahlan."
Richard's
mind was racing. The chimes hated Joseph Ander. Why? Not because the man had
sent them back-he didn't do that. He had instead enslaved the chimes to serve
him. The Dominie Dirtch were somehow connected to what he did.
When
Richard and Kahlan freed the chimes, they took their vengeance on certain of
his possessions. But why the things at Westbrook, and not those in the library
at the Minister's estate?
Joseph
Ander's words rang in his head.
754
In the
end, I have concluded I must reject the Creator and the Keeper both. I instead
create my own solution, my own rebirth and death, and in so doing will always
protect my people. And so farewell, for I shall lay my soul on troubled waters,
and thus watch over for all time that which I have so carefully wrought, and
which is now safeguarded and inviolate.
Troubled
waters.
Richard
finally understood what Joseph Ander had done.
"I
have to go. Du Chaillu, I have to go." Richard seized her by the
shoulders. "Please, keep her alive until I get back. You must!"
"Richard,
we will do our best. You have my word as your wife."
"Edwin!"
The man
came shuffling down the hall. "Yes, Richard. What can I do? Name it."
"Can
you hide these people here? My wife-" Richard had to swallow to keep
control. "Can you keep Kahlan here? And Du Chaillu, and her five
men?"
Edwin
swept his arm in a wide arc, indicating his home. "It's a big house. A lot
of room. No one will know who is here. I keep few friends, and the ones I have
I would trust with my life."
Richard
shook the man's hand. "Thank you, Edwin. In return, I would ask you to
leave your home when I come back."
"What?
Why?"
"The
Imperial Order is coming."
"But
aren't you going to stop them?"
Richard
threw up his hands. "How? More to the point, why? These people have
rejected the chance I've given them. Edwin, they murdered your wife just as
they tried to murder mine. And you would have me risk the lives of good people
to preserve their well-being?"
Edwin
sagged. "No, I suppose not. There are some of us who were on your side,
Richard. Some of us tried."
"I
know. That is why I'm giving you warning. Tell your
755
friends
to get out while they can. I'm sending my men out today. The Imperial Order
will be here within two weeks."
"How
long will you be gone?"
"Maybe
eight days-at the most. I have to get up to the wasteland above the Nareef
Valley."
"Nasty
place."
Richard
nodded. "You've no idea."
"We
will care for the Mother Confessor as well as anyone can."
"Do
you have barrels, Edwin?"
The man
frowned. "Yes, down in the cellar."
"Fill
them with water. Collect food now. In a few days the water and anything growing
may not be safe."
"Why
would that be?"
Richard
ground his teeth. "Jagang is coming here for food. I'm going to give him a
bellyache, at least."
"Richard,"
Du Chaillu said in a soft voice, meeting his gaze. "I'm not sure ... do
you want to see her before you go?"
Richard
steeled himself. "Yes. Please."
Richard
galloped his horse the whole way back to the encampment. He could get a fresh
horse there, so he didn't spare the poor animal. It looked .to him as he rode
in that Captain Meiffert had the troops at a high state of alert. Sentries were
doubled, and posted farther out than usual. They had no doubt heard from the
Baka Tau Mana that there had been trouble.
Richard
hoped the man wouldn't ask about Kahlan. He didn't think he could hold himself
together if he had to tell him about her, if he had to describe the sight of
her in that bed.
Even
knowing it was her, Richard had hardly recognized her.
756
It was
a sight beyond horror. It broke his heart. He had never felt so alone in the
world, nor known such anguish.
Instead
of falling to pieces, Richard struggled to put his mind to the task at hand. He
had to put Kahlan out of his mind, if he was to help her. He knew that was impossible,
but he tried to keep his thoughts on Joseph Ander and what must be done.
He
needed to be able to heal her. He would do anything to remedy her suffering.
Thankfully, she wasn't conscious.
Richard
thought he knew what Joseph Ander had done, but he didn't have the slightest
idea of what he might do to counter it. He figured he had several days until he
got there to think about it.
Richard
still had the Subtractive side of his power. He had used that before and
understood a little about it. Nathan, a prophet and Richard's ancestor, had
once told him that his gift was different from that of other wizards because he
was a war wizard. Richard's power worked through need. And, it was invoked by
anger.
Richard
had a powerful need, now.
He had
enough anger for ten wizards.
The
thought hit him-that was part of the way Joseph Ander described what he did. He
created what he needed. Richard wished he knew how this insight might help him.
Captain
Meiffert clapped a hand to the leather over his heart as Richard leaped off his
horse.
"Captain,
I need a fresh horse. In fact, I had better have three. I have to go."
Richard pressed his fingers to his forehead, trying to think. "I want you
to get these men packed up, and as soon as all the rest come in from watching
the vote, I want you out of here."
"Where
are we going, Lord Rahl, if I might ask?"
"You
and your men are going back to General Reibisch. I won't be going with
you."
The
captain followed Richard as he went to gather up his and Kahlan's things. As
Captain Meiffert followed, he issued orders to several of his men, calling for
fresh horses
757
for
Lord Rahl, along with supplies. Richard told one of the soldiers he wanted
their best mounts for a long hard ride. The man ran off to see to the task.
The
captain waited outside as Richard went into the tent to pack. He began
gathering their things. When he picked up Kahlan's white Mother Confessor
dress, his hands began trembling, and he fell to his knees, overcome with
grief.
Alone
in the tent, he prayed, begging the good spirits as never before to help him.
He promised them anything they wanted in return. Recalling that the only thing
he knew he could do was to banish the chimes so he might heal Kahlan, he set
about finishing as quickly as he could.
Outside,
the horses were waiting. It was just getting light. "Captain, I want you
and your men to get back to General Reibisch as soon as you can."
"And
the Dominie Dirtch? With the reports of the special Ander guard units, I think
we may have trouble. Will we be safe going past the Dominie Dirtch?"
"No.
From the reports, I would suspect the guard troops to be Imperial Order men. I
would also expect them to take the Dominie Dirtch in order to keep Reibisch at
bay.
"From
this moment on, you are to consider yourself in enemy, territory. Your orders
are to escape. If anyone tries to stop you, kill them and keep going.
"If
the Order, as I suspect, takes the Dominie Dirtch, we can use the one weakness
they will have-they will be spread too thin to resist you in force.
"Assume
Imperial Order troops will be manning the Dominie Dirtch. Concentrate your
force into a cavalry charge and punch through their line. Because they have
control of the Dominie Dirtch, they probably won't offer much resistance,
thinking they can kill you once you go past."
The man
was looking worried. "Then ... you think you will have the stone weapons
down by then, Lord Rahl? You will counter their magic?"
"I
hope to. But I may not. Just in case, I want you and all your men to plug your
ears and your horses' ears with
758
wax and
cotton, or cloth. Plug them tight so you can't hear until you're over the
horizon."
"You
mean that will protect us?"
"Yes."
Richard
thought he understood the way the Dominie Dirtch worked. Du Chaillu had told
them that when she drowned, she heard the chimes of death. Joseph Ander would
have needed a way to control and focus the killing power of the chimes. He gave
them the answer in what he had created.
"The
Dominie Dirtch are bells. They would be bells for a reason: to be heard. If you
can't hear them, then you won't be harmed."
The
captain cleared his throat. "Lord Rahl, I don't mean to question your
knowledge of things of magic, but can a weapon of that much destructive power
be defeated so easily?"
"It
was done before, I believe. I think the Haken people who once invaded must have
figured it out, too, and in so doing were able to get past."
"But,
Lord Rahl-"
"Captain,
I'm the magic against magic. Trust me. It will work. I trust you to be die
steel, trust me with the magic."
"Yes,
Lord Rahl."
"Once
past, head for General Reibisch. This is important. Tell him I want him to pull
back."
"What?
Now that you have the way past the Dominie Dirtch, you don't want him to use
it?"
"The
Dominie Dirtch are going to be destroyed. I can't leave them for Jagang to hide
behind, but I don't want our forces to come down here. Jagang is also coming
here for food for his army. I hope to spoil some of that food.
"Tell
the general my orders are for him to protect the routes up into the Midlands.
Out here on the plains he doesn't stand a chance against the Order's numbers.
He will have a better chance keeping Jagang from advancing into the rest of the
Midlands if our forces fight our way, not Jagang's."
759
"Yes,
sir. Wise advice."
"It
should be, it's General Reibisch's advice. I hope, too, to reduce the Order's
numbers. Tell him to use his discretion."
"What
about you, Lord Rahl? Where is he to find you?"
"You
tell him to worry about his men, not me. I'm... not sure where I'll
be.-Reibisch knows what to do. That's why they made him a general. He would
know better than I what to do about soldiering."
"Yes,
sir. The general is a good man."
Richard
held up a finger for emphasis. "This is important. I want you to follow
this order, and I want Reibisch to follow it.
"The
people of Anderith have made their choice. I don't want a single one of our men
lifting a weapon to help them. I don't want any of our men to have to shed
blood for these people. Understand? Not one!"
The
color left the captain's face. He backed away a half step.
"Not.
One. Drop. Of. Our: Blood," Richard said.
"Yes,
sir. I will tell the general your exact words."
"My
orders." Richard climbed up into the saddle. "And I mean that. You're
all good men, Captain Meiffert. Someday, I want you going home to your
families-not dying for nothing."
The
captain saluted with a fist to his heart. "Our sincere hope, too, Lord
Rahl."
Richard
returned the salute, and then trotted his horse out of camp for the last time,
on his way to perform his final duty.
760
CHAPTER
68
"DARLING,
I'M HOME," DALTON called toward the bedroom.
He had
sent up a bottle of wine, along with a plate of Teresa's favorite dish,
suckling rabbits roasted in a red wine sauce. Mr. Drummond was most pleased to
be able to keep his job by complying with the unusual request.
Perfumed
candles were lit around the rooms, the drapes were drawn, and the servants all
sent away.
The
master and the mistress wanted to be alone.
Teresa
met him at the bedroom door with a glass of wine and a smile. "Oh,
sweetheart, I'm so glad you were able to come in early tonight. I've so looked
forward to it all day."
"As
have I," he said with his best smile.
She
gave him a mischievous look. "I'm so looking forward to proving to you how
much I love you, and to thank you for being so understanding about my duty to
the Sovereign."
Dalton
slipped the silk robe from her shoulders, kissing her bare flesh. She giggled
as he worked his kisses up her neck. She made a feeble effort to slow his
advances.
She
hunched her head against his face. "Dalton, don't you want some
wine?"
"I
want you," he said, in an intimate growl. "It's been too long."
761
"Oh,
Dalton, I know. I've ached for you."
"Then
prove it," he teased.
She
giggled again against his continued kisses.
"My,
but what's gotten into you, Dalton?" She moaned. "Whatever it is, I
like it."
"Tess,,
I've taken the day off tomorrow, too. I want to make love to you tonight, and
all day tomorrow."
She
responded to his intimacies as he guided her toward their big bed with the
hammered-iron posts that looked like the columns outside the Office of Cultural
Amity, the bed that belonged to the Minister of Culture, along with everything
else in the magnificent apartments.
Once,
all of this splendor would have brought him great pleasure. Pleasure in what he
had accomplished, in what he had attained, in how far he had come.
"Dalton,
please don't be disappointed, but Bertrand is expecting me tomorrow
afternoon."
Dalton
shrugged as he gently placed her on the bed. "Well,, we have tonight, and
in the morning again. Right?" , She beamed. "Of course, sweetheart.
Tonight, and for the morning. Oh, Dalton, I'm so happy you understand about the
Sovereign needing me."
"But
I do, darling. You may think this sounds strange, but, in a way, I find it...
exciting."
"You
do?" She grinned her wicked grin. "I like the idea of that. You being
excited, I mean."
She
watched as he opened her robe and kissed her breasts. He came up for breath.
"To
know the Sovereign himself chooses my wife, my beautiful Tess, and by the
direct word of the Creator at that, is the best compliment a loyal Ander man
could ever have."
"Dalton,"
she said, breathless from his kisses and caresses. "I've never seen you
like this." She drew him closer. "I like it. I like it a lot. Come
here, let me show you how much."
Before she
began, she pulled back.
"Dalton,
Bertrand was pleased, too. He said he liked your attitude. He said he found it
exciting, too."
762
"We
all need our Sovereign to guide us into the future and bring us the Creator's
words. I'm so glad you can help relieve the Sovereign's stress in this
life."
She was
panting now. "Yes, Dalton, I do. I really do. It's so ... I don't know, so
wonderful to have such a high calling."
"Why
don't you tell me all about it, darling, as we make love. I'd like to hear it
all."
"Oh,
Dalton, I'm so glad."
Dalton
allowed himself a couple of days to recover after being with Tess. It had been
an experience he once would have found the height of his existence. It once
would have been a source of joy.
After
the experience, though, he needed to deprive himself of Tess for several days
in order to be in a state of heightened need for a task such as he must now
perform.
The
hallway was deserted outside her quarters and offices. Bertrand was in the
opposite wing, with Teresa, having the stresses of his high office relieved.
Dalton had made sure it was a time when Teresa was with Bertrand. The thought
of it would help him to focus on the work at hand.
Bertrand
and his wife made sure they rarely encountered one another. Having their
quarters in opposite wings helped.
She did
sometimes visit him, though. Their screaming battles were legendary among the
staff. Bertrand one day sported a cut over his eye. He was usually able to duck
the objects she hurled at him, but on that occasion she had caught him off
guard.
Partly
because of Hildemara's popularity, but mostly because of her dangerous
connections, Bertrand dared not confront, cross, or do away with his wife. She
had warned him he had better hope she didn't die a sudden death of natural
causes-or any other causes-lest his own health suddenly fail, too.
763
It was
a threat Bertrand did not take lightly. For the most part, he simply avoided
her. There were times, though, when his penchant for risk caused him to make
foolish comments or in some other way embarrass her, and then she went looking
for him. It mattered not where he was, either in his bed, his privy, or a
meeting with wealthy backers. Bertrand generally avoided troubles with her by
trying to take care, but there were times when he provoked her ire.
It was
a relationship that had worked on this estranged level for years, and had borne
them a daughter neither cared for. Dalton had only seen her recently when they
brought her back from boarding school in order to stand with them at public
addresses decrying the horrors of an uncaring Lord Rahl and the Mother
Confessor.
Now the
Lord Rahl had been rejected by the people. Now the Mother Confessor was ...
well, he wasn't sure what had become of her, but he was reasonably sure she was
dead. It had cost Dalton some good men, but in war there were always losses. He
would replace them if need be.
Serin
Rajak had died, too-a terrible infection that turned his blind face to a
festering mass-but Dalton couldn't say he was at all unhappy about that. His
grieving followers reported it a lingering and painful death. No, Dalton was
not at all unhappy about that.
Hildemara
opened the door herself. A good sign, he thought. She was wearing a dress more
revealing than usual. Another good sign, he hoped, since she had known he was
coming.
"Dalton,
how kind of you to ask to pay me a visit. I've wondered how you've been getting
along and thought a talk long overdue. So, how have you been, since your wife
has been serving the needs of our Sovereign?"
He
shrugged. "I've come to my way of dealing with it."
Hildemara
smiled, a cat seeing a mouse. "Ah ... and so the lovely gifts?"
"To
thank you. For-Might I come in?"
She
opened the door wider. He stepped inside, looking around at the unrestrained
opulence. He had never been in
764
the
private quarters of the Sovereign and his wife.
Of
course, his own wife was quite familiar with them, and had described
them-Bertrand's, anyway-in great detail.
"You
were saying? About thanking me?"
Dalton
clasped his hands behind his back. "For opening my eyes." He gestured
behind himself and smiled. "And your door, I might add."
She
chuckled politely. "I sometimes open my door to handsome men. I find it a
... sometimes rewarding experience."
He
closed the distance and took up her hand, kissing the back of it while looking
her in the eye. He thought it a pathetically contrived act, but she responded
as if she believed it sincere, and as if she were well pleased by the token of
respect.
Dalton
had researched her private activities. It had taken every favor owed him, as
well as some direct threats, and even an appointment of standing. He now knew
what she liked, and what she didn't. He knew she didn't like aggressive lovers.
She liked them on the young side, and attentive. She liked to be treated with
the utmost reverence.
She
liked to be fawned over.
He
approached this visit like an elaborate feast, with each course in order, and
building to the main attractions. In this way, with a plan, he found it easier
to proceed.
"My
lady, I fear to be so forward with a woman of your station, but I must be
honest."
She
went to a table of inlaid silver and gold. From a silver tray, she picked a
cut-glass bottle and poured herself a glass of rum. She also poured one for
him, without asking, and handed it to him with a smile.
"Please,
Dalton. We have a long history. I would like nothing better than your honesty.
After all, I was honest with you about your wife."
"Yes,"
he said, "you were, weren't you."
She
took a sip and then laid a wrist over his shoulder,
"And
are you still languishing about that? Or have you come to face the realities of
life?"
"I
must admit, Hildemara, that I have been ... lonely,
765
what
with my wife so often... occupied. I never expected to find myself with a wife
so often unavailable."
She
clucked sympathetically. "You poor dear. I know just how you feel. My
husband is so often occupied himself."
Dalton
turned away, as if embarrassed. "Since my wife is no longer bound by our
vows, I find I have... desires she is unable to satisfy. I'm ashamed to admit
it, but I'm not experienced in this sort of thing. Most men, I guess, would
find this sort of endeavor comes naturally to them. I don't."
She
came close up behind him, putting her mouth next to his ear. "Do go on,
Dalton. I'm listening. Don't be shy- we're old friends."
He
turned to come face-to-face with her, giving her the chance to display her
cleavage-something she believed was greatly appreciated.
"Since
my wife no longer is bound by her vows, being called upon by the Sovereign, I
don't see why I should be bound by mine. Especially when I have ...
longings."
"Well,
of course not."
"And
you once told me that I should come to you first, if anything changed with the
status of my vows. Well, if you're still interested, things have changed."
Her
answer was to kiss him. He found it less repulsive than he feared. By closing
his eyes he was able to actually enjoy it, after a fashion.
He was
surprised, though, when she shifted immediately to the more advanced matters of
the encounter. It would make little difference in the end result. If she wanted
to go straight to it, that was fine by him.
766
CHAPTER
69
IT WAS
AS FORBIDDING a place as Richard had heard, the highlands above the Nareef
Valley: a bleak wasteland. The wind howled in dirty gusts.
He
would expect Joseph Ander to pick such a place.
The
mountains surrounding the dead lake were just as dead. They were rocky, brown,
and barren of life, their peaks all crowned with snow. The thousands of runnels
coming down the slopes sparkled in the sunlight, like fangs.
Juxtaposed
with the bleak wasteland was the green of the paka plants, which looked almost
like water lilies in the vast waters stretching across the wide lap of the
surrounding mountains.
Richard
had left the horses down lower and climbed the narrow foot trail he found that
led up to the lake. He had tied the horses on loose tethers and removed their
tack, so that if he failed to return, they could eventually escape.
Only
one thing drove him on, and that was his love for Kahlan. He had to banish the
chimes so that he could heal her. It was his sole purpose in life. He stood now
on the sterile soil beside the poison waters, knowing what he had to do.
He had
to outthink, outcreate Joseph Ander.
There
was no key to the riddle of the chimes; there was
767
no
'answer. There was no solution waiting to be found. Joseph Ander left no seam
in his tapestry of magic.
His
only chance was to do what Joseph Ander never would have expected. Richard had
studied the man enough to understand the way he thought. He knew what Ander
believed, and what he expected people would try. Richard could do none of those
things and expect to succeed. Richard would do that which Joseph Ander chided
the wizards to do, but which they couldn't see.
He only
hoped he had the strength to see it through to the end. He had ridden hard in
the day, switching horses so they would make it and yet be able to take him
back. At night he had walked them until he could walk no more.
He was
exhausted, and hoped only that he could hold out long enough. Long enough for
Kahlan.
From
the gold-worked leather pouch on his belt he pulled white sorcerer's sand. With
the sand, Richard carefully began drawing a Grace. Starting with the rays
representing the gift, he drew it exactly opposite from the way Zedd told him
it must be drawn. He stood hi the center, laying the lines of the gift inward,
toward himself.
He drew
the star, representing the Creator, next, and then the circle of life, and the
square for the veil, and lastly, the outer circle for the beginning of the
underworld.
Imagination,
Joseph Ander had said, was what made a great wizard, for only a wizard with
imagination was able to transcend the limitations of tradition.
A Grace
might rise in obedience to an inventive spell.
Richard
intended to raise more than that.
From
his place inside the Grace, Richard lifted his fists to the sky.
"Reechani!
Sentrosi! Vasi! I call you forth!"
He knew
what they needed. Joseph Ander had told him.
"Reechani!
Sentrosi! Vasi! I call you forth and offer you my soul!"
The
water rippled as the wind rose. The water moved with deliberate intent. The
wind coming across the water ignited into roiling flame.
768
They
were coming.
Richard,
charged with need and with anger, lowered his arms, pointing his fists off
toward the edge of the lake, where it flowed at last over the rocky lip and on
down into the Nareef Valley. His entire being focused there.
Through
his need and his anger, he called the Subtractive side of his power, the side
from the darkest things, the side from the underworld, from the shadows in the
dark forever of the netherworld.
Black
lightning exploded, the bolts from his fists twisting together in a rope of
howling annihilation focused by his need, powered by his wrath.
The
edge of the mountain lake erupted in violence. The rock beyond disintegrated in
a shower of steam and rubble from the touch of the black lightning. In an
instant, the lower lake shore at the edge was no more. The destructive force of
the Subtractive Magic vaporized it out of existence.
With a
thundering roar, the lake began to empty.
The
water churned as it pulled itself over the side. The edge foamed and frothed.
The paka plants swirled with the water, tearing from the lake bottom. The vast
lake of poisonous water plummeted over the brink.
The
fire coming across the lake, the wind on the water, and the churning water
itself slowed as they approached. These were the essence of the chimes, the
distillation that spoke for them.
"Come
to me," Richard commanded. "I offer you my soul."
As the
chimes began to circle ever closer, Richard drew something else from the pouch
at his belt.
And
then, out in the lake, as it emptied, leaving a muddy bottom where poisonous
water receded, there came a shimmering to the air just above the falling water.
Something began to coalesce. To take form in the world of life.
Wavering
in the air above the surface of the water, a figure began to appear. A robed
figure. An old man made of smoke and glimmering light. A figure in pain.
769
Richard
threw his fists up again. "Reechani! Sentrosi! Vasi! Come to me!"
And
they did. Around him swept the substance of death. It was almost more than
Richard could take, standing there in the center of a maelstrom of death. It
was as abhorrent a feeling as he had ever felt.
The
chimes called to him with seductive sounds from another world. Richard let
them. He smiled at their summons.
He let
them come, these thieves of souls.
And
then he lifted his arm to point.
"Your
master."
The
chimes howled around him with rage. They recognized the one rising up before
them.
"There
he is, slaves. Your master."
"Who
calls me!" came a cry from across the water.
"Richard
Rahl, descendant of Alric. I am the one who has come to be your master, Joseph
Ander."
"You
have found me in my sanctuary. You are the first. I commend you."
"And
I condemn you, Joseph Ander, to your place in the afterlife, where all must go
when their time here is done."
Chimes
of laughter rang out over the lake.
"Finding
me is one thing, disturbing me another. But to dictate to me is altogether
different. You have not the power to begin to do such a thing. You cannot even
envision what I can create."
"Ah,
but I have," Richard called out over the falling water. "Water, hear
me. Air, see what I show you. Fire, feel the truth of it."
Around
him, the three chimes turned and spun, wary of what he had to offer them.
Again,
Richard thrust out his hand. "This is your master, the one who
appropriated you to his bidding, instead of yours. There is his soul stripped
bare for you."
Concern
darkened the face of Joseph Ander's form. "What are you doing? What do you
think you can accomplish with this?"
770
"Truth,
Joseph Ander. I strip you of the lie of your existence."
Richard
lifted a hand, opening it toward Joseph Ander, opening the hand that held the
balance-the black sorcerer's sand. Richard let a trickle of black lightning
crackle between him and the spirit of Joseph Ander.
"There
he is, Reechani. Hear him. There he is, Vasi. See him. There he is, Sentrosi,
feel him through my touch."
Joseph
Ander tried to throw back magic of his own, but he had consigned himself to
another world, one of his own making. He could not bridge that void. But
Richard had called him, and could reach through.
"Now,
my chimes, this is your choice. My soul, or his. The man who would not
surrender his soul to the afterlife. The man who would not go to your master in
the underworld, but became your master in this world, where he enslaved you for
all this time.
"Or
my soul, standing here, in the center of this Grace, where I will pull you to
me, and you will serve me in this world as you have served him.
"Choose,
then: taking vengeance; or going back to slavery."
"He
lies!" Ander's spirit cried out.
The
storm of chimes around Richard made their choice. They saw the truth Richard
had presented them. They crackled across the bridge Richard had created, the
void in the world of life.
The
world shook with the ferocity of it.
Across
that bridge, with a howl of rage that could come only from the world of the
dead, they seized Joseph Ander's soul and took him with them back to that
world, whence they had come. They took him home.
In an
instant that stretched for an eternity, the veil between those worlds was open.
In that instant, death and life touched.
In the
sudden silence that followed, Richard held his hands out in front of himself.
He seemed to be whole. He found that remarkable.
771
The
realization of what he had just done came over him. He had created magic. He
had righted what Joseph Ander had wrongly corrupted.
Now he
had to get back to Kahlan, if she was still alive. He made himself banish that
thought. She had to be alive.
With a
gasp, Zedd opened his eyes. It was dark. He groped and found walls of rock. He
stumbled forward, toward light. Toward sound.
He-realized
he was back in his body. He was no longer in the raven. He didn't understand
how that could be. It was real, though. He looked at his hands. Not feathers,
hands.
He had
his soul back.
He fell
to his knees, weeping with relief. To lose his soul was beyond what he
expected. And he had expected the worst.
Without
his soul, he had been able to inhabit the raven. He brightened a bit. That was
an experience he had never had. No wizard had ever succeeded in projecting
himself into an animal. And to think, it had only required surrendering his
soul.
He
decided that once was enough.
He
walked on toward the light, toward the roar of water. He remembered where he
was. Reaching the edge, he dove into the lake and swam to the far shore.
Zedd
dragged himself out on the far bank. Without thinking, he swept a hand down his
robes to dry himself.
And
then he realized his power was back. His strength, his gift was back.
At a
sound he looked up. Spider nuzzled him.
Grinning,
Zedd rubbed the friendly, soft nose. "Spider, girl. Good to see you, my
friend. Good to see you."
Spider
snorted her pleasure, too.
Zedd
found the saddle and the rest of the tack where he
772
had
left it. Just for the delight of it, he floated the blanket and saddle onto
Spider's back. Spider thought it interesting. Spider was a good sport, and a
good horse.
Zedd
turned at a sound from above. Something was coming down the mountain. Water.
The lake, for some reason, had given way. It was all coming down.
Zedd
sprang up onto Spider. "Time to get out of here, girl."
Spider
obliged him.
Dalton
had just come back into his office when he heard someone come in behind him. It
was Stein. When the man turned to close the door, Dalton glanced to the bottom
of Stein's cape, and saw the scalp he had added.
Dalton
went to the side table and poured himself a glass of water. He was feeling warm
and a little dizzy.
Well,
that was to be expected.
"What
do you want, Stein?"
"Just
a social visit."
"Ah,"
Dalton said. He took a drink.
"Nice
new office you got yourself."
It was
nice. Everything was the best. The only thing from his old office was the
silver-scroll stand beside the desk. He liked the sword stand, and brought it
along. As if reminded, he fingered the hilt of his sword in the stand.
"Well,"
Stein added, "you've earned it. No doubt about that. You've done good for
yourself, though. Good for yourself and your wife."
Dalton
gestured. "New sword, Stein? A little too fancy for your taste, I would
think."
The man
seemed pleased that Dalton had noticed the weapon.
"This
here," he said, lifting it with a thumb by the down swept cross guard a
few inches out of its scabbard, "is the
773
Sword
of Truth. The real sword carried by the Seeker."
Dalton
found it unsettling that a man like Stein would have it. "And what are you
doing with it?"
"One
of my men brought it to me. Quite a lot of trouble, too."
"Really?"
Dalton asked, feigning interest.
"They
captured a Mord-Sith in the process of bringing it to me. The real Sword of
Truth, and a real Mord-Sith. Imagine that."
"Quite
the achievement. The emperor will be pleased."
"He
will be when I present him with the sword. He is pleased with the news you
sent, too. To have defeated Lord Rahl so resoundingly is an achievement. It
won't be long until our forces are here, and we catch him. And the Mother
Confessor, have you found her, yet?"
"No."
Dalton took another drink of water. "But with the spell Sister Penthea
contributed, I don't see how she has a chance. From the look of the knuckles of
my men, they did their job." He paused, looked down. "Up until they
got caught and killed, anyway.
"No,
this is one encounter the Mother Confessor is not going to live through. If she
is still alive, I will hear about it soon enough. If she is dead,"-he
shrugged-"then we may never find her body."
Dalton
leaned against his desk. "When will Jagang be here?"
"Not
long. Week, maybe. The advance guard maybe sooner. He is looking forward to
setting up residence in your fine city."
Dalton
scratched his forehead. He had things to do. Not that any of it really
mattered.
"Well,
I'll be around, if you need me," Stein said.
He
turned back from the door. "Oh, and Dalton, Bertrand told me that you were
more than understanding about your wife and him,"
Dalton
shrugged. "Why not? She is just a woman. I can snap my fingers and have a
dozen. Hardly anything to get possessive about."
774
Stein
seemed genuinely pleased. "I'm glad to see you've come around. The Order
will suit you. We don't hold to notions of possessive attitudes toward
women."
Dalton
was trying to think of places the Mother Confessor could have gone to ground.
"Well,
I'll love the Order, then. I don't hold with those notions myself."
Stein
scratched his stubble. "I'm happy to know you feel that way, Dalton. Since
you do, I'd like to compliment you on your choice of a whore for a wife."
Dalton,
turning to look over papers, stiffened. "I'm sorry, what was that?"
"Oh,
Bertrand, he loans her to me now and then. He was bragging on her, and wanted
me to have some myself. He told her the Creator wanted her to please me. I just
had to tell you, she's quite the hot one."
Stein
turned toward the door.
"There's
one more thing," Dalton said.
"What's
that?" he asked, turning back.
Dalton
brought the tip of his sword whistling around and sliced Stein's belly open
just below his weapons belt. He made the cut shallow, so as not to slice
through everything, just deep enough so that the man's bowels would spill out
at his feet in front of him.
Stein
gasped in shock, his jaw dropping, his eyes showing the whites all around as he
stared down. He looked up at Dalton as he was falling to his knees. The gasp
turned to panting grunts.
"You
know," Dalton said, "as it turns out, I really am the possessive
type. Thank the good spirits your end was \x95 quick."
Stein
collapsed on his side. Dalton stepped over him, around behind him.
"But
just because it's quick, I don't want you to feel you're missing out on
anything, or that I'm neglecting what you have coming."
Dalton
grabbed Stein's greasy hair in a fist. He sliced his
775
sword
around the top of Stein's forehead, put a boot to the man's back, and ripped
his scalp off.
He came
around and showed it to the shrieking man. "That was for Franca, by the
way. Just so you know."
As
Stein lay on the floor, his viscera spilled out, his head bleeding profusely,
Dalton casually walked to the door and opened it, pleased the new man hadn't
opened the door without permission despite all the screaming.
"Phil,
you and Gregory get in here."
"Yes,
Minister Campbell?"
"Phil,
Stein here is making a mess in my office. Please help him out."
"Yes,
Minister Campbell."
"And
I don't want him ruining the carpets." Dalton, as he picked up some papers
from his desk, glanced down at the screaming man. "Take him over there and
throw him out the window."
CHAPTER
70
RICHARD
CRASHED THROUGH THE front door. He saw people there, but he headed straight for
Kahlan.
Jiaan
seized his arm. "Richard, wait."
"What?
What is it? How is she?"
"She
is still alive. She has made it past a critical time."
Richard
nearly collapsed with relief. He felt tears course
776
down
his face, but he kept himself together. He was so tired he had trouble doing
the simplest things. He hadn't been able to turn the knob to open the door, and
had not been able to stop, either.
"I
can heal her now. My power is back."
Richard
turned to the hall. Jiaan seized his arm again.
"I
know. Du Chaillu has her power back, too. You must see her first."
"I'll
see her later. I have to heal Kahlan before anything else."
"No!"
Jiaan shouted in Richard's face.
It
surprised him so that he halted. "Why? What's wrong?"
"Du
Chaillu said she knows now why she came to you. Du Chaillu said we must not let
you touch Kahlan until you see her first. She made me swear I would draw my
sword on you before I let you near Kahlan.
"Please,
Caharin, do not make me do that. I beg you."
Richard
took a breath and tried to calm himself. "All right. If it's that
important, then where is Du Chaillu?"
Jiaan
lead Richard into the hall and to a door next to the room where Kahlan was.
Richard took a long look at the door to Kahlan, but then followed Jiaan's
urging and went in the other door.
Du
Chaillu was sitting in a chair holding a baby. She beamed up at Richard. He
knelt before her and looked at the sleeping bundle in her arms.
"Du
Chaillu," he said in a whisper, "it's beautiful."
"You
have a daughter, husband."
With
all the things in Richard's head, arguing with Du Chaillu about the child's
parentage was the last of them.
"I
have named her Cara, in honor of the one who saved our life."
Richard
nodded. "Cara will be pleased, I'm sure,"
Du
Chaillu put a hand on his shoulder. "Richard, are you all right? You look
like you have been to the land of the dead."
He
smiled a little. "In a way, I have. Jiaan said your gift is back."
777
She
nodded. "Yes. And you must believe in it. My gift is to feel a spell and
silence it."
"Du
Chaillu, I need to heal Kahlan."
"No,
you must not."
Richard
raked his fingers back through his hair. "Du Chaillu, I know you want to
help, but that is crazy."
She
gripped his-shirt in her fist. "Listen to me, Richard. I came to you for a
reason. This is the reason, I know now. I came to save you the pain of losing
Kahlan.
"She
has magic in her that is a trap. If you touch her with your magic, to heal her,
it will spring the magic and kill her. It was a way of making sure they killed
her."
Richard,
trying to remain calm, licked his lips. "But you have the power to annul
spells. When we first met, Sister Verna told me so. Du Chaillu, you can annul
this spell and then I can heal her."
Du
Chaillu held his gaze in the grip of hers. "No. Listen to me. You are not
listening to what is. You are hearing only what you wish to be. Listen to what
is.
"This
spell is the kind of magic I cannot touch with mine. I cannot make it fade
away, like other magic. It is in her like a barb on a fishhook. Your magic that
heals will trigger it, and you will kill her. Do you hear me, Richard? If you
touch her with your magic you will kill her."
Richard
pressed a hand to his forehead. "Then what are we to do?"
"She
is still alive. If she lived this long, she has a good chance. You must care
for her. She must recover without magic. Once she is better, the spell will
fade away, just like a hook in a fish dissolves. Before she is well, it will be
gone, but she will be well enough by then so that your magic will not be
needed."
Richard
nodded. "All right. Thank you, Du Chaillu. I mean that. Thank you for...
for everything."
She
hugged him even with the baby between them.
"But
we have to get out of here. The Order is going to be here any time. We have to
get out of Anderith."
778
'The
man, Edwin, he is a good man. He has fixed a wagon for you to take Kahlan
away."
"How
is she? -Is she awake?"
"In
and out. We feed her a little, let her drink, give her what herbs and cures we
can. Richard, she is very badly hurt, but she is alive. I think she will be
well again, though. I really believe that."
Du
Chaillu got up, taking her new baby with her, and led Richard to the next room.
Richard was exhausted, but his heart was hammering so hard he felt wide awake
again. He felt so helpless, though, that he let Du Chaillu lead him.
The
curtains were drawn, and the room was dimly lit. Kahlan was lying on her back,
covered most of the way with blankets.
Richard
looked down at the face he knew so well but didn't recognize. The sight took
his breath. He had to struggle to stay on his feet. He struggled, too, to hold
back his tears.
She was
unconscious. He gently took her limp hand in his, but there was no response.
Du
Chaillu went around to the other side of the bed.
Richard
gestured. Du Chaillu understood, and smiled at the idea. She gently laid little
baby Cara in the crook of Kahlan's arm. The baby, still asleep, nuzzled in
Kahlan's arm.
Kahlan
stirred. Her hand partly curled around the baby, and a small smile came to her
lips.
The
smile was the first thing Richard recognized as Kahlan.
Outside,
once they gently got Kahlan situated in the special carriage Edwin had
converted, they brought it out of the carriage house, into the early-morning
light. A man named Linscott, once a Director and still a friend of Ed-
779
win's,
had helped make the cover for the carriage, and alter the suspension so it
would ride more gently. Linscott and Edwin were part of a group that had been
resisting the corrupt rule in Anderith. Unsuccessfully, it turned out. Now, at Richard's
urging, they were going to leave. There weren't many, but some people were
going to escape.
At the
side of the house, in the shade of a cherry tree, Dalton Campbell was waiting
for them.
Richard
instantly tensed, prepared for a battle. Dalton Campbell, though, didn't look
to have any fight in him.
"Lord
Rahl, I came to see you and the Mother Confessor off."
Richard
glanced over at the baffled faces of some of the others. They seemed as
surprised as Richard.
"And
how did you know we were here?"
The man
smiled. "It's what I do, Lord Rahl. It's my job to know things. At least,
it was."
Linscott
was looking like he was about to go for the man's throat. Edwin, too, looked
ready for blood.
Dalton
didn't seem to care. Richard signaled with a tilt of his head, and Jiaan and Du
Chaillu ushered everyone else back. With the rest of the blade masters nearby,
none of them seemed too concerned about this one man.
"May
I say, Lord Rahl, that in another time, another place, I think we could have
been friends."
"I
don't," Richard said.
The man
shrugged. "Maybe not." He pulled a folded blanket from under his arm.
"I brought this, in case you need another to keep your wife warm."
Richard
was confused by the man, and by what he wanted. Dalton placed the blanket off
to the side in the carriage. Richard figured that Dalton could have caused a
lot of trouble if he intended it, so that wasn't what he was about.
"I
just wanted to wish you good luck. I hope the Mother Confessor will be well,
soon. The Midlands needs her. She is a fine woman. I'm sorry I tried to have
her killed."
780
"What
did you say?"
He
looked up into Richard's eyes. "I'm the one who sent those men. If you get
your magic back, Lord Rahl, please don't try to heal her with it. A Sister of
the Dark provided a spell to kill her with the dark side of the magic, if
healing is tried on what was done to her. You must let her get better on her
own."
Richard
thought he should be killing the man, but for some reason, he was just standing
there, staring at him as he confessed.
"If
you wish to kill me, please feel free. I don't really care."
"What
do you mean?"
"You
have a wife who loves you. Cherish her."
"And
your wife?"
Dalton
shrugged. "Ah well, I'm afraid she isn't going to make it."
Richard
frowned. "What are you talking about?"
"There
is a nasty illness going around among the prostitutes in Fairfield. Somehow, my
wife, the Sovereign, his wife, and I have acquired it. We are already coming
ill. Very unfortunate. It's an unpleasant death, I'm told.
"The
poor Sovereign is weeping and inconsolable. Considering it was the one thing he
feared above all else, one would think he would have been more careful in
choosing his partners.
"The
Dominie Dirtch, too, I've heard, have crumbled to dust. All our work seems to
be coming undone. I expect that Emperor Jagang, when he arrives, is going to be
quite displeased."
"We
can hope," Richard said.
Dalton
smiled. "Well, I've things to do, unless, of course, you wish to kill
me."
Richard
smiled at the man.
"A
wise woman told me that the people are the willing accomplices of tyranny. They
make those like you possible.
"I'm
going to do the worst possible thing I could do to
781
you and
your people-what my grandfather would have done to you.
"I'm
going to leave you all to suffer the consequences of your own actions."
Ann was
so cramped she feared she would be crippled for life, never to walk again. The
box she was in was bouncing around in the wagon something awful as it rattled
over cobblestones, adding to her misery. She felt as if someone had beaten her
with a club.
If she
wasn't let out soon, she was sure she would go mad.
As if
in answer to the prayer, the wagon finally slowed, and then stopped. Ann sagged
with blessed relief. She was near tears from the pain of hitting the sides and
bottom, being unable to use her hands and feet to brace herself.
She
heard the hasp being worked, and then the top opened, letting cool night air
in. Ann took a thankful lungful, savoring it like a sweet perfume.
The
front of the box dropped onto the bed of the wagon. Sister Alessandra was
standing there, looking in. Ann peered around, but didn't see anyone else. They
were in a narrow side street that looked deserted, for-the most part. One old
woman walked past, but didn't even glance their way.
Ann
frowned. "Alessandra, what's going on?"
Sister
Alessandra folded her hands in a prayerful pose. "Prelate, please, I want
to return to the Light."
Ann
blinked. "Where are we?"
"The
city the emperor has been traveling to. It's called Fairfield. I encouraged
your driver to let me drive the wagon."
"Encouraged
him? How?"
"With
a club."
Ann's
eyebrows rose. "I see."
"And
then, I'm so bad with directions, we became sepa-
782
rated
from the rest of the line, and well, I guess now we're lost."
"How
unfortunate for us."
"I
guess that leaves looking for some of Jagang's troops and surrendering, or else
returning to the Light."
"Alessandra,
are you serious?"
The
woman looked ready to burst into tears. The banter was over. "Please,
Prelate, help me?"
"Alessandra,
you don't need me. The path to the Light is through your own heart."
Sister
Alessandra knelt down behind the wagon as Ann still sat in her box, her hands
and feet in chains.
"Please,
dear Creator," Alessandra began.
Ann
listened as the woman poured her heart out. At the end, she kissed her ring
finger. Ann held her breath, waiting for a bolt of lightning to strike
Alessandra dead for betraying the Keeper of the underworld.
Nothing
happened. Alessandra smiled up at Ann.
"Prelate,
I can feel it. I can-"
. Her
words were cut off with a choking sound. Her eyes bulged.
Ann
scooted toward her. "Alessandra! Is it Jagang? Is it Jagang in you
mind?"
Alessandra
nodded as best she could.
"Swear
loyalty to Richard! Swear it in your heart! It's the only thing to keep the
dream walker from your mind!"
Falling
to the ground, Sister Alessandra twitched in convulsions of pain, at the same
time mumbling words Ann couldn't understand.
At
last, the woman went slack, panting in relief. She sat up and peered up into
the wagon.
"It
worked! Prelate, it worked." She put her hands to her head. "Jagang
is gone from my mind. Oh, praise the Creator. Praise the Creator."
"How
about getting these things off me, and doing your praying later?"
Sister
Alessandra scurried to help. Before long, Ann had her shackles off, and she had
been healed. For the first time
783
in what
seemed ages, she could again touch her own gift.
The two
of them unhitched the horses and saddled them with tack from the wagon. Ann
hadn't felt so joyous in years. They both wanted to get far away from the
Imperial Order army.
As they
made their way through the city, heading north, they came across a square
filling with thousands of people all carrying candles.
Ann
bent over on her horse to ask one of the young women what was going on.
"It's
a candlelight vigil for peace," the woman said.
Ann was
dumbfounded. "A what?"
"A
candlelight vigil for peace. We are all gathering to show the soldiers coming
into the city a better way, to show them the people are going to insist on
peace."
Ann
scowled. "If I were you, I'd be heading for a hole, because these men
don't believe in peace."
The
woman smiled in a long-suffering manner. "When they see us all gathered
for peace, they will see that we are a force too powerful to overcome with
anger and hatred."
As the
young woman marched on into the square, Ann seized Sister Alessandra's sleeve.
"Let's get out of here. This is going to be a killing field."
"But
Prelate, these people are in danger. You know what the soldiers of the Order
will do. The women ... you know what they will do to the women. And any men who
resist will be slaughtered."
Ann
nodded. "I expect so. But there is nothing we can do about it. They will
have peace. The dead will have peace. The living will have peace, too-as
slaves."
They
made it past the square just in time. When the soldiers arrived, it was worse
even than Ann had envisioned. Screams of panic, then terror, and then pain rose
from the trapped throng. The cries of the men and the children would end
relatively quickly. The screams of the older girls and women had only just
begun.
When at
last they reached the countryside, Ann asked, "I told you we had to
eliminate the Sisters of the Light who
784
wouldn't
escape. Did you do as you knew I wished, before you escaped with me,
Sister?"
Sister
Alessandra stared ahead as she rode. "No, Prelate."
"Alessandra,
you knew it had to be done."
"I
want to come back to the Creator's Light. I couldn't destroy the life he
created."
"And
by not killing those few, many more could die. A Sister of the Dark would want
that. How can I trust you are telling me the truth?"
"Because
I didn't kill the Sisters. If I were still a Sister of the Dark I would have.
I'm telling the truth."
It
would be wonderful if Alessandra had returned to the Light. That had never
happened before. Alessandra could be an invaluable source of information.
"Or
it shows you are lying, and are still sworn to the Keeper."
"Prelate,
I helped you escape. Why won't you believe me?"
Ann
looked over at the woman as they rode out toward the wilds, toward the unknown.
"I can never fully believe or trust you, Alessandra, not after the lies
you have told. That is the curse of lying, Sister. Once you place that crown of
the liar upon your head, you can take it off again, but it leaves a stain for
all time."
Richard
turned when he heard the horse approaching from behind. He checked Kahlan, who
lay inside the carriage, as he walked beside it. She was asleep, or possibly
unconscious. At least he could now recognize a little of her face.
Richard
looked again when the horse was closer, and saw a rider in red. Cara trotted
her horse up close and then dismounted. She took the reins and walked up beside
him. She had a limp.
"Lord
Rahl, it took me a long time to catch you. Where are you going?"
785
"Home."
"Home?"
"That's
right, home."
Cara
looked up the road. "Where is home?"
"Hartland.
Maybe to the west-in the mountains. There are some nice places there, places
I've always wanted to take Kahlan."
She seemed
to accept this and walked silently beside him for a time, leading her horse
along behind.
"Lord
Rahl, what about everything else? D'Hara. The Midlands. All the people."
"What
about them?"
"Well,
they will be waiting for you."
"They
don't need me. I quit."
"Lord
Rahl, how can you say such a thing?"
"I
have violated every wizard's rule I know. I've ..."
He let
it go. He didn't care.\xA0 '
"Where
is Du Chaillu?" Cara asked.
"I
sent her home to her people. Her task with us was done." Richard glanced
over. "She had her baby. A beautiful little girl. She named it Cara, after
you."
Cara
beamed. "Then I am glad it was not ugly. Some babies are ugly, you
know."
"Well,
this one was beautiful."
"Did
it look like you, Lord Rahl?"
Richard
scowled at her. "No."
Cara
peered into the carriage. Her blond braid slipped forward over her shoulder.
"What
happened to the Mother Confessor?"
"I
just about got her killed."
Cara
didn't say anything.
"I
heard you were captured. Are you all right?" he asked.
Cara
pushed her braid back over her shoulder. "They were fools. They didn't
take my Agiel. When you fixed the magic, I made them all curse their mothers
for ever meeting their fathers."
Richard
smiled. That was the Cara he knew.
"And
then I killed them," she added.
786
She
held out the broken top of a black bottle. It still had the gold filigree
stopper. "Lord Rahl, I failed. I didn't bring you your sword. But... but I
managed to break the black bottle from the Wizard's Keep with the sword, at
least." She stopped, her blue eyes brimming with tears. "Lord Rahl,
I'm sorry. I failed. I tried my best, I swear, but I failed."
Richard
stopped then. He put his arms around her. "No, you didn't fail, Cara.
Because you broke that bottle with the sword, we were able to get magic back to
right."
"Really?"
He
nodded as he looked her in the eye. "Really. You did right, Cara. I'm
proud of you."
They
started walking again.
"So,
Lord Rahl, how far to home?"
He
thought it over a few minutes. "I guess Kahlan is my family, so that makes
it home wherever we are. As long as I'm with Kahlan, I'm home.
"Cara,
it's over. You can go home now. I release you."
She
stopped. Richard walked on.
"But
I don't have a family. They are all dead."
He
looked back at her, standing in the road, looking as forlorn as anything he had
ever seen. Richard went back, put an arm around her shoulders, and started
walking with her.
"We're
your family, Cara, Kahlan and me. We love you. So I guess you should come home
with us."
That
seemed to suit her.
"Will
there be people at this home place who need killing?"
Richard
smiled. "I don't think so."
"Then
why would we want to go there?"
When he
only smiled, she said, "I thought you wanted to take over the world. I was
looking forward to you being a tyrant. I say you should do it. The Mother
Confessor would agree with me. That makes it two against one. We win."
"The
world didn't want me. They took a vote and said
no."
"A
vote! There was your problem."
787
"I
won't do it again."
Cara
limped along beside him for a time and then said, "They will all find you,
you know. The D'Harans are bonded to you. You are the Lord Rahl. Everyone will
find you."
"Maybe.
Maybe not."
"Richard?"
came a soft voice.
He
pulled the team up and went to the side of the carriage.
Kahlan
was awake. He took her hand.
"Who's
that?" she asked.
Cara
leaned in. "Just me. I had to come back. You see what kind of trouble you
get into when I'm not watching over you?"
Kahlan
smiled a little smile. She released Richard's hand and took Cara's.
"Glad
you're home," Kahlan whispered.
"Lord
Rahl said I saved the magic. Can you imagine? What was I thinking? I had the
chance to rid myself of magic, and instead I saved it."
Kahlan
smiled again.
"How
are you feeling?" Richard asked.
"Terrible."
"You
don't look so bad," Cara told her. "I've been much worse."
Richard
gently stroked Kahlan's hand. "You'll get better. I promise. And wizards
always keep their promises."
"Cold,"
she said. Her teeth were beginning to chatter.
Richard
spotted the blanket Dalton Campbell had put on the side and pulled it closer.
The
Sword of Truth fell out. He stood staring at it.
'The
sword has come home, too, I guess," Cara said.
"I
guess it has."